This is a modern-English version of Rolf in the Woods, originally written by Seton, Ernest Thompson. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.





ROLF IN THE WOODS



By Ernest Thompson Seton





[Chapters 10 and 60 not designated.]










CONTENTS


Preface

Chapter 1. The Wigwam Under the Rock

Chapter 2. Rolf Kittering and the Soldier Uncle

Chapter 3. Rolf Catches a Coon and Finds a Friend

Chapter 4. The Coon Hunt Makes Trouble for Rolf

Chapter 5. Good-bye to Uncle Mike

Chapter 6. Skookum Accepts Rolf at Last

Chapter 7. Rolf Works Out with Many Results

Chapter 8. The Law of Property Among Our Four-Footed Kin

Chapter 9. Where the Bow Is Better Than the Gun

Chapter 10. Rolf Works Out with Many Results

Chapter 11. The Thunder-storm and the Fire Sticks

Chapter 12. Hunting the Woodchucks

Chapter 13. The Fight with the Demon of the Deep

Chapter 14. Selectman Horton Appears at the Rock

Chapter 15. Bound for the North Woods

Chapter 16. Life with the Dutch Settler

Chapter 17. Canoeing on the Upper Hudson

Chapter 18. Animal Life Along the River

Chapter 19. The Footprint on the Shore

Chapter 20. The Trappers' Cabin

Chapter 21. Rolf's First Deer

Chapter 22. The Line of Traps

Chapter 23. The Beaver Pond

Chapter 24. The Porcupine

Chapter 25. The Otter Slide

Chapter 26. Back to the Cabin

Chapter 27. Sick Dog Skookum

Chapter 28. Alone in the Wilderness

Chapter 29. Snowshoes

Chapter 30. Catching a Fox

Chapter 31. Following the Trap Line

Chapter 32. The Antler-bound Bucks

Chapter 33. A Song of Praise

Chapter 34. The Birch-bark Vessels

Chapter 35. Snaring Rabbits

Chapter 36. Something Wrong at the Beaver Traps

Chapter 37. The Pekan or Fisher

Chapter 38. The Silver Fox

Chapter 39. The Humiliation of Skookum

Chapter 40. The Rarest of Pelts

Chapter 41. The Enemy's Fort

Chapter 42. Skookum's Panther

Chapter 43. Sunday in the Woods

Chapter 44. The Lost Bundle of Furs

Chapter 45. The Subjugation of Hoag

Chapter 46. Nursing Hoag

Chapter 47. Hoag's Home-coming

Chapter 48. Rolf's Lesson in Trailing

Chapter 49. Rolf Gets Lost

Chapter 50. Marketing the Fur

Chapter 51. Back at Van Trumper's

Chapter 52. Annette's New Dress

Chapter 53. Travelling to the Great City

Chapter 54. Albany

Chapter 55. The Rescue of Bill

Chapter 56. The Sick Ox

Chapter 57. Rolf and Skookum at Albany

Chapter 58. Back to Indian Lake

Chapter 59. Van Cortlandt's Drugs

Chapter 60. Van Cortlandt's Adventure

Chapter 61. Rolf Learns Something from Van

Chapter 62. The Charm of Song

Chapter 63. The Redemption of Van

Chapter 64. Dinner at the Governor's

Chapter 65. The Grebes and the Singing Mouse

Chapter 66. A Lesson in Stalking

Chapter 67. Rolf Meets a Canuck

Chapter 68. War

Chapter 69. Ogdensburg

Chapter 70. Saving the Despatches

Chapter 71. Sackett's Harbour

Chapter 72. Scouting Across Country

Chapter 73. Rolf Makes a Record

Chapter 74. Van Trumper's Again

Chapter 75. Scouting in Canada

Chapter 76. The Duel

Chapter 77. Why Plattsburg Was Raided

Chapter 78. Rumours and Papers

Chapter 79. McGlassin's Exploit

Chapter 80. The Bloody Saranac

Chapter 81. The Battle of Plattsburg

Chapter 82. Scouting for Macomb

Chapter 83. The Last of Sir George Prevost

Chapter 84. Rolf Unmasks the Ambush

Chapter 85. The Hospital, the Prisoners, and Home

Chapter 86. The New Era of Prosperity

Quonab Goes Home

CONTENTS


Preface

Chapter 1. The Wigwam Under the Rock

Chapter 2. Rolf Kittering and the Soldier Uncle

Chapter 3. Rolf Catches a Coon and Finds a Friend

Chapter 4. The Coon Hunt Makes Trouble for Rolf

Chapter 5. Good-bye to Uncle Mike

Chapter 6. Skookum Accepts Rolf at Last

Chapter 7. Rolf Works Out with Many Results

Chapter 8. The Law of Property Among Our Four-Footed Kin

Chapter 9. Where the Bow Is Better Than the Gun

Chapter 10. Rolf Works Out with Many Results

Chapter 11. The Thunder-storm and the Fire Sticks

Chapter 12. Hunting the Woodchucks

Chapter 13. The Fight with the Demon of the Deep

Chapter 14. Selectman Horton Appears at the Rock

Chapter 15. Bound for the North Woods

Chapter 16. Life with the Dutch Settler

Chapter 17. Canoeing on the Upper Hudson

Chapter 18. Animal Life Along the River

Chapter 19. The Footprint on the Shore

Chapter 20. The Trappers' Cabin

Chapter 21. Rolf's First Deer

Chapter 22. The Line of Traps

Chapter 23. The Beaver Pond

Chapter 24. The Porcupine

Chapter 25. The Otter Slide

Chapter 26. Back to the Cabin

Chapter 27. Sick Dog Skookum

Chapter 28. Alone in the Wilderness

Chapter 29. Snowshoes

Chapter 30. Catching a Fox

Chapter 31. Following the Trap Line

Chapter 32. The Antler-bound Bucks

Chapter 33. A Song of Praise

Chapter 34. The Birch-bark Vessels

Chapter 35. Snaring Rabbits

Chapter 36. Something Wrong at the Beaver Traps

Chapter 37. The Pekan or Fisher

Chapter 38. The Silver Fox

Chapter 39. The Humiliation of Skookum

Chapter 40. The Rarest of Pelts

Chapter 41. The Enemy's Fort

Chapter 42. Skookum's Panther

Chapter 43. Sunday in the Woods

Chapter 44. The Lost Bundle of Furs

Chapter 45. The Subjugation of Hoag

Chapter 46. Nursing Hoag

Chapter 47. Hoag's Home-coming

Chapter 48. Rolf's Lesson in Trailing

Chapter 49. Rolf Gets Lost

Chapter 50. Marketing the Fur

Chapter 51. Back at Van Trumper's

Chapter 52. Annette's New Dress

Chapter 53. Travelling to the Great City

Chapter 54. Albany

Chapter 55. The Rescue of Bill

Chapter 56. The Sick Ox

Chapter 57. Rolf and Skookum at Albany

Chapter 58. Back to Indian Lake

Chapter 59. Van Cortlandt's Drugs

Chapter 60. Van Cortlandt's Adventure

Chapter 61. Rolf Learns Something from Van

Chapter 62. The Charm of Song

Chapter 63. The Redemption of Van

Chapter 64. Dinner at the Governor's

Chapter 65. The Grebes and the Singing Mouse

Chapter 66. A Lesson in Stalking

Chapter 67. Rolf Meets a Canuck

Chapter 68. War

Chapter 69. Ogdensburg

Chapter 70. Saving the Despatches

Chapter 71. Sackett's Harbour

Chapter 72. Scouting Across Country

Chapter 73. Rolf Makes a Record

Chapter 74. Van Trumper's Again

Chapter 75. Scouting in Canada

Chapter 76. The Duel

Chapter 77. Why Plattsburg Was Raided

Chapter 78. Rumours and Papers

Chapter 79. McGlassin's Exploit

Chapter 80. The Bloody Saranac

Chapter 81. The Battle of Plattsburg

Chapter 82. Scouting for Macomb

Chapter 83. The Last of Sir George Prevost

Chapter 84. Rolf Unmasks the Ambush

Chapter 85. The Hospital, the Prisoners, and Home

Chapter 86. The New Era of Prosperity

Quonab Goes Home






Preface

In this story I have endeavoured to realize some of the influences that surrounded the youth of America a hundred years ago, and made of them, first, good citizens, and, later, in the day of peril, heroes that won the battles of Lake Erie, Plattsburg, and New Orleans, and the great sea fights of Porter, Bainbridge, Decatur, Lawrence, Perry, and MacDonough.

In this story, I’ve tried to capture some of the influences that shaped the youth of America a hundred years ago, turning them into good citizens and, later, heroes in times of danger who fought and won the battles of Lake Erie, Plattsburgh, and New Orleans, as well as the major naval battles led by Porter, Bainbridge, Decatur, Lawrence, Perry, and MacDonough.

I have especially dwelt in detail on the woodland and peace scouting in the hope that I may thus help other boys to follow the hard-climbing trail that leads to the higher uplands.

I have particularly focused on the woods and peace scouting in hopes that I can help other boys navigate the tough path that leads to greater heights.

For the historical events of 1812-14, I have consulted among books chiefly, Theodore Roosevelt's “Naval War of 1812,” Peter S. Palmer's “History of Lake Champlain,” and Walter Hill Crockett's “A History of Lake Champlain,” 1909. But I found another and more personal mine of information. Through the kindness of my friend, Edmund Seymour, a native of the Champlain region, now a resident of New York, I went over all the historical ground with several unpublished manuscripts for guides, and heard from the children of the sturdy frontiersmen new tales of the war; and in getting more light and vivid personal memories, I was glad, indeed, to realize that not only were there valour and heroism on both sides, but also gentleness and courtesy. Histories written by either party at the time should be laid aside. They breathe the rancourous hate of the writers of the age—the fighters felt not so—and the many incidents given here of chivalry and consideration were actual happenings, related to me by the descendants of those who experienced them; and all assure me that these were a true reflex of the feelings of the day.

For the historical events of 1812-14, I mainly referred to books like Theodore Roosevelt's “Naval War of 1812,” Peter S. Palmer's “History of Lake Champlain,” and Walter Hill Crockett's “A History of Lake Champlain,” published in 1909. However, I discovered another, more personal source of information. Thanks to my friend, Edmund Seymour, who grew up in the Champlain area and now lives in New York, I explored the historical sites with several unpublished manuscripts as guides. I also heard new stories about the war from the children of those tough frontiersmen. In gaining deeper insights and vivid personal memories, I was really pleased to realize that there was not only bravery and heroism on both sides, but also kindness and respect. Accounts written by either side at the time should be set aside. They reflect the bitter hatred of their authors—the fighters felt otherwise—and the numerous stories of chivalry and consideration I have shared here were real events, conveyed to me by the descendants of those who lived them; and they all assure me that these were a true reflection of the feelings of that era.

I am much indebted to Miss Katherine Palmer, of Plattsburg, for kindly allowing me to see the unpublished manuscript memoir of her grandfather, Peter Sailly, who was Collector of the Port of Plattsburg at the time of the war.

I am very grateful to Miss Katherine Palmer from Plattsburg for generously letting me read the unpublished memoir manuscript of her grandfather, Peter Sailly, who served as the Collector of the Port of Plattsburg during the war.

Another purpose in this story was to picture the real Indian with his message for good or for evil.

Another purpose of this story was to portray the real Indian and share his message, whether positive or negative.

Those who know nothing of the race will scoff and say they never heard of such a thing as a singing and religious red man. Those who know him well will say, “Yes, but you have given to your eastern Indian songs and ceremonies which belong to the western tribes, and which are of different epochs.” To the latter I reply:

Those who know nothing about the culture will laugh and claim they've never heard of a singing and spiritual Native American. Those who are familiar with him will say, “Yes, but you've attributed eastern Indian songs and rituals to the western tribes, which are from different time periods.” To the latter, I respond:

“You know that the western Indians sang and prayed in this way. How do you know that the eastern ones did not? We have no records, except those by critics, savagely hostile, and contemptuous of all religious observances but their own. The Ghost Dance Song belonged to a much more recent time, no doubt, but it was purely Indian, and it is generally admitted that the races of continental North America were of one stock, and had no fundamentally different customs or modes of thought.”

“You know that the western Indigenous people sang and prayed like this. How do you know the eastern ones didn’t? We don’t have records, except for those by critics who are fiercely hostile and dismissive of all religious practices except their own. The Ghost Dance Song certainly came from a more recent era, but it was entirely Indigenous, and it’s widely accepted that the people of continental North America came from the same cultural background and shared similar customs and ways of thinking.”

The Sunrise Song was given me by Frederick R. Burton, author of “American Primitive Music.” It is still in use among the Ojibwa.

The Sunrise Song was given to me by Frederick R. Burton, the author of “American Primitive Music.” It is still used among the Ojibwa.

The songs of the Wabanaki may be read in C. G. Leland's “Kuloskap the Master.”

The songs of the Wabanaki can be found in C. G. Leland's “Kuloskap the Master.”

The Ghost Dance Song was furnished by Alice C. Fletcher, whose “Indian Song and Story” will prove a revelation to those who wish to follow further.

The Ghost Dance Song was provided by Alice C. Fletcher, whose “Indian Song and Story” will be an eye-opener for those who want to explore more.

ERNEST THOMPSON SETON.

ERNEST THOMPSON SETON.





Chapter 1. The Wigwam Under the Rock

The early springtime sunrise was near at hand as Quonab, the last of the Myanos Sinawa, stepped from his sheltered wigwam under the cliff that borders the Asamuk easterly, and, mounting to the lofty brow of the great rock that is its highest pinnacle, he stood in silence, awaiting the first ray of the sun over the sea water that stretches between Connecticut and Seawanaky.

The early spring sunrise was approaching as Quonab, the last of the Myanos Sinawa, stepped out from his sheltered wigwam under the cliff that borders the Asamuk to the east. Climbing up to the high point of the great rock that is its tallest peak, he stood in silence, waiting for the first rays of the sun over the water that stretches between Connecticut and Seawanaky.

His silent prayer to the Great Spirit was ended as a golden beam shot from a long, low cloud-bank over the sea, and Quonab sang a weird Indian song for the rising sun, an invocation to the Day God:

His silent prayer to the Great Spirit ended as a golden ray streamed from a long, low cloud over the sea, and Quonab sang a strange Indian song for the rising sun, an invocation to the Day God:

     “O thou that risest from the low cloud
     To burn in the all above;
     I greet thee!  I adore thee!”
 
     “O you who rise from the low cloud
     To shine in the sky above;
     I greet you! I adore you!”

Again and again he sang to the tumming of a small tom-tom, till the great refulgent one had cleared the cloud, and the red miracle of the sunrise was complete. Back to his wigwam went the red man, down to his home tucked dosed under the sheltering rock, and, after washing his hands in a basswood bowl, began to prepare his simple meal.

Again and again he sang to the beat of a small drum, until the brilliant sun broke through the clouds and the beautiful colors of sunrise were complete. The Native American man returned to his dwelling, down to his home nestled under the protective rock, and, after washing his hands in a basswood bowl, started to prepare his simple meal.

A tin-lined copper pot hanging over the fire was partly filled with water; then, when it was boiling, some samp or powdered corn and some clams were stirred in. While these were cooking, he took his smooth-bore flint-lock, crawled gently over the ridge that screened his wigwam from the northwest wind, and peered with hawk-like eyes across the broad sheet of water that, held by a high beaver-dam, filled the little valley of Asamuk Brook.

A copper pot lined with tin was hanging over the fire and was partially filled with water; then, when it started boiling, some cornmeal and clams were stirred in. While those were cooking, he grabbed his smooth-bore flintlock, quietly crawled over the ridge that shielded his cabin from the northwest wind, and peered with sharp eyes across the wide expanse of water that filled the small valley of Asamuk Brook, held back by a tall beaver dam.

The winter ice was still on the pond, but in all the warming shallows there was open water, on which were likely to be ducks. None were to be seen, but by the edge of the ice was a round object which, although so far away, he knew at a glance for a muskrat.

The winter ice was still on the pond, but in all the warming shallow areas, there was open water, where ducks were likely to be. None were visible, but by the edge of the ice was a round object that, even from a distance, he instantly recognized as a muskrat.

By crawling around the pond, the Indian could easily have come within shot, but he returned at once to his wigwam, where he exchanged his gun for the weapons of his fathers, a bow and arrows, and a long fish-line. A short, quick stalk, and the muskrat, still eating a flagroot, was within thirty feet. The fish-line was coiled on the ground and then attached to an arrow, the bow bent—zip—the arrow picked up the line, coil after coil, and trans-fixed the muskrat. Splash! and the animal was gone under the ice.

By crawling around the pond, the Indian could have easily gotten within range, but he quickly returned to his wigwam, where he swapped his gun for his ancestors' weapons: a bow, arrows, and a long fishing line. After a brief and careful approach, he spotted the muskrat still munching on a flagroot, just thirty feet away. He coiled the fishing line on the ground and then attached it to an arrow, bent the bow—zip—the arrow picked up the line, coil after coil, and struck the muskrat. Splash! and the animal disappeared under the ice.

But the cord was in the hands of the hunter; a little gentle pulling and the rat came to view, to be despatched with a stick and secured. Had he shot it with a gun, it had surely been lost.

But the cord was in the hands of the hunter; a little gentle pulling and the rat came into view, to be dispatched with a stick and secured. If he had shot it with a gun, it surely would have been lost.

He returned to his camp, ate his frugal breakfast, and fed a small, wolfish-looking yellow dog that was tied in the lodge.

He went back to his camp, had a simple breakfast, and fed a small, wolf-like yellow dog that was tied up in the lodge.

He skinned the muskrat carefully, first cutting a slit across the rear and then turning the skin back like a glove, till it was off to the snout; a bent stick thrust into this held it stretched, till in a day, it was dry and ready for market. The body, carefully cleaned, he hung in the shade to furnish another meal.

He carefully skinned the muskrat, first making a cut across the back and then pulling the skin back like a glove until it was off all the way to the snout. He used a bent stick to hold it stretched until it dried and was ready for market in a day. He cleaned the body thoroughly and hung it in the shade to provide another meal.

As he worked, there were sounds of trampling in the woods, and presently a tall, rough-looking man, with a red nose and a curling white moustache, came striding through brush and leaves. He stopped when he saw the Indian, stared contemptuously at the quarry of the morning chase, made a scornful remark about “rat-eater,” and went on toward the wigwam, probably to peer in, but the Indian's slow, clear, “keep away!” changed his plan. He grumbled something about “copper-coloured tramp,” and started away in the direction of the nearest farmhouse.

As he worked, there were sounds of footsteps in the woods, and soon a tall, rugged-looking guy with a red nose and a curling white mustache came striding through the brush and leaves. He stopped when he saw the Indian, stared disrespectfully at the target of the morning chase, made a sarcastic remark about “rat-eater,” and continued toward the wigwam, probably to take a look inside. However, the Indian's slow, clear, “keep away!” made him change his mind. He mumbled something about “copper-colored tramp” and headed off toward the nearest farmhouse.





Chapter 2. Rolf Kittering and the Soldier Uncle

     A feller that chatters all the time is bound to talk a
     certain amount of drivel.—The Sayings of Si Sylvanne
     A guy who talks all the time is sure to say a lot of nonsense.—The Sayings of Si Sylvanne

This was the Crow Moon, the white man's March. The Grass Moon was at hand, and already the arrow bands of black-necked honkers were passing northward from the coast, sending down as they flew the glad tidings that the Hunger Moon was gone, that spring was come, yea, even now was in the land. And the flicker clucked from a high, dry bough, the spotted woodwale drummed on his chosen branch, the partridge drummed in the pine woods, and in the sky the wild ducks, winging, drummed their way. What wonder that the soul of the Indian should seek expression in the drum and the drum song of his race?

This was the Crow Moon, the white man's March. The Grass Moon was approaching, and already the flocks of black-necked geese were flying north from the coast, announcing as they flew that the Hunger Moon was over, that spring had arrived, and was indeed present in the land. And the flicker called from a high, dry branch, the spotted woodpecker drummed on his chosen tree, the partridge drummed in the pine woods, and in the sky the wild ducks, flying, drummed their way. What a surprise that the spirit of the Indian would seek to express itself in the drum and the drum song of his people?

Presently, as though remembering something, he went quietly to the southward under the ridge, just where it breaks to let the brook go by, along the edge of Strickland's Plain, and on that hill of sliding stone he found, as he always had, the blue-eyed liver-leaf smiling, the first sweet flower of spring! He did not gather it, he only sat down and looked at it. He did not smile, or sing, or utter words, or give it a name, but he sat beside it and looked hard at it, and, in the first place, he went there knowingly to find it. Who shall say that its beauty did not reach his soul?

Right now, as if recalling something, he quietly went south under the ridge, just where it opens up to let the brook pass by, along the edge of Strickland's Plain. On that hill of sliding stone, he found, just like he always did, the blue-eyed liver-leaf smiling, the first sweet flower of spring! He didn’t pick it; he just sat down and looked at it. He didn’t smile, sing, speak, or name it, but he sat next to it and stared intently at it, and, to begin with, he went there knowing he would find it. Who can say that its beauty didn’t touch his soul?

He took out his pipe and tobacco bag, but was reminded of something lacking—the bag was empty. He returned to his wigwam, and from their safe hanger or swinging shelf overhead, he took the row of stretched skins, ten muskrats and one mink, and set out along a path which led southward through the woods to the broad, open place called Strickland's Plain, across that, and over the next rock ridge to the little town and port of Myanos.

He pulled out his pipe and tobacco pouch but realized something was missing—the pouch was empty. He went back to his cabin, and from the safe hook or swinging shelf above, he grabbed a row of stretched skins—ten muskrats and one mink—and headed down a path that went south through the woods to a wide, open area known as Strickland's Plain, across that, and over the next rocky ridge to the small town and port of Myanos.

               SILAS PECK
               Trading Store
SILAS PECK  
               Trading Post

was the sign over the door he entered. Men and women were buying and selling, but the Indian stood aside shyly until all were served, and Master Peck cried out:

was the sign over the door he entered. Men and women were buying and selling, but the Indian stood aside shyly until everyone was served, and Master Peck shouted:

“Ho, Quonab! what have ye got for trade to-day?”

“Hey, Quonab! What do you have to trade today?”

Quonab produced his furs. The dealer looked at them narrowly and said:

Quonab showed his furs. The dealer examined them closely and said:

“They are too late in the season for primes; I cannot allow you more than seven cents each for the rats and seventy-five cents for the mink, all trade.”

“They're too late in the season for prime quality; I can’t offer you more than seven cents each for the rats and seventy-five cents for the mink, all trade.”

The Indian gathered up the bundle with an air of “that settles it,” when Silas called out:

The Indian picked up the bundle with a sense of finality when Silas called out:

“Come now, I'll make it ten cents for the rats.”

“Come on, I'll make it ten cents for the rats.”

“Ten cents for rats, one dollar for mink, all cash, then I buy what I like,” was the reply.

“Ten cents for rats, one dollar for mink, all cash, then I buy what I like,” was the reply.

It was very necessary to Silas's peace that no customer of his should cross the street to the sign,

It was essential for Silas's peace that no customer of his should cross the street to the sign,

              SILAS MEAD
              Trading Store
Silas Mead  
              Shop

So the bargain, a fair one now, was made, and the Indian went off with a stock of tobacco, tea, and sugar.

So the deal, which was a fair one now, was made, and the Indian left with a supply of tobacco, tea, and sugar.

His way lay up the Myanos River, as he had one or two traps set along the banks for muskrats, although in constant danger of having them robbed or stolen by boys, who considered this an encroachment on their trapping grounds.

His path went up the Myanos River, as he had a couple of traps set along the banks for muskrats, though he was always at risk of having them robbed or stolen by kids who saw it as an invasion of their trapping territory.

After an hour he came to Dumpling Pond, then set out for his home, straight through the woods, till he reached the Catrock line, and following that came to the farm and ramshackle house of Micky Kittering. He had been told that the man at this farm had a fresh deer hide for sale, and hoping to secure it, Quonab walked up toward the house. Micky was coming from the barn when he saw the Indian. They recognized each other at a glance. That was enough for Quonab; he turned away. The farmer remembered that he had been “insulted.” He vomited a few oaths, and strode after the Indian, “To take it out of his hide”; his purpose was very clear. The Indian turned quickly, stood, and looked calmly at Michael.

After an hour, he arrived at Dumpling Pond and then headed straight home through the woods until he reached the Catrock line. Following that, he came to the farm and rundown house of Micky Kittering. He had heard that the guy at this farm had a fresh deer hide for sale, and hoping to get it, Quonab walked up to the house. Micky was coming from the barn when he spotted the Indian. They recognized each other instantly. That was enough for Quonab; he turned away. The farmer remembered feeling “insulted.” He cursed a few times and stormed after the Indian, clearly intent on "taking it out of his hide." Quonab quickly turned, stood, and looked calmly at Michael.

Some men do not know the difference between shyness and cowardice, but they are apt to find it out unexpectedly Something told the white man, “Beware! this red man is dangerous.” He muttered something about, “Get out of that, or I'll send for a constable.” The Indian stood gazing coldly, till the farmer backed off out of sight, then he himself turned away to the woods.

Some guys don’t realize the difference between being shy and being a coward, but they often discover it in unexpected ways. Something warned the white man, "Watch out! This Native guy is dangerous." He mumble something like, "Get out of here, or I’ll call the cops." The Indian looked at him with cold indifference until the farmer backed away and left his sight, then he turned and headed into the woods.

Kittering was not a lovely character. He claimed to have been a soldier. He certainly looked the part, for his fierce white moustache was curled up like horns on his purple face, at each side of his red nose, in a most milita style. His shoulders were square and his gait was swaggering, beside which, he had an array of swear words that was new and tremendously impressive in Connecticut. He had married late in life a woman who would have made him a good wife, had he allowed her. But, a drunkard himself he set deliberately about bringing his wife to his own ways and with most lamentable success. They had had no children, but some months before a brother's child, fifteen-year-old lad, had become a charge on their hands and, with any measure of good management, would have been a blessing to all. But Micky had gone too far. His original weak good-nature was foundered in rum. Always blustery and frothy, he divided the world in two—superior officers, before whom he grovelled, and inferiors to whom he was a mouthy, foul-tongued, contemptible bully, in spite of a certain lingering kindness of heart that showed itself at such rare times when he was neither roaring drunk nor crucified by black reaction. His brother's child, fortunately, had inherited little of the paternal family traits, but in both body and brain favoured his mother, the daughter of a learned divine who had spent unusual pains on her book education, but had left her penniless and incapable of changing that condition.

Kittering wasn't a great guy. He claimed to have been a soldier. He definitely looked the part, with his fierce white moustache curled like horns on his purple face, flanking his red nose in a very military style. His shoulders were broad, and his walk was swaggering, plus he had a collection of swear words that was new and really impressive in Connecticut. He married late in life to a woman who could have been a good wife if he’d let her. But being a drunk, he intentionally set out to bring her down to his level, and he was sadly successful. They had no kids, but a few months ago, a fifteen-year-old nephew had become their responsibility and, with some decent management, could’ve been a blessing for everyone. But Micky had gone too far. His naturally nice demeanor was drowned in alcohol. Always loud and reckless, he saw the world in two categories—those higher up, whom he fawned over, and those below him, whom he treated like a foul-mouthed, contemptible bully, even though he had a bit of lingering kindness that showed up on rare occasions when he wasn’t totally drunk or tormented by despair. Luckily, his nephew had inherited none of the negative traits from his father, favoring instead his mother, the daughter of a learned clergyman who had put in a lot of effort into her education but left her broke and unable to change that.

Her purely mental powers and peculiarities were such that, a hundred years before, she might have been burned for a witch, and fifty years later might have been honoured as a prophetess. But she missed the crest of the wave both ways and fell in the trough; her views on religious matters procured neither a witch's grave nor a prophet's crown, but a sort of village contempt.

Her unique mental abilities and quirks were such that, a hundred years earlier, she could have been executed as a witch, and fifty years later, she might have been celebrated as a prophetess. But she missed the peak of both eras and ended up in the low point; her opinions on religious issues earned her neither a witch's grave nor a prophet's crown, but rather a kind of local disdain.

The Bible was her standard—so far so good—but she emphasized the wrong parts of it. Instead of magnifying the damnation of those who follow not the truth (as the village understood it), she was content to semi-quote:

The Bible was her standard—so far so good—but she highlighted the wrong parts of it. Instead of focusing on the punishment of those who don't follow the truth (as the village saw it), she was okay with just partially quoting:

“Those that are not against me are with me,” and “A kind heart is the mark of His chosen.” And then she made a final utterance, an echo really of her father: “If any man do anything sincerely, believing that thereby he is worshipping God, he is worshipping God.”

“Those who aren’t against me are with me,” and “A kind heart shows who His chosen ones are.” Then she made one last statement, really echoing her father: “If anyone does something sincerely, believing that in doing so they are worshipping God, they are indeed worshipping God.”

Then her fate was sealed, and all who marked the blazing eyes, the hollow cheeks, the yet more hollow chest and cough, saw in it all the hand of an offended God destroying a blasphemer, and shook their heads knowingly when the end came.

Then her fate was sealed, and everyone who noticed the blazing eyes, the sunken cheeks, the even more sunken chest and cough, saw it all as the work of an offended God punishing a blasphemer, and shook their heads knowingly when the end came.

So Rolf was left alone in life, with a common school education, a thorough knowledge of the Bible and of “Robinson Crusoe,” a vague tradition of God everywhere, and a deep distrust of those who should have been his own people.

So Rolf was left alone in life, with a basic school education, a solid understanding of the Bible and "Robinson Crusoe," a hazy belief in God everywhere, and a strong distrust of those who should have been his own people.

The day of the little funeral he left the village of Redding to tramp over the unknown road to the unknown south where his almost unknown Uncle Michael had a farm and, possibly, a home for him.

The day of the small funeral, he left the village of Redding to trek down the unfamiliar road to the unknown south where his nearly unknown Uncle Michael had a farm and, maybe, a home for him.

Fifteen miles that day, a night's rest in a barn, twenty-five miles the next day, and Rolf had found his future home.

Fifteen miles that day, a night’s rest in a barn, twenty-five miles the next day, and Rolf had found his future home.

“Come in, lad,” was the not unfriendly reception, for his arrival was happily fallen on a brief spell of good humour, and a strong, fifteen-year-old boy is a distinct asset on a farm.

“Come in, kid,” was the fairly friendly welcome, as his arrival happened during a nice moment of good humor, and a strong fifteen-year-old boy is definitely an advantage on a farm.





Chapter 3. Rolf Catches a Coon and Finds a Friend

Aunt Prue, sharp-eyed and red-nosed, was actually shy at first, but all formality vanished as Rolf was taught the mysteries of pig-feeding, hen-feeding, calf-feeding, cow-milking, and launched by list only in a vast number of duties familiar to him from his babyhood. What a list there was. An outsider might have wondered if Aunt Prue was saving anything for herself, but Rolf was used to toil. He worked without ceasing and did his best, only to learn in time that the best could win no praise, only avert punishment. The spells of good nature arrived more seldom in his uncle's heart. His aunt was a drunken shrew and soon Rolf looked on the days of starving and physical misery with his mother as the days of his happy youth gone by.

Aunt Prue, sharp-eyed and red-nosed, was actually shy at first, but all formality disappeared as Rolf was taught the ins and outs of feeding pigs, hens, and calves, milking cows, and a long list of duties he was familiar with since he was a baby. What a list it was. An outsider might have wondered if Aunt Prue was saving any work for herself, but Rolf was used to hard work. He labored tirelessly and did his best, only to realize over time that his best wouldn't earn him praise, just help him avoid punishment. The moments of grace became rarer in his uncle's heart. His aunt was a drunken shrew, and soon Rolf began to see the days of hunger and suffering with his mother as the days of his lost happy youth.

He was usually too tired at night and too sleepy in the morning to say his prayers, and gradually he gave it up as a daily habit. The more he saw of his kinsfolk, the more wickedness came to view; and yet it was with a shock that he one day realized that some fowls his uncle brought home by night were there without the owner's knowledge or consent. Micky made a jest of it, and intimated that Rolf would have to “learn to do night work very soon.” This was only one of the many things that showed how evil a place was now the orphan's home.

He was usually too tired at night and too sleepy in the morning to say his prayers, and gradually he gave it up as a daily habit. The more he saw of his relatives, the more wrongdoing he noticed; yet it struck him hard one day when he realized that some chickens his uncle brought home at night were there without the owner’s knowledge or consent. Micky joked about it, suggesting that Rolf would have to “learn to do night work very soon.” This was just one of the many signs that showed how corrupt the orphan's home had become.

At first it was not clear to the valiant uncle whether the silent boy was a superior to be feared, or an inferior to be held in fear, but Mick's courage grew with non-resistance, and blows became frequent; although not harder to bear than the perpetual fault-finding and scolding of his aunt, and all the good his mother had implanted was being shrivelled by the fires of his daily life.

At first, the brave uncle couldn't tell if the quiet boy was someone to be afraid of or someone who should be afraid of him. But Mick's courage increased as he stopped resisting, and the beatings became more common. They were no harder to endure than his aunt's constant criticism and nagging, and all the good lessons his mother had taught him were slowly being destroyed by the harshness of everyday life.

Rolf had no chance to seek for companions at the village store, but an accident brought one to him. Before sunrise one spring morning he went, as usual, to the wood lot pasture for the cow, and was surprised to find a stranger, who beckoned him to come. On going near he saw a tall man with dark skin and straight black hair that was streaked with gray—undoubtedly an Indian. He held up a bag and said, “I got coon in that hole. You hold bag there, I poke him in.” Rolf took the sack readily and held it over the hole, while the Indian climbed the tree to a higher opening, then poked in this with a long pole, till all at once there was a scrambling noise and the bag bulged full and heavy. Rolf closed its mouth triumphantly. The Indian laughed lightly, then swung to the ground.

Rolf didn't get a chance to look for friends at the village store, but an unexpected event brought one to him. Early one spring morning before sunrise, he went to the woodlot pasture to get the cow, and was surprised to see a stranger who waved him over. As he approached, he noticed a tall man with dark skin and straight black hair that had gray streaks—clearly an Indian. He held up a bag and said, “I’ve got a raccoon in that hole. You hold the bag there, I’ll poke it in.” Rolf quickly took the bag and held it over the hole, while the Indian climbed the tree to a higher opening and poked it with a long pole. Suddenly, there was a scrambling noise and the bag became heavy and bulged. Rolf closed its mouth in triumph. The Indian laughed softly, then swung down to the ground.

“Now, what will you do with him?” asked Rolf.

“Now, what are you going to do with him?” asked Rolf.

“Train coon dog,” was the answer.

“Train coon dog,” was the answer.

“Where?”

"Where at?"

The Indian pointed toward the Asamuk Pond.

The Indian pointed to the Asamuk Pond.

“Are you the singing Indian that lives under Ab's Rock?

“Are you the singing Indian who lives under Ab's Rock?

“Ugh! [*] Some call me that. My name is Quonab.”

“Ugh! [*] Some people call me that. My name is Quonab.”

“Wait for an hour and then I will come and help,” volunteered Rolf impulsively, for the hunting instinct was strong in him.

“Wait an hour and then I’ll come and help,” Rolf offered impulsively, as his hunting instinct was strong.

The Indian nodded. “Give three yelps if you no find me;” then he shouldered a short stick, from one end of which, at a safe distance from his back, hung the bag with the coon. And Rolf went home with the cow.

The Indian nodded. “Let me know you can't find me by howling three times;” then he picked up a short stick, from which hung a bag with the raccoon, held at a safe distance from his back. And Rolf went home with the cow.

He had acted on hasty impulse in offering to come, but now, in the normal storm state of the household, the difficulties of the course appeared. He cudgelled his brain for some plan to account for his absence, and finally took refuge unwittingly in ancient wisdom: “When you don't know a thing to do, don't do a thing.” Also, “If you can't find the delicate way, go the blunt way.”

He had rushed into offering to come, but now, with the usual chaos of the household, the challenges of the situation became clear. He racked his brain for a way to explain his absence, and finally unconsciously turned to some old advice: “When you don’t know what to do, don’t do anything.” Also, “If you can’t find the subtle approach, go with the straightforward one.”

So having fed the horses, cleaned the stable, and milked the cow, fed the pigs, the hens, the calf, harnessed the horses, cut and brought in wood for the woodshed, turned out the sheep, hitched the horses to the wagon, set the milk out in the creaming pans, put more corn to soak for the swill barrel, ground the house knife, helped to clear the breakfast things, replaced the fallen rails of a fence, brought up potatoes from the root cellar, all to the maddening music of a scolding tongue, he set out to take the cow back to the wood lot, sullenly resolved to return when ready.

So after feeding the horses, cleaning the stable, and milking the cow, as well as feeding the pigs, hens, and calf, harnessing the horses, cutting and bringing in firewood for the woodshed, letting the sheep out, hitching the horses to the wagon, setting the milk out in the creaming pans, soaking more corn for the swill barrel, sharpening the house knife, helping to clean up after breakfast, fixing the fallen fence rails, and bringing up potatoes from the root cellar, all while dealing with the irritating sound of a scolding voice, he set off to take the cow back to the wood lot, stubbornly determined to return when he was ready.

     * Ugh (yes) and wah (no) are Indianisms that continue no
     matter how well the English has been acquired.
     * Ugh (yes) and wah (no) are Indian phrases that persist regardless of how well someone has learned English.




Chapter 4. The Coon Hunt Makes Trouble for Rolf

Not one hour, but nearly three, had passed before Rolf sighted the Pipestave Pond, as it was called. He had never been there before, but three short whoops, as arranged, brought answer and guidance. Quonab was standing on the high rock. When Rolf came he led down to the wigwam on its south side. It was like stepping into a new life. Several of the old neighbours at Redding were hunters who knew the wild Indians and had told him tales that glorified at least the wonderful woodcraft of the red man. Once or twice Rolf had seen Indians travelling through, and he had been repelled by their sordid squalour. But here was something of a different kind; not the Champlain ideal, indeed, for the Indian wore clothes like any poor farmer, except on his head and his feet; his head was bare, and his feet were covered with moccasins that sparkled with beads on the arch. The wigwam was of canvas, but it had one or two of the sacred symbols painted on it. The pot hung over the fire was tin-lined copper, of the kind long made in England for Indian trade, but the smaller dishes were of birch bark and basswood. The gun and the hunting knife were of white man's make, but the bow, arrows, snowshoes, tom-tom, and a quill-covered gun case were of Indian art, fashioned of the things that grow in the woods about.

Not one hour, but nearly three, had passed before Rolf spotted Pipestave Pond, as it was called. He had never been there before, but three short whoops, as planned, brought a response and direction. Quonab was standing on the high rock. When Rolf arrived, he led him down to the wigwam on its south side. It felt like stepping into a new life. Several of the old neighbors in Redding were hunters who knew the local Native Americans and had shared stories that highlighted at least the incredible woodcraft skills of the Native people. Once or twice, Rolf had seen Native Americans passing through, and their poverty had made him uneasy. But here was something different; not the idealized version, for the Native man wore clothes like any poor farmer, except for his head and feet; his head was bare, and his feet were covered with moccasins that sparkled with beads on the arch. The wigwam was made of canvas, but it had one or two sacred symbols painted on it. The pot hanging over the fire was tin-lined copper, the kind made in England for trade with Native Americans, but the smaller dishes were made of birch bark and basswood. The gun and the hunting knife were made by white men, but the bow, arrows, snowshoes, drum, and a quill-covered gun case were crafted by Native artisans, made from the materials found in the surrounding woods.

The Indian led into the wigwam. The dog, although not fully grown, growled savagely as it smelled the hated white man odour. Quonab gave the puppy a slap on the head, which is Indian for, “Be quiet; he's all right;” loosed the rope, and led the dog out. “Bring that,” and the Indian pointed to the bag which hung from a stick between two trees. The dog sniffed suspiciously in the direction of the bag and growled, but he was not allowed to come near it. Rolf tried to make friends with the dog, but without success and Quonab said, “Better let Skookum [*] alone. He make friends when he ready—maybe never.”

The Indian led the way into the wigwam. The dog, though still a puppy, growled aggressively at the smell of the hated white man. Quonab gave the puppy a light slap on the head, which meant, “Shush; he’s okay;” then he loosened the rope and brought the dog outside. “Grab that,” the Indian said, pointing to the bag hanging from a stick between two trees. The dog sniffed warily at the bag and growled, but he wasn't allowed to get close. Rolf tried to befriend the dog, but it didn’t work, and Quonab said, “Better leave Skookum alone. He’ll make friends when he’s ready—maybe never.”

The two hunters now set out for the open plain, two or three hundred yards to the southward. Here the raccoon was dumped out of the sack, and the dog held at a little distance, until the coon had pulled itself together and began to run. Now the dog was released and chivvied on. With a tremendous barking he rushed at the coon, only to get a nip that made him recoil, yelping. The coon ran as hard as it could, the dog and hunters came after it; again it was overtaken, and, turning with a fierce snarl, it taught the dog a second lesson. Thus, running, dodging, and turning to fight, the coon got back to the woods, and there made a final stand under a small, thick tree; and, when the dog was again repulsed, climbed quickly up into the branches.

The two hunters headed out to the open field, about two or three hundred yards to the south. They took the raccoon out of the bag and held the dog back for a moment, letting the coon gather itself before it started running. Then they released the dog, who charged after the raccoon, barking loudly. The coon nipped at the dog, causing it to pull back and yelp. The coon sprinted as fast as it could, while the dog and hunters chased after it. It was caught again, and with an angry snarl, it gave the dog a second lesson. As they ran, dodged, and turned to fight, the raccoon managed to reach the woods, where it took refuge under a dense, small tree. After the dog was pushed back once more, the raccoon quickly climbed up into the branches.

The hunters did all they could to excite the dog, until he was jumping about, trying to climb the tree, and barking uproariously. This was exactly what they wanted. Skookum's first lesson was learned—the duty of chasing the big animal of that particular smell, then barking up the tree it had climbed.

The hunters did everything they could to get the dog excited, and soon he was jumping around, trying to climb the tree, and barking loudly. This was exactly what they wanted. Skookum’s first lesson was learned—the job of chasing the big animal with that specific scent and then barking at the tree it had climbed.

Quonab, armed with a forked stick and a cord noose, now went up the tree. After much trouble he got the noose around the coon's neck, then, with some rather rough handling, the animal was dragged down, maneuvered into the sack, and carried back to camp, where it was chained up to serve in future lessons; the next two or three being to tree the coon, as before; in the next, the coon was to be freed and allowed to get out of sight, so that the dog might find it by trailing, and the last, in which the coon was to be trailed, treed, and shot out of the tree, so that the dog should have the final joy of killing a crippled coon, and the reward of a coon-meat feast. But the last was not to be, for the night before it should have taken place the coon managed to slip its bonds, and nothing but the empty collar and idle chain were found in the captive's place next morning.

Quonab, equipped with a forked stick and a rope noose, climbed up the tree. After some difficulty, he got the noose around the raccoon's neck. Then, with some rather rough handling, the animal was pulled down, put into a sack, and taken back to camp, where it was chained up for future lessons. The next two or three lessons involved getting the raccoon up a tree, then in the next, the raccoon would be set free to hide so that the dog could find it by tracking. The last lesson was meant to have the raccoon trailed, treed, and shot out of the tree so that the dog could enjoy the thrill of catching a wounded raccoon and the reward of a raccoon-meat feast. But that last lesson didn’t happen, because the night before it was supposed to take place, the raccoon managed to escape its bonds, and all that was left in the captive's place the next morning was the empty collar and the idle chain.

These things were in the future however. Rolf was intensely excited over all he had seen that day. His hunting instincts were aroused. There had been no very obvious or repellant cruelty; the dog alone had suffered, but he seemed happy. The whole affair was so exactly in the line of his tastes that the boy was in a sort of ecstatic uplift, and already anticipating a real coon hunt, when the dog should be properly trained. The episode so contrasted with the sordid life he had left an hour before that he was spellbound. The very animal smell of the coon seemed to make his fibre tingle. His eyes were glowing with a wild light. He was so absorbed that he did not notice a third party attracted by the unusual noise of the chase, but the dog did. A sudden, loud challenge called all attention to a stranger on the ridge behind the camp. There was no mistaking the bloated face and white moustache of Rolf's uncle.

These things were still ahead, but Rolf was incredibly excited about everything he had seen that day. His hunting instincts were awakened. There hadn’t been any serious or shocking cruelty; the dog was the only one who had suffered, but it seemed happy. The whole experience fit perfectly with his interests, and the boy felt an ecstatic thrill, already looking forward to a real raccoon hunt once the dog was properly trained. This episode contrasted sharply with the dull life he had left just an hour earlier, leaving him spellbound. The strong animal scent of the raccoon made his senses tingle. His eyes sparkled with excitement. He was so engrossed that he didn't notice a third person drawn in by the unusual noise of the chase, but the dog did. A sudden, loud call shifted all attention to a stranger on the ridge behind the camp. There was no mistaking the bloated face and white mustache of Rolf's uncle.

“So, you young scut! that is how you waste your time. I'll larn ye a lesson.”

“So, you young troublemaker! That’s how you waste your time. I’ll teach you a lesson.”

The dog was tied, the Indian looked harmless, and the boy was cowed, so the uncle's courage mounted high. He had been teaming in the nearby woods, and the blacksnake whip was in his hands. In a minute its thong was lapped, like a tongue of flame, around Rolf's legs. The boy gave a shriek and ran, but the man followed and furiously plied the whip. The Indian, supposing it was Rolf's father, marvelled at his method of showing affection, but said nothing, for the Fifth Commandment is a large one in the wigwam. Rolf dodged some of the cruel blows, but was driven into a corner of the rock. One end of the lash crossed his face like a red-hot wire.

The dog was tied up, the Indian seemed harmless, and the boy was intimidated, so the uncle's confidence surged. He had been working in the nearby woods and held the blacksnake whip in his hands. In a moment, the whip's thong wrapped around Rolf's legs like a tongue of fire. The boy screamed and ran, but the man chased after him, striking with the whip angrily. The Indian, thinking it was Rolf's dad, was surprised by his way of showing affection but said nothing, as the Fifth Commandment carries significant weight in the wigwam. Rolf dodged some of the painful strikes but was pushed into a corner against the rock. One end of the whip crossed his face like a burning wire.

“Now I've got you!” growled the bully.

“Now I've got you!” the bully snarled.

Rolf was desperate. He seized two heavy stones and hurled the first with deadly intent at his uncle's head. Mick dodged in time, but the second, thrown lower, hit him on the thigh. Mick gave a roar of pain. Rolf hastily seized more stones and shrieked out, “You come on one step and I'll kill you!”

Rolf was desperate. He picked up two heavy stones and threw the first one with deadly aim at his uncle's head. Mick managed to dodge it just in time, but the second stone, thrown lower, struck him on the thigh. Mick let out a roar of pain. Rolf quickly grabbed more stones and yelled, “You take one step forward and I’ll kill you!”

Then that purple visage turned a sort of ashen hue. Its owner mouthed in speechless rage. He “knew it was the Indian had put Rolf up to it. He'd see to it later,” and muttering, blasting, frothing, the hoary-headed sinner went limping off to his loaded wagon.

Then that purple face turned a kind of grayish color. Its owner silently seethed with rage. He "knew it was the Indian who had encouraged Rolf to do this. He'd deal with it later," and muttering, cursing, and fuming, the gray-haired sinner limped off to his loaded wagon.

     * “Skookum” or “Skookum Chuck,” in Chinook means “Troubled
     waters.”
 
     * “Skookum” or “Skookum Chuck,” in Chinook means “Troubled waters.”




Chapter 5. Good-bye to Uncle Mike

     For counsel comes with the night, and action comes with the
     day; But the gray half light, neither dark nor bright, is a
     time to hide away.
     Because advice comes at night, and action happens during the day; But the gray twilight, neither dark nor light, is a time to retreat.

Rolf had learned one thing at least—his uncle was a coward. But he also knew that he himself was in the wrong, for he was neglecting his work and he decided to go back at once and face the worst. He made little reply to the storm of scolding that met him. He would have been disappointed if it had not come. He was used to it; it made him feel at home once more. He worked hard and silently.

Rolf had learned one thing for sure—his uncle was a coward. But he also realized that he himself was at fault, as he had been neglecting his work. He decided to go back right away and deal with whatever came next. He didn’t say much in response to the flood of criticism that greeted him. He would have been let down if it hadn’t happened. He was used to it; it made him feel at home again. He worked hard and quietly.

Mick did not return till late. He had been drawing wood for Horton that day, which was the reason he happened in Quonab's neighbourhood; but his road lay by the tavern, and when he arrived home he was too helpless to do more than mutter.

Mick didn’t get back until late. He had been gathering wood for Horton that day, which was why he ended up in Quonab's area; but his path took him by the tavern, and when he finally got home, he was too exhausted to do anything more than mumble.

The next day there was an air of suspended thunder. Rolf overheard his uncle cursing “that ungrateful young scut—not worth his salt.” But nothing further was said or done. His aunt did not strike at him once for two days. The third night Micky disappeared. On the next he returned with another man; they had a crate of fowls, and Rolf was told to keep away from “that there little barn.”

The next day, there was a feeling of tension in the air. Rolf overheard his uncle complaining about “that ungrateful young brat—not worth his keep.” But nothing more was said or done. His aunt didn’t raise a hand to him for two days. On the third night, Micky disappeared. The next night, he came back with another guy; they had a crate of chickens, and Rolf was told to stay away from “that little barn.”

So he did all morning, but he peeped in from the hayloft when a chance came, and saw a beautiful horse. Next day the “little barn” was open and empty as before.

So he worked all morning, but he peeked in from the hayloft whenever he got the chance and saw a beautiful horse. The next day, the “little barn” was open and empty just like before.

That night this worthy couple had a jollification with some callers, who were strangers to Rolf. As he lay awake, listening to the carouse, he overheard many disjointed allusions that he did not understand, and some that he could guess at: “Night work pays better than day work any time,” etc. Then he heard his own name and a voice, “Let's go up and settle it with him now.” Whatever their plan, it was clear that the drunken crowd, inspired by the old ruffian, were intent on doing him bodily harm. He heard them stumbling and reeling up the steep stairs. He heard, “Here, gimme that whip,” and knew he was in peril, maybe of his life, for they were whiskey-mad. He rose quickly, locked the door, rolled up an old rag carpet, and put it in his bed. Then he gathered his clothes on his arm, opened the window, and lowered himself till his head only was above the sill, and his foot found a resting place. Thus he awaited. The raucous breathing of the revellers was loud on the stairs; then the door was tried; there was some muttering; then the door was burst open and in rushed two, or perhaps three, figures. Rolf could barely see in the gloom, but he knew that his uncle was one of them. The attack they made with whip and stick on that roll of rags in the bed would have broken his bones and left him shapeless, had he been in its place. The men were laughing and took it all as a joke, but Rolf had seen enough; he slipped to the ground and hurried away, realizing perfectly well now that this was “good-bye.”

That night, this decent couple had a party with some guests who were strangers to Rolf. As he lay awake, listening to the celebration, he overheard many fragmented comments that he didn’t understand, and some he could guess: “Night work pays better than day work any time,” and so on. Then he heard his name being mentioned and a voice saying, “Let’s go up and settle it with him now.” Whatever their plan was, it was clear that the drunken crowd, fueled by the old thug, were intent on harming him. He heard them stumbling and swaying up the steep stairs. He heard, “Here, give me that whip,” and realized he was in danger, possibly for his life, as they were out of control. He quickly got up, locked the door, rolled up an old rag rug, and stuffed it in his bed. Then he gathered his clothes in his arms, opened the window, and lowered himself until only his head was above the sill, with his foot finding a place to rest. He waited there. The loud breathing of the partygoers echoed on the stairs; then they tried the door, muttering followed, and finally, the door burst open as two or maybe three figures rushed in. Rolf could barely see in the dim light, but he knew his uncle was one of them. The way they attacked that bundle of rags in the bed with whip and stick would have broken his bones and left him unrecognizable had he been there. The men laughed and treated it all like a joke, but Rolf had seen enough; he slipped down to the ground and hurried away, fully aware that this was “goodbye.”

Which way? How naturally his steps turned northward toward Redding, the only other place he knew. But he had not gone a mile before he stopped. The yapping of a coon dog came to him from the near woods that lay to the westward along Asamuk. He tramped toward it. To find the dog is one thing, to find the owner another; but they drew near at last. Rolf gave the three yelps and Quonab responded.

Which way? It was so natural for him to head north toward Redding, the only other place he knew. But he hadn't even walked a mile before he stopped. The barking of a coon dog reached him from the nearby woods to the west along Asamuk. He headed toward it. Finding the dog is one thing; finding the owner is another, but eventually, they got closer. Rolf let out three yelps, and Quonab answered.

“I am done with that crowd,” said the boy. “They tried to kill me tonight. Have you got room for me in your wigwam for a couple of days?”

“I’m done with that crowd,” said the boy. “They tried to kill me tonight. Do you have space for me in your place for a couple of days?”

“Ugh, come,” said the Indian.

“Ugh, come,” said the person.

That night, for the first time, Rolf slept in the outdoor air of a wigwam. He slept late, and knew nothing of the world about him till Quonab called him to breakfast.

That night, for the first time, Rolf slept in the fresh air of a wigwam. He slept in late and was completely unaware of the world around him until Quonab called him for breakfast.





Chapter 6. Skookum Accepts Rolf at Last

Rolf expected that Micky would soon hear of his hiding place and come within a few days, backed by a constable, to claim his runaway ward. But a week went by and Quonab, passing through Myanos, learned, first, that Rolf had been seen tramping northward on the road to Dumpling Pond, and was now supposed to be back in Redding; second, that Micky Kittering was lodged in jail under charge of horse-stealing and would certainly get a long sentence; third, that his wife had gone back to her own folks at Norwalk, and the house was held by strangers.

Rolf thought that Micky would soon find out where he was hiding and would come within a few days, accompanied by a police officer, to get his runaway ward back. But a week passed, and Quonab, while passing through Myanos, discovered two things: first, that Rolf had been seen heading north on the road to Dumpling Pond and was now believed to be back in Redding; second, that Micky Kittering was in jail for horse theft and was definitely facing a long sentence; third, that his wife had gone back to her family in Norwalk, and their house was now occupied by strangers.

All other doors were closed now, and each day that drifted by made it the more clear that Rolf and Quonab were to continue together. What boy would not exult at the thought of it? Here was freedom from a brutal tyranny that was crushing out his young life; here was a dream of the wild world coming true, with gratification of all the hunter instincts that he had held in his heart for years, and nurtured in that single, ragged volume of “Robinson Crusoe.” The plunge was not a plunge, except it be one when an eagle, pinion-bound, is freed and springs from a cliff of the mountain to ride the mountain wind.

All the other doors were closed now, and with each passing day, it became clearer that Rolf and Quonab were meant to stay together. What boy wouldn’t be thrilled by the thought? Here was freedom from a harsh tyranny that was stifling his young life; here was the dream of the wild world becoming a reality, fulfilling all the hunter instincts he had cherished in his heart for years, inspired by that one, worn-out copy of “Robinson Crusoe.” The leap wasn’t really a leap, except maybe like when an eagle, bound by its wings, is set free and launches off a mountain cliff to soar on the wind.

The memory of that fateful cooning day was deep and lasting. Never afterward did smell of coon fail to bring it back; in spite of the many evil incidents it was a smell of joy.

The memory of that fateful coon hunting day was deep and lasting. Never afterward did the smell of coon fail to bring it back; despite the many negative incidents, it was a smell of joy.

“Where are you going, Quonab?” he asked one morning, as he saw the Indian rise at dawn and go forth with his song drum, after warming it at the fire. He pointed up to the rock, and for the first time Rolf heard the chant for the sunrise. Later he heard the Indian's song for “Good Hunting,” and another for “When His Heart Was Bad.” They were prayers or praise, all addressed to the Great Spirit, or the Great Father, and it gave Rolf an entirely new idea of the red man, and a startling light on himself. Here was the Indian, whom no one considered anything but a hopeless pagan, praying to God for guidance at each step in life, while he himself, supposed to be a Christian, had not prayed regularly for months—was in danger of forgetting how.

“Where are you going, Quonab?” he asked one morning as he saw the Indian rise at dawn and go out with his song drum after warming it by the fire. He pointed up to the rock, and for the first time, Rolf heard the chant for the sunrise. Later, he heard the Indian's song for “Good Hunting” and another for “When His Heart Was Bad.” They were prayers or praise, all directed to the Great Spirit or the Great Father, and it gave Rolf a completely new understanding of the Native American and a shocking insight into himself. Here was the Indian, whom no one thought of as anything but a hopeless pagan, praying to God for guidance at every step in life, while he, supposedly a Christian, hadn’t prayed regularly for months—was in danger of forgetting how.

Yet there was one religious observance that Rolf never forgot—that was to keep the Sabbath, and on that day each week he did occasionally say a little prayer his mother had taught him. He avoided being seen at such times and did not speak of kindred doings. Whereas Quonab neither hid nor advertised his religious practices, and it was only after many Sundays had gone that Quonab remarked:

Yet there was one religious practice that Rolf never forgot—keeping the Sabbath. Every week, he would sometimes say a little prayer that his mother had taught him. He made sure to avoid being seen during these moments and didn’t talk about similar activities. In contrast, Quonab neither concealed nor promoted his spiritual practices, and it wasn’t until many Sundays had passed that Quonab commented:

“Does your God come only one day of the week? Does He sneak in after dark? Why is He ashamed that you only whisper to Him? Mine is here all the time. I can always reach Him with my song; all days are my Sunday.”

“Does your God only show up one day a week? Does He sneak in after dark? Why is He embarrassed that you only talk to Him quietly? Mine is always here. I can reach Him anytime with my song; every day feels like my Sunday.”

The evil memories of his late life were dimming quickly, and the joys of the new one growing. Rolf learned early that, although one may talk of the hardy savage, no Indian seeks for hardship. Everything is done that he knows to make life pleasant, and of nothing is he more careful than the comfort of his couch. On the second day, under guidance of his host, Rolf set about making his own bed. Two logs, each four inches thick and three feet long, were cut. Then two strong poles, each six feet long, were laid into notches at the ends of the short logs. About seventy-five straight sticks of willow were cut and woven with willow bark into a lattice, three feet wide and six feet long. This, laid on the poles, furnished a spring mattress, on which a couple of blankets made a most comfortable couch, dry, warm, and off the ground. In addition to the lodge cover, each bed had a dew cloth which gave perfect protection, no matter how the storm might rage outdoors. There was no hardship in it, only a new-found pleasure, to sleep and breathe the pure night air of the woods.

The painful memories of his past were fading quickly, while the joys of his new life were increasing. Rolf learned early on that, despite talk of the resilient savage, no Native American looks for hardship. Everything is done that he knows to make life enjoyable, and he takes great care in ensuring the comfort of his bed. On the second day, with guidance from his host, Rolf began to make his own bed. Two logs, each four inches thick and three feet long, were cut. Then, two sturdy poles, each six feet long, were placed into notches at the ends of the short logs. About seventy-five straight willow sticks were cut and woven with willow bark into a lattice, three feet wide and six feet long. This, placed on the poles, created a spring mattress, on which a couple of blankets made for a really comfortable bed—dry, warm, and off the ground. Besides the lodge cover, each bed had a dew cloth that provided perfect protection, no matter how fierce the storm was outside. There was no hardship in it, only a newfound joy in sleeping and breathing the fresh night air of the woods.

The Grass Moon—April—had passed, and the Song Moon was waxing, with its hosts of small birds, and one of Rolf's early discoveries was that many of these love to sing by night. Again and again the familiar voice of the song sparrow came from the dark shore of Asamuk, or the field sparrow trilled from the top of some cedar, occasionally the painted one, Aunakeu, the partridge, drummed in the upper woods, and nightly there was the persistent chant of Muckawis, the whippoorwill, the myriad voices of the little frogs called spring-peepers, and the peculiar, “peent, peent,” from the sky, followed by a twittering, that Quonab told him was the love song of the swamp bird—the big snipe, with the fantail and long, soft bill, and eyes like a deer.

The Grass Moon—April—had passed, and the Song Moon was growing, with its flocks of small birds. One of Rolf's early discoveries was that many of these birds love to sing at night. Again and again, he heard the familiar voice of the song sparrow coming from the dark shore of Asamuk, or the field sparrow trilling from the top of a cedar tree. Occasionally, the painted one, Aunakeu, the partridge, drummed in the upper woods, and every night there was the constant chant of Muckawis, the whippoorwill, the countless voices of the little frogs called spring peepers, and the peculiar “peent, peent” from above, followed by a twittering that Quonab told him was the love song of the swamp bird—the big snipe, with its fan-shaped tail, long soft bill, and eyes like a deer.

“Do you mean the woodcock?” “Ugh, that's the name; Pah-dash-ka-anja we call it.”

“Are you talking about the woodcock?” “Ugh, that's what it's called; we call it Pah-dash-ka-anja.”

The waning of the moon brought new songsters, with many a nightingale among them. A low bush near the plain was vocal during the full moon with the sweet but disconnected music of the yellow-breasted chat. The forest rang again and again with a wild, torrential strain of music that seemed to come from the stars. It sent peculiar thrill into Rolf's heart, and gave him a lump his throat as he listened.

The fading moon introduced new singers, including many nightingales. A small bush near the open field was alive with the sweet yet fragmented song of the yellow-breasted chat during the full moon. The forest echoed with a wild, powerful melody that seemed to resonate from the stars. It sent a strange thrill through Rolf's heart and gave him a lump in his throat as he listened.

“What is that, Quonab?”

"What’s that, Quonab?"

The Indian shook his head. Then, later, when it ended, he said: “That is the mystery song of some one I never saw him.”

The Indian shook his head. Then, later, when it was over, he said: “That is the mystery song of someone I never saw.”

There was a long silence, then the lad began, “There's no good hunting here now, Quonab. Why don't you go to the north woods, where deer are plentiful?”

There was a long silence, then the kid said, “There’s no good hunting here anymore, Quonab. Why don’t you head to the northern woods, where there are plenty of deer?”

The Indian gave a short shake of his head, and then to prevent further talk, “Put up your dew cloth; the sea wind blows to-night.”

The Indian shook his head briefly, and then to stop any more conversation, said, “Put up your dew cloth; the sea wind is blowing tonight.”

He finished; both stood for a moment gazing into the fire. Then Rolf felt something wet and cold thrust into his hand. It was Skookum's nose. At last the little dog had made up his mind to accept the white boy as a friend.

He finished; both stood for a moment looking into the fire. Then Rolf felt something wet and cold push against his hand. It was Skookum's nose. Finally, the little dog had decided to accept the white boy as a friend.





Chapter 7. Rolf Works Out with Many Results

     He is the dumbest kind of a dumb fool that ain't king in
     some little corner.—Sayings of Si Sylvanne
     He is the dumbest type of fool there is if he isn’t a king in some small corner.—Sayings of Si Sylvanne

The man who has wronged you will never forgive you, and he who has helped you will be forever grateful. Yes, there is nothing that draws you to a man so much as the knowledge that you have helped him.

The man who has hurt you will never forgive you, and the one who has supported you will always be thankful. Yes, nothing brings you closer to someone like knowing you've made a positive impact on their life.

Quonab helped Rolf, and so was more drawn to him than to many of the neighbours that he had known for years; he was ready to like him. Their coming together was accidental, but it was soon very clear that a friendship was springing up between them. Rolf was too much of a child to think about the remote future; and so was Quonab. Most Indians are merely tall children.

Quonab helped Rolf, and so he felt more connected to him than to many of the neighbors he had known for years; he was open to liking him. Their meeting was random, but it quickly became obvious that a friendship was forming between them. Rolf was too much of a child to think about the distant future, and so was Quonab. Most Indians are just tall children.

But there was one thing that Rolf did think of—he had no right to live in Quonab's lodge without contributing a fair share of the things needful. Quonab got his living partly by hunting, partly by fishing, partly by selling baskets, and partly by doing odd jobs for the neighbours. Rolf's training as a loafer had been wholly neglected, and when he realized that he might be all summer with Quonab he said bluntly:

But there was one thing Rolf thought about—he didn’t have the right to stay in Quonab's lodge without pitching in for what was needed. Quonab made a living partly by hunting, partly by fishing, partly by selling baskets, and partly by doing odd jobs for the neighbors. Rolf's skills as a slacker had been completely overlooked, and when he realized he might spend the whole summer with Quonab, he said straightforwardly:

“You let me stay here a couple of months. I'll work out odd days, and buy enough stuff to keep myself any way.” Quonab said nothing, but their eyes met, and the boy knew it was agreed to.

“You let me stay here for a couple of months. I’ll work on random days and buy enough stuff to get by.” Quonab said nothing, but their eyes met, and the boy knew they had come to an agreement.

Rolf went that very day to the farm of Obadiah Timpany, and offered to work by the day, hoeing corn and root crops. What farmer is not glad of help in planting time or in harvest? It was only a question of what did he know and how much did he want? The first was soon made clear; two dollars a week was the usual thing for boys in those times, and when he offered to take it half in trade, he was really getting three dollars a week and his board. Food was as low as wages, and at the end of a week, Rolf brought back to camp a sack of oatmeal, a sack of cornmeal, a bushel of potatoes, a lot of apples, and one dollar cash. The dollar went for tea and sugar, and the total product was enough to last them both a month; so Rolf could share the wigwam with a good conscience.

Rolf went to Obadiah Timpany's farm that very day and offered to work for a day’s pay, hoeing corn and root vegetables. What farmer doesn’t appreciate help during planting or harvest time? It was just a matter of what he knew and how much he wanted. The first part was quickly clarified; two dollars a week was the usual rate for boys back then, and when he offered to take half in trade, he was effectively getting three dollars a week plus his meals. Food prices were as low as wages, and by the end of the week, Rolf returned to camp with a sack of oatmeal, a sack of cornmeal, a bushel of potatoes, a bunch of apples, and one dollar in cash. He spent the dollar on tea and sugar, and the total haul was enough to last both of them a month; so Rolf could share the wigwam without feeling guilty.

Of course, it was impossible to keep the gossipy little town of Myanos from knowing, first, that the Indian had a white boy for partner; and, later, that that boy was Rolf. This gave rise to great diversity of opinion in the neighbourhood. Some thought it should not be allowed, but Horton, who owned the land on which Quonab was camped, could not see any reason for interfering.

Of course, it was impossible to keep the chatty little town of Myanos from finding out, first, that the Indian had a white boy as a partner; and, later, that the boy was Rolf. This sparked a lot of different opinions in the neighborhood. Some believed it shouldn’t be allowed, but Horton, who owned the land where Quonab was camping, didn’t see any reason to interfere.

Ketchura Peck, spinster, however, did see many most excellent reasons. She was a maid with a mission, and maintained it to be an outrage that a Christian boy should be brought up by a godless pagan. She worried over it almost as much as she did over the heathen in Central Africa, where there are no Sunday schools, and clothes are as scarce as churches. Failing to move Parson Peck and Elder Knapp in the matter, and despairing of an early answer to her personal prayers, she resolved on a bold move, “An' it was only after many a sleepless, prayerful night,” namely, to carry the Bible into the heathen's stronghold.

Ketchura Peck, a single woman, definitely had many very good reasons. She was on a mission and believed it was outrageous for a Christian boy to be raised by a godless pagan. She worried about this almost as much as she did about the people in Central Africa, where there are no Sunday schools and clothes are as rare as churches. After failing to persuade Parson Peck and Elder Knapp on the issue, and feeling hopeless about getting an answer to her personal prayers, she decided to take bold action, “And it was only after many sleepless, prayerful nights,” that she resolved to bring the Bible into the pagan’s stronghold.

Thus it was that one bright morning in June she might have been seen, prim and proper—almost glorified, she felt, as she set her lips just right in the mirror—making for the Pipestave Pond, Bible in hand and spectacles clean wiped, ready to read appropriate selections to the unregenerate.

Thus it was that one bright morning in June she could be seen, prim and proper—almost glorified, she felt, as she positioned her lips just right in the mirror—heading for Pipestave Pond, Bible in hand and glasses freshly cleaned, ready to read suitable selections to the unregenerate.

She was full of the missionary spirit when she left Myanos, and partly full when she reached the Orchard Street Trail; but the spirit was leaking badly, and the woods did appear so wild and lonely that she wondered if women had any right to be missionaries. When she came in sight of the pond, the place seemed unpleasantly different from Myanos and where was the Indian camp? She did not dare to shout; indeed, she began to wish she were home again, but the sense of duty carried her fully fifty yards along the pond, and then she came to an impassable rock, a sheer bank that plainly said, “Stop!” Now she must go back or up the bank. Her Yankee pertinacity said, “Try first up the bank,” and she began a long, toilsome ascent, that did not end until she came out on a high, open rock which, on its farther side, had a sheer drop and gave a view of the village and of the sea.

She was filled with the missionary spirit when she left Myanos and still felt some of it when she reached the Orchard Street Trail, but her enthusiasm was fading fast. The woods felt so wild and lonely that she questioned whether women should even be missionaries. When she finally saw the pond, it seemed unpleasantly different from Myanos, and she wondered where the Indian camp had gone. She didn't dare shout; in fact, she started wishing she were home again, but her sense of duty pushed her fifty yards along the pond before she encountered an impassable rock, a steep bank that clearly said, “Stop!” Now she had to decide whether to go back or climb the bank. Her stubbornness said, “Try climbing first,” so she began a long and difficult ascent that didn't end until she reached a high, open rock, which on the other side had a sheer drop and offered a view of the village and the sea.

Whatever joy she had on again seeing her home was speedily queued in the fearsome discovery that she was right over the Indian camp, and the two inmates looked so utterly, dreadfully savage that she was thankful they had not seen her. At once she shrank back; but on recovering sufficiently to again peer down, she saw something roasting before the fire—“a tiny arm with a hand that bore five fingers,” as she afterward said, and “a sickening horror came over her.” Yes, she had heard of such things. If she could only get home in safety! Why had she tempted Providence thus? She backed softly and prayed only to escape. What, and never even deliver the Bible? “It would be wicked to return with it!” In a cleft of the rock she placed it, and then, to prevent the wind blowing off loose leaves, she placed a stone on top, and fled from the dreadful place.

Whatever joy she felt upon seeing her home again quickly vanished when she realized she was right above the Indian camp, and the two people there looked completely terrifying and savage, making her grateful they hadn’t spotted her. Immediately, she recoiled; but once she regained her composure and looked down again, she saw something roasting over the fire—“a tiny arm with a hand that had five fingers,” as she would later describe, and “a sickening horror washed over her.” Yes, she had heard about such things. If only she could get home safely! Why had she tempted fate like this? She backed away quietly and prayed just to escape. What, and not even deliver the Bible? “It would be wrong to go back with it!” In a crevice of the rock, she placed it, and to keep the wind from blowing away loose leaves, she set a stone on top and fled from that horrifying place.

That night, when Quonab and Rolf had finished their meal of corn and roasted coon, the old man climbed the rock to look at the sky. The book caught his eye at once, evidently hidden there carefully, and therefore in cache. A cache is a sacred thing to an Indian. He disturbed it not, but later asked Rolf, “That yours?”

That night, after Quonab and Rolf finished their meal of corn and roasted raccoon, the old man climbed the rock to look at the sky. He immediately noticed a book that had been carefully hidden there, clearly in a cache. A cache is a sacred thing to an Indian. He didn't disturb it, but later asked Rolf, “Is that yours?”

“No.”

“Nope.”

It was doubtless the property of some one who meant to return for it, so they left it untouched. It rested there for many months, till the winter storms came down, dismantling the covers, dissolving the pages, but leaving such traces as, in the long afterward, served to identify the book and give the rock the other name, the one it bears to-day—“Bible Rock, where Quonab, the son of Cos Cob, used to live.”

It was clearly the property of someone who intended to come back for it, so they left it alone. It remained there for many months until the winter storms arrived, tearing apart the covers and disintegrating the pages, but leaving enough evidence that, later on, helped to identify the book and gave the rock its other name, the one it has today—“Bible Rock, where Quonab, the son of Cos Cob, used to live.”





Chapter 8. The Law of Property Among Our Four-Footed Kin

Night came down on the Asamuk woods, and the two in the wigwam were eating their supper of pork, beans, and tea, for the Indian did not, by any means object to the white man's luxuries, when a strange “yap-yurr” was heard out toward the plain. The dog was up at once with a growl. Rolf looked inquiringly, and Quonab said, “Fox,” then bade the dog be still.

Night fell over the Asamuk woods, and the two in the wigwam were having their dinner of pork, beans, and tea, since the Indian didn’t mind the white man's luxuries at all, when a peculiar “yap-yurr” sounded out toward the plain. The dog immediately stood up with a growl. Rolf looked curiously, and Quonab said, “Fox,” then told the dog to be quiet.

“Yap-yurr, yap-yurr,” and then, “yurr, yeow,” it came again and again. “Can we get him?” said the eager young hunter. The Indian shook his head.

“Yap-yurr, yap-yurr,” and then, “yurr, yeow,” it came again and again. “Can we catch him?” said the eager young hunter. The Indian shook his head.

“Fur no good now. An' that's a she-one, with young ones on the hillside.”

“Fur isn’t worth anything now. And that’s a female, with her babies on the hillside.”

“How do you know?” was the amazed inquiry. “I know it's a she-one, 'cause she says:

“How do you know?” was the amazed question. “I know it's a girl because she says:

“Yap-yurr” (high pitched)

“Yap-yurr” (high-pitched)

If it was a he-one he'd say:

If it were a guy, he’d say:

“Yap-yurr” (low pitched)

“Yap-yurr” (deep tone)

“And she has cubs, 'cause all have at this season. And they are on that hillside, because that's the nearest place where any fox den is, and they keep pretty much to their own hunting grounds. If another fox should come hunting on the beat of this pair, he'd have to fight for it. That is the way of the wild animals; each has his own run, and for that he will fight an outsider that he would be afraid of at any other place. One knows he is right—that braces him up; the other knows he is wrong—and that weakens him.” Those were the Indian's views, expressed much less connectedly than here given, and they led Rolf on to a train of thought. He remembered a case that was much to the point.

“And she has cubs because all the foxes do this season. They're on that hillside since it's the closest place to any fox den, and they generally stick to their own hunting grounds. If another fox came to hunt in the territory of this pair, they'd have to fight for it. That's how wild animals operate; each has their own territory, and they will defend it against an outsider, even one they might fear elsewhere. One knows they are justified—that gives them confidence; the other knows they are in the wrong—and that makes them feel weak.” Those were the Indian's thoughts, expressed in a much less organized way than presented here, and they inspired Rolf to reflect. He recalled a situation that was quite relevant.

Their little dog Skookum several times had been worsted by the dog on the Horton farm, when, following his master, he had come into the house yard. There was no question that the Horton dog was stronger. But Skookum had buried a bone under some brushes by the plain and next day the hated Horton dog appeared. Skookum watched him with suspicion and fear, until it was no longer doubtful that the enemy had smelled the hidden food and was going for it. Then Skookum, braced up by some instinctive feeling, rushed forward with bristling mane and gleaming teeth, stood over his cache, and said in plainest dog, “You can't touch that while I live!”

Their little dog Skookum had been beaten a few times by the dog on the Horton farm when he followed his owner into the yard. It was clear that the Horton dog was stronger. But Skookum had buried a bone under some bushes by the plain, and the next day the pesky Horton dog showed up. Skookum watched him with suspicion and fear, until it became obvious that the enemy had caught the scent of the hidden food and was going for it. Then Skookum, fueled by some instinctive feeling, rushed forward with his fur standing on end and teeth bared, stood over his stash, and declared in clear dog language, “You can't touch that while I'm alive!”

And the Horton dog—accustomed to domineer over the small yellow cur—growled contemptuously, scratched with his hind feet, smelled around an adjoining bush, and pretending not to see or notice, went off in another direction.

And the Horton dog—used to bossing around the small yellow dog—growled in disdain, scratched with his back feet, sniffed around a nearby bush, and pretending not to see or care, walked off in a different direction.

What was it that robbed him of his courage, but the knowledge that he was in the wrong?

What took away his courage was knowing that he was in the wrong.

Continuing with his host Rolf said, “Do you think they have any idea that it is wrong to steal?”

Continuing with his host, Rolf said, “Do you think they have any idea that it's wrong to steal?”

“Yes, so long as it is one of their own tribe. A fox will take all he can get from a bird or a rabbit or a woodchuck, but he won't go far on the hunting grounds of another fox. He won't go into another fox's den or touch one of its young ones, and if he finds a cache of food with another fox's mark on it, he won't touch it unless he is near dead of hunger.”

“Yes, as long as it’s one of their own. A fox will take everything it can from a bird, a rabbit, or a woodchuck, but it won’t venture too far into another fox's territory. It won’t enter another fox’s den or mess with its young, and if it comes across a stash of food marked by another fox, it won’t touch it unless it’s on the brink of starvation.”

“How do you mean they cache food and how do they mark it?”

“How do you mean they store food and how do they mark it?”

“Generally they bury it under the leaves and soft earth, and the only mark is to leave their body scent. But that is strong enough, and every fox knows it.”

“Typically, they bury it under the leaves and soft soil, and the only indication is the scent they leave behind. But that scent is intense enough that every fox is aware of it.”

“Do wolves make food caches?”

“Do wolves create food caches?”

“Yes, wolves, cougars, weasels, squirrels, bluejays, crows, owls, mice, all do, and all have their own way of marking a place.”

“Yes, wolves, cougars, weasels, squirrels, blue jays, crows, owls, mice, all do, and all have their own way of marking a place.”

“Suppose a fox finds a wolf cache, will he steal from it?”

“Imagine a fox discovers a wolf's stash; will he take from it?”

“Yes, always. There is no law between fox and wolf. They are always at war with each other. There is law only between fox and fox, or wolf and wolf.”

“Yes, always. There’s no law between a fox and a wolf. They’re always at war with each other. There is law only between foxes or between wolves.”

“That is like ourselves, ain't it? We say, 'Thou shalt not steal,' and then when we steal the Indian's land or the Frenchman's ships, we say, 'Oh, that don't mean not steal from our enemies; they are fair game.'”

"That's just like us, isn't it? We say, 'You shouldn't steal,' and then when we take the Indian's land or the Frenchman's ships, we say, 'Oh, that doesn’t count; we can steal from our enemies; they’re fair game.'"

Quonab rose to throw some sticks on the fire, then went out to turn the smoke flap of the wigwam, for the wind was changed and another set was needed to draw the smoke. They heard several times again the high-pitched “yap yurr,” and once the deeper notes, which told that the dog fox, too, was near the camp, and was doubtless seeking food to carry home.

Quonab got up to throw some sticks on the fire, then stepped outside to adjust the smoke flap of the wigwam since the wind had shifted and a different angle was needed to let the smoke out. They heard the high-pitched “yap yurr” several more times, and once they heard the deeper sound that indicated the dog fox was close to the camp, probably looking for food to take home.





Chapter 9. Where the Bow Is Better Than the Gun

Of all popular errors about the Indians, the hardest to down is the idea that their women do all the work. They do the housework, it is true, but all the heavy labour beyond their strength is done by the men. Examples of this are seen in the frightful toil of hunting, canoeing, and portaging, besides a multitude of kindred small tasks, such as making snowshoes, bows, arrows, and canoes.

Of all the common misconceptions about Native Americans, the toughest one to shake is the belief that their women do all the work. While it's true that they handle the housework, the heavy labor that exceeds their strength is performed by the men. This is evident in the exhausting tasks of hunting, canoeing, and portaging, as well as a variety of related smaller jobs, like making snowshoes, bows, arrows, and canoes.

Each warrior usually makes his own bow and arrows, and if, as often happens, one of them proves more skilful and turns out better weapons, it is a common thing for others to offer their own specialty in exchange.

Each warrior typically creates his own bow and arrows, and if, as often happens, one of them is more skilled and produces better weapons, it's common for others to offer their own specialties in exchange.

The advantages of the bow over the gun are chiefly its noiselessness, its cheapness, and the fact that one can make its ammunition anywhere. As the gun chiefly used in Quonab's time was the old-fashioned, smooth-bore flint-lock, there was not much difference in the accuracy of the two weapons. Quonab had always made a highclass bow, as well as high-class arrows, and was a high-class shot. He could set up ten clam shells at ten paces and break all in ten shots. For at least half of his hunting he preferred the bow; the gun was useful to him chiefly when flocks of wild pigeons or ducks were about, and a single charge of scattering shot might bring down a dozen birds.

The benefits of the bow compared to the gun are mainly its quietness, affordability, and the ability to create ammunition anywhere. Since the gun mostly used in Quonab's time was an old-fashioned smooth-bore flintlock, the accuracy of both weapons was quite similar. Quonab always crafted high-quality bows and arrows and was an excellent marksman. He could set up ten clam shells at ten paces and hit all of them in ten shots. For at least half of his hunting, he preferred the bow; the gun was primarily useful for hunting flocks of wild pigeons or ducks, where a single shot could take down a dozen birds.

But there is a law in all shooting—to be expert, you must practise continually—and when Rolf saw his host shoot nearly every day at some mark, he tried to join in the sport.

But there's a rule in all shooting—if you want to be good at it, you have to practice all the time—and when Rolf saw his host shooting at some target nearly every day, he decided to get in on the action.

It took not many trys to show that the bow was far too strong for him to use, and Quonab was persuaded at length to make an outfit for his visitor.

It didn’t take many tries to show that the bow was way too strong for him to use, and Quonab was finally convinced to make a set of gear for his guest.

From the dry store hole under the rock, he produced a piece of common red cedar. Some use hickory; it is less liable to break and will stand more abuse, but it has not the sharp, clean action of cedar. The latter will send the arrow much farther, and so swiftly does it leave the string that it baffles the eye. But the cedar bow must be cared for like a delicate machine; overstring it, and it breaks; twang it without an arrow, and it sunders the cords; scratch it, and it may splinter; wet it, and it is dead; let it lie on the ground, even, and it is weakened. But guard it and it will serve you as a matchless servant, and as can no other timber in these woods.

From the storage spot under the rock, he pulled out a piece of regular red cedar. Some people use hickory; it’s less likely to break and can handle more wear and tear, but it doesn’t have the sharp, clean action of cedar. The latter can send the arrow much farther, and it flies off the string so quickly that it’s hard to see. However, the cedar bow needs to be treated with care like a delicate machine; overstring it, and it breaks; twang it without an arrow, and it snaps the cords; scratch it, and it might splinter; get it wet, and it’s done for; leave it on the ground, and it becomes weaker. But if you take care of it, it will serve you like an unmatched companion, unlike any other wood in these woods.

Just where the red heart and the white sap woods join is the bowman's choice. A piece that reached from Rolf's chin to the ground was shaved down till it was flat on the white side and round on the red side, tapering from the middle, where it was one inch wide and one inch thick to the ends, where it was three fourths of an inch wide and five eighths of an inch thick, the red and white wood equal in all parts.

Just where the red heart and the white sapwoods meet is the archer's choice. A piece that extended from Rolf's chin to the ground was shaved down until it was flat on the white side and rounded on the red side, tapering from the middle, where it was one inch wide and one inch thick, to the ends, where it was three-fourths of an inch wide and five-eighths of an inch thick, the red and white wood being equal in all parts.

The string was made of sinew from the back of a cow, split from the long, broad sheath that lies on each side the spine, and the bow strung for trial. Now, on drawing it (flat or white side in front), it was found that one arm bent more than the other, so a little more scraping was done on the strong side, till both bent alike.

The string was made from sinew taken from the back of a cow, split from the long, broad sheath on each side of the spine, and the bow was strung for testing. Now, when drawing it (with the flat or white side facing front), it turned out that one arm bent more than the other, so a bit more scraping was done on the stronger side until both arms bent the same.

Quonab's arrows would answer, but Rolf needed a supply of his own. Again there was great choice of material. The long, straight shoots ol' the arrowwood (Viburnuin dentatum) supplied the ancient Indians, but Quonab had adopted a better way, since the possession of an axe made it possible. A 25-inch block of straight-grained ash was split and split until it yielded enough pieces. These were shaved down to one fourth of an inch thick, round, smooth, and perfectly straight. Each was notched deeply at one end; three pieces of split goose feather were lashed on the notched end, and three different kinds of arrows were made. All were alike in shaft and in feathering, but differed in the head. First, the target arrows: these were merely sharpened, and the points hardened by roasting to a brown colour. They would have been better with conical points of steel, but none of these were to be had. Second, the ordinary hunting arrows with barbed steel heads, usually bought ready-made, or filed out of a hoop: these were for use in securing such creatures as muskrats, ducks close at hand, or deer. Third, the bird bolts: these were left with a large, round, wooden head. They were intended for quail, partridges, rabbits, and squirrels, but also served very often, and most admirably, in punishing dogs, either the Indian's own when he was not living up to the rules and was too far off for a cuff or kick, or a farmer's dog that was threatening an attack.

Quonab's arrows would be effective, but Rolf needed some of his own. Again, there was a wide selection of materials. The long, straight stalks of the arrowwood (Viburnum dentatum) were used by the ancient Indians, but Quonab had found a better method, thanks to having an axe. A 25-inch block of straight-grained ash was split repeatedly until it produced enough pieces. These were shaved down to a quarter-inch thick, round, smooth, and perfectly straight. Each one was deeply notched at one end; three pieces of split goose feather were tied onto the notched end, creating three different types of arrows. All were the same in shaft and feathering but varied in head type. First, the target arrows: these were simply sharpened, with points hardened by roasting until they turned brown. They would have been better with conical steel points, but those weren't available. Second, the regular hunting arrows had barbed steel heads, typically purchased ready-made or filed from a hoop; these were meant for catching animals like muskrats, ducks nearby, or deer. Third, there were the bird bolts: these had a large, round wooden head. They were designed for quail, partridges, rabbits, and squirrels, but they also worked very well for punishing dogs, whether it was the Indian's own when he wasn't following the rules and was too far away for a cuff or kick, or a farmer's dog that was posing a threat.

Now the outfit was complete, Rolf thought, but one other touch was necessary. Quonab painted the feather part of the shaft bright red, and Rolf learned why. Not for ornament, not as an owner's mark, but as a finding mark. Many a time that brilliant red, with the white feather next it, was the means of saving the arrow from loss. An uncoloured arrow among the sticks and leaves of the woods was usually hidden, but the bright-coloured shaft could catch the eye 100 yards away.

Now the outfit was complete, Rolf thought, but one more detail was needed. Quonab painted the feather part of the shaft bright red, and Rolf found out why. It wasn't for decoration, nor as a personal mark, but as a locator mark. Many times, that bright red, paired with the white feather, saved the arrow from being lost. An unpainted arrow among the twigs and leaves in the woods was usually hard to see, but the vibrant shaft could catch someone’s eye from 100 yards away.

It was very necessary to keep the bow and arrows from the wet. For this, every hunter provides a case, usually of buckskin, but failing that they made a good quiver of birch bark laced with spruce roots for the arrows, and for the bow itself a long cover of tarpaulin.

It was essential to keep the bow and arrows dry. For this, every hunter has a case, usually made of buckskin, but if that's not available, they create a decent quiver out of birch bark laced with spruce roots for the arrows, and for the bow itself, a long cover made of tarpaulin.

Now came the slow drilling in archery; the arrow held and the bow drawn with three fingers on the cord—the thumb and little finger doing nothing. The target was a bag of hay set at twenty feet, until the beginner could hit it every time: then by degrees it was moved away until at the standard distance of forty yards he could do fair shooting, although of course he never shot as well as the Indian, who had practised since he was a baby.

Now came the slow practice in archery; the arrow held and the bow drawn with three fingers on the string—the thumb and pinky doing nothing. The target was a haystack set twenty feet away, until the beginner could hit it every time: then gradually it was moved back until at the standard distance of forty yards he could shoot decently, although of course he never shot as well as the Indian, who had practiced since he was a baby.

There are three different kinds of archery tests: the first for aim: Can you shoot so truly as to hit a three-inch mark, ten times in succession, at ten paces?

There are three different types of archery tests: the first for accuracy: Can you shoot accurately enough to hit a three-inch target ten times in a row from ten paces away?

Next for speed: Can you shoot so quickly and so far up, as to have five arrows in the air at once? If so, you are good: Can you keep up six? Then you are very good. Seven is wonderful. The record is said to be eight. Last for power: Can you pull so strong a bow and let the arrow go so clean that it will fly for 250 yards or will pass through a deer at ten paces? There is a record of a Sioux who sent an arrow through three antelopes at one shot, and it was not unusual to pierce the huge buffalo through and through; on one occasion a warrior with one shot pierced the buffalo and killed her calf running at the other side.

Next for speed: Can you shoot so quickly and so high that you can have five arrows in the air at the same time? If so, you're impressive. Can you manage six? Then you're really impressive. Seven is amazing. The record is said to be eight. Last for power: Can you pull back such a strong bow and release the arrow with such precision that it can travel 250 yards or go through a deer from ten paces away? There's a record of a Sioux who shot an arrow through three antelopes in one shot, and it wasn't uncommon to shoot through a huge buffalo entirely; on one occasion, a warrior shot through a buffalo and killed her calf running on the other side.

If you excel in these three things, you can down your partridge and squirrel every time; you can get five or six out of each flock of birds; you can kill your deer at twenty-five yards, and so need never starve in the woods where there is game.

If you’re great at these three things, you can take down your partridge and squirrel every time; you can get five or six from each flock of birds; you can shoot your deer from twenty-five yards away, so you'll never go hungry in the woods where there's game.

Of course, Rolf was keen to go forth and try in the real chase, but it was many a shot he missed and many an arrow lost or broken, before he brought in even a red squirrel, and he got, at least, a higher appreciation of the skill of those who could count on the bow for their food.

Of course, Rolf was eager to go out and try his hand at the real hunt, but he missed many shots and lost or broke many arrows before he finally caught even a red squirrel. At least he gained a greater appreciation for the skill of those who relied on the bow for their food.

For those, then, who think themselves hunters and woodmen, let this be a test and standard: Can you go forth alone into the wilderness where there is game, take only a bow and arrows for weapons, and travel afoot 250 miles, living on the country as you go?

For those who consider themselves hunters and outdoorsmen, here’s a challenge to measure your skills: Can you venture alone into the wild where there’s game, take only a bow and arrows as your weapons, and walk 250 miles, relying on the land for your sustenance along the way?







Chapter 10. Rolf Works Out with Many Results

He is the dumbest kind of a dumb fool that ain't king in some little corner.--_Sayings of Si Sylvanne_

He is the biggest kind of idiot who isn't even a king in some small area.--_Sayings of Si Sylvanne_



The man who has wronged you will never forgive you, and he who has helped you will be forever grateful. Yes, there is nothing that draws you to a man so much as the knowledge that you have helped him.

The man who has wronged you will never forgive you, and the one who has helped you will always be grateful. Yes, nothing attracts you to someone as much as knowing you’ve helped them.

Quonab helped Rolf, and so was more drawn to him than to many of the neighbours that he had known cor years; he was ready to like him. Their coming together ffas accidental, but it was soon very clear that a friendship was springing up between them. Rolf was too much of a child to think about the remote future; and so was Quonab. Most Indians are merely tall children.

Quonab helped Rolf, and because of that, he felt more connected to him than to many of the neighbors he had known for years; he was open to liking him. Their meeting was coincidental, but it quickly became obvious that a friendship was developing between them. Rolf was too much of a kid to think about the distant future; Quonab was the same way. Most Indians are simply big kids.

But there was one thing that Rolf did think of--he had no right to live in Quonab's lodge without contributing a fair share of the things needful. Quonab got his living partly by hunting, partly by fishing, partly by selling baskets, and partly by doing odd jobs for the neighbours. Rolf's training as a loafer had been wholly neglected, and when he realized that he might be all summer with Quonab he said bluntly:

But there was one thing Rolf thought about—he had no right to live in Quonab's lodge without offering his fair share of what was needed. Quonab made a living by hunting, fishing, selling baskets, and doing odd jobs for the neighbors. Rolf's training as a slacker had been completely ignored, and when he realized he might be spending the entire summer with Quonab, he said directly:

“You let me stay here a couple of months. I'll work out odd days, and buy enough stuff to keep myself any way.” Quonab said nothing, but their eyes met, and the boy knew it was agreed to.

“You let me stay here for a couple of months. I'll work on random days and buy enough things to take care of myself.” Quonab said nothing, but their eyes met, and the boy knew it was settled.

Rolf went that very day to the farm of Obadiah Timpany, and offered to work by the day, hoeing corn and root crops. What farmer is not glad of help in planting time 01 in harvest? It was only a question of what did he know and how much did he want? The first was soon made clear; two dollars a week was the usual thing for boys in those times, and when he offered to take it half in trade, he was really getting three dollars a week and his board. Food was as low as wages, and at the end of a week, Rolf brought back to camp a sack of oatmeal, a sack of cornmeal, a bushel of potatoes, a lot of apples, and one dollar cash. The dollar went for tea and sugar, and the total product was enough to last them both a month; so Rolf could share the wigwam with a good conscience.

Rolf went to Obadiah Timpany's farm that same day and offered to work for daily wages, hoeing corn and root vegetables. What farmer wouldn’t appreciate help during planting or harvest time? It quickly became clear what he knew and how much he wanted. It was common for boys back then to earn around two dollars a week, and when he proposed to take part of it in goods, he was essentially earning three dollars a week plus his meals. Food prices were as low as wages, and by the end of the week, Rolf returned to camp with a sack of oatmeal, a sack of cornmeal, a bushel of potatoes, a bunch of apples, and one dollar in cash. He used the dollar for tea and sugar, and the total supplies were enough to last both of them for a month; so Rolf could share the wigwam with a clear conscience.

Of course, it was impossible to keep the gossipy little town of Myanos from knowing, first, that the Indian had a white boy for partner; and, later, that that boy was Rolf. This gave rise to great diversity of opinion in the neighbourhood. Some thought it should not be allowed, but Horton, who owned the land on which Quonab was camped, could not see any reason for interfering.

Of course, it was impossible to keep the gossipy little town of Myanos from knowing, first, that the Indian had a white boy for a partner; and later, that the boy was Rolf. This led to a lot of different opinions in the neighborhood. Some thought it shouldn't be allowed, but Horton, who owned the land where Quonab was camped, saw no reason to interfere.

Ketchura Peck, spinster, however, did see many most excellent reasons. She was a maid with a mission, and maintained it to be an outrage that a Christian boy should be brought up by a godless pagan. She worried over it almost as much as she did over the heathen in Central Africa, where there are no Sunday schools, and clothes are as scarce as churches. Failing to move Parson Peck and Elder Knapp in the matter, and despairing of an early answer to her personal prayers, she resolved on a bold move, “An' it was only after many a sleepless, prayerful night,” namely, to carry the Bible into the heathen's stronghold.

Ketchura Peck, single woman, did see many great reasons. She was a woman on a mission and believed it was outrageous for a Christian boy to be raised by a godless pagan. She worried about it just as much as she did about the heathens in Central Africa, where there are no Sunday schools, and clothes are as rare as churches. Unable to sway Parson Peck and Elder Knapp on the issue, and feeling hopeless about receiving a quick answer to her personal prayers, she decided on a daring move, “And it was only after many sleepless, prayerful nights,” that she would take the Bible into the pagan's stronghold.

Thus it was that one bright morning in June she might have been seen, prim and proper--almost glorified, she felt, as she set her lips just right in the mirror--making for the Pipestave Pond, Bible in hand and spectacles clear wiped, ready to read appropriate selections to the unregenerate.

Thus it was that one bright morning in June she might have been seen, prim and proper—almost glorified, she felt, as she set her lips just right in the mirror—making for the Pipestave Pond, Bible in hand and glasses cleaned, ready to read suitable passages to the unrepentant.

She was full of the missionary spirit when she left Myanos, and partly full when she reached the Orchard Street Trail; but the spirit was leaking badly, and the woods did appear so wild and lonely that she wondered if women had any right to be missionaries. When she came in sight of the pond, the place seemed unpleasantly different from Myanos and where was the Indian camp? She did not dare to shout; indeed, she began to wish she were home again, but the sense of duty carried her fully fifty yards along the pond, and then she came to an impassable rock, a sheer bank that plainly said, “Stop!” Now she must go back or up the bank. Her Yankee pertinacity said, “Try first up the bank,” and she began a long, toilsome ascent, that did not end until she came out on a high, open rock which, on its farther side, had a sheer drop and gave a view of the village and of the sea.

She was filled with enthusiasm when she left Myanos, and somewhat still excited when she reached the Orchard Street Trail; but her energy was fading fast, and the woods looked so wild and lonely that she started to question if women really had a place being missionaries. When she finally spotted the pond, it felt uncomfortably different from Myanos, and where was the Indian camp? She didn't dare yell; in fact, she began to wish she were back home, but a sense of duty pushed her about fifty yards along the pond, until she encountered an impassable rock, a steep bank that clearly said, “Stop!” Now she had to choose between going back or climbing up the bank. Her stubbornness said, “Try going up first,” so she began a long, exhausting climb that didn't end until she reached a high, open rock, which on the other side dropped straight down and revealed a view of the village and the sea.

Whatever joy she had on again seeing her home was speedily quelled in the fearsome discovery that she was right over the Indian camp, and the two inmates looked so utterly, dreadfully savage that she was thankful they had not seen her. At once she shrank back; but on recovering sufficiently to again peer down, she saw something roasting before the fire--“a tiny arm with a hand that bore five fingers,” as she afterward said, and “a sickening horror came over her.” Yes, she had heard of such things. If she could only get home in safety! Why had she tempted Providence thus? She backed softly and prayed only to escape. What, and never even deliver the Bible? “It would be wicked to return with it!” In a cleft of the rock she placed it, and then, to prevent the wind blowing off loose leaves, she placed a stone on top, and fled from the dreadful place.

Whatever joy she felt at seeing her home again was quickly overshadowed by the horrifying realization that she was right above the Indian camp. The two people there looked so completely and terrifyingly savage that she was relieved they hadn’t noticed her. She immediately pulled back, but once she had gathered herself enough to look down again, she saw something roasting over the fire—“a tiny arm with a hand that had five fingers,” as she later described it, and “a sickening horror washed over her.” Yes, she had heard about such things. If only she could make it home safely! Why had she tempted fate like this? She quietly backed away and prayed only to escape. What, and not even deliver the Bible? “It would be wrong to return with it!” In a crack in the rock, she hid it and then, to keep the wind from blowing away loose leaves, she placed a stone on top and fled from the horrific scene.

That night, when Quonab and Rolf had finished theic meal of corn and roasted coon, the old man climbed the rock to look at the sky. The book caught his eye at once, evidently hidden there carefully, and therefore in cache. A cache is a sacred thing to an Indian. He disturbed it not, but later asked Rolf, “That yours?”

That night, after Quonab and Rolf finished their meal of corn and roasted raccoon, the old man climbed the rock to gaze at the sky. He immediately noticed a book that was clearly hidden there carefully, making it a cache. A cache is a sacred thing to an Indian. He didn’t disturb it, but later asked Rolf, “Is that yours?”

“No.”

“Nope.”

It was doubtless the property of some one who meant to return for it, so they left it untouched. It rested there for many months, till the winter storms came down, dismantling the covers, dissolving the pages, but leaving such traces as, in the long afterward, served to identify the book and give the rock the other name, the one it bears to-day--“Bible Rock, where Quonab, the son of Cos Cob, used to live.”

It definitely belonged to someone who planned to come back for it, so they left it untouched. It sat there for many months, until the winter storms arrived, tearing apart the covers and ruining the pages, but leaving behind enough signs that later helped identify the book and gave the rock its other name, the one it has today—“Bible Rock, where Quonab, the son of Cos Cob, used to live.”





Chapter 11. The Thunder-storm and the Fire Sticks

When first Rolf noticed the wigwam's place, he wondered that Quonab had not set it somewhere facing the lake, but he soon learned that it is best to have the morning sun, the afternoon shade, and shelter from the north and west winds.

When Rolf first noticed where the wigwam was located, he wondered why Quonab hadn't placed it facing the lake. However, he soon realized that it's better to have morning sunlight, afternoon shade, and protection from the north and west winds.

The first two points were illustrated nearly every day; but it was two weeks before the last was made clear.

The first two points were shown almost every day, but it took two weeks for the last one to become clear.

That day the sun came up in a red sky, but soon was lost to view in a heavy cloud-bank. There was no wind, and, as the morning passed, the day grew hotter and closer. Quonab prepared for a storm; but it came with unexpected force, and a gale of wind from the northwest that would indeed have wrecked the lodge, but for the great sheltering rock. Under its lea there was hardy a breeze; but not fifty yards away were two trees that rubbed together, and in the storm they rasped so violently that fine shreds of smoking wood were dropped and, but for the rain, would surely have made a blaze. The thunder was loud and lasted long, and the water poured down in torrents. They were ready for rain, but not for the flood that rushed over the face of the cliff, soaking everything in the lodge except the beds, which, being four inches off the ground, were safe; and lying on them the two campers waited patiently, or impatiently, while the weather raged for two drenching hours. And then the pouring became a pattering; the roaring, a swishing; the storm, a shower which died away, leaving changing patches of blue in the lumpy sky, and all nature calm and pleased, but oh, so wet! Of course the fire was out in the lodge and nearly all the wood was wet. Now Quonab drew from a small cave some dry cedar and got down his tinder-box with flint and steel to light up; but a serious difficulty appeared at once—the tinder was wet and useless.

That day, the sun rose in a red sky, but it quickly disappeared behind a thick bank of clouds. There was no wind, and as the morning went on, it got hotter and more humid. Quonab got ready for a storm, but it hit with surprising force, bringing a strong wind from the northwest that could have easily destroyed the lodge if it weren't for the massive sheltering rock. Under its protection, there was hardly a breeze; yet not fifty yards away, two trees rubbed against each other, and in the storm, they screeched so loudly that fine shreds of smoking wood fell to the ground, which, if not for the rain, would have definitely ignited. The thunder was loud and went on for a long time, and the rain poured down in torrents. They were prepared for rain, but not for the flood that surged down the cliff, soaking everything in the lodge except for the beds, which were four inches off the ground and stayed dry; so the two campers sat on them, waiting patiently, or not so patiently, while the storm raged for two soaking wet hours. Then the pouring turned into a light patter; the roaring changed to a gentle swish; the storm transformed into a light shower, which faded away, leaving patches of blue in the bumpy sky, with all of nature calm and satisfied, but oh, so wet! Naturally, the fire in the lodge was out, and almost all the wood was soaked. Now Quonab pulled some dry cedar out from a small cave and grabbed his tinder-box with flint and steel to start a fire; however, a serious problem arose right away—the tinder was wet and useless.

These were the days before matches were invented. Every one counted on flint and steel for their fire, but the tinder was an essential, and now a fire seemed hopeless; at least Rolf thought so.

These were the days before matches were invented. Everyone relied on flint and steel for their fire, but tinder was essential, and now starting a fire seemed impossible; at least Rolf thought so.

“Nana Bojou was dancing that time,” said the Indian.

“Nana Bojou was dancing back then,” said the Indian.

“Did you see him make fire with those two rubbing trees? So he taught our fathers, and so make we fire when the tricks of the white man fail us.”

“Did you see him start a fire by rubbing those two trees together? That’s how he taught our ancestors, and that’s how we make fire when the tricks of the white man don't work for us.”

Quonab now cut two pieces of dry cedar, one three fourths of an inch thick and eighteen inches long, round, and pointed at both ends; the other five eighths of an inch thick and flat. In the flat one he cut a notch and at the end of the notch a little pit. Next he made a bow of a stiff, curved stick, and a buckskin thong: a small pine knot was selected and a little pit made in it with the point of a knife. These were the fare-making sticks, but it was necessary to prepare the firewood, lay the fire, and make some fibre for tinder. A lot of fine cedar shavings, pounded up with cedar bark and rolled into a two-inch ball, made good tinder, and all was ready. Quonab put the bow thong once around the long stick, then held its point in the pit of the flat stick, and the pine knot on the top to steady it. Now he drew the bow back and forth, slowly, steadily, till the long stick or drill revolving ground smoking black dust out of the notch. Then faster, until the smoke was very strong and the powder filled the notch. Then he lifted the flat stick, fanning the powder with his hands till a glowing coal appeared. Over this he put the cedar tinder and blew gently, till it flamed, and soon the wigwam was aglow.

Quonab cut two pieces of dry cedar, one three-quarters of an inch thick and eighteen inches long, rounded and pointed at both ends; the other five-eighths of an inch thick and flat. In the flat piece, he cut a notch and made a small pit at the end of the notch. Next, he crafted a bow from a stiff, curved stick and a buckskin thong. He picked a small pine knot and created a little pit in it with the tip of a knife. These were the sticks for making fire, but he still needed to prepare the firewood, set up the fire, and make some fiber for tinder. A bunch of fine cedar shavings, mixed with cedar bark and rolled into a two-inch ball, served as good tinder, and everything was ready. Quonab wrapped the bow thong once around the long stick, then held its point in the pit of the flat stick, placing the pine knot on top to steady it. Now he pulled the bow back and forth, slowly and steadily, until the long stick or drill rotated, producing smoking black dust from the notch. Then he increased his speed until the smoke was intense and the powder filled the notch. He lifted the flat stick, fanned the powder with his hands until a glowing ember appeared. He placed the cedar tinder over this and blew gently until it ignited, and soon the wigwam was lit up.

The whole time taken, from lifting the sticks to the blazing fire, was less than one minute.

The entire process, from picking up the sticks to the roaring fire, took less than a minute.

This is the ancient way of the Indian; Rolf had often heard of it as a sort of semi-myth; never before had he seen it, and so far as he could learn from the books, it took an hour or two of hard work, not a few deft touches and a few seconds of time.

This is the traditional method of the Indian; Rolf had often heard about it as a kind of semi-myth; he had never seen it before, and from what he could gather from the books, it took an hour or two of hard work, along with a few skillful touches and a matter of seconds.

He soon learned to do it himself, and in the years which followed, he had the curious experience of showing it to many Indians who had forgotten how, thanks to the greater portability of the white man's flint and steel.

He quickly figured out how to do it himself, and in the years that followed, he had the interesting experience of teaching many Indians who had forgotten how, due to the easier portability of the white man's flint and steel.

As they walked in the woods that day, they saw three trees that had been struck by lightning during the recent storm; all three were oaks. Then it occurred to Rolf that he had never seen any but an oak struck by lightning.

As they walked in the woods that day, they saw three trees that had been hit by lightning during the recent storm; all three were oaks. Then it struck Rolf that he had never seen any tree other than an oak get hit by lightning.

“Is it so, Quonab?”

"Is that true, Quonab?"

“No, there are many others; the lightning strikes the oaks most of all, but it will strike the pine, the ash, the hemlock, the basswood, and many more. Only two trees have I never seen struck, the balsam and the birch.”

“No, there are many others; lightning hits the oaks the most, but it also strikes the pine, the ash, the hemlock, the basswood, and many more. There are only two trees I’ve never seen get hit, the balsam and the birch.”

“Why do they escape?”

“Why do they run away?”

“My father told me when I was a little boy it was because they sheltered and warmed the Star-girl, who was the sister of the Thunder-bird.”

“My dad told me when I was a little kid that it was because they took care of and warmed the Star-girl, who was the sister of the Thunder-bird.”

“I never heard that; tell me about it.”

“I’ve never heard that; tell me about it.”

“Sometime maybe, not now.”

"Maybe sometime, just not now."





Chapter 12. Hunting the Woodchucks

Cornmeal and potatoes, with tea and apples, three times a day, are apt to lose their charm. Even fish did not entirely satisfy the craving for flesh meat. So Quonab and Rolf set out one morning on a regular hunt for food. The days of big game were over on the Asamuk, but there were still many small kinds and none more abundant than the woodchuck, hated of farmers. Not without reason. Each woodchuck hole in the field was a menace to the horses' legs. Tradition, at least, said that horses' legs and riders' necks had been broken by the steed setting foot in one of these dangerous pitfalls: besides which, each chuck den was the hub centre of an area of desolation whenever located, as mostly it was, in the cultivated fields. Undoubtedly the damage was greatly exaggerated, but the farmers generally agreed that the woodchuck was a pest.

Cornmeal and potatoes, along with tea and apples, three times a day, can start to lose their appeal. Even fish didn't fully satisfy the urge for meat. So, Quonab and Rolf headed out one morning on a regular food hunt. The era of big game hunting was over on the Asamuk, but there were still plenty of smaller animals, and none were more plentiful than the woodchuck, despised by farmers. And for good reason. Each woodchuck hole in the field posed a danger to the horses' legs. Tradition claimed that horses' legs and riders' necks had been broken when a horse stepped into one of these perilous holes; furthermore, each woodchuck burrow typically marked an area of destruction, mostly located in the cultivated fields. The actual damage may have been exaggerated, but farmers generally agreed that the woodchuck was a nuisance.

Whatever resentment the tiller of the soil might feel against the Indian's hunting quail on his land, he always welcomed him as a killer of woodchucks.

Whatever resentment the farmer might feel about the Indian hunting quail on his land, he always welcomed him as someone who could take care of woodchucks.

And the Indian looked on this animal as fair game and most excellent eating.

And the Indian saw this animal as a good target and great to eat.

Rolf watched eagerly when Quonab, taking his bow and arrows, said they were going out for a meat hunt. Although there were several fields with woodchucks resident, they passed cautiously from one to another, scanning the green expanse for the dark-brown spots that meant woodchucks out foraging. At length they found one, with a large and two small moving brown things among the clover. The large one stood up on its hind legs from time to time, ever alert for danger. It was a broad, open field, without cover; but close to the cleared place in which, doubtless, was the den, there was a ridge that Quonab judged would help him to approach.

Rolf watched eagerly as Quonab grabbed his bow and arrows, saying they were heading out for a meat hunt. Even though there were several fields where woodchucks lived, they carefully moved from one to another, scanning the green landscape for the dark-brown spots that indicated woodchucks were out foraging. Eventually, they spotted one, with a large and two smaller brown shapes among the clover. The large one occasionally stood up on its hind legs, always on the lookout for danger. It was a wide, open field without any cover, but near the cleared area that likely hid the den, there was a ridge that Quonab thought would help him get closer.

Rolf was instructed to stay in hiding and make some Indian signs that the hunter could follow when he should lose sight of the prey. First, “Come on” (beckoning); and, second, “Stop,” (hand raised, palm forward); “All right” (hand drawn across level and waist high); forefinger moved forward, level, then curved straight down, meant “gone in hole.” But Rolf was not to sign anything or move, unless Quonab asked him by making the question sign (that is waving his hand with palm forward and spread fingers).

Rolf was told to stay hidden and create some signals that the hunter could follow if he lost track of the prey. First, "Come on" (beckoning); second, "Stop" (hand raised, palm facing forward); "All right" (hand moving across at waist level); moving the forefinger forward, level, then bending it straight down meant "went into a hole." But Rolf wasn't supposed to signal or move unless Quonab asked him by making the question sign (waving his hand with the palm facing forward and fingers spread).

Quonab went back into the woods, then behind the stone walls to get around to the side next the ridge, and crawling so flat on his breast in the clover that, although it was but a foot high, he was quite invisible to any one not placed much above him.

Quonab went back into the woods, then behind the stone walls to get around to the side by the ridge, and crawled flat on his stomach in the clover so that, even though it was only a foot high, he was completely invisible to anyone not positioned much higher than him.

In this way he came to the little ridge back of the woodchuck den, quite unknown to its occupants. But now he was in a difficulty. He could not see any of them.

In this way, he reached the small ridge behind the woodchuck den, completely unnoticed by its residents. But now he was in a bind. He couldn't see any of them.

They were certainly beyond range of his bow, and it was difficult to make them seek the den without their rushing into it. But he was equal to the occasion. He raised one hand and made the query sign, and watching Rolf he got answer, “All well; they are there.” (A level sweep of the flat hand and a finger pointing steadily.) Then he waited a few seconds and made exactly the same sign, getting the same answer.

They were definitely out of range of his bow, and it was tough to get them to go to the den without them charging in. But he was up for the challenge. He raised one hand and signaled a question, and while watching Rolf, he received an answer, “All good; they are there.” (A flat sweep of the hand and a finger pointing steadily.) Then he waited a few seconds and made exactly the same sign, getting the same response.

He knew that the movement of the distant man would catch the eye of the old woodchuck; she would sit up high to see what it was, and when it came a second time she would, without being exactly alarmed, move toward the den and call the young ones to follow.

He knew that the movement of the distant man would grab the attention of the old woodchuck; she would sit up high to check it out, and when it happened a second time, she would, without being really alarmed, head toward the den and signal the young ones to follow.

The hunter had not long to wait. He heard her shrill, warning whistle, then the big chuck trotted and waddled into sight, stopping occasionally to nibble or look around. Close behind her were the two fat cubs. Arrived near the den their confidence was restored, and again they began to feed, the young ones close to the den. Then Quonab put a blunt bird dart in his bow and laid two others ready. Rising as little as possible, he drew the bow. 'Tsip! the blunt arrow hit the young chuck on the nose and turned him over. The other jumped in surprise and stood up. So did the mother. 'Tsip! another bolt and the second chuck was kicking. But the old one dashed like a flash into the underground safety of her den. Quonab knew that she had seen nothing of him and would likely come forth very soon. He waited for some time; then the gray-brown muzzle of the fat old clover-stealer came partly to view; but it was not enough for a shot, and she seemed to have no idea of coming farther. The Indian waited what seemed like a long time, then played an ancient trick. He began to whistle a soft, low air. Whether the chuck thinks it is another woodchuck calling, or merely a pleasant sound, is not known, but she soon did as her kind always does, came out of the hole slowly and ever higher, till she was half out and sitting up, peering about.

The hunter didn’t have to wait long. He heard her sharp, warning whistle, then the big groundhog trotted and waddled into view, stopping now and then to nibble or look around. Right behind her were the two plump cubs. When they got close to the den, their confidence returned, and they started to eat again, the young ones near the den. Quonab notched a blunt bird dart in his bow and readied two more. Trying to stay as low as possible, he pulled back the bow. 'Tsip!' the blunt arrow hit the young groundhog on the nose and knocked it over. The other cub jumped in surprise and stood up. So did the mother. 'Tsip!' Another shot and the second groundhog was kicking. But the old one darted swiftly into the safety of her den. Quonab knew she hadn’t spotted him and would likely come out very soon. He waited for a while; then the gray-brown muzzle of the fat old clover-eater partly came into view; but it wasn’t enough for a shot, and she seemed to have no intention of coming out further. The Indian waited what felt like a long time, then used an old trick. He started to whistle a soft, low tune. It’s unclear if the groundhog thinks it’s another groundhog calling or just a nice sound, but soon enough, like her kind always does, she emerged from the hole slowly and higher, until she was halfway out and sitting up, looking around.

This was Quonab's chance. He now drew a barbed hunting arrow to the head and aimed it behind her shoulders. 'Tsip! and the chuck was transfixed by a shaft that ended her life a minute later, and immediately prevented that instinctive scramble into the hole, by which so many chucks elude the hunter, even when mortally wounded.

This was Quonab's moment. He pulled back a barbed hunting arrow to the head and aimed it behind her shoulders. 'Tsip!' and the chuck was pierced by an arrow that ended her life a minute later, immediately stopping that instinctive scramble into the hole, through which so many chucks escape the hunter, even when fatally wounded.

Now Quonab stood up without further concealment, and beckoned to Rolf, who came running. Three fat woodchucks meant abundance of the finest fresh meat for a week; and those who have not tried it have no idea what a delicacy is a young, fat, clover-fed woodchuck, pan-roasted, with potatoes, and served at a blazing campfire to a hunter who is young, strong, and exceedingly hungry.

Now Quonab stood up without hiding anymore and waved to Rolf, who came running. Three plump woodchucks meant plenty of the best fresh meat for a week; and those who haven't experienced it have no idea how delicious a young, fat, clover-fed woodchuck is, pan-roasted with potatoes and served at a crackling campfire to a hunter who is young, strong, and incredibly hungry.





Chapter 13. The Fight with the Demon of the Deep

One morning, as they passed the trail that skirts the pond, Quonab pointed to the near water. There was something afloat like a small, round leaf, with two beads well apart, on it. Then Rolf noticed, two feet away, a larger floating leaf, and now he knew that the first was the head and eyes, the last the back, of a huge snapping turtle. A moment more and it quickly sank from view. Turtles of three different kinds were common, and snappers were well known to Rolf; but never before had he seen such a huge and sinister-looking monster of the deep.

One morning, as they walked along the path by the pond, Quonab pointed to the water nearby. There was something floating that looked like a small, round leaf, with two beads spaced apart on it. Then Rolf noticed, just two feet away, a larger floating leaf, and he realized that the first was the head and eyes, while the larger one was the back of a giant snapping turtle. In just a moment, it quickly sank out of sight. Turtles of three different types were common, and Rolf was familiar with snappers, but he had never seen such a huge and sinister-looking creature from the depths before.

“That is Bosikado. I know him; he knows me,” said the red man. “There has long been war between us; some day we will settle it. I saw him here first three years ago. I had shot a duck; it floated on the water. Before I could get to it something pulled it under, and that was the last of it. Then a summer duck came with young ones. One by one he took them, and at last got her. He drives all ducks away, so I set many night lines for him. I got some little snappers, eight and ten pounds each. They were good to eat, and three times already I took Bosikado on the hooks, but each time when I pulled him up to the canoe, he broke my biggest line and went down. He was as broad as the canoe; his claws broke through the canoe skin; he made it bulge and tremble. He looked like the devil of the lake. I was afraid!

“That’s Bosikado. I know him; he knows me,” said the red man. “There’s been a long-standing war between us; someday we’ll settle it. I first saw him here three years ago. I had shot a duck, and it was floating on the water. Before I could reach it, something pulled it under, and that was the last I saw of it. Then a summer duck came with her young ones. One by one, he took them and finally got her. He drives all the ducks away, so I set many night lines for him. I caught some small ones, each weighing eight to ten pounds. They were good to eat, and three times already I hooked Bosikado, but every time I pulled him up to the canoe, he broke my biggest line and sank down. He was as wide as the canoe; his claws tore through the canoe skin, making it bulge and shake. He looked like the devil of the lake. I was scared!

“But my father taught me there is only one thing that can shame a man—that is to be afraid, and I said I will never let fear be my guide. I will seek a fair fight with Bosikado. He is my enemy. He made me afraid once; I will make him much afraid. For three years we have been watching each other. For three years he has kept all summer ducks away, and robbed my fish-lines, my nets, and my muskrat traps. Not often do I see him—mostly like today.

“But my dad taught me there’s only one thing that can shame a man—and that’s being afraid, and I said I will never let fear lead me. I will look for a fair fight with Bosikado. He’s my enemy. He made me afraid once; now I will make him very afraid. For three years we’ve been keeping an eye on each other. For three years he’s kept all the summer ducks away and stolen from my fishing lines, my nets, and my muskrat traps. I don’t see him often—mostly just like today.”

“Before Skookum I had a little dog, Nindai. He was a good little dog. He could tree a coon, catch a rabbit, or bring out a duck, although he was very small. We were very good friends. One time I shot a duck; it fell into the lake; I called Nindai. He jumped into the water and swam to the duck. Then that duck that I thought dead got up and flew away, so I called Nindai. He came across the water to me. By and by, over that deep place, he howled and splashed. Then he yelled, like he wanted me. I ran for the canoe and paddled quick; I saw my little dog Nindai go down. Then I knew it was that Bosikado again. I worked a long time with a pole, but found nothing; only five days later one of Nindai's paws floated down the stream. Some day I will tear open that Bosikado!

“Before Skookum, I had a little dog named Nindai. He was a great little dog. He could tree a raccoon, catch a rabbit, or retrieve a duck, even though he was very small. We were the best of friends. One time I shot a duck; it fell into the lake, so I called for Nindai. He jumped into the water and swam to the duck. Then, that duck I thought was dead got up and flew away, so I called Nindai. He came back across the water to me. After a while, over that deep spot, he howled and splashed around. Then he barked like he wanted my help. I ran to get the canoe and paddled quickly; I saw my little dog Nindai go under. Then I realized it was that Bosikado again. I struggled for a long time with a pole, but found nothing; only five days later did one of Nindai's paws float down the stream. Someday I will take down that Bosikado!"

“Once I saw him on the bank. He rolled down like a big stone to the water. He looked at me before he dived, and as we looked in each other's eyes I knew he was a Manito; but he is evil, and my father said, 'When an evil Manito comes to trouble you, you must kill him.'

“Once I saw him on the riverbank. He rolled into the water like a big stone. He looked at me before he dove, and as we locked eyes, I realized he was a Manito; but he is evil, and my father said, 'When an evil Manito comes to trouble you, you have to kill him.'”

“One day, when I swam after a dead duck, he took me by the toe, but I reached shallow water and escaped him; and once I drove my fish-spear in his back, but it was not strong enough to hold him. Once he caught Skookum's tail, but the hair came out; the dog has not since swum across the pond.

“One day, when I swam after a dead duck, he grabbed my toe, but I made it to shallow water and got away; and once I stabbed him in the back with my fish spear, but it wasn't strong enough to keep him. He once caught Skookum's tail, but the hair just came out; the dog hasn't swum across the pond since.”

“Twice I have seen him like today and might have killed him with the gun, but I want to meet him fighting. Many a time I have sat on the bank and sung to him the 'Coward's Song,' and dared him to come and fight in the shallow water where we are equals. He hears me. He does not come.

“Twice I've seen him like today and could have shot him with the gun, but I want to confront him head-on. I've often sat on the bank and sung the 'Coward's Song' to him, challenging him to come and fight in the shallow water where we’re both equal. He hears me. He doesn’t come.”

“I know he made me sick last winter; even now he is making trouble with his evil magic. But my magic must prevail, and some day we shall meet. He made me afraid once. I will make him much afraid, and will meet him in the water.”

“I know he made me sick last winter; even now he is causing trouble with his dark magic. But my magic will win, and someday we will meet. He scared me once. I will make him very afraid, and I will confront him in the water.”

Not many days were to pass before the meeting. Rolf had gone for water at the well, which was a hole dug ten feet from the shore of the lake. He had learned the hunter's cautious trick of going silently and peering about, before he left cover. On a mud bank in a shallow bay, some fifty yards off, he described a peculiar gray and greenish form that he slowly made out to be a huge turtle, sunning itself. The more he looked and gauged it with things about, the bigger it seemed. So he slunk back quickly and silently to Quonab. “He is out sunning himself—Bosikado—on the bank!”

Not many days were left before the meeting. Rolf had gone to fetch water from the well, which was a hole dug ten feet from the edge of the lake. He had learned to be cautious like a hunter, moving quietly and looking around before he left his hiding spot. On a muddy bank in a shallow bay, about fifty yards away, he spotted a strange gray and green shape that he slowly realized was a huge turtle basking in the sun. The more he looked and compared it to the surroundings, the bigger it seemed. So he quickly and quietly slipped back to Quonab. “He’s out sunning himself—Bosikado—on the bank!”

The Indian rose quickly, took his tomahawk and a strong line. Rolf reached for the gun, but Quonab shook his head. They went to the lake. Yes! There was the great, goggle-eyed monster, like a mud-coloured log. The bank behind him was without cover. It would be impossible to approach the watchful creature within striking distance before he could dive. Quonab would not use the gun; in this case he felt he must atone by making an equal fight. He quickly formed a plan; he fastened the tomahawk and the coiled rope to his belt, then boldly and silently slipped into the lake, to approach the snapper from the water side—quite the easiest in this case, not only because the snapper would naturally watch on the land side, but because there was a thick clump of rushes behind which the swimmer could approach.

The Indian got up quickly, grabbed his tomahawk and a strong rope. Rolf reached for the gun, but Quonab shook his head. They headed to the lake. Yes! There was the huge, goggle-eyed monster, looking like a mud-colored log. The bank behind it had no cover. It would be impossible to get close enough to the alert creature before it could dive. Quonab decided not to use the gun; he believed he needed to make it a fair fight. He quickly came up with a plan; he attached the tomahawk and the coiled rope to his belt, then confidently and quietly slipped into the lake to approach the snapper from the water side—definitely the easiest way in this case, not only because the snapper would be watching the land side, but also because there was a thick cluster of rushes behind which he could swim closer.

Then, as instructed, Rolf went back into the woods, and came silently to a place whence he could watch the snapper from a distance of twenty yards.

Then, as instructed, Rolf went back into the woods and quietly arrived at a spot where he could watch the snapper from twenty yards away.

The boy's heart beat fast as he watched the bold swimmer and the savage reptile. There could be little doubt that the creature weighed a hundred pounds. It is the strongest for its size and the fiercest of all reptiles. Its jaws, though toothless, have cutting edges, a sharp beak, and power to the crushing of bones. Its armour makes it invulnerable to birds and beasts of prey. Like a log it lay on the beach, with its long alligator tail stretched up the bank and its serpentine head and tiny wicked eyes vigilantly watching the shore. Its shell, broad and ancient, was fringed with green moss, and its scaly armpits exposed, were decked with leeches, at which a couple of peetweets pecked with eager interest, apparently to the monster's satisfaction. Its huge limbs and claws were in marked contrast to the small, red eyes. But the latter it was that gave the thrill of unnervement.

The boy's heart raced as he watched the daring swimmer and the fierce reptile. There was little doubt that the creature weighed around a hundred pounds. It is the strongest for its size and the most aggressive of all reptiles. Its jaws, though toothless, have sharp edges, a pointed beak, and the power to crush bones. Its armor makes it nearly invincible to birds and predatory animals. It lay like a log on the beach, with its long alligator tail stretched up the bank and its serpent-like head and tiny wicked eyes carefully watching the shore. Its shell, broad and ancient, was lined with green moss, and its exposed, scaly armpits were covered in leeches, which a couple of peetweets pecked at with eager interest, seemingly to the monster's contentment. Its massive limbs and claws stood in stark contrast to its small, red eyes. But it was those eyes that sent a chill down the spine.

Sunk down nearly out of sight, the Indian slowly reached the reeds. Here he found bottom, and pausing, he took the rope in one hand, the tomahawk in the other, and dived, and when he reappeared he was within ten yards of the enemy, and in water but four feet deep.

Sunk down almost out of sight, the Indian slowly reached the reeds. Here he found the bottom, and pausing, he took the rope in one hand and the tomahawk in the other, then dove. When he came back up, he was within ten yards of the enemy, in water that was only four feet deep.

With a sudden rush the reptile splashed into the pond and out of sight, avoiding the rope noose. But Quonab clutched deep in the water as it passed, and seized the monster's rugged tail. Then it showed its strength. In a twinkling that mighty tail was swung sidewise, crushing the hand with terrible force against the sharp-edged points of the back armour. It took all the Indian's grit to hold on to that knife-edged war club. He dropped his tomahawk, then with his other hand swung the rope to catch the turtle's head, but it lurched so quickly that the rope missed again, slipped over the shell, and, as they struggled, encircled one huge paw. The Indian jerked it tight, and they were bound together. But now his only weapon was down at the bottom and the water all muddied. He could not see, but plunged to grope for the tomahawk. The snapper gave a great lurch to escape, releasing the injured hand, but jerking the man off his legs. Then, finding itself held by a forepaw, it turned with gaping, hissing jaws, and sprang on the foe that struggled in bottom of the water.

With a sudden rush, the reptile splashed into the pond and disappeared, dodging the rope noose. But Quonab reached deep into the water as it passed and grabbed the creature's tough tail. Then it showed its strength. In an instant, that powerful tail swung sideways, smashing Quonab's hand with incredible force against the sharp points of its back armor. It took all the Indian's determination to hold on to that knife-edged weapon. He dropped his tomahawk, then with his other hand swung the rope to catch the turtle's head, but it lurched so quickly that the rope missed again, slipping over the shell and, as they struggled, wrapping around one massive paw. The Indian tightened it, and they were bound together. But now his only weapon was at the bottom in the muddy water. He couldn't see, but he dove down to feel for the tomahawk. The snapper made a huge lurch to escape, freeing his injured hand but knocking the man off his feet. Then, trapped by a forepaw, it turned with its gaping, hissing jaws and lunged at the opponent struggling at the bottom of the water.

The snapper has the bulldog habit to seize and hold till the piece tears out. In the muddy water it had to seize in the dark, and fending first the left arm of its foe, fastened on with fierce beak and desperate strength. At this moment Quonab recovered his tomahawk; rising into the air he dragged up the hanging snapper, and swung the weapon with all the force of his free arm. The blow sank through the monster's shell, deep into its back, without any visible effect, except to rob the Indian of his weapon as he could not draw it out.

The snapper has a bulldog-like tendency to grab hold and not let go until it tears free. In the muddy water, it had to latch on in the dark, first defending against its opponent's left arm, then biting down with its powerful beak and desperate strength. At that moment, Quonab regained his tomahawk; rising up, he dragged the dangling snapper closer and swung the weapon with all his might. The blow sank through the creature's shell and deep into its back, but had no noticeable effect, except that it left the Indian without his weapon since he couldn't pull it out.

Then Rolf rushed into the water to help. But Quonab gasped, “No, no, go back—I'm alone.”

Then Rolf rushed into the water to help. But Quonab gasped, “No, no, go back—I’m alone.”

The creature's jaws were locked on his arm, but its front claws, tearing downward and outward, were demolishing the coat that had protected it, and long lines of mingled blood were floating on the waves.

The creature's jaws were clamped onto his arm, but its front claws, ripping down and outward, were shredding the coat that had shielded him, and long streaks of mixed blood were drifting on the waves.

After a desperate plunge toward shallow water, Quonab gave another wrench to the tomahawk—it moved, loosed; another, and it was free. Then “chop, chop, chop,” and that long, serpentine neck was severed; the body, waving its great scaly legs and lashing its alligator tail, went swimming downward, but the huge head, blinking its bleary, red eyes and streaming with blood, was clinched on his arm. The Indian made for the bank hauling the rope that held the living body, and fastened it to a tree, then drew his knife to cut the jaw muscles of the head that ground its beak into his flesh. But the muscles were protected by armour plates and bone; he could not deal a stab to end their power. In vain he fumbled and slashed, until in a spasmodic quiver the jaws gaped wide and the bloody head fell to the ground. Again it snapped, but a tree branch bore the brunt; on this the strong jaws clinched, and so remained.

After a desperate dive into shallow water, Quonab twisted the tomahawk again—it shifted, loosened; another twist, and it was free. Then “chop, chop, chop,” and that long, snake-like neck was cut off; the body, flailing its large scaly legs and thrashing its alligator tail, swam downward, but the massive head, blinking its bleary, red eyes and covered in blood, was clamped onto his arm. The Indian made for the bank, dragging the rope that held the living body, and tied it to a tree, then pulled out his knife to cut the jaw muscles of the head that was grinding its beak into his skin. But the muscles were protected by armor plates and bone; he couldn’t make a cut to stop their grip. He fumbled and slashed in vain, until, in a sudden twitch, the jaws opened wide and the bloody head dropped to the ground. It snapped again, but a tree branch took the hit; on this, the strong jaws clamped down and stayed there.

For over an hour the headless body crawled, or tried to crawl, always toward the lake. And now they could look at the enemy. Not his size so much as his weight surprised them. Although barely four feet long, he was so heavy that Rolf could not lift him. Quonab's scratches were many but slight; only the deep bill wound made his arm and the bruises of the jaws were at all serious and of these he made light. Headed by Skookum in full 'yap,' they carried the victim's body to camp; the head, still dutching the stick, was decorated with three feathers, then set on a pole near the wigwam. And the burden of the red man's song when next he sang was:

For over an hour, the headless body crawled—or tried to crawl—always toward the lake. And now they could see the enemy. It wasn't so much his size that surprised them, but his weight. Although he was barely four feet long, he was so heavy that Rolf couldn't lift him. Quonab had many scratches, but they were minor; only the deep gash from the bill and the bruises from the jaws were of any concern, and he brushed those off. Led by Skookum, who was barking loudly, they carried the victim's body back to camp; the head, still holding onto the stick, was adorned with three feathers and then placed on a pole near the wigwam. And the theme of the red man's song the next time he sang was:

“Bosikado, mine enemy was mighty, But I went into his country And made him afraid!”

“Bosikado, my enemy was powerful, But I went into his territory And scared him!”





Chapter 14. Selectman Horton Appears at the Rock

Summer was at its height on the Asamuk. The woodthrush was nearing the end of its song; a vast concourse of young robins in their speckled plumage joined chattering every night in the thickest cedars; and one or two broods of young ducks were seen on the Pipestave Pond.

Summer was in full swing on the Asamuk. The woodthrush was wrapping up its song; a large group of young robins in their spotted feathers gathered and chattered every night in the densest cedars; and one or two families of ducklings were spotted on the Pipestave Pond.

Rolf had grown wonderfully well into his wigwam life. He knew now exactly how to set the flap so as to draw out all the smoke, no matter which way the wind blew; he had learned the sunset signs, which tell what change of wind the night might bring. He knew without going to the shore whether the tide was a little ebb, with poor chances, or a mighty outflow that would expose the fattest oyster beds. His practiced fingers told at a touch whether it was a turtle or a big fish on his night line; and by the tone of the tom-tom he knew when a rainstorm was at hand.

Rolf had adapted really well to his life in the wigwam. He now knew exactly how to position the flap to vent all the smoke, regardless of which way the wind was blowing; he had picked up on the sunset signs that indicated what change in the wind the night might bring. He could tell without going to the shore whether the tide was a little low, with poor prospects, or a strong outgoing tide that would reveal the best oyster beds. His skilled fingers could instantly tell whether he had caught a turtle or a big fish on his night line; and by the beat of the drum, he could sense when a rainstorm was coming.

Being trained in industry, he had made many improvements in their camp, not the least of which was to clean up and burn all the rubbish and garbage that attracted hordes of flies. He had fitted into the camp partly by changing it to fit himself, and he no longer felt that his stay there was a temporary shift. When it was to end, he neither knew nor cared. He realized only that he was enjoying life as he never had done before. His canoe had passed a lot of rapids and was now in a steady, unbroken stream—but it was the swift shoot before the fall. A lull in the clamour does not mean the end of war, but a new onset preparing; and, of course, it came in the way least looked for.

Having experience in the industry, he had made many improvements to their camp, including cleaning up and burning all the trash that attracted swarms of flies. He had adapted to the camp partly by changing it to suit himself, and he no longer felt like his time there was just a temporary situation. He didn’t know or care when it would end. He realized only that he was enjoying life more than ever before. His canoe had navigated many rapids and was now flowing steadily in an unbroken stream—but it was the swift current before the drop. A pause in the noise doesn't mean the end of conflict, but rather a new surge getting ready; and, of course, it came in the most unexpected way.

Selectman Horton stood well with the community; he was a man of good judgment, good position, and kind heart. He was owner of all the woods along the Asamuk, and thus the Indian's landlord on the Indian's ancestral land. Both Rolf and Quonab had worked for Horton, and so they knew him well, and liked him for his goodness.

Selectman Horton was well-respected in the community; he was a man of good judgment, decent standing, and a kind heart. He owned all the woods along the Asamuk, making him the landlord of the Indians on their ancestral land. Both Rolf and Quonab had worked for Horton, so they knew him well and appreciated his kindness.

It was Wednesday morning, late in July, when Selectman Horton, clean-shaven and large, appeared at the wigwam under the rock.

It was Wednesday morning, late in July, when Selectman Horton, clean-shaven and large, showed up at the wigwam under the rock.

“Good morrow to ye both!” Then without wasting time he plunged in. “There's been some controversy and much criticism of the selectmen for allowing a white lad, the child of Christian parents, the grandson of a clergyman, to leave all Christian folk and folds, and herd with a pagan, to become, as it were, a mere barbarian. I hold not, indeed, with those that out of hand would condemn as godless a good fellow like Quonab, who, in my certain knowledge and according to his poor light, doth indeed maintain in some kind a daily worship of a sort. Nevertheless, the selectmen, the magistrates, the clergy, the people generally, and above all the Missionary Society, are deeply moved in the matter. It hath even been made a personal charge against myself, and with much bitterness I am held up as unzealous for allowing such a nefarious stronghold of Satan to continue on mine own demesne, and harbour one, escaped, as it were, from grace. Acting, therefore, not according to my heart, but as spokesman of the Town Council, the Synod of Elders, and the Society for the Promulgation of Godliness among the Heathen, I am to state that you, Rolf Kittering, being without kinsfolk and under age, are in verity a ward of the parish, and as such, it hath been arranged that you become a member of the household of the most worthy Elder Ezekiel Peck, a household filled with the spirit of estimable piety and true doctrine; a man, indeed, who, notwithstanding his exterior coldness and severity, is very sound in all matters regarding the Communion of Saints, and, I may even say in a measure a man of fame for some most excellent remarks he hath passed on the shorter catechism, beside which he hath gained much approval for having pointed out two hidden meanings in the 27th verse of the 12th chapter of Hebrews; one whose very presence, therefore, is a guarantee against levity, laxity, and false preachment.

“Good morning to you both!” Then without wasting time he dove right in. “There's been some controversy and a lot of criticism of the selectmen for allowing a white boy, the child of Christian parents and the grandson of a clergyman, to leave all Christian people and communities, and associate with a pagan, becoming, in a way, a mere barbarian. I don’t necessarily agree with those who would instantly condemn a good person like Quonab, who, to my knowledge and according to his limited understanding, does indeed maintain some form of daily worship. Nevertheless, the selectmen, magistrates, clergy, the general public, and especially the Missionary Society, are very concerned about this issue. It has even been personally directed at me, and with much resentment, I am accused of not being zealous enough for allowing such a wicked presence of evil to remain on my own land, harboring someone who has, in a sense, escaped from grace. Therefore, acting not by my own feelings but as a spokesperson for the Town Council, the Synod of Elders, and the Society for the Promotion of Godliness among the Heathen, I must state that you, Rolf Kittering, being without family and underage, are in fact a ward of the parish, and it has been decided that you will become a member of the household of the esteemed Elder Ezekiel Peck, a home filled with genuine piety and true doctrine; a man who, despite his outward coldness and severity, is very sound in all matters concerning the Communion of Saints, and I might even add, a man known for his excellent comments on the shorter catechism, along with his notable identification of two hidden meanings in the 27th verse of the 12th chapter of Hebrews; someone whose very presence guarantees a lack of frivolity, laxness, and false preaching.

“There, now, my good lad, look not so like a colt that feels the whip for the first time. You will have a good home, imbued with the spirit of a most excellent piety that will be ever about you.”

“There, now, my good boy, don’t look so much like a young horse that’s just felt the whip for the first time. You’ll have a nice home, filled with the spirit of a strong faith that will always surround you.”

“Like a colt feeling the whip,” indeed! Rolf reeled like a stricken deer. To go back as a chore-boy drudge was possible, but not alluring; to leave Quonab, just as the wood world was opening to him, was devastating; but to exchange it all for bondage in the pious household of Old Peck, whose cold cruelty had driven off all his own children, was an accumulation of disasters that aroused him.

“Like a young horse feeling the whip,” for sure! Rolf stumbled like a wounded deer. Going back as a servant was possible, but it didn’t sound appealing; leaving Quonab, just as the woods were becoming accessible to him, was heartbreaking; but trading it all for a life of servitude in the religious home of Old Peck, whose harsh cruelty had driven away all his own kids, was a disaster that pushed him over the edge.

“I won't go!” he blurted out, and gazed defiantly at the broad and benevolent selectman.

“I’m not going!” he shouted, glaring defiantly at the kind-hearted selectman.

“Come now, Rolf, such language is unbecoming. Let not a hasty tongue betray you into sin. This is what your mother would have wished. Be sensible; you will soon find it was all for the best. I have ever liked you, and will ever be a friend you can count on.

“Come on, Rolf, that kind of language isn’t right. Don’t let a rash word lead you to regret. This is what your mother would have wanted. Be reasonable; you’ll soon realize it was all for the best. I’ve always liked you and will always be a friend you can rely on.”

“Acting, not according to my instructions, but according to my heart, I will say further that you need not come now, you need not even give answer now, but think it over. Nevertheless, remember that on or before Monday morning next, you will be expected to appear at Elder Peck's, and I fear that, in case you fail, the messenger next arriving will be one much less friendly than myself. Come now, Rolf, be a good lad, and remember that in your new home you will at least be living for the glory of God.”

“Acting not just on my instructions but from my heart, I want to say that you don’t have to come right now, and you don’t even need to respond immediately—just take some time to think it over. However, keep in mind that by Monday morning at the latest, you’re expected to be at Elder Peck’s, and I’m afraid that if you don’t make it, the next messenger will be much less friendly than I am. Come on, Rolf, be a good kid, and remember that in your new home, you’ll at least be living for the glory of God.”

Then, with a friendly nod, but an expression of sorrow, the large, black messenger turned and tramped away.

Then, with a friendly nod but a look of sadness, the large black messenger turned and walked away.

Rolf slowly, limply, sank down on a rock and stared at the fire. After awhile Quonab got up and began to prepare the mid-day meal. Usually Rolf helped him. Now he did nothing but sullenly glare at the glowing coals. In half an hour the food was ready. He ate little; then went away in the woods by himself. Quonab saw him lying on a flat rock, looking at the pond, and throwing pebbles into it. Later Quonab went to Myanos. On his return he found that Rolf had cut up a great pile of wood, but not a word passed between them. The look of sullen anger and rebellion on Rolf's face was changing to one of stony despair. What was passing in each mind the other could not divine.

Rolf slowly sank down on a rock and stared at the fire. After a while, Quonab got up and started preparing lunch. Usually, Rolf would help him, but now he just sulked and glared at the glowing coals. In half an hour, the food was ready. He ate little and then wandered off into the woods alone. Quonab saw him lying on a flat rock, looking at the pond and throwing pebbles into it. Later, Quonab went to Myanos. When he returned, he found that Rolf had chopped up a huge pile of wood, but they didn’t say a word to each other. The look of sullen anger and rebellion on Rolf's face had changed to one of stony despair. Each of them couldn’t figure out what the other was thinking.

The evening meal was eaten in silence; then Quonab smoked for an hour, both staring into the fire. A barred owl hooted and laughed over their heads, causing the dog to jump up and bark at the sound that ordinarily he would have heeded not at all. Then silence was restored, and the red man's hidden train of thought was in a flash revealed.

The dinner was eaten in silence; then Quonab smoked for an hour, both of them staring into the fire. A barred owl hooted and laughed above them, startling the dog, who jumped up and barked at a sound he usually wouldn’t have noticed at all. Then silence returned, and in an instant, the Native man's hidden thoughts were revealed.

“Rolf, let's go to the North Woods!”

“Rolf, let’s head to the North Woods!”

It was another astounding idea. Rolf had realized more and more how much this valley meant to Quonab, who worshipped the memory of his people.

It was another amazing idea. Rolf had become increasingly aware of how much this valley meant to Quonab, who revered the memory of his people.

“And leave all this?” he replied, making a sweep with his hand toward the rock, the Indian trail, the site of bygone Petuquapen, and the graves of the tribe.

“And leave all this?” he responded, gesturing broadly toward the rock, the Indian trail, the former site of Petuquapen, and the tribe's graves.

For reply their eyes met, and from the Indian's deep chest came the single word, “Ugh.” One syllable, deep and descending, but what a tale it told of the slowly engendered and strong-grown partiality, of a struggle that had continued since the morning when the selectman came with words of doom, and of friendship's victory won.

For reply, their eyes met, and from the Indian's deep chest came the single word, “Ugh.” One syllable, deep and descending, but what a story it told of the gradually formed and deep-rooted affection, of a struggle that had been ongoing since the morning when the selectman arrived with news of doom, and of the triumph of friendship that had been achieved.

Rolf realized this, and it gave him a momentary choking in his throat, and, “I'm ready if you really mean it.”

Rolf understood this, and it caused a brief tightness in his throat, and, “I’m ready if you actually mean it.”

“Ugh I go, but some day come back.”

“Ugh, I’m leaving, but I’ll come back someday.”

There was a long silence, then Rolf, “When shall we start?” and the answer, “To-morrow night.”

There was a long silence, then Rolf asked, “When are we starting?” and the answer came, “Tomorrow night.”





Chapter 15. Bound for the North Woods

When Quonab left camp in the morning he went heavy laden, and the trail he took led to Myanos. There was nothing surprising in it when he appeared at Silas Peck's counter and offered for sale a pair of snowshoes, a bundle of traps, some dishes of birch bark and basswood, and a tom-tom, receiving in exchange some tea, tobacco, gunpowder, and two dollars in cash. He turned without comment, and soon was back in camp. He now took the kettle into the woods and brought it back filled with bark, fresh chipped from a butternut tree. Water was added, and the whole boiled till it made a deep brown liquid. When this was cooled he poured it into a flat dish, then said to Rolf: “Come now, I make you a Sinawa.”

When Quonab left camp in the morning, he was heavily loaded, and the path he took led to Myanos. It wasn’t surprising when he showed up at Silas Peck's counter, offering a pair of snowshoes, a bundle of traps, some birch bark and basswood dishes, and a tom-tom in exchange for some tea, tobacco, gunpowder, and two dollars in cash. He turned away without saying a word and soon returned to camp. He then took the kettle into the woods and came back with it filled with fresh bark, freshly chipped from a butternut tree. He added water, and boiled it all into a deep brown liquid. When it cooled, he poured it into a flat dish and said to Rolf, “Come now, I make you a Sinawa.”

With a soft rag the colour was laid on. Face, head, neck, and hands were all at first intended, but Rolf said, “May as well do the whole thing.” So he stripped off; the yellow brown juice on his white skin turned it a rich copper colour, and he was changed into an Indian lad that none would have taken for Rolf Kittering. The stains soon dried, and Rolf, re-clothed, felt that already he had burned a bridge.

With a soft cloth, the color was applied. Initially, they planned to do just his face, head, neck, and hands, but Rolf said, “Might as well do the whole thing.” So he took off his clothes; the yellow-brown dye on his white skin transformed it into a rich copper tone, making him look like an Indian boy that no one would have recognized as Rolf Kittering. The stains quickly dried, and once Rolf put his clothes back on, he felt like he had already burned a bridge.

Two portions of the wigwam cover were taken off; and two packs were made of the bedding. The tomahawk, bows, arrows, and gun, with the few precious food pounds in the copper pot, were divided between them and arranged into packs with shoulder straps; then all was ready. But there was one thing more for Quonab; he went up alone to the rock. Rolf knew what he went for, and judged it best not to follow.

Two sections of the wigwam cover were removed, and they made two bundles of the bedding. The tomahawk, bows, arrows, and gun, along with the few valuable food items in the copper pot, were split between them and organized into packs with shoulder straps; then everything was ready. But there was one more thing for Quonab; he went up to the rock by himself. Rolf knew why he went and decided it was best not to follow.

The Indian lighted his pipe, blew the four smokes to the four winds, beginning with the west, then he sat in silence for a time. Presently the prayer for good hunting came from the rock:

The Indian lit his pipe, released four puffs of smoke to the four directions, starting with the west, then he sat in silence for a while. Soon, the prayer for a successful hunt emerged from the rock:

     “Father lead us!
     Father, help us!
     Father, guide us to the good hunting.”
 
     “Father, lead us!  
     Father, help us!  
     Father, guide us to good hunting.”

And when that ceased a barred owl hooted in the woods, away to the north.

And when that stopped, a barred owl hooted in the woods, far to the north.

“Ugh! good,” was all he said as he rejoined Rolf; and they set out, as the sun went down, on their long journey due northward, Quonab, Rolf, and Skookum. They had not gone a hundred yards before the dog turned back, raced to a place where he had a bone in cache and rejoining there trotted along with his bone.

“Ugh! good,” was all he said as he rejoined Rolf; then they set out, as the sun went down, on their long journey due north, Quonab, Rolf, and Skookum. They hadn’t gone a hundred yards before the dog turned back, raced to a spot where he had hidden a bone, and then came back trotting along with his bone.

The high road would have been the easier travelling, but it was very necessary to be unobserved, so they took the trail up the brook Asamuk, and after an hour's tramp came out by the Cat-Rock road that runs westerly. Again they were tempted by the easy path, but again Quonab decided on keeping to the woods. Half an hour later they were halted by Skookum treeing a coon. After they had secured the dog, they tramped on through the woods for two hours more, and then, some eight miles from the Pipestave, they halted, Rolf, at least, tired out. It was now midnight. They made a hasty double bed of the canvas cover over a pole above them, and slept till morning, cheered, as they closed their drowsy eyes, by the “Hoo, Hoo, Hoo, Hoo, yah, hoo,” of their friend, the barred owl, still to the northward.

The high road would have been the easier route, but it was really important to stay out of sight, so they chose the trail along the Asamuk brook. After an hour of walking, they emerged onto the Cat-Rock road heading west. Once again, they were tempted by the easier path, but Quonab decided to stick to the woods. Half an hour later, they had to stop because Skookum was treeing a raccoon. Once they got the dog under control, they continued on through the woods for another two hours. About eight miles from the Pipestave, they stopped, with Rolf, at least, completely worn out. It was now midnight. They quickly made a double bed with the canvas cover over a pole above them and fell asleep until morning, comforted, as they closed their tired eyes, by the “Hoo, Hoo, Hoo, Hoo, yah, hoo” of their friend, the barred owl, still calling from the north.

The sun was high, and Quonab had breakfast ready before Rolf awoke. He was so stiff with the tramp and the heavy pack that it was with secret joy he learned that they were to rest, concealed in the woods, that day, and travel only by night, until in a different region, where none knew or were likely to stop them. They were now in York State, but that did not by any means imply that they were beyond pursuit.

The sun was high, and Quonab had breakfast ready before Rolf woke up. He was so sore from the trek and the heavy backpack that he felt a secret joy when he found out they would be resting, hidden in the woods that day, and would only travel at night, heading to a different area where no one knew them or was likely to stop them. They were now in New York State, but that definitely didn’t mean they were safe from being followed.

As the sun rose high, Rolf went forth with his bow and blunt arrows, and then, thanks largely to Skookum, he succeeded in knocking over a couple of squirrels, which, skinned and roasted, made their dinner that day. At night they set out as before, making about ten miles. The third night they did better, and the next day being Sunday, they kept out of sight. But Monday morning, bright and clear, although it was the first morning when they were sure of being missed, they started to tramp openly along the highway, with a sense of elation that they had not hitherto known on the joumey. Two things impressed Rolf by their novelty: the curious stare of the country folk whose houses and teams they passed, and the violent antagonism of the dogs. Usually the latter could be quelled by shaking a stick at them, or by pretending to pick up a stone, but one huge and savage brindled mastiff kept following and barking just out of stick range, and managed to give Skookum a mauling, until Quonab drew his bow and let fly a blunt arrow that took the brute on the end of the nose, and sent him howling homeward, while Skookum got a few highly satisfactory nips at the enemy's rear. Twenty miles they made that day and twenty-five the next, for now they were on good roads, and their packs were lighter. More than once they found kind farmer folk who gave them a meal. But many times Skookum made trouble for them. The farmers did not like the way he behaved among their hens. Skookum never could be made to grasp the fine zoological distinction between partridges which are large birds and fair game, and hens which are large birds, but not fair game. Such hair splitting was obviously unworthy of study, much less of acceptance.

As the sun climbed high, Rolf set out with his bow and blunt arrows, and thanks largely to Skookum, he managed to take down a couple of squirrels, which they skinned and roasted for dinner that day. That night, they continued as before, covering about ten miles. On the third night, they did even better, and since the next day was Sunday, they stayed out of sight. But on Monday morning, bright and clear, although it was the first morning they were sure someone would notice they were missing, they walked openly along the highway, feeling a sense of excitement they hadn't experienced on their journey until now. Two things struck Rolf as new: the curious looks from the local folks whose homes and teams they passed, and the fierce hostility of the dogs. Usually, he could calm the latter by shaking a stick at them or pretending to pick up a stone, but one massive, aggressive brindled mastiff kept following and barking just out of reach, and managed to give Skookum a hard time, until Quonab drew his bow and shot a blunt arrow that hit the dog on the nose, sending it howling back home, while Skookum got in a few satisfying nips at its rear. They covered twenty miles that day and twenty-five the next, since they were now on decent roads and their packs were lighter. More than once, they encountered kind farmers who offered them a meal. But many times, Skookum caused problems for them. The farmers didn't like how he acted around their hens. Skookum never could understand the subtle biological difference between partridges, which are large birds and fair game, and hens, which are large birds but not fair game. Such nitpicking was clearly unworthy of study, much less acceptance.

Soon it was clearly better for Rolf, approaching a house, to go alone, while Quonab held Skookum. The dogs seemed less excited by Rolf's smell, and remembering his own attitude when tramps came to one or another of his ancient homes, he always asked if they would let him work for a meal, and soon remarked that his success was better when he sought first the women of the house, and then, smiling to show his very white teeth, spoke in clear and un-Indian English, which had the more effect coming from an evident Indian.

Soon it became clear that it was better for Rolf, as he approached a house, to go alone while Quonab held Skookum. The dogs seemed less stirred by Rolf's scent, and remembering his own behavior when drifters came to one of his old homes, he’d always ask if they would let him work for a meal. He soon noticed that he had more success when he first approached the women of the house, and then, smiling to show off his very white teeth, spoke in clear, non-Indian English, which had more impact coming from someone who was clearly Indian.

“Since I am to be an Indian, Quonab, you must give me an Indian name,” he said after one of these episodes.

“Since I'm going to be an Indian, Quonab, you need to give me an Indian name,” he said after one of these episodes.

“Ugh! Good! That's easy! You are 'Nibowaka,' the wise one.” For the Indian had not missed any of the points, and so he was named.

“Ugh! Good! That's easy! You are 'Nibowaka,' the wise one.” For the Indian had not missed any of the points, and so he was named.

Twenty or thirty miles a day they went now, avoiding the settlements along the river. Thus they saw nothing of Albany, but on the tenth day they reached Fort Edward, and for the first time viewed the great Hudson. Here they stayed as short a time as might be, pushed on by Glen's Falls, and on the eleventh night of the journey they passed the old, abandoned fort, and sighted the long stretch of Lake George, with its wooded shore, and glimpses of the mountains farther north.

Twenty or thirty miles a day they traveled now, steering clear of the settlements along the river. Because of this, they didn’t see anything of Albany, but on the tenth day, they reached Fort Edward and finally saw the great Hudson. They only stayed for a short time, then continued past Glen's Falls, and on the eleventh night of their journey, they passed the old, abandoned fort and caught sight of the long stretch of Lake George, with its tree-lined shore and views of the mountains further north.

Now a new thought possessed them—“If only they had the canoe that they had abandoned on the Pipestave.” It came to them both at the sight of the limit less water, and especially when Rolf remembered that Lake George joined with Champlain, which again was the highway to all the wilderness.

Now a new thought took over—“If only they had the canoe they left behind on the Pipestave.” This thought struck both of them as they looked at the endless water, and especially when Rolf remembered that Lake George connected with Champlain, which was the route to the entire wilderness.

They camped now as they had fifty times before, and made their meal. The bright blue water dancing near was alluring, inspiring; as they sought the shore Quonab pointed to a track and said, “Deer.” He did not show much excitement, but Rolf did, and they returned to the camp fire with a new feeling of elation—they had reached the Promised Land. Now they must prepare for the serious work of finding a hunting ground that was not already claimed.

They set up camp like they had fifty times before and cooked their meal. The bright blue water nearby was tempting and inspiring; as they approached the shore, Quonab pointed out a track and said, “Deer.” He didn’t show much excitement, but Rolf did, and they went back to the campfire feeling elated—they had reached the Promised Land. Now they had to get ready for the serious task of finding a hunting ground that wasn’t already taken.

Quonab, remembering the ancient law of the woods, that parcels off the valleys, each to the hunter first arriving, or succeeding the one who had, was following his own line of thought. Rolf was puzzling over means to get an outfit, canoe, traps, axes, and provisions. The boy broke silence.

Quonab, recalling the old rule of the woods that awards each valley to the first hunter who arrives or their successor, was lost in his own thoughts. Rolf was trying to figure out how to gather equipment: a canoe, traps, axes, and supplies. The boy finally spoke up.

“Quonab, we must have money to get an outfit; this is the beginning of harvest; we can easily get work for a month. That will feed us and give us money enough to live on, and a chance to learn something about the country.”

“Quonab, we need money to buy some clothes; it’s the start of harvest season; we can easily find work for a month. That will provide us with food and enough money to get by, plus a chance to learn more about the area.”

The reply was simple, “You are Nibowaka.”

The response was straightforward, “You’re Nibowaka.”

The farms were few and scattered here, but there were one or two along the lake. To the nearest one with standing grain Rolf led the way. But their reception, from the first brush with the dog to the final tilt with the farmer, was unpleasant—“He didn't want any darn red-skins around there. He had had two St. Regis Indians last year, and they were a couple of drunken good-for-nothings.”

The farms were few and spread out here, but there were one or two by the lake. Rolf took the lead to the closest one with standing grain. However, their welcome, from the initial encounter with the dog to the final confrontation with the farmer, was unpleasant—“He didn’t want any damn redskins around there. He had two St. Regis Indians last year, and they were just a couple of drunken useless guys.”

The next was the house of a fat Dutchman, who was just wondering how he should meet the compounded accumulated emergencies of late hay, early oats, weedy potatoes, lost cattle, and a prospective increase of his family, when two angels of relief appeared at his door, in copper-coloured skins.

The next was the house of a chubby Dutchman, who was trying to figure out how to handle the pile of problems he faced with late hay, early oats, weedy potatoes, misplaced cattle, and the expected growth of his family, when two angels of relief showed up at his door, with copper-colored skin.

“Cahn yo work putty goood?

"Can you work pretty good?"

“Yes, I have always lived on a farm,” and Rolf showed his hands, broad and heavy for his years.

“Yes, I’ve always lived on a farm,” Rolf said, showing his hands, strong and heavy for his age.

“Cahn yo mebby find my lost cows, which I haf not find, already yet?”

“Can you maybe find my lost cows, which I haven't found yet?”

Could they! it would be fun to try.

Could they! It would be fun to give it a shot.

“I giff yo two dollars you pring dem putty kvick.”

“I'll give you two dollars if you bring them pretty quick.”

So Quonab took the trail to the woods, and Rolf started into the potatoes with a hoe, but he was stopped by a sudden outcry of poultry. Alas! It was Skookum on an ill-judged partridge hunt. A minute later he was ignominiously chained to a penitential post, nor left it during the travellers' sojourn.

So Quonab headed down the path into the woods, while Rolf began working on the potatoes with a hoe, but he was interrupted by a sudden commotion from the chickens. Unfortunately, it was Skookum on a poorly thought-out partridge hunt. A minute later, he was shamefully tied to a punishment post and stayed there for the duration of the travelers' visit.

In the afternoon Quonab returned with the cattle, and as he told Rolf he saw five deer, there was an unmistakable hunter gleam in his eye.

In the afternoon, Quonab came back with the cattle, and when he told Rolf he had seen five deer, there was a clear sparkle of a hunter in his eye.

Three cows in milk, and which had not been milked for two days, was a serious matter, needing immediate attention. Rolf had milked five cows twice a day for five years, and a glance showed old Van Trumper that the boy was an expert.

Three cows that were due for milking and hadn't been milked for two days was a serious issue that required immediate attention. Rolf had been milking five cows twice a day for five years, and with just a glance, old Van Trumper could see that the boy was an expert.

“Good, good! I go now make feed swine.”

“Alright, alright! I’m going now to feed the pigs.”

He went into the outhouse, but a tow-topped, redcheeked girl ran after him. “Father, father, mother says—” and the rest was lost.

He went into the outhouse, but a girl with pigtails and rosy cheeks chased after him. “Dad, Dad, Mom says—” and the rest was lost.

“Myn Hemel! Myn Hemel! I thought it not so soon,” and the fat Dutchman followed the child. A moment later he reappeared, his jolly face clouded with a look of grave concern. “Hi yo big Injun, yo cahn paddle canoe?” Quonab nodded. “Den coom. Annette, pring Tomas und Hendrik.” So the father carried two-year-old Hendrik, while the Indian carried six-year-old Tomas, and twelve-year-old Annette followed in vague, uncomprehended alarm. Arrived at the shore the children were placed in the canoe, and then the difficulties came fully to the father's mind—he could not leave his wife. He must send the children with the messenger—In a sort of desperation, “Cahn you dem childen take to de house across de lake, and pring back Mrs. Callan? Tell her Marta Van Trumper need her right now mooch very kvick.” The Indian nodded. Then the father hesitated, but a glance at the Indian was enough. Something said, “He is safe,” and in spite of sundry wails from the little ones left with a dark stranger, he pushed off the canoe: “Yo take care for my babies,” and turned his brimming eyes away.

“Myn Hemel! Myn Hemel! I didn't think it would be so soon,” the chubby Dutchman exclaimed as he followed the child. A moment later, he returned with a worried look on his jolly face. “Hey, big Injun, can you paddle a canoe?” Quonab nodded. “Then come. Annette, bring Tomas and Hendrik.” The father carried two-year-old Hendrik, while the Indian picked up six-year-old Tomas, and twelve-year-old Annette trailed behind, feeling a vague and uncomprehended fear. Once they reached the shore, the children were placed in the canoe, and then the father's worries hit him fully—he couldn’t leave his wife. He had to send the children with the messenger. In a sort of desperation, he asked, “Can you take the children to the house across the lake and bring back Mrs. Callan? Tell her Marta Van Trumper needs her right now, really quickly.” The Indian nodded. Then the father paused, but one look at the Indian reassured him. Something inside said, “He is safe,” and despite the various cries from the little ones left with a dark stranger, he pushed off the canoe. “You take care of my kids,” he said, turning his teary eyes away.

The farmhouse was only two miles off, and the evening calm; no time was lost: what woman will not instantly drop all work and all interests, to come to the help of another in the trial time of motherhood?

The farmhouse was just two miles away, and the evening was calm; no time was wasted: what woman wouldn't immediately put down all her work and interests to help another during the tough times of motherhood?

Within an hour the neighbour's wife was holding hands with the mother of the banished tow-heads. He who tempers the wind and appoints the season of the wild deer hinds had not forgotten the womanhood beyond the reach of skilful human help, and with the hard and lonesome life had conjoined a sweet and blessed compensation. What would not her sister of the city give for such immunity; and long before that dark, dread hour of night that brings the ebbing life force low, the wonderful miracle was complete; there was another tow-top in the settler's home, and all was well.

Within an hour, the neighbor's wife was holding hands with the mother of the banished towheads. He who controls the winds and sets the seasons for the wild deer had not forgotten the womanhood beyond the reach of skilled human help, and with the tough and lonely life had combined a sweet and blessed reward. What wouldn’t her sister from the city give for such freedom; and long before that dark, dreaded hour of night that drains the life force, the amazing miracle was complete; there was another tow-top in the settler’s home, and everything was good.





Chapter 16. Life with the Dutch Settler

The Indians slept in the luxuriant barn of logs, with blankets, plenty of hay, and a roof. They were more than content, for now, on the edge of the wilderness, they were very close to wild life. Not a day or a night passed without bringing proof of that.

The Indians slept in the cozy log barn, with blankets, lots of hay, and a roof over their heads. They were more than happy, for now, on the brink of the wilderness, they were very close to wildlife. Not a day or a night went by without some evidence of that.

One end of the barn was portioned off for poultry. In this the working staff of a dozen hens were doing their duty, which, on that first night of the “brown angels' visit,” consisted of silent slumber, when all at once the hens and the new hands were aroused by a clamorous cackling, which speedily stopped. It sounded like a hen falling in a bad dream, then regaining her perch to go to sleep again. But next morning the body of one of these highly esteemed branches of the egg-plant was found in the corner, partly devoured. Quonab examined the headless hen, the dust around, and uttered the word, “Mink.”

One end of the barn was set aside for the chickens. In this area, the working team of a dozen hens was doing its thing, which, on that first night of the "brown angels' visit," meant they were peacefully sleeping. Suddenly, the hens and the new arrivals were jolted awake by loud cackling, which quickly quieted down. It sounded like a hen having a bad dream, then settling back to sleep. But the next morning, the body of one of these well-regarded egg layers was found in the corner, partially eaten. Quonab inspected the headless hen, looked at the dust around it, and said the word, “Mink.”

Rolf said, “Why not skunk?”

Rolf said, “Why not skip?”

“Skunk could not climb to the perch.”

“Skunk couldn't climb up to the perch.”

“Weasel then.”

“Let’s be sneaky then.”

“Weasel would only suck the blood, and would kill three or four.”

“Weasels only suck the blood and will kill three or four.”

“Coon would carry him away, so would fox or wildcat, and a marten would not come into the building by night.”

“Coon would take him away, so would fox or wildcat, and a marten wouldn’t come into the building at night.”

There was no question, first, that it was a mink, and, second, that he was hiding about the barn until the hunger pang should send him again to the hen house. Quonab covered the hen's body with two or three large stones so that there was only one approach. In the way of this approach he buried a “number one” trap.

There was no doubt, first, that it was a mink, and, second, that it was hiding around the barn until hunger drove it back to the hen house. Quonab covered the hen’s body with two or three large stones so that there was only one way in. In the path of this approach, he buried a “number one” trap.

That night they were aroused again; this time by a frightful screeching, and a sympathetic, inquiring cackle from the fowls.

That night they were woken up again; this time by a terrible screeching and a curious, questioning clucking from the chickens.

Arising, quickly they entered with a lantem. Rolf then saw a sight that gave him a prickling in his hair. The mink, a large male, was caught by one front paw. He was writhing and foaming, tearing, sometimes at the trap, sometimes at the dead hen, and sometimes at his own imprisoned foot, pausing now and then to utter the most ear-piercing shrieks, then falling again in crazy animal fury on the trap, splintering his sharp white teeth, grinding the cruel metal with bruised and bloody jaws, frothing, snarling, raving mad. As his foemen entered he turned on them a hideous visage of inexpressible fear and hate, rage and horror. His eyes glanced back green fire in the lantern light; he strained in renewed efforts to escape; the air was rank with his musky smell. The impotent fury of his struggle made a picture that continued in Rolf's mind. Quonab took a stick and with a single blow put an end to the scene, but never did Rolf forget it, and never afterward was he a willing partner when the trapping was done with those relentless jaws of steel.

Getting up, they quickly walked in with a lantern. Rolf then saw a sight that made his hair stand on end. The mink, a large male, was caught by one front paw. He was writhing and foaming, tearing at the trap, the dead hen, and his own trapped foot, pausing now and then to let out piercing shrieks, then falling again into a frenzy against the trap, splintering his sharp white teeth, grinding the cruel metal with his bruised and bloody jaws, frothing, snarling, completely mad. As the others entered, he turned toward them with a horrifying expression of pure fear and rage, wild and terrified. His eyes reflected green fire in the lantern light; he strained again to escape; the air was thick with his musky scent. The helpless fury of his struggle left a lasting image in Rolf's mind. Quonab took a stick and ended the scene with a single blow, but Rolf never forgot it, and afterward, he was never willing to help with trapping those merciless steel jaws.

A week later another hen was missing, and the door of the hen house left open. After a careful examination of the dust, inside and out of the building, Quonab said, “Coon.” It is very unusual for coons to raid a hen house. Usually it is some individual with abnormal tastes, and once he begins, he is sure to come back. The Indian judged that he might be back the next night, so prepared a trap. A rope was passed from the door latch to a tree; on this rope a weight was hung, so that the door was selfshutting, and to make it self-locking he leaned a long pole against it inside. Now he propped it open with a single platform, so set that the coon must walk on it once he was inside, and so release the door. The trappers thought they would hear in the night when the door closed, but they were sleepy; they knew nothing until next morning. Then they found that the self-shutter had shut, and inside, crouched in one of the nesting boxes, was a tough, old fighting coon. Strange to tell, he had not touched a second hen. As soon as he found himself a prisoner he had experienced a change of heart, and presently his skin was nailed on the end of the barn and his meat was hanging in the larder.

A week later, another hen went missing, and the hen house door was found left open. After carefully checking the dust inside and outside the building, Quonab said, “Raccoon.” It's very rare for raccoons to raid a hen house. Usually, it’s someone with unusual tastes, and once they start, they're sure to return. The Indian figured the raccoon might come back the next night, so he set a trap. He ran a rope from the door latch to a tree; on this rope, he suspended a weight so the door would shut automatically. To make it self-locking, he leaned a long pole against it from the inside. Then he propped it open with a single platform, positioned so that the raccoon would have to step on it once inside, causing the door to close. The trappers thought they’d hear the door shut during the night, but they were too sleepy; they didn’t realize anything until the next morning. Then they discovered that the self-closing mechanism had worked, and inside, curled up in one of the nesting boxes, was a tough, old fighting raccoon. Strangely enough, he hadn't touched another hen. Once he realized he was trapped, he seemed to have a change of heart, and soon his skin was nailed to the end of the barn, and his meat was hanging in the pantry.

“Is this a marten,” asked little Annette. And when told not, her disappointment elicited the information that old Warren, the storekeeper, had promised her a blue cotton dress for a marten skin.

“Is this a marten?” asked little Annette. When she was told it wasn’t, her disappointment led to the revelation that old Warren, the storekeeper, had promised her a blue cotton dress in exchange for a marten skin.

“You shall have the first one I catch,” said Rolf.

“You can have the first one I catch,” said Rolf.

Life in Van Trumper's was not unpleasant. The mother was going about again in a week. Annette took charge of the baby, as well as of the previous arrivals. Hendrik senior was gradually overcoming his difficulties, thanks to the unexpected help, and a kindly spirit made the hard work not so very hard. The shyness that was at first felt toward the Indians wore off, especially in the case of Rolf, he was found so companionable; and the Dutchman, after puzzling over the combination of brown skin and blue eyes, decided that Rolf was a half-breed.

Life at Van Trumper's was pretty comfortable. The mother would be back in a week. Annette took care of the baby, along with the other kids. Hendrik senior was slowly getting through his challenges, thanks to some unexpected support, and a positive atmosphere made the tough work feel a bit easier. The initial shyness towards the Indians faded away, especially with Rolf, who turned out to be quite friendly; and the Dutchman, after thinking about the mix of brown skin and blue eyes, figured that Rolf must be a half-breed.

August wore on not unpleasantly for the boy, but Quonab was getting decidedly restless. He could work for a week as hard as any white man, but his race had not risen to the dignity of patient, unremitting, life-long toil.

August passed by without much trouble for the boy, but Quonab was becoming increasingly restless. He could work for a week just as hard as any white man, but his people hadn't reached the level of enduring, relentless, life-long labor.

“How much money have we now, Nibowaka?” was one of the mid-August indications of restlessness. Rolf reckoned up; half a month for Quonab, $15.00; for himself, $10.00; for finding the cows $2.00—$27.00 in all. Not enough.

“How much money do we have now, Nibowaka?” was one of the signs of restlessness in mid-August. Rolf calculated it up: half a month for Quonab, $15.00; for himself, $10.00; for finding the cows, $2.00—$27.00 total. Not enough.

Three days later Quonab reckoned up again. Next day he said: “We need two months' open water to find a good country and build a shanty.” Then did Rolf do the wise thing; he went to fat Hendrik and told him all about it. They wanted to get a canoe and an outfit, and seek for a trapping or hunting ground that would not encroach on those already possessed, for the trapping law is rigid; even the death penalty is not considered too high in certain cases of trespass, provided the injured party is ready to be judge, jury, and executioner. Van Trumper was able to help them not a little in the matter of location—there was no use trying on the Vermont side, nor anywhere near Lake Champlain, nor near Lake George; neither was it worth while going to the far North, as the Frenchmen came in there, and they were keen hunters, so that Hamilton County was more promising than any other, but it was almost inaccessible, remote from all the great waterways, and of course without roads; its inaccessibility was the reason why it was little known. So far so good; but happy Hendrik was unpleasantly surprised to learn that the new help were for leaving at once. Finally he made this offer: If they would stay till September first, and so leave all in “good shape fer der vinter,” he would, besides the wages agreed, give them the canoe, one axe, six mink traps, and a fox trap now hanging in the barn, and carry them in his wagon as far as the Five-mile portage from Lake George to Schroon River, down which they could go to its junction with the upper Hudson, which, followed up through forty miles of rapids and hard portages, would bring them to a swampy river that enters from the southwest, and ten miles up this would bring them to Jesup's Lake, which is two miles wide and twelve miles long. This country abounded with game, but was so hard to enter that after Jesup's death it was deserted.

Three days later, Quonab re-evaluated the situation. The next day he said, “We need two months of clear water to find a good spot and build a cabin.” Then Rolf made a smart move; he went to talk to fat Hendrik and shared all the details. They wanted to get a canoe and supplies to search for a trapping or hunting area that wouldn’t overlap with others, since the trapping laws were strict; in some cases of trespassing, the death penalty was even deemed acceptable, as long as the injured party was willing to act as judge, jury, and executioner. Van Trumper was quite helpful in terms of location—there was no point in looking on the Vermont side, near Lake Champlain, or around Lake George; heading far north wasn’t worthwhile either, since the French were active there and were skilled hunters. Hamilton County looked more promising than any other, but it was almost unreachable, being distant from major waterways and lacking roads; its remoteness was why it was little known. So far, so good; however, happy Hendrik was unpleasantly surprised to find out that the newcomers wanted to leave right away. Finally, he made this offer: If they would stay until September first to leave everything “ready for winter,” he would give them, in addition to their agreed wages, a canoe, one axe, six mink traps, and a fox trap currently hanging in the barn, and he would transport them in his wagon as far as the Five-mile portage from Lake George to Schroon River, which they could then follow to where it meets the upper Hudson. After navigating forty miles of rapids and difficult portages, they would reach a swampy river coming from the southwest, and ten miles up that river would take them to Jesup's Lake, which is two miles wide and twelve miles long. This area was filled with game, but it was so challenging to access that it was abandoned after Jesup's death.

There was only one possible answer to such an offer—they stayed.

There was only one possible response to such an offer—they stayed.

In spare moments Quonab brought the canoe up to the barn, stripped off some weighty patches of bark and canvas and some massive timber thwarts, repaired the ribs, and when dry and gummed, its weight was below one hundred pounds; a saving of at least forty pounds on the soggy thing he crossed the lake in that first day on the farm.

In his free time, Quonab brought the canoe up to the barn, took off some heavy pieces of bark and canvas, along with some large wooden seats, fixed the ribs, and when everything was dry and glued together, its weight dropped to under one hundred pounds; a reduction of at least forty pounds compared to the waterlogged canoe he used to cross the lake on his first day at the farm.

September came. Early in the morning Quonab went alone to the lakeside; there on a hill top he sat, looking toward the sunrise, and sang a song of the new dawn, beating, not with a tom-tom—he had none—but with one stick on another. And when the sunrise possessed the earth he sang again the hunter's song:

September arrived. Early in the morning, Quonab went by himself to the lakeside; there on a hilltop, he sat, gazing at the sunrise, and sang a song of the new dawn, keeping the beat, not with a drum—he didn't have one—but with one stick hitting another. And when the sunrise filled the earth, he sang again the hunter's song:

“Father, guide our feet, Lead us to the good hunting.”

“Father, guide our steps, Lead us to the good hunting.”

Then he danced to the sound, his face skyward, his eyes closed, his feet barely raised, but rythmically moved. So went he three times round to the chant in three sun circles, dancing a sacred measure, as royal David might have done that day when he danced around the Ark of the Covenant on its homeward joumey. His face was illumined, and no man could have seen him then without knowing that this was a true heart's worship of a true God, who is in all things He has made.

Then he danced to the music, his face up to the sky, his eyes closed, his feet barely lifted but moving rhythmically. He went around three times to the chant in three sun circles, dancing a sacred pattern, just like royal David might have done when he danced around the Ark of the Covenant on its journey home. His face was glowing, and no one could have seen him then without realizing that this was a genuine heart’s worship of a true God, who is present in all the things He has created.





Chapter 17. Canoeing on the Upper Hudson

     There is only one kind of a man I can't size up; that's the
     faller that shets up and says nothing.—Sayings of Si
     Sylvanne.
     There's only one type of guy I can't figure out; that's the 
     one who shuts up and says nothing. —Sayings of Si 
     Sylvanne.

A settler named Hulett had a scow that was borrowed by the neighbours whenever needed to take a team across the lake. On the morning of their journey, the Dutchman's team and wagon, the canoe and the men, were aboard the scow, Skookum took his proper place at the prow, and all was ready for “Goodbye.” Rolf found it a hard word to say. The good old Dutch mother had won his heart, and the children were like his brothers and sisters.

A settler named Hulett had a flatboat that the neighbors borrowed whenever they needed to transport a team across the lake. On the morning of their journey, the Dutchman's team and wagon, along with the canoe and the men, were on the flatboat. Skookum took his spot at the front, and everything was set for "Goodbye." Rolf found it difficult to say. The kind old Dutch mother had captured his heart, and the children felt like his brothers and sisters.

“Coom again, lad; coom and see us kvick.” She kissed him, he kissed Annette and the three later issues. They boarded the scow to ply the poles till the deep water was reached, then the oars. An east wind springing up gave them a chance to profit by a wagon-cover rigged as a sail, and two hours later the scow was safely landed at West Side, where was a country store, and the head of the wagon road to the Schroon River.

“Come again, kid; come and see us quick.” She kissed him, he kissed Annette, and the three later issues. They boarded the flatboat to use the poles until they reached deep water, then switched to the oars. An east wind picked up, giving them a chance to make use of a wagon cover set up as a sail, and two hours later the flatboat was safely docked at West Side, where there was a country store and the start of the wagon road to the Schroon River.

As they approached the door, they saw a rough-looking man slouching against the building, his hands in his pockets, his blear eyes taking in the new-comers with a look of contemptuous hostility. As they passed, he spat tobacco juice on the dog and across the feet of the men.

As they got closer to the door, they noticed a scruffy guy leaning against the building, his hands in his pockets, his bloodshot eyes sizing up the newcomers with a sneer of obvious disdain. As they walked by, he aimed a spit of tobacco juice at the dog and splattered it across the men's feet.

Old Warren who kept the store was not partial to Indians, but he was a good friend of Hendrik and very keen to trade for fur, so the new trappers were well received; and now came the settling of accounts. Flour, oatmeal, pork, potatoes, tea, tobacco, sugar, salt, powder, ball, shot, clothes, lines, an inch-auger, nails, knives, awls, needles, files, another axe, some tin plates, and a frying pan were selected and added to Hendrik's account.

Old Warren, who ran the store, wasn't fond of Indians, but he was a good friend of Hendrik and eager to trade for fur, so the new trappers were welcomed. Now it was time to settle the accounts. Flour, oatmeal, pork, potatoes, tea, tobacco, sugar, salt, powder, balls, shot, clothes, lines, an inch-auger, nails, knives, awls, needles, files, another axe, some tin plates, and a frying pan were picked out and added to Hendrik's account.

“If I was you, I'd take a windy-sash; you'll find it mighty convenient in cold weather.” The store keeper led them into an outhouse where was a pile of six-lighted window-frames all complete. So the awkward thing was added to their load.

“If I were you, I'd get a windy-sash; you'll find it really handy in cold weather.” The storekeeper led them into a shed where there was a stack of six-light window frames all ready to go. So the awkward item was added to their load.

“Can't I sell you a fine rifle?” and he took down a new, elegant small bore of the latest pattern. “Only twenty-five dollars.” Rolf shook his head; “part down, and I'll take the rest in fur next spring.” Rolf was sorely tempted; however, he had an early instilled horror of debt. He steadfastly said: “No.” But many times he regretted it afterward! The small balance remaining was settled in cash.

“Can I sell you a nice rifle?” he said, taking down a new, stylish small-bore of the latest design. “Only twenty-five dollars.” Rolf shook his head, “I’ll put down part of it, and I’ll pay the rest in fur next spring.” Rolf was really tempted; however, he had a deep-seated fear of debt. He firmly said, “No.” But he regretted it many times afterward! The small remaining balance was paid in cash.

As they were arranging and selecting, they heard a most hideous yelping outdoors, and a minute later Skookum limped in, crying as if half-killed. Quonab was out in a moment.

As they were sorting and picking things out, they heard an awful yelping outside, and a minute later Skookum came in, limping and crying like he was half dead. Quonab rushed out immediately.

“Did you kick my dog?”

“Did you kick my dog?”

The brutal loafer changed countenance as he caught the red man's eye. “Naw! never touched him; hurted himself on that rake.”

The rough guy's expression changed when he met the red man's gaze. “Nope! I never touched him; he hurt himself on that rake.”

It was obviously a lie, but better to let it pass, and Quonab came in again.

It was clearly a lie, but it was better to ignore it, and Quonab came in again.

Then the rough stranger appeared at the door and growled: “Say, Warren! ain't you going to let me have that rifle? I guess my word's as good as the next man's.”

Then the tough stranger showed up at the door and said, “Hey, Warren! Aren't you going to let me have that rifle? I think my word is as good as anyone else's.”

“No,” said Warren; “I told you, no!”

“No,” Warren said. “I told you, no!”

“Then you can go to blazes, and you'll never see a cent's worth of fur from the stuff I got last year.”

“Then you can go to hell, and you'll never see a penny's worth of fur from the stuff I got last year.”

“I don't expect to,” was the reply; “I've learned what your word's worth.” And the stranger slouched away.

“I don’t expect to,” was the reply; “I’ve learned what your word is worth.” And the stranger slouched away.

“Who vas he?” asked Hendrik.

"Who was he?" asked Hendrik.

“I only know that his name is Jack Hoag; he's a little bit of a trapper and a big bit of a bum; stuck me last year. He doesn't come out this way; they say he goes out by the west side of the mountains.”

“I only know that his name is Jack Hoag; he's a bit of a trapper and mostly a slacker; he got me last year. He doesn’t come out this way; they say he heads out by the west side of the mountains.”

New light on their course was secured from Warren, and above all, the important information that the mouth of Jesup's River was marked by an eagle's nest in a dead pine. “Up to that point keep the main stream, and don't forget next spring I'm buying fur.”

New information about their route came from Warren, especially the crucial detail that the mouth of Jesup's River was indicated by an eagle's nest in a dead pine. “Stay on the main stream until you reach that point, and remember, I'm buying fur next spring.”

The drive across Five-mile portage was slow. It took over two hours to cover it, but late that day they reached the Schroon.

The drive across Five-mile portage was slow. It took more than two hours to get through it, but later that day they reached the Schroon.

Here the Dutchman said “Good-bye: Coom again some noder time.” Skookum saluted the farmer with a final growl, then Rolf and Quonab were left alone in the wilderness.

Here the Dutchman said, “Goodbye: Come again some other time.” Skookum saluted the farmer with a final growl, then Rolf and Quonab were left alone in the wilderness.

It was after sundown, so they set about camping for the night. A wise camper always prepares bed and shelter in daylight, if possible. While Rolf made a fire and hung the kettle, Quonab selected a level, dry place between two trees, and covered it with spruce boughs to make the beds, and last a low tent was made by putting the lodge cover over a pole between the trees. The ends of the covers were held down by loose green logs quickly cut for the purpose, and now they were safe against weather.

It was after sunset, so they started setting up camp for the night. A smart camper always gets their bed and shelter ready in daylight, if they can. While Rolf started a fire and hung the kettle, Quonab found a flat, dry spot between two trees and covered it with spruce branches to make the beds. Finally, they created a low tent by placing the lodge cover over a pole between the trees. The ends of the cover were secured with loose green logs that were quickly cut for this purpose, and now they were protected from the elements.

Tea, potatoes, and fried pork, with maple syrup and hard-tack, made their meal of the time, after which there was a long smoke. Quonab took a stick of red willow, picked up-in the daytime, and began shaving it toward one end, leaving the curling shreds still on the stick. When these were bunched in a fuzzy mop, he held them over the fire until they were roasted brown; then, grinding all up in his palm with some tobacco, and filling his pipe he soon was enveloped in that odour of woodsy smoke called the “Indian smell,” by many who do not know whence or how it comes. Rolf did not smoke. He had promised his mother that he would not until he was a man, and something brought her back home now with overwhelming force; that was the beds they had made of fragrant balsam boughs. “Cho-ko-tung or blister tree” as Quonab called it. His mother had a little sofa pillow, brought from the North—a “northern pine” pillow they called it, for it was stuffed with pine needles of a kind not growing in Connecticut. Many a time had Rolf as a baby pushed his little round nose into that bag to inhale the delicious odour it gave forth, and so it became the hallowed smell of all that was dear in his babyhood, and it never lost its potency. Smell never does. Oh, mighty aura! that, in marching by the nostrils, can reach and move the soul; how wise the church that makes this power its handmaid, and through its incense overwhelms all alien thought when the worshipper, wandering, doubting, comes again to see if it be true, that here doubt dies. Oh, queen of memory that is master of the soul! how fearful should we be of letting evil thought associated grow with some recurrent odour that we love. Happy, indeed, are they that find some ten times pure and consecrated fragrance, like the pine, which entering in is master of their moods, and yet through linking thoughts has all its power, uplifting, full of sweetness and blessed peace. So came to Rolf his medicine tree.

Tea, potatoes, and fried pork, with maple syrup and hardtack, made up their meal of the time, after which they enjoyed a long smoke. Quonab took a stick of red willow, picked up during the day, and began shaving it at one end, leaving the curling shreds still on the stick. When these were bunched into a fuzzy mop, he held them over the fire until they turned roasted brown; then, grinding everything up in his palm with some tobacco and filling his pipe, he soon was surrounded by that woodsy smoke smell called the “Indian smell” by many who don’t know where it comes from. Rolf didn’t smoke. He had promised his mother he wouldn’t until he was a man, and something brought her memory back home now with overwhelming force: the beds they had made of fragrant balsam boughs. “Cho-ko-tung or blister tree,” as Quonab called it. His mother had a little sofa pillow, brought from the North—a “northern pine” pillow, they called it, because it was stuffed with pine needles from a type that didn’t grow in Connecticut. Many times as a baby, Rolf had pushed his little round nose into that bag to inhale the delicious smell it gave off, making it the cherished scent of everything dear in his babyhood, one that never lost its power. Smell never does. Oh, mighty aura! that, wafting by the nostrils, can reach and move the soul; how wise the church that uses this power to silence all foreign thoughts with its incense when the worshipper, wandering and doubting, comes back to see if it’s true that here doubt dies. Oh, queen of memory that rules the soul! how cautious we should be about letting negative thoughts tie to some recurring scent we love. Truly happy are those who find some ten times pure and consecrated fragrance, like pine, which, when it enters, masters their moods, and yet, through associated thoughts, retains all its power, uplifting, full of sweetness and blessed peace. So came to Rolf his medicine tree.

The balsam fir was his tree of hallowed memory. Its odour never failed, and he slept that night with its influence all about him.

The balsam fir was his tree of cherished memories. Its scent was always present, and he slept that night surrounded by its influence.

Starting in the morning was no easy matter. There was so much to be adjusted that first day. Packs divided in two, new combinations to trim the canoe, or to raise such and such a package above a possible leak. The heavy things, like axes and pans, had to be fastened to the canoe or to packages that would float in case of an upset. The canoe itself had to be gummed in one or two places; but they got away after three hours, and began the voyage down the Schroon.

Starting in the morning wasn’t easy. There was so much to adjust that first day. Packs were split in two, new combinations to set up the canoe, or to elevate specific packages above a potential leak. The heavy items, like axes and pans, needed to be secured to the canoe or to packages that would float if they tipped over. The canoe itself had to be patched in a couple of spots; but they managed to leave after three hours, and began the journey down the Schroon.

This was Rolf's first water journey. He had indeed essayed the canoe on the Pipestave Pond, but that was a mere ferry. This was real travel. He marvelled at the sensitiveness of the frail craft; the delicacy of its balance; its quick response to the paddle; the way it seemed to shrink from the rocks; and the unpleasantly suggestive bend-up of the ribs when the bottom grounded upon a log. It was a new world for him. Quonab taught him never to enter the canoe except when she was afloat; never to rise in her or move along without hold of the gunwale; never to make a sudden move; and he also learned that it was easier to paddle when there were six feet of water underneath than when only six inches.

This was Rolf's first journey on the water. He had tried out the canoe on Pipestave Pond, but that was just a short ride. This was real travel. He was amazed by how sensitive the lightweight canoe was; how delicate its balance felt; how quickly it reacted to the paddle; how it seemed to shy away from the rocks; and the uncomfortable way the ribs bent up when the bottom hit a log. It was a whole new world for him. Quonab taught him never to get into the canoe unless it was floating; never to stand up or move around without holding onto the gunwale; never to make any sudden movements; and he also learned that it was easier to paddle when there were six feet of water below than when there were only six inches.

In an hour they had covered the five miles that brought them to the Hudson, and here the real labour began, paddling up stream. Before long they came to a shallow stretch with barely enough water to float the canoe. Here they jumped out and waded in the stream, occasionally lifting a stone to one side, till they reached the upper stretch of deep water and again went merrily paddling. Soon they came to an impassable rapid, and Rolf had his first taste of a real carry or portage. Quonab's eye was watching the bank as soon as the fierce waters appeared; for the first question was, where shall we land? and the next, how far do we carry? There are no rapids on important rivers in temperate America that have not been portaged more or less for ages. No canoe man portages without considering most carefully when, where, and how to land. His selection of the place, then, is the result of careful study. He cannot help leaving some mark at the place, slight though it be, and the next man looks for that mark to save himself time and trouble.

In an hour, they had covered the five miles that brought them to the Hudson, and this is where the real work started—paddling upstream. Soon, they encountered a shallow area with just enough water to float the canoe. They jumped out and waded in the stream, occasionally moving a stone aside, until they reached a deeper stretch of water and happily resumed paddling. Before long, they faced an impassable rapid, and Rolf experienced his first real carry or portage. Quonab was already assessing the riverbank as soon as the rough waters showed up; the first question was, where should we land? and the next was, how far do we have to carry? There are no rapids on major rivers in temperate America that haven’t been portaged for ages. A canoeist doesn’t portage without carefully thinking about when, where, and how to land. His choice of landing spot is the result of thorough consideration. He inevitably leaves some mark at the location, however small, and the next person looks for that mark to save time and effort.

“Ugh” was the only sound that Rolf heard from his companion, and the canoe headed for a flat rock in the pool below the rapids. After landing, they found traces of an old camp fire. It was near noon now, so Rolf prepared the meal while Quonab took a light pack and went on to learn the trail. It was not well marked; had not been used for a year or two, evidently, but there are certain rules that guide one. The trail keeps near the water, unless there is some great natural barrier, and it is usually the easiest way in sight. Quonab kept one eye on the river, for navigable water was the main thing, and in about one hundred yards he was again on the stream's edge, at a good landing above the rapid.

“Ugh” was the only sound Rolf heard from his friend as the canoe drifted toward a flat rock in the pool below the rapids. Once they landed, they discovered remnants of an old campfire. It was almost noon, so Rolf started preparing their meal while Quonab took a light pack to explore the trail. The path wasn’t well marked; it hadn’t been used for a year or two, but there are certain rules to follow. The trail stays close to the water unless there’s a major natural obstacle, and it’s usually the easiest route to spot. Quonab kept one eye on the river since navigable water was crucial, and in about a hundred yards, he was back at the water's edge, at a good landing spot above the rapids.

After the meal was finished and the Indian had smoked, they set to work. In a few loads each, the stuff was portaged across, and the canoe was carried over and moored to the bank.

After they finished the meal and the Indian had smoked, they got to work. In just a few trips each, they carried the gear across, and the canoe was taken over and secured to the shore.

The cargo replaced, they went on again, but in half an hour after passing more shoal water, saw another rapid, not steep, but too shallow to float the canoe, even with both men wading. Here Quonab made what the Frenchmen call a demi-charge. He carried half the stuff to the bank; then, wading, one at each end, they hauled the canoe up the portage and reloaded her above. Another strip of good going was succeeded by a long stretch of very swift water that was two or three feet deep and between shores that were densely grown with alders. The Indian landed, cut two light, strong poles, and now, one at the bow, the other at the stern, they worked their way foot by foot up the fierce current until safely on the upper level.

The cargo was replaced, and they continued on, but half an hour later, after passing through more shallow water, they encountered another rapid. It wasn't steep but was too shallow for the canoe to float, even with both men wading. Here, Quonab did what the Frenchmen call a demi-charge. He carried half the load to the bank; then, wading, with one man at each end, they pulled the canoe up the portage and reloaded it on the other side. After another stretch of good terrain, they faced a long stretch of very fast water that was two or three feet deep, with shores heavily covered in alder trees. The Indian got out, cut two light, strong poles, and now, with one at the bow and the other at the stern, they carefully worked their way foot by foot against the strong current until they were safely on the upper level.

Yet one more style of canoe propulsion was forced on them. They came to a long stretch of smooth, deep, very swift water, almost a rapid-one of the kind that is a joy when you are coming down stream. It differed from the last in having shores that were not alder-hidden, but open gravel banks. Now did Quonab take a long, strong line from his war sack. One end he fastened, not to the bow, but to the forward part of the canoe, the other to a buckskin band which he put across his breast. Then, with Rolf in the stern to steer and the Indian hauling on the bank, the canoe was safely “tracked” up the “strong waters.”

Yet another method of canoe propulsion was required of them. They reached a long stretch of smooth, deep, very fast water, almost a rapid—one that is thrilling when you’re going downstream. It was different from the last in that the banks weren’t hidden by alders but featured open gravel shores. At this point, Quonab took a long, strong line from his war sack. He tied one end not to the bow, but to the front of the canoe, and the other end to a buckskin strap that he put across his chest. Then, with Rolf in the back to steer and the Indian pulling from the bank, the canoe was safely “tracked” up the “strong waters.”

Thus they fought their way up the hard river, day after day, making sometimes only five miles after twelve hours' toilsome travel. Rapids, shoals, portages, strong waters, abounded, and before they had covered the fifty miles to the forks of Jesup's River, they knew right well why the region was so little entered.

Thus they struggled their way up the challenging river, day after day, sometimes making only five miles after twelve hours of hard travel. There were rapids, shallow areas, portages, and strong currents everywhere, and by the time they covered the fifty miles to the forks of Jesup's River, they understood perfectly why the area was so rarely explored.

It made a hardened canoe man of Rolf, and when, on the evening of the fifth day, they saw a huge eagle's nest in a dead pine tree that stood on the edge of a long swamp, both felt they had reached their own country, and were glad.

It turned Rolf into a tough canoe man, and when, on the evening of the fifth day, they spotted a massive eagle's nest in a dead pine tree at the edge of a long swamp, they both felt they had arrived in their own territory, and they were happy.





Chapter 18. Animal Life Along the River

It must not be supposed that, because it has been duly mentioned, they saw no wild life along the river. The silent canoe man has the best of opportunities. There were plenty of deer tracks about the first camp, and that morning, as they turned up the Hudson, Rolf saw his first deer. They had rounded a point in rather swift water when Quonab gave two taps on the gunwale, the usual sign, “Look out,” and pointed to the shore. There, fifty yards away on bank, gazing at them, was a deer. Stock still he stood like a red statue, for he was yet in the red coat. With three or four strong strokes, Quonab gave a long and mighty forward spurt; then reached for his gun. But the deer's white flag went up. It turned and bounded away, the white flag the last thing to disappear. Rolf sat spellbound. It was so sudden; so easy; it soon melted into the woods again. He trembled after it was gone.

It shouldn’t be assumed that just because it’s been mentioned, they didn’t see any wildlife along the river. The quiet canoeist has the best chances. There were plenty of deer tracks around the first campsite, and that morning, as they headed up the Hudson, Rolf spotted his first deer. They had just rounded a bend in the fast-moving water when Quonab tapped the gunwale twice, the usual signal for “Look out,” and pointed to the shore. There, fifty yards away on the bank, was a deer, standing completely still like a red statue, still in its red coat. With three or four strong strokes, Quonab propelled the canoe forward with a powerful push; then he reached for his gun. But the deer’s white tail went up. It turned and bounded away, the white tail being the last thing to disappear. Rolf sat in awe. It happened so suddenly, so effortlessly; it quickly vanished into the woods again. He trembled after it was gone.

Many a time in the evening they saw muskrats in the eddies, and once they glimpsed a black, shiny something like a monstrous leech rolling up and down as it travelled in the stream. Quonab whispered, “Otter,” and made ready his gun, but it dived and showed itself no more. At one of the camps they were awakened by an extraordinary tattoo in the middle of the night—a harsh rattle close by their heads; and they got up to find that a porcupine was rattling his teeth on the frying-pan in an effort to increase the amount of salt that he could taste on it. Skookum, tied to a tree, was vainly protesting against the intrusion and volunteered to make a public example of the invader. The campers did not finally get rid of the spiny one till all their kitchen stuff was hung beyond his reach.

Many times in the evening, they saw muskrats in the currents, and once they caught sight of a black, shiny creature that looked like a giant leech rolling up and down as it moved through the stream. Quonab whispered, “Otter,” and got his gun ready, but it dived and didn’t come back up. At one of the camps, they were woken up by a strange noise in the middle of the night—a loud rattling right by their heads; they got up to find that a porcupine was rattling its teeth on the frying pan to taste more salt. Skookum, tied to a tree, was barking loudly about the disturbance and was ready to take on the intruder. The campers finally got rid of the spiny creature only after they hung all their kitchen stuff out of its reach.

Once they heard the sharp, short bark of a fox, and twice or thrice the soft, sweet, moaning call of the gray wolf out to hunt. Wild fowl abounded, and their diet was varied by the ducks that one or other of the hunters secured at nearly every camp.

Once they heard the sharp, quick bark of a fox, and two or three times the soft, sweet, moaning call of the gray wolf on the hunt. Wild birds were everywhere, and their diet was enhanced by the ducks that one or another of the hunters managed to catch at almost every campsite.

On the second day they saw three deer, and on the third morning Quonab loaded his gun with buckshot, to be ready, then sallied forth at dawn. Rolf was following, but the Indian shook his head, then said: “Don't make fire for half an hour.”

On the second day, they spotted three deer, and on the third morning, Quonab loaded his gun with buckshot to be prepared, then headed out at dawn. Rolf was following, but the Indian shook his head and said, “Don’t make a fire for half an hour.”

In twenty minutes Rolf heard the gun, then later the Indian returned with a haunch of venison, and when they left that camp they stopped a mile up the river to add the rest of the venison to their cargo. Seven other deer were seen, but no more killed; yet Rolf was burning to try his hand as a hunter. Many other opportunities he had, and improved some of them. On one wood portage he, or rather Skookum, put up a number of ruffed grouse. These perched in the trees above their heads and the travellers stopped. While the dog held their attention Rolf with blunt arrows knocked over five that proved most acceptable as food. But his thoughts were now on deer, and his ambition was to go out alone and return with a load of venison.

In twenty minutes, Rolf heard the gun, and later the Indian came back with a haunch of venison. When they left that camp, they stopped a mile up the river to add the rest of the venison to their cargo. They saw seven other deer but didn’t kill any more; still, Rolf was eager to try his hand at hunting. He had many other chances and made the most of some of them. During one wood portage, he, or rather Skookum, flushed a number of ruffed grouse. They perched in the trees above them, and the travelers paused. While the dog distracted them, Rolf knocked down five with blunt arrows, which turned out to be great for food. But his mind was now on deer, and he was determined to go out alone and come back with a load of venison.

Another and more thrilling experience followed quickly. Rounding a bend in the early dawn they sighted a black bear and two cubs rambling along the gravelly bank and stopping now and then to eat something that turned out to be crayfish.

Another and more exciting experience came soon after. Around a bend in the early morning, they spotted a black bear and two cubs wandering along the rocky bank, pausing now and then to snack on what turned out to be crayfish.

Quonab had not seen a bear since childhood, when he and his father hunted along the hardwood ridges back of Myanos, and now he was excited. He stopped paddling, warned Rolf to do the same, and let the canoe drift backward until out of sight; then made for the land. Quickly tying up the canoe he took his gun and Rolf his hunting arrows, and, holding Skookum in a leash, they dashed into the woods. Then, keeping out of sight, they ran as fast and as silently as possible in the direction of the bears. Of course, the wind was toward the hunters, or they never could have got so near. Now they were opposite the family group and needed only a chance for a fair shot. Sneaking forward with the utmost caution, they were surely within twenty-five yards, but still the bushes screened the crab-eaters. As the hunters sneaked, the old bear stopped and sniffed suspiciously; the wind changed, she got an unmistakable whiff; then gave a loud warning “Koff! Koff! Koff! Koff!” and ran as fast as she could. The hunters knowing they were discovered rushed out, yelling as loudly as possible, in hopes of making the bears tree. The old bear ran like a horse with Skookum yapping bravely in her rear. The young ones, left behind, lost sight of her, and, utterly bewildered by the noise, made for a tree conveniently near and scrambled up into the branches. “Now,” Rolf thought, judging by certain tales he had heard, “that old bear will come back and there will be a fight.”

Quonab hadn't seen a bear since he was a kid, when he and his dad used to hunt along the hardwood ridges behind Myanos, and now he was pumped. He stopped paddling, signaled Rolf to do the same, and let the canoe drift back until they were out of sight; then he headed for the shore. After quickly tying up the canoe, he grabbed his gun while Rolf took his hunting arrows. With Skookum on a leash, they rushed into the woods. Staying out of sight, they ran as fast and quietly as they could towards the bears. Luckily, the wind was blowing towards them, which is how they got so close. Now they were right across from the family group and just needed an opportunity for a good shot. Sneaking forward with extreme caution, they were definitely within twenty-five yards, but the bushes still hid the crab-eaters. As the hunters crept up, the old bear stopped and sniffed the air suspiciously; when the wind shifted, she picked up their scent and let out a loud warning “Koff! Koff! Koff! Koff!” before taking off as fast as she could. Realizing they were spotted, the hunters charged out, yelling as loudly as they could, hoping to make the bears climb a tree. The old bear sprinted like a horse, with Skookum yapping bravely behind her. The younger bears, confused and left behind, lost sight of her and, completely bewildered by the noise, made a beeline for a nearby tree and scrambled up into the branches. “Now,” Rolf thought, recalling some stories he had heard, “that old bear will come back, and there’s going to be a fight.”

“Is she coming back?” he asked nervously.

“Is she coming back?” he asked anxiously.

The Indian laughed. “No, she is running yet. Black bear always a coward; they never fight when they can run away.”

The Indian laughed. “No, she’s still running. A black bear is always a coward; they never fight when they can escape.”

The little ones up the tree were, of course, at the mercy of the hunters, and in this case it was not a broken straw they depended on, but an ample salvation. “We don't need the meat and can't carry it with us; let's leave them,” said Rolf, but added, “Will they find their mother?”

The little ones in the tree were, of course, at the mercy of the hunters, and in this case, it wasn't a flimsy hope they relied on, but a solid chance of rescue. “We don’t need the meat and can’t carry it with us; let’s just leave them,” said Rolf, but he added, “Will they find their mother?”

“Yes, bime-by; they come down and squall all over woods. She will hang round half a mile away and by night all will be together.”

“Yes, pretty soon; they’ll come down and make a racket all over the woods. She’ll hang around half a mile away, and by night, everyone will be together.”

Their first bear hunt was over. Not a shot fired, not a bear wounded, not a mile travelled, and not an hour lost. And yet it seemed much more full of interesting thrills than did any one of the many stirring bear hunts that Rolf and Quonab shared together in the days that were to come.

Their first bear hunt was done. Not a shot fired, not a bear hurt, not a mile covered, and not an hour wasted. And yet it felt far more exciting than any of the many thrilling bear hunts that Rolf and Quonab would have together in the days ahead.





Chapter 19. The Footprint on the Shore

Jesup's River was a tranquil stream that came from a region of swamps, and would have been easy canoeing but for the fallen trees. Some of these had been cut years ago, showing that the old trapper had used this route. Once they were unpleasantly surprised by seeing a fresh chopping on the bank, but their mourning was changed into joy when they found it was beaver-work.

Jesup's River was a calm stream that flowed from a swampy area and would have been easy to paddle through if it weren't for the fallen trees. Some of these had been cut years ago, indicating that the old trapper had taken this route. They were once unpleasantly surprised to see fresh cuts on the bank, but their disappointment turned to joy when they realized it was the work of beavers.

Ten miles they made that day. In the evening they camped on the shore of Jesup's Lake, proud and happy in the belief that they were the rightful owners of it all. That night they heard again and again the howling of wolves, but it seemed on the far side of the lake. In the morning they went out on foot to explore, and at once had the joy of seeing five deer, while tracks showed on every side. It was evidently a paradise for deer, and there were in less degree the tracks of other animals—mink in fair abundance, one or two otters, a mountain lion, and a cow moose with her calf. It was thrilling to see such a feast of possibilities. The hunters were led on and on, revelling in the prospect of many joys before them, when all at once they came on something that turned their joy to grief—the track of a man; the fresh imprint of a cowhide boot. It was maddening. At first blush, it meant some other trapper ahead of them with a prior claim to the valley; a claim that the unwritten law would allow. They followed it a mile. It went striding along the shore at a great pace, sometimes running, and keeping down the west shore. Then they found a place where he had sat down and broken a lot of clam shells, and again had hastened on. But there was no mark of gunstock or other weapon where he sat; and why was he wearing boots? The hunters rarely did.

They covered ten miles that day. In the evening, they set up camp by the shore of Jesup's Lake, feeling proud and happy, convinced that they were the rightful owners of everything around them. That night, they repeatedly heard wolves howling, but it seemed to be on the far side of the lake. In the morning, they went out on foot to explore and quickly found joy in spotting five deer, with tracks visible all around them. It was clearly a deer paradise, and there were also tracks of other animals—plenty of mink, a couple of otters, a mountain lion, and a cow moose with her calf. It was exciting to see such a wealth of possibilities. The hunters were eager to continue, delighting in the promise of many joys ahead, when suddenly they encountered something that turned their joy into sorrow—a man's track; the fresh imprint of a cowhide boot. It was infuriating. At first glance, it suggested that another trapper had come before them and claimed the valley; a claim that the unwritten law would recognize. They followed the track for a mile. It moved quickly along the shore, sometimes running, and sticking to the west side. Then they discovered a spot where he had sat down, breaking a bunch of clam shells, and then he hurried on again. However, there was no sign of a gunstock or any other weapon where he had sat; and why was he wearing boots? Hunters rarely did that.

For two miles the Indian followed with Rolf, and sometimes found that the hated stranger had been running hard. Then they turned back, terribly disappointed. At first it seemed a crushing blow. They had three courses open to them—to seek a location farther north, to assume that one side of the lake was theirs, or to find out exactly who and what the stranger was. They decided on the last. The canoe was launched and loaded, and they set out to look for what they hoped they would not find, a trapper's shanty on the lake.

For two miles, the Indian followed Rolf, sometimes noticing that the despised stranger had been running hard. Then they turned back, feeling extremely let down. At first, it felt like a heavy blow. They had three options: to search for a spot farther north, to assume that one side of the lake belonged to them, or to figure out exactly who and what the stranger was. They chose the last option. The canoe was launched and packed, and they set out to look for what they hoped they wouldn’t find—a trapper's cabin on the lake.

After skirting the shore for four or five miles and disturbing one or two deer, as well as hosts of ducks, the voyagers landed and there still they found that fateful bootmark steadily tramping southward. By noon they had reached the south end of the west inlet that leads to another lake, and again an examination of the shore showed the footmarks, here leaving the lake and going southerly. Now the travellers retired to the main lake and by noon had reached the south end. At no point had they seen any sign of a cabin, though both sides of the lake were in plain view all day. The travelling stranger was a mystery, but he did not live here and there was no good reason why they should not settle.

After skirting the shore for about four or five miles and startling a couple of deer, along with plenty of ducks, the travelers landed and found that fateful boot print heading steadily south. By noon, they reached the southern end of the west inlet that leads to another lake, and again, a look at the shore revealed footmarks heading away from the lake and going south. The travelers then made their way back to the main lake and reached the southern end by noon. They hadn’t seen any signs of a cabin, even though both sides of the lake had been in clear view all day. The mysterious traveler was an enigma, but he didn’t live here, and there was no good reason for them not to settle.

Where? The country seemed equally good at all points, but it is usually best to camp on an outlet. Then when a storm comes up, the big waves do not threaten your canoe, or compel you to stay on land. It is a favourite crossing for animals avoiding the lake, and other trappers coming in are sure to see your cabin before they enter.

Where? The land looked great everywhere, but it’s usually smarter to set up camp by an outlet. That way, when a storm hits, the big waves won't endanger your canoe or force you to stay onshore. It’s a popular route for animals avoiding the lake, and other trappers making their way in are sure to spot your cabin before they arrive.

Which side of the outlet? Quonab settled that—the west. He wanted to see the sun rise, and, not far back from the water, was a hill with a jutting, rocky pinnade. He pointed to this and uttered the one word, “Idaho.” Here, then, on the west side, where the lake enters the river, they began to clear the ground for their home.

Which side of the outlet? Quonab decided that—the west. He wanted to see the sunrise, and not far from the water was a hill with a rocky outcrop. He pointed to this and said one word, “Idaho.” So, on the west side, where the lake meets the river, they started to clear the land for their home.





Chapter 20. The Trappers' Cabin

     It's a smart fellow that knows what he can't do.—Sayings of
     Si Sylvanne.
     It's a clever person who knows their limitations.—Sayings of 
     Si Sylvanne.

I suppose every trapper that ever lived, on first building a cabin, said, “Oh, any little thing will do, so long as it has a roof and is big enough to lie down in.” And every trapper has realized before spring that he made a sad mistake in not having it big enough to live in and store goods in. Quonab and Rolf were new at the business, and made the usual mistake. They planned their cabin far too small; 10 X 12 ft., instead of 12 X 20 ft. they made it, and 6-ft. walls, instead of 8-ft. walls. Both were expert axemen. Spruce was plentiful and the cabin rose quickly. In one day the walls were up. An important thing was the roof. What should it be? Overlapping basswood troughs, split shingles, also called shakes, or clay? By far the easiest to make, the warmest in winter and coolest in summer, is the clay roof. It has three disadvantages: It leaks in long-continued wet weather; it drops down dust and dirt in dry weather; and is so heavy that it usually ends by crushing in the log rafters and beams, unless they are further supported on posts, which are much in the way. But its advantages were so obvious that the builders did not hesitate. A clay roof it was to be.

I guess every trapper who has ever lived, when first building a cabin, thought, “Oh, anything will do as long as it has a roof and is big enough to lie down in.” And every trapper has realized before spring that they made a big mistake by not having it big enough to live in and store their stuff. Quonab and Rolf were new to the game and made the typical mistake. They designed their cabin way too small; they built it 10 X 12 ft. instead of 12 X 20 ft., with 6-ft. walls instead of 8-ft. walls. Both of them were skilled axemen. Spruce was abundant, so the cabin went up quickly. In just one day, the walls were finished. An important consideration was the roof. What should it be? Overlapping basswood troughs, split shingles, also known as shakes, or clay? The easiest to make, warmest in winter and coolest in summer, is the clay roof. It has three downsides: it leaks during prolonged rainy weather; it drops dust and dirt on dry days; and it's so heavy that it usually ends up crushing the log rafters and beams unless further supported by posts, which can be quite a hassle. But its advantages were so clear that the builders didn't hesitate. A clay roof it was to be.

When the walls were five feet high, the doorway and window were cut through the logs, but leaving in each case one half of the log at the bottom of the needed opening. The top log was now placed, then rolled over bottom up, while half of its thickness was cut away to fit over the door: a similar cut out was made over the window. Two flat pieces of spruce were prepared for door jambs and two shorter ones for window jambs. Auger holes were put through, so as to allow an oak pin to be driven through the jamb into each log, and the doorway and window opening were done.

When the walls were five feet high, they cut out the doorway and window in the logs, making sure to leave half of each log at the bottom of the openings. They then placed the top log, rolled it over bottom up, and cut away half of its thickness to fit over the door; a similar cut was made for the window. Two flat pieces of spruce were prepared for the door jambs, along with two shorter ones for the window jambs. Auger holes were drilled so that an oak pin could be driven through the jamb into each log, completing the doorway and window openings.

In one corner they planned a small fireplace, built of clay and stone. Not stone from the lake, as Rolf would have had it, but from the hillside; and why? Quonab said that the lake stone was of the water spirits, and would not live near fire, but would burst open; while the hillside stone was of the sun and fire spirit, and in the fire would add its heat.

In one corner, they planned a small fireplace made of clay and stone. Not stone from the lake, as Rolf wanted, but from the hillside; and why? Quonab said that the lake stone belonged to the water spirits, and wouldn’t survive near fire, but would crack apart; while the hillside stone was connected to the sun and fire spirits, and would contribute its warmth to the fire.

The facts are that lake stone explodes when greatly heated and hill stone does not; and since no one has been able to improve upon Quonab's explanation, it must stand for the present.

The facts are that lake stone explodes when heated a lot, while hill stone does not; and since no one has found a better explanation than Quonab's, it must be accepted for now.

The plan of the fireplace was simple. Rolf had been present at the building of several, and the main point was to have the chimney large enough, and the narrowest point just above the fire.

The design of the fireplace was straightforward. Rolf had been involved in the construction of several, and the key was to ensure the chimney was big enough, with the narrowest section positioned just above the fire.

The eaves logs, end logs, and ridge logs were soon in place; then came the cutting of small poles, spruce and tamarack, long enough to reach from ridge to eaves, and in sufficient number to completely cover the roof. A rank sedge meadow near by afforded plenty of coarse grass with which the poles were covered deeply; and lastly clay dug out with a couple of hand-made, axe-hewn wooden spades was thrown evenly on the grass to a depth of six inches; this, when trampled flat, made a roof that served them well.

The eaves logs, end logs, and ridge logs were soon setup; then came the cutting of small poles, spruce and tamarack, long enough to reach from ridge to eaves, and in enough quantity to completely cover the roof. A nearby rank sedge meadow provided plenty of coarse grass to cover the poles thoroughly; and finally, clay dug out with a couple of handmade, axe-hewn wooden spades was spread evenly over the grass to a depth of six inches; this, when trampled down, created a roof that worked well for them.

The chinks of the logs when large were filled with split pieces of wood; when small they were plugged with moss. A door was made of hewn planks, and hinged very simply on two pins; one made by letting the plank project as a point, the other by nailing on a pin after the door was placed; both pins fitting, of course, into inch auger holes.

The gaps in the large logs were filled with split wood, while the smaller gaps were stuffed with moss. A door was made from shaped planks and simply hinged on two pins: one was created by letting the plank stick out as a point, and the other was attached by nailing a pin after the door was hung. Both pins fit into holes made with an inch auger, of course.

A floor was not needed, but bed bunks were, and in making these they began already to realize that the cabin was too small. But now after a week's work it was done. It had a sweet fragrance of wood and moss, and the pleasure it gave to Rolf at least was something he never again could expect to find in equal measure about any other dwelling he might make.

A floor wasn’t necessary, but they definitely needed bunk beds, and while building those, they started to realize that the cabin was too small. After a week of work, it was finally finished. It had a lovely scent of wood and moss, and the joy it brought Rolf was something he knew he could never find again in any other home he might create.

Quonab laid the fire carefully, then lighted his pipe, sang a little crooning song about the “home spirits,” which we call “household gods,” walked around the shanty, offering the pipestem to each of the four winds in turn, then entering lighted the fire from his pipe, threw some tobacco and deer hair on the blaze, and the house-warming was ended.

Quonab built the fire carefully, then lit his pipe, and sang a little tune about the “home spirits,” which we call “household gods.” He walked around the cabin, offering the pipestem to each of the four winds in turn. Then, he entered and lit the fire from his pipe, tossing in some tobacco and deer hair on the flames, and the housewarming was complete.

Nevertheless, they continued to sleep in the tent they had used all along, for Quonab loved not the indoors, and Rolf was growing daily more of his mind.

Nevertheless, they kept sleeping in the tent they had always used, because Quonab didn’t like being indoors, and Rolf was becoming more like him every day.





Chapter 21. Rolf's First Deer

Anxious to lose no fine day they had worked steadily on the shanty, not even going after the deer that were seen occasionally over the lake, so that now they were out of fresh meat, and Rolf saw a chance he long had looked for. “Quonab, I want to go out alone and get a deer, and I want your gun.

Anxious not to waste a beautiful day, they had been working hard on the cabin, not even bothering to go after the deer they occasionally spotted across the lake. As a result, they had run out of fresh meat, and Rolf saw the opportunity he had been waiting for. “Quonab, I want to go out alone and get a deer, and I need your gun.

“Ugh! you shall go. To-night is good.”

“Ugh! You should go. Tonight is fine.”

“To-night” meant evening, so Rolf set out alone as soon as the sun was low, for during the heat of the day the deer are commonly lying in some thicket. In general, he knew enough to travel up wind, and to go as silently as possible. The southwest wind was blowing softly, and so he quickened his steps southwesterly which meant along the lake. Tracks and signs abounded; it was impossible to follow any one trail. His plan was to keep on silently, trusting to luck, nor did he have long to wait. Across a little opening of the woods to the west he saw a movement in the bushes, but it ceased, and he was in doubt whether the creature, presumably a deer, was standing there or had gone on. “Never quit till you are sure,” was one of Quonab's wise adages. Rolf was bound to know what it was that had moved. So he stood still and waited. A minute passed; another; many; a long time; and still he waited, but got no further sign of life from the bush. Then he began to think he was mistaken; yet it was good huntercraft to find out what that was. He tried the wind several times, first by wetting his finger, which test said “southwest”; second, by tossing up some handfuls of dried grass, which said “yes, southwest, but veering southerly in this glade.” So he knew he might crawl silently to the north side of that bush. He looked to the priming of his gun and began a slow and stealthy stalk, selecting such openings as might be passed without effort or movement of bushes or likelihood of sound. He worked his way step by step; each time his foot was lifted he set it down again only after trying the footing. At each step he paused to look and listen. It was only one hundred yards to the interesting spot, but Rolf was fifteen minutes in covering the distance, and more than once, he got a great start as a chicadee flew out or a woodpecker tapped. His heart beat louder and louder, so it seemed everything near must hear; but he kept on his careful stalk, and at last had reached the thicket that had given him such thrills and hopes. Here he stood and watched for a full minute. Again he tried the wind, and proceeded to circle slowly to the west of the place.

“To-night” meant evening, so Rolf set out alone as soon as the sun was low, because during the heat of the day, the deer usually rest in some thicket. He generally knew enough to move upwind and to go as quietly as possible. The southwest wind was blowing gently, so he picked up his pace toward the southwest, which meant along the lake. There were plenty of tracks and signs, making it impossible to follow any single trail. His plan was to keep going silently, trusting his luck, and he didn’t have to wait long. Across a small clearing in the woods to the west, he noticed movement in the bushes, but it stopped, leaving him uncertain whether the creature, likely a deer, was still there or had moved on. “Never quit till you are sure,” was one of Quonab's wise sayings. Rolf was determined to find out what had moved. So he stood still and waited. A minute passed; then another; and many more; a long time went by, and still he waited, but got no further sign of life from the bushes. Then he began to think he was mistaken; yet it was smart hunting to figure out what that was. He tried the wind several times, first by wetting his finger, which indicated “southwest”; second, by tossing up some handfuls of dried grass, which confirmed “yes, southwest, but shifting southerly in this glade.” So he knew he could quietly crawl to the north side of that bush. He checked the priming of his gun and began a slow and stealthy stalk, choosing paths that could be taken without effort or disturbing the bushes or making noise. He moved step by step; each time he lifted his foot, he set it down again only after checking the ground. At each step, he paused to look and listen. It was only one hundred yards to the spot of interest, but Rolf took fifteen minutes to cover that distance, getting startled more than once as a chickadee flew out or a woodpecker tapped. His heart raced louder and louder, so it seemed like everything nearby must hear it; but he kept on his careful stalk, and finally reached the thicket that had given him so much excitement and hope. Here he stood and watched for a full minute. He checked the wind again and began to circle slowly to the west of the spot.

After a long, tense crawl of twenty yards he came on the track and sign of a big buck, perfectly fresh, and again his heart worked harder; it seemed to be pumping his neck full of blood, so he was choking. He judged it best to follow this hot trail for a time, and holding his gun ready cocked he stepped softly onward. A bluejay cried out, “jay, jay!” with startling loudness, and seemingly enjoyed his pent-up excitement. A few steps forward at slow, careful stalk, and then behind him he heard a loud whistling hiss. Instantly turning he found himself face to face with a great, splendid buck in the short blue coat. There not thirty yards away he stood, the creature he had been stalking so long, in plain view now, broadside on. They gazed each at the other, perfectly still for a few seconds, then Rolf without undue movement brought the gun to bear, and still the buck stood gazing. The gun was up, but oh, how disgustingly it wabbled and shook! and the steadier Rolf tried to bold it, the more it trembled, until from that wretched gun the palsy spread all over his body; his breath came tremulously, his legs and arms were shaking, and at last, as the deer moved its head to get a better view and raised its tail, the lad, making an effort at selfcontrol, pulled the trigger. Bang! and the buck went lightly bounding out of sight.

After a long, tense crawl of twenty yards, he found the tracks and the sign of a big buck, freshly made, and his heart raced. It felt like it was pumping so much blood into his neck that he was choking. He decided it was best to follow this fresh trail for a while, so he held his gun ready and stepped softly forward. A blue jay called out, “jay, jay!” in a startling loud voice, seemingly enjoying his built-up excitement. He took a few slow, careful steps, and then he heard a loud whistling hiss behind him. Instantly turning around, he found himself face to face with a magnificent buck in its short blue coat. There, not even thirty yards away, stood the creature he had been stalking for so long, now clearly in view, broadside. They stared at each other, frozen for a few seconds, and then, without making any sudden movements, Rolf aimed the gun. Still, the buck just stood there, looking. The gun was up, but it was shaking terribly, and the harder Rolf tried to steady it, the more it trembled, until that awful shaking spread all over his body; his breath came out shaky, his legs and arms quivered. Finally, as the deer moved its head for a better view and raised its tail, the boy, making an effort to control himself, pulled the trigger. Bang! and the buck bounded away, disappearing from sight.

Poor Rolf; how disgusted he felt; positively sick with self-contempt. Thirty yards, standing, broadside on, full daylight, a big buck, a clean miss. Yes, there was the bullet hole in a tree, five feet above the deer's head. “I'm no good; I'll never be a hunter,” he groaned, then turned and slowly tramped back to camp. Quonab looked inquiringly, for, of course, he heard the shot. He saw a glum and sorry-looking youth, who in response to his inquiring look gave merely a head-shake, and hung up the gun with a vicious bang.

Poor Rolf; he felt so disgusted, almost sick with self-hatred. Thirty yards away, standing still, broadside to him, in full daylight, a big buck, a clean miss. Yes, there was the bullet hole in a tree, five feet above the deer's head. “I'm no good; I'll never be a hunter,” he groaned, then turned and slowly trudged back to camp. Quonab looked at him with a questioning gaze, since he obviously heard the shot. He saw a gloomy and remorseful young man who, in response to his curious look, just shook his head and hung up the gun with a frustrated bang.

Quonab took down the gun, wiped it out, reloaded it, then turning to the boy said: “Nibowaka, you feel pretty sick. Ugh! You know why? You got a good chance, but you got buck fever. It is always so, every one the first time. You go again to-morrow and you get your deer.”

Quonab took the gun down, cleaned it, reloaded it, and then turned to the boy and said, “Nibowaka, you’re feeling pretty nauseous. Ugh! You know why? You’ve got a good chance, but it’s just buck fever. It’s always like that the first time. You go again tomorrow and you’ll get your deer.”

Rolf made no reply. So Quonab ventured, “You want me to go?” That settled it for Rolf; his pride was touched.

Rolf didn’t say anything. So Quonab asked, “You want me to leave?” That was all it took for Rolf; his pride was hurt.

“No; I'll go again in the morning.”

“No, I'll go again in the morning.”

In the dew time he was away once more on the hunting trail. There was no wind, but the southwest was the likeliest to spring up. So he went nearly over his last night's track. He found it much easier to go silently now when all the world was dew wet, and travelled quickly. Past the fateful glade he went, noted again the tree torn several feet too high up, and on. Then the cry of a bluejay rang out; this is often a notification of deer at hand. It always is warning of something doing, and no wise hunter ignores it.

In the early morning, he was out again on the hunting trail. There was no wind, but the southwest was the most likely direction for one to pick up. So he retraced his steps from the previous night. He found it much easier to move quietly now that everything was wet with dew, and he traveled quickly. He passed the significant glade, noticed the tree damaged several feet up, and continued on. Then he heard the call of a bluejay; this often signals that deer are nearby. It's always a warning of something happening, and no smart hunter overlooks it.

Rolf stood for a moment listening and peering. He thought he heard a scraping sound; then again the bluejay, but the former ceased and the jay-note died in the distance. He crept cautiously on again for a few minutes; another opening appeared. He studied this from a hiding place; then far across he saw a little flash near the ground. His heart gave a jump; he studied the place, saw again the flash and then made out the head of a deer, a doe that was lying in the long grass. The flash was made by its ear shaking off a fly. Rolf looked to his priming, braced himself, got fully ready, then gave a short, sharp whistle; instantly the doe rose to her feet; then another appeared, a sinal one; then a young buck; all stood gazing his way.

Rolf paused for a moment, listening and looking around. He thought he heard a scraping sound, then the blue jay again, but the scraping stopped and the jay’s call faded into the distance. He moved carefully for a few more minutes until he spotted another opening. He observed it from his hiding spot; then far away, he saw a quick flash near the ground. His heart raced as he focused on the spot, saw the flash again, and realized it was the head of a deer, a doe lying in the tall grass. The flash was just her ear shaking off a fly. Rolf checked his gear, braced himself, got completely ready, and then gave a quick, sharp whistle; instantly, the doe stood up; then another one appeared, a fawn; and then a young buck; all of them were staring his way.

Up went the gun, but again its muzzle began to wabble. Rolf lowered it, said grimly and savagely to himself, “I will not shake this time.” The deer stretched themselves and began slowly walking toward the lake. All had disappeared but the buck. Rolf gave another whistle that turned the antler-bearer to a statue. Controlling himself with a strong “I will,” he raised the gun, held it steadily, and fired. The buck gave a gathering spasm, a bound, and disappeared. Rolf felt sick again with disgust, but he reloaded, then hastily went forward.

Up went the gun, but again the muzzle started to shake. Rolf lowered it and said to himself, “I won’t shake this time.” The deer stretched and slowly walked toward the lake. All had vanished except for the buck. Rolf gave another whistle that turned the antlered deer into a statue. Steeling himself with a firm “I will,” he raised the gun, held it steady, and fired. The buck twitched, leaped, and vanished. Rolf felt sick with disgust again, but he reloaded and quickly moved forward.

There was the deep imprint showing where the buck had bounded at the shot, but no blood. He followed, and a dozen feet away found the next hoof marks and on them a bright-red stain; on and another splash; and more and shortening bounds, till one hundred yards away—yes, there it lay; the round, gray form, quite dead, shot through the heart.

There was a deep imprint showing where the buck had jumped at the shot, but no blood. He followed, and a dozen feet away found the next hoof marks and a bright-red stain on them; then another splash; and more and shorter bounds, until one hundred yards away—yes, there it was; the round, gray shape, completely dead, shot through the heart.

Rolf gave a long, rolling war cry and got an answer from a point that was startlingly near, and Quonab stepped from behind a tree.

Rolf let out a loud, echoing war cry and got a response from somewhere alarmingly close, and Quonab emerged from behind a tree.

“I got him,” shouted Rolf.

"I've got him," shouted Rolf.

The Indian smiled. “I knew you would, so I followed; last night I knew you must have your shakes, so let you go it alone.”

The Indian smiled. “I knew you would, so I followed; last night I realized you must have your shakes, so I let you go it alone.”

Very carefully that deer was skinned, and Rolf learned the reason for many little modes of procedure.

Very carefully, they skinned the deer, and Rolf learned the reasons behind many little methods.

After the hide was removed from the body (not the hand or legs), Quonab carefully cut out the-broad sheath of tendon that cover the muscles, beginning at the hip bones on the back and extending up to the shoulders; this is the sewing sinew. Then he cut out the two long fillets of meat that lie on each side of the spine outside (the loin) and the two smaller ones inside (the tenderloin).

After the hide was taken off the body (not the hands or legs), Quonab carefully cut out the broad sheath of tendon that covered the muscles, starting at the hip bones on the back and extending up to the shoulders; this is the sewing sinew. Then he removed the two long strips of meat that lie on each side of the spine on the outside (the loin) and the two smaller ones on the inside (the tenderloin).

These, with the four quarters, the heart, and the kidneys, were put into the hide. The entrails, head, neck, legs, feet, he left for the foxes, but the hip bone or sacrum he hung in a tree with three little red yarns from them, so that the Great Spirit would be pleased and send good hunting. Then addressing the head he said: “Little brother, forgive us. We are sorry to kill you. Behold! we give you the honour of red streamers.” Then bearing the rest they tramped back to camp.

These, along with the four quarters, the heart, and the kidneys, were placed inside the hide. He left the entrails, head, neck, legs, and feet for the foxes, but he hung the hip bone or sacrum in a tree with three little red yarns attached to it, hoping the Great Spirit would be pleased and grant good hunting. Then, addressing the head, he said: “Little brother, please forgive us. We regret having to kill you. Look! We give you the honor of red streamers.” After that, they carried the rest and made their way back to camp.

The meat wrapped in sacks to keep off the flies was hung in the shade, but the hide he buried in the warm mud of a swamp hole, and three days later, when the hair began to slip, he scraped it clean. A broad ash wood hoop he had made ready and when the green rawhide was strained on it again the Indian had an Indian drum.

The meat wrapped in sacks to keep the flies away was hung in the shade, but he buried the hide in the warm mud of a swamp hole. Three days later, when the hair started to loosen, he scraped it clean. He had prepared a wide ash wood hoop, and when he stretched the green rawhide over it again, the Indian had himself a drum.

It was not truly dry for two or three days and as it tightened on its frame it gave forth little sounds of click and shrinkage that told of the strain the tensioned rawhide made. Quonab tried it that night as he sat by the fire softly singing:

It wasn't really dry for two or three days, and as it shrank on its frame, it made little clicking sounds that hinted at the strain from the taut rawhide. Quonab tested it that night while sitting by the fire, softly singing:

“Ho da ho-he da he.”

"Ho da ho-he da he."

But the next day before sunrise he climbed the hill and sitting on the sun-up rock he hailed the Day God with the invocation, as he had not sung it since the day they left the great rock above the Asalnuk, and followed with the song:

But the next day before sunrise, he climbed the hill and sat on the sun-up rock. He called out to the Day God with the invocation, as he hadn’t sung it since the day they left the great rock above the Asalnuk, and followed with the song:

“Father, we thank thee; We have found the good hunting. There is meat in the wigwam.”

“Father, we thank you; we have found good hunting. There is meat in the cabin.”





Chapter 22. The Line of Traps

Now that they had the cabin for winter, and food for the present, they must set about the serious business of trapping and lay a line of deadfalls for use in the coming cold weather. They were a little ahead of time, but it was very desirable to get their lines blazed through the woods in all proposed directions in case of any other trapper coming in. Most fur-bearing animals are to be found along the little valleys of the stream: beaver, otter, mink, muskrat, coon, are examples. Those that do not actually live by the water seek these places because of their sheltered character and because their prey lives there; of this class are the lynx, fox, fisher, and marten that feed on rabbits and mice. Therefore a line of traps is usually along some valley and over the divide and down some other valley back to the point of beginning.

Now that they had the cabin for winter and enough food for now, they needed to focus on the serious work of trapping and set up a line of deadfalls to use during the upcoming cold weather. They were a bit early, but it was important to mark out their routes through the woods in all planned directions to avoid any competition from other trappers. Most fur-bearing animals can be found along the small valleys of the stream: beavers, otters, minks, muskrats, and raccoons are examples. Animals that don’t live near the water are drawn to these areas because they provide shelter and food; these include lynxes, foxes, fishers, and martens, which feed on rabbits and mice. So, a line of traps typically runs along a valley, crosses over a divide, and down another valley back to the starting point.

So, late in September, Rolf and Quonab, with their bedding, a pot, food for four days, and two axes, alternately followed and led by Skookum, set out along a stream that entered the lake near their cabin. A quarter mile up they built their first deadfall for martens. It took them one hour and was left unset. The place was under a huge tree on a neck of land around which the stream made a loop. This tree they blazed on three sides. Two hundred yards up another good spot was found and a deadfall made. At one place across a neck of land was a narrow trail evidently worn by otters. “Good place for steel trap, bime-by,” was Quonab's remark.

So, late in September, Rolf and Quonab, carrying their bedding, a pot, four days' worth of food, and two axes, took turns being led and followed by Skookum as they set out along a stream that flowed into the lake near their cabin. A quarter mile up, they built their first deadfall for martens. It took them an hour and was left unset. The spot was beneath a massive tree on a piece of land where the stream looped around. They marked the tree on three sides. Two hundred yards further, they found another good spot and set up another deadfall. At one point, there was a narrow trail across a strip of land, obviously worn down by otters. "Good spot for a steel trap, later on," Quonab commented.

From time to time they disturbed deer, and in a muddy place where a deer path crossed the creek, they found, among the numerous small hoof prints, the track of wolves, bears, and a mountain lion, or panther. At these little Skookum sniffed fearsomely, and showed by his bristly mane that he was at least much impressed.

From time to time, they startled deer, and in a muddy spot where a deer path crossed the creek, they discovered, among many small hoof prints, the tracks of wolves, bears, and a mountain lion, or panther. At these moments, little Skookum sniffed anxiously and showed by his bristly mane that he was definitely quite impressed.

After five hours' travel and work they came to another stream joining on, and near the angle of the two little valleys they found a small tree that was chewed and scratched in a remarkable manner for three to six feet up. “Bear tree,” said Quonab, and by degrees Rolf got the facts about it.

After five hours of traveling and working, they arrived at another stream where it joined up, and close to the corner of the two small valleys, they discovered a little tree that was remarkably chewed and scratched from three to six feet high. “Bear tree,” Quonab said, and gradually, Rolf learned more about it.

The bears, and indeed most animals, have a way of marking the range that they consider their own. Usually this is done by leaving their personal odour at various points, covering the country claimed, but in some cases visible marks are added. Thus the beaver leaves a little dab of mud, the wolf scratches with his hind feet, and the bear tears the signal tree with tooth and claw. Since this is done from time to time, when the bear happens to be near the tree, it is kept fresh as long as the region is claimed. But it is especially done in midsummer when the bears are pairing, and helps them to find suitable companions, nor all are then roaming the woods seeking mates; all call and leave their mark on the sign post, so the next bear, thanks to his exquisite nose, can tell at once the sex of the bear that called last and by its track tell which way it travelled afterward.

The bears, like most animals, have their own method of marking the territory they consider theirs. They usually do this by leaving their scent at various spots throughout their claimed area, but sometimes they also make visible marks. For example, a beaver leaves a little bit of mud, a wolf scratches the ground with its back feet, and a bear tears at a tree with its teeth and claws. Since this marking is done occasionally whenever the bear is nearby, it remains fresh as long as the area is claimed. However, it’s especially common in midsummer when bears are looking for mates, helping them find suitable partners. Not all bears are out wandering the woods searching for mates; all of them call out and leave their mark on the signpost. This way, the next bear, thanks to its keen sense of smell, can immediately tell the sex of the last bear that called and, by following the tracks, know which direction it went afterward.

In this case it was a bear's register, but before long Quonab showed Rolf a place where two long logs joined at an angle by a tree that was rubbed and smelly, and showed a few marten hairs, indicating that this was the sign post of a marten and a good place to make a deadfall.

In this case, it was a bear's track, but soon Quonab showed Rolf a spot where two long logs met at an angle near a tree that was scratched and stinky, along with a few marten hairs, indicating that this was a marker for a marten and a great place to set a deadfall.

Yet a third was found in an open, grassy glade, a large, white stone on which were pellets left by foxes. The Indian explained:

Yet a third one was found in an open, grassy clearing, a large, white stone with pellets left by foxes on it. The Indian explained:

“Every fox that travels near will come and smell the stone to see who of his kind is around, so this is a good place for a fox-trap; a steel trap, of course, for no fox will go into a deadfall.”

“Every fox that comes by will sniff the stone to see which of its kind is nearby, so this is a great spot for a fox trap; a steel trap, obviously, since no fox will enter a deadfall.”

And slowly Rolf learned that these habits are seen in some measure in all animals; yes, down to the mice and shrews. We see little of it because our senses are blunt and our attention untrained; but the naturalist and the hunter always know where to look for the four-footed inhabitants and by them can tell whether or not the land is possessed by such and such a furtive tribe.

And gradually, Rolf realized that these behaviors can be observed to some extent in all animals, even down to mice and shrews. We notice little of it because our senses are dull and our focus unrefined; however, naturalists and hunters always know where to look for the four-legged residents and, from them, can determine whether a specific secretive group occupies the land.





Chapter 23. The Beaver Pond

AT THE noon halt they were about ten miles from home and had made fifteen deadfalls for marten, for practice was greatly reducing the time needed for each.

AT THE noon stop they were about ten miles from home and had set up fifteen deadfalls for marten, as practice was significantly shortening the time needed for each.

In the afternoon they went on, but the creek had become a mere rill and they were now high up in a more level stretch of country that was more or less swampy. As they followed the main course of the dwindling stream, looking ever for signs of fur-bearers, they crossed and recrossed the water. At length Quonab stopped, stared, and pointed at the rill, no longer clear but clouded with mud. His eyes shone as he jerked his head up stream and uttered the magic word, “Beaver.”

In the afternoon, they kept going, but the creek had turned into just a small stream, and they were now up in a flatter area that was pretty swampy. As they followed the main path of the shrinking stream, constantly searching for signs of furry animals, they crossed and recrossed the water. Eventually, Quonab stopped, looked intently, and pointed at the stream, which was now muddied and unclear. His eyes sparkled as he gestured upstream and said the magical word, “Beaver.”

They tramped westerly for a hundred yards through a dense swamp of alders, and came at last to an irregular pond that spread out among the willow bushes and was lost in the swampy thickets. Following the stream they soon came to a beaver dam, a long, curving bank of willow branches and mud, tumbling through the top of which were a dozen tiny streams that reunited their waters below to form the rivulet they had been following.

They walked west for a hundred yards through a thick swamp of alders and finally reached an uneven pond that spread out among the willow bushes and was hidden in the swampy underbrush. Following the stream, they quickly arrived at a beaver dam, a long, curved bank made of willow branches and mud, with a dozen small streams flowing over the top that came together below to form the little river they had been following.

Red-winged blackbirds were sailing in flocks about the pond; a number of ducks were to be seen, and on a dead tree, killed by the backed up water, a great blue heron stood. Many smaller creatures moved or flitted in the lively scene, while far out near the middle rose a dome-like pile of sticks, a beaver lodge, and farther three more were discovered. No beaver were seen, but the fresh cut sticks, the floating branches peeled of all the bark, and the long, strong dam in good repair were enough to tell a practised eye that here was a large colony of beavers in undisturbed possession.

Red-winged blackbirds were flying in flocks around the pond; several ducks were visible, and on a dead tree, damaged by backed-up water, a great blue heron stood. Many smaller creatures moved or darted in the lively scene, while far out near the center rose a dome-like pile of sticks, a beaver lodge, and further on, three more were spotted. No beavers were seen, but the freshly cut sticks, the floating branches stripped of bark, and the long, sturdy dam in good condition were enough to tell a trained eye that a large colony of beavers was living here undisturbed.

In those days beaver was one of the most valued furs. The creature is very easy to trap; so the discovery of the pond was like the finding of a bag of gold. They skirted its uncertain edges and Quonab pointed out the many landing places of the beaver; little docks they seemed, built up with mud and stones with deep water plunge holes alongside. Here and there on the shore was a dome-shaped ant's nest with a pathway to it from the pond, showing, as the Indian said, that here the beaver came on sunny days to lie on the hill and let the swarming ants come forth and pick the vermin from their fur. At one high point projecting into the still water they found a little mud pie with a very strong smell; this, the Indian said, was a “castor cache,” the sign that, among beavers, answers the same purpose as the bear tree among bears.

In those days, beaver fur was highly valued. The animal was easy to trap, so finding the pond felt like discovering a bag of gold. They walked along its unpredictable edges, and Quonab pointed out the many places where beavers could land; they looked like little docks made of mud and stones, with deep water plunge holes nearby. Here and there along the shore was a dome-shaped ant nest with a pathway leading to it from the pond, showing, as the Indian explained, that the beavers came here on sunny days to lie on the hill and let the busy ants pick the pests from their fur. At one high point jutting into the still water, they found a small mud pile with a strong smell; the Indian said this was a “castor cache,” which served a similar purpose among beavers as a bear tree does for bears.

Although the pond seemed small they had to tramp a quarter of a mile before reaching the upper end and here they found another dam, with its pond. This was at a slightly higher level and contained a single lodge; after this they found others, a dozen ponds in a dozen successive rises, the first or largest and the second only having lodges, but all were evidently part of the thriving colony, for fresh cut trees were seen on every side. “Ugh, good; we get maybe fifty beaver,” said the Indian, and they knew they had reached the Promised Land.

Although the pond looked small, they had to walk a quarter of a mile before reaching the upper end, where they discovered another dam with its own pond. This one was at a slightly higher level and had a single lodge. After that, they came across more, finding a dozen ponds in a series of rises. The first and largest, along with the second, each had lodges, but all were clearly part of a thriving colony, as fresh-cut trees were visible all around. “Awesome, we’ll probably get about fifty beaver,” said the Indian, and they realized they had arrived at the Promised Land.

Rolf would gladly have spent the rest of the day exploring the pond and trying for a beaver, when the eventide should call them to come forth, but Quonab said, “Only twenty deadfall; we should have one hundred and fifty.” So making for a fine sugar bush on the dry ground west of the ponds they blazed a big tree, left a deadfall there, and sought the easiest way over the rough hills that lay to the east, in hopes of reaching the next stream leading down to their lake.

Rolf would have happily spent the rest of the day exploring the pond and trying to catch a beaver when evening arrived, but Quonab said, “We only have twenty deadfalls; we should have one hundred and fifty.” So, they headed to a nice sugarbush on the dry land west of the ponds, marked a large tree, left a deadfall there, and looked for the easiest path over the rugged hills to the east, hoping to reach the next stream that led down to their lake.





Chapter 24. The Porcupine

Skookum was a partly trained little dog; he would stay in camp when told, if it suited him; and would not hesitate to follow or lead his master, when he felt that human wisdom was inferior to the ripe product of canine experience covering more than thirteen moons of recollection. But he was now living a life in which his previous experience must often fail him as a guide. A faint rustling on the leafy ground had sent him ahead at a run, and his sharp, angry bark showed that some hostile creature of the woods had been discovered. Again and again the angry yelping was changed into a sort of yowl, half anger, half distress. The hunters hurried forward to find the little fool charging again and again a huge porcupine that was crouched with its head under a log, its hindquarters exposed but bristling with spines; and its tail lashing about, left a new array of quills in the dog's mouth and face each time he charged. Skookum was a plucky fighter, but plainly he was nearly sick of it. The pain of the quills would, of course, increase every minute and with each movement. Quonab took a stout stick and threw the porcupine out of its retreat, (Rolf supposed to kill it when the head was exposed,) but the spiny one, finding a new and stronger enemy, wasted no time in galloping at its slow lumbering pace to the nearest small spruce tree and up that it scrambled to a safe place in the high branches.

Skookum was a partially trained little dog; he would stay in camp when told, if it suited him, and wouldn’t hesitate to follow or lead his master when he thought human judgment was inferior to his own doggy instincts shaped by more than thirteen moons of experience. But now he was living a life where his past experiences often failed him as a guide. A faint rustling on the leafy ground sent him running ahead, and his sharp, angry bark revealed that he had found some hostile creature in the woods. Again and again, his furious barking turned into a mix of yowls—half anger, half distress. The hunters rushed forward to find the little fool charging repeatedly at a huge porcupine that was crouched with its head under a log, its hindquarters exposed but bristling with quills. Each time Skookum charged, the porcupine’s lashing tail left a fresh set of quills in the dog’s mouth and face. Skookum was a brave fighter, but it was clear he was getting fed up. The pain from the quills was only going to get worse with every passing minute and movement. Quonab picked up a sturdy stick and threw the porcupine out of its hiding spot (Rolf guessed to kill it when its head was exposed), but the spiny creature, realizing it had a new and stronger threat, quickly lumbered away at its slow pace to the nearest small spruce tree, where it scrambled up to safety in the high branches.

Now the hunters called the dog. He was a sorry-looking object, pawing at his muzzle, first with one foot, then another, trying to unswallow the quills in his tongue, blinking hard, uttering little painful grunts and whines as he rubbed his head upon the ground or on his forelegs. Rolf held him while Quonab, with a sharp jerk, brought out quill after quill. Thirty or forty of the poisonous little daggers were plucked from his trembling legs, head, face, and nostrils, but the dreadful ones were those in his lips and tongue. Already they were deeply sunk in the soft, quivering flesh. One by one those in the lips were with-drawn by the strong fingers of the red man, and Skookum whimpered a little, but he shrieked outright when those in the tongue were removed. Rolf had hard work to hold him, and any one not knowing the case might have thought that the two men were deliberately holding the dog to administer the most cruel torture.

Now the hunters called the dog. He looked miserable, pawing at his mouth, first with one foot, then another, trying to dislodge the quills stuck in his tongue, blinking hard and giving little painful grunts and whines as he rubbed his head on the ground or against his legs. Rolf held him still while Quonab expertly pulled out quill after quill. Thirty or forty of those poisonous little needles were removed from his trembling legs, head, face, and nostrils, but the worst ones were lodged in his lips and tongue. They were already deeply embedded in the soft, quivering flesh. One by one, Quonab pulled out the quills from his lips with strong fingers, and Skookum whined a bit, but he cried out in pain when the ones in his tongue were taken out. Rolf struggled to hold him, and anyone unaware of the situation might have thought that the two men were intentionally torturing the dog.

But none of the quills had sunk very deep. All were got out at last and the little dog set free.

But none of the quills had gone in very deep. They were all eventually removed, and the little dog was set free.

Now Rolf thought of vengeance on the quill-pig snugly sitting in the tree near by.

Now Rolf thought about getting back at the porcupine comfortably sitting in the tree nearby.

Ammunition was too precious to waste, but Rolf was getting ready to climb when Quonab said: “No, no; you must not. Once I saw white man climb after the Kahk; it waited till he was near, then backed down, lashing its tail. He put up his arm to save his face. It speared his arm in fifty places and he could not save his face, so he tried to get down, but the Kahk came faster, lashing him; then he lost his hold and dropped. His leg was broken and his arm was swelled up for half a year. They are very poisonous. He nearly died.”

Ammunition was too valuable to waste, but Rolf was getting ready to climb when Quonab said, “No, no; you can’t do that. Once, I saw a white man climb after the Kahk. It waited until he was close, then backed down, whipping its tail. He raised his arm to protect his face. It pierced his arm in fifty places, and he couldn't protect his face, so he tried to climb down, but the Kahk came at him faster, lashing out; then he lost his grip and fell. His leg was broken, and his arm was swollen for six months. They are really poisonous. He nearly died.”

“Well, I can at least chop him down,” and Rolf took the axe.

“Well, I can at least take him down,” and Rolf grabbed the axe.

“Wah!” Quonab said, “no; my father said you must not kill the Kahk, except you make sacrifice and use his quills for household work. It is bad medicine to kill the Kahk.”

“Wow!” Quonab said, “no; my dad said you shouldn’t kill the Kahk, unless you make a sacrifice and use his quills for chores. It’s bad luck to kill the Kahk.”

So the spiny one was left alone in the place he had so ably fought for. But Skookum, what of him? He was set free at last. To be wiser? Alas, no! before one hour he met with another porcupine and remembering only his hate of the creature repeated the same sad mistake, and again had to have the painful help, without which he must certainly have died. Before night, however, he began to feel his real punishment and next morning no one would have known the pudding-headed thing that sadly followed the hunters, for the bright little dog that a day before had run so joyously through the woods. It was many a long day before he fully recovered and at one time his life was in the balance; and yet to the last of his days he never fully realized the folly of his insensate attacks on the creature that fights with its tail.

So the spiny one was left alone in the place he had fought so hard for. But what about Skookum? He was finally set free. To be wiser? Sadly, no! Within an hour, he encountered another porcupine and, remembering only his hatred for the creature, made the same sad mistake again. He had to receive painful help, without which he certainly would have died. By night, though, he started to feel his real punishment, and by the next morning, no one would have recognized the foolish creature sadly following the hunters, unlike the bright little dog that had joyfully dashed through the woods just a day before. It took him many long days to fully recover, and at one point, his life hung in the balance; yet, he never truly understood the foolishness of his reckless attacks on the creature that fights with its tail.

“It is ever so,” said the Indian. “The lynx, the panther, the wolf, the fox, the eagle, all that attack the Kahk must die. Once my father saw a bear that was killed by the quills. He had tried to bite the Kahk; it filled his mouth with quills that he could not spit out. They sunk deeper and his jaws swelled so he could not open or shut his mouth to eat; then he starved. My people found him near a fish pond below a rapid. There were many fish. The bear could kill them with his paw but not eat, so with his mouth wide open and plenty about him he died of starvation in that pool.

“It’s always been like that,” said the Indian. “The lynx, the panther, the wolf, the fox, the eagle – all that attack the Kahk must die. Once, my father saw a bear that was killed by the quills. He had tried to bite the Kahk; it filled his mouth with quills he couldn’t spit out. They sank deeper and his jaws swelled up so he couldn’t open or close his mouth to eat; then he starved. My people found him near a fish pond below a rapid. There were a lot of fish. The bear could catch them with his paw but couldn’t eat, so with his mouth wide open and plenty around him, he died of starvation in that pool.

“There is but one creature that can kill the Kahk that is the Ojeeg the big fisher weasel. He is a devil. He makes very strong medicine; the Kahk cannot harm him. He turns it on its back and tears open its smooth belly. It is ever so. We not know, but my father said, that it is because when in the flood Nana Bojou was floating on the log with Kahk and Ojeeg, Kahk was insolent and wanted the highest place, but Ojeeg was respectful to Nana Bojou, he bit the Kahk to teach him a lesson and got lashed with the tail of many stings. But the Manito drew out the quills and said: 'It shall be ever thus; the Ojeeg shall conquer the Kahk and the quills of Kahk shall never do Ojeeg any harm.'”

“There is only one creature that can kill the Kahk, and that is the Ojeeg, the big fisher weasel. He is a devil. He makes very strong medicine; the Kahk cannot hurt him. He flips it on its back and rips open its smooth belly. It’s always been this way. We don't know for sure, but my dad said it’s because when Nana Bojou was floating in the flood on a log with Kahk and Ojeeg, Kahk was arrogant and wanted the highest spot, while Ojeeg showed respect to Nana Bojou. He bit the Kahk to teach him a lesson and got whipped with painful stings in return. But the Manito pulled out the quills and said: 'It shall always be this way; the Ojeeg shall defeat the Kahk, and the quills of Kahk shall never harm the Ojeeg.'”





Chapter 25. The Otter Slide

It was late now and the hunters camped in the high cool woods. Skookum whined in his sleep so loudly as to waken them once or twice. Near dawn they heard the howling of wolves and the curiously similar hooting of a horned owl. There is, indeed, almost no difference between the short opening howl of a she-wolf and the long hoot of the owl. As he listened, half awake, Rolf heard a whirr of wings which stopped overhead, then a familiar chuckle. He sat up and saw Skookum sadly lift his misshapen head to gaze at a row of black-breasted grouse partridge on a branch above, but the poor doggie was feeling too sick to take any active interest. They were not ruffed grouse, but a kindred kind, new to Rolf. As he gazed at the perchers, he saw Quonab rise gently, go to nearest willow and cut a long slender rod at least two feet long; on the top of this he made a short noose of cord. Then he went cautiously under the watching grouse, the spruce partridges, and reaching up slipped the noose over the neck of the first one; a sharp jerk then tightened noose, and brought the grouse tumbling out of the tree while its companions merely clucked their puzzlement, made no effort to escape.

It was getting late, and the hunters were camped in the cool, high woods. Skookum whined loudly in his sleep, waking them up a couple of times. Near dawn, they heard the howling of wolves and the surprisingly similar hooting of a horned owl. There’s really not much difference between the short initial howl of a she-wolf and the long hoot of the owl. As he listened, half awake, Rolf heard the sound of wings overhead, which then stopped, followed by a familiar chuckle. He sat up and saw Skookum sadly lift his misshapen head to watch a row of black-breasted grouse perched on a branch above, but the poor dog was feeling too sick to take any real interest. They weren’t ruffed grouse, but a similar kind that was new to Rolf. As he looked at the birds, he saw Quonab rise quietly, walk to the nearest willow, and cut a long, slender rod at least two feet long. On the end, he made a short noose with some cord. Then he carefully went under the watchful grouse, reaching up to slip the noose over the neck of the first one; a sharp pull tightened the noose and brought the grouse tumbling out of the tree while its companions simply clucked in confusion, showing no effort to escape.

A short, sharp blow put the captive out of pain. The rod was reached again and a second, the lowest always, was jerked down, and the trick repeated till three grouse were secured. Then only did it dawn on the others that they were in a most perilous neighbourhood, so they took flight.

A quick, hard hit knocked the captive out of pain. The rod was pulled again, and a second one, always the lowest, was yanked down, and the trick was repeated until three grouse were caught. Only then did the others realize they were in a very dangerous area, so they took off.

Rolf sat up in amazement. Quonab dropped the three birds by the fire and set about preparing breakfast.

Rolf sat up in shock. Quonab dropped the three birds by the fire and started getting breakfast ready.

“These are fool hens,” he explained. “You can mostly get them this way; sure, if you have a dog to help, but ruffed grouse is no such fool.”

“These are dumb hens,” he explained. “You can usually get them like this; sure, if you have a dog to help, but ruffed grouse isn’t that easy.”

Rolf dressed the birds and as usual threw the entrails Skookum. Poor little dog! he was, indeed, a sorry sight. He looked sadly out of his bulging eyes, feebly moved swollen jaws, but did not touch the food he once would have pounced on. He did not eat because he could not open his mouth.

Rolf dressed the birds and, as usual, tossed the entrails to Skookum. Poor little dog! He was truly a pitiful sight. He looked forlornly out of his bulging eyes, weakly moved his swollen jaws, but didn’t touch the food he would have eagerly pounced on before. He couldn’t eat because he could hardly open his mouth.

At camp the trappers made a log trap and continued the line with blazes and deadfalls, until, after a mile, they came to a broad tamarack swamp, and, skirting its edge, found a small, outflowing stream that brought them to an eastward-facing hollow. Everywhere there were signs game, but they were not prepared for the scene that opened as they cautiously pushed through the thickets into a high, hardwood bush. A deer rose out of the grass and stared curiously at them; then another and another until nearly a dozen were in sight; still farther many others appeared; to the left were more, and movements told of yet others to the right. Then their white flags went up and all loped gently away on the slope that rose to the north. There may have been twenty or thirty deer in sight, but the general effect of all their white tails, bobbing away, was that the woods were full of deer. They seemed to be there by the hundreds and the joy of seeing so many beautiful live things was helped in the hunters by the feeling that this was their own hunting-ground. They had, indeed, reached the land of plenty.

At camp, the trappers set up a log trap and continued marking their path with blazes and deadfalls. After about a mile, they came to a wide tamarack swamp. Skirting its edge, they discovered a small stream flowing out, leading them to a hollow that faced east. Everywhere they looked, there were signs of game, but they weren't prepared for what they encountered as they cautiously pushed through the thickets into a tall, hardwood area. A deer stood up from the grass and watched them curiously; then another and another until nearly a dozen were in view. Even more appeared further away; to the left were additional deer, and movements indicated there were still others to the right. Then their white tails went up, and they all gently bounded away up the slope to the north. There may have been twenty or thirty deer visible, but the sight of all their white tails bobbing away gave the impression that the woods were teeming with deer. It felt like there were hundreds of them, and the thrill of seeing so many beautiful living creatures filled the hunters with joy, knowing this was their own hunting ground. They had, without a doubt, arrived in the land of plenty.

The stream increased as they marched; many springs and some important rivulets joined on. They found some old beaver signs but none new; and they left their deadfalls every quarter mile or less.

The stream grew larger as they walked; several springs and some significant rivulets joined in. They spotted some old beaver signs but nothing recent; and they placed their deadfalls every quarter mile or less.

The stream began to descend more quickly until it was in a long, narrow valley with steep clay sides and many pools. Here they saw again and again the tracks and signs of otter and coming quietly round a turn that opened a new reach they heard a deep splash, then another and another.

The stream started to drop faster until it reached a long, narrow valley with steep clay sides and lots of pools. Here, they repeatedly spotted tracks and signs of otters, and as they quietly rounded a bend that revealed a new stretch, they heard a deep splash, followed by another and then another.

The hunters' first thought was to tie up Skookum, but a glance showed that this was unnecessary. They softly dropped the packs and the sick dog lay meekly down beside them. Then they crept forward with hunter caution, favoured by an easterly breeze. Their first thought was of beaver, but they had seen no recent sign, nor was there anything that looked like a beaver pond. The measured splash, splash, splash—was not so far ahead. It might be a bear snatching fish, or—no, that was too unpleasant—a man baling out a canoe. Still the slow splash, splash, went on at intervals, not quite regular.

The hunters initially considered tying up Skookum, but a quick look revealed that it wasn't necessary. They quietly set down their packs, and the sick dog lay down calmly next to them. Then they moved forward carefully, benefiting from an easterly breeze. At first, they thought of beaver, but they hadn’t seen any recent signs, nor was there anything resembling a beaver pond. The rhythmic splash, splash, splash was not far ahead. It could be a bear catching fish, or—no, that thought was too unpleasant—a person bailing out a canoe. Still, the slow splash, splash continued at intervals, not quite regular.

Now it seemed but thirty yards ahead and in the creek.

Now it seemed to be just thirty yards ahead and in the creek.

With the utmost care they crawled to the edge of the clay and opposite they saw a sight but rarely glimpsed by man. Here were six otters; two evidently full-grown, and four seeming young of the pair, engaged in a most hilarious and human game of tobogganing down a steep clay hill to plump into a deep part at its foot.

With great care, they crawled to the edge of the clay, and on the other side, they saw a sight that few people ever see. There were six otters; two clearly adults and four that seemed to be the young ones of the pair, having a blast playing a human-like game of tobogganing down a steep clay hill and splashing into a deep spot at the bottom.

Plump went the largest, presumably the father; down he went, to reappear at the edge, scramble out and up an easy slope to the top of the twenty-foot bank. Splash, splash, splash, came three of the young ones; splash, splash, the mother and one of the cubs almost together.

Plump went the largest one, probably the father; down he went, only to come back up at the edge, scrambling out and climbing an easy slope to the top of the twenty-foot bank. Splash, splash, splash, came three of the young ones; splash, splash, the mother and one of the cubs almost together.

“Scoot” went the big male again, and the wet furslopping and rubbing on the long clay chute made it greasier and slipperier every time.

“Scoot,” went the big male again, and the wet fur slopping and rubbing on the long clay chute made it greasier and slipperier each time.

Splash, plump, splash—splash, plump, splash, went the otter family gleefully, running up the bank again, eager each to be first, it seemed, and to do the chute the oftenest.

Splash, plump, splash—splash, plump, splash, went the otter family joyfully, racing up the bank again, each eager to be first, it seemed, and to use the slide the most often.

The gambolling grace, the obvious good humour, the animal hilarity of it all, was absorbingly amusing. The trappers gazed with pleasure that showed how near akin are naturalist and hunter. Of course, they had some covetous thought connected with those glossy hides, but this was September still, and even otter were not yet prime. Shoot, plump, splash, went the happy crew with apparently unabated joy and hilarity. The slide improved with use and the otters seemed tireless; when all at once a loud but muffled yelp was heard and Skookum, forgetting all caution, came leaping down the bank to take a hand.

The playful grace, the evident good humor, and the sheer joy of it all were incredibly entertaining. The trappers watched with delight, showing how closely related naturalists and hunters really are. Sure, they had some greedy thoughts about those shiny pelts, but it was still September, and even the otters weren’t in prime condition yet. Shoot, plop, splash—went the cheerful group, seemingly filled with endless happiness and laughter. The slide got better with use, and the otters seemed unstoppable; then suddenly, a loud but muffled yelp was heard, and Skookum, throwing caution to the wind, came leaping down the bank to join in.

With a succession of shrill, birdy chirps the old otters warned their young. Plump, plump, plump, all shot into the pool, but to reappear, swimming with heads out, for they were but slightly alarmed. This was too much for Quonob; he levelled his flintlock; snap, bang, it went, pointed at the old male, but he dived at the snap and escaped. Down the bank now rushed the hunters, joined by Skookum, to attack the otters in the pool, for it was small and shallow; unless a burrow led from it, they were trapped.

With a series of sharp, bird-like chirps, the old otters signaled their young. Plump, plump, plump, they all jumped into the pool, but came back up, swimming with their heads out, as they were only slightly scared. This was too much for Quonob; he aimed his flintlock; snap, bang, it went, aimed at the old male, but he dove at the sound and got away. Down the bank rushed the hunters, joined by Skookum, to attack the otters in the pool, since it was small and shallow; unless there was a burrow leading from it, they were trapped.

But the otters realized the peril. All six dashed out of the pool, down the open, gravelly stream the old ones uttering loud chirps that rang like screams. Under the fallen logs and brush they glided, dodging beneath roots and over banks, pursued by the hunters, each armed with a club and by Skookum not armed at all.

But the otters recognized the danger. All six hurried out of the pool, down the open, gravelly stream, the older ones making loud chirps that sounded like screams. They slid under the fallen logs and brush, weaving beneath roots and over banks, chased by the hunters, each carrying a club, while Skookum wasn’t armed at all.

The otters seemed to know where they were going and distanced all but the dog. Forgetting his own condition Skookum had almost overtaken one of the otter cubs when the mother wheeled about and, hissing and snarling, charged. Skookum was lucky to get off with a slight nip, for the otter is a dangerous fighter. But the unlucky dog was sent howling back to the two packs that he never should have left.

The otters seemed to know exactly where they were headed and left everyone behind except for the dog. Ignoring his own situation, Skookum nearly caught up to one of the otter cubs when the mother turned around and, hissing and snarling, charged at him. Skookum was fortunate to escape with just a minor nip because otters are fierce fighters. But the unfortunate dog ended up howling back to the two packs he never should have left.

The hunters now found an open stretch of woods through which Quonab could run ahead and intercept the otters as they bounded on down the stream bed, pursued by Rolf, who vainly tried to deal a blow with his club. In a few seconds the family party was up to Quonab, trapped it seemed, but there is no more desperate assailant than an otter fighting for its young. So far from being cowed the two old ones made a simultaneous, furious rush at the Indian. Wholly taken by surprise, he missed with his club, and sprang aside to escape their jaws. The family dashed around then past him, and, urged by the continuous chirps of the mother, they plunged under a succession of log jams and into a willow swamp that spread out into an ancient beaver lake and were swallowed up in the silent wilderness.

The hunters found an open area in the woods where Quonab could run ahead and intercept the otters as they dashed down the stream bed, chased by Rolf, who was unsuccessfully trying to hit them with his club. Within seconds, the family reached Quonab, seemingly trapped, but an otter defending its young is incredibly fierce. Instead of backing down, the two adults lunged at the Indian simultaneously in a furious attack. Caught off guard, he missed with his club and jumped aside to avoid their jaws. The family darted around him and, spurred on by the mother’s constant chirps, they dove under a series of log jams and into a willow swamp that opened into an old beaver lake, disappearing into the quiet wilderness.





Chapter 26. Back to the Cabin

The far end of the long swamp the stream emerged, now much larger, and the trappers kept on with their work. When night fell they had completed fifty traps, all told, and again they camped without shelter overhead.

The far end of the long swamp, the stream flowed out, now much bigger, and the trappers continued their work. When night came, they had set up fifty traps in total, and once again they camped without any cover overhead.

Next day Skookum was so much worse that they began to fear for his life. He had eaten nothing since the sad encounter. He could drink a little, so Rolf made a pot of soup, and when it was cool the poor doggie managed to swallow some of the liquid after half an hour's patient endeavour.

Next day, Skookum was feeling even worse, and they started to worry for his life. He hadn't eaten anything since that unfortunate incident. He could drink a little, so Rolf made a pot of soup, and when it cooled down, the poor dog managed to swallow some of the liquid after half an hour of trying patiently.

They were now on the home line; from a hill top they got a distant view of their lake, though it was at least five miles away. Down the creek they went, still making their deadfalls at likely places and still seeing game tracks at the muddy spots. The creek came at length to an extensive, open, hardwood bush, and here it was joined by another stream that came from the south, the two making a small river. From then on they seemed in a land of game; trails of deer were seen on the ground everywhere, and every few minutes they started one or two deer. The shady oak wood itself was flanked and varied with dense cedar swamps such as the deer love to winter in, and after they had tramped through two miles of it, the Indian said, “Good! now we know where to come in winter when we need meat.”

They were now on the way home; from a hilltop, they caught a distant glimpse of their lake, even though it was at least five miles away. They followed the creek, still building their deadfalls in promising spots and spotting game tracks in the muddy areas. Eventually, the creek led them to a large, open hardwood forest, where it met another stream coming from the south, forming a small river. After that, it felt like they were in a land full of game; deer trails were visible everywhere, and every few minutes they startled one or two deer. The shady oak forest was surrounded and varied with thick cedar swamps, which the deer tend to love in the winter, and after they had walked through two miles of it, the Indian said, “Great! Now we know where to come in winter when we need meat.”

At a broad, muddy ford they passed an amazing number of tracks, mostly deer, but a few of panther, lynx, fisher, wolf, otter, and mink.

At a wide, muddy crossing, they saw an astonishing number of tracks, mostly from deer, but a few from panthers, lynxes, fishers, wolves, otters, and minks.

In the afternoon they reached the lake. The stream, quite a broad one here, emptied in about four miles south of the camp. Leaving a deadfall near its mouth they followed the shore and made a log trap every quarter mile just above the high water mark.

In the afternoon, they arrived at the lake. The stream, fairly wide at this point, flowed out about four miles south of the camp. After passing a deadfall near its mouth, they followed the shore and set up a log trap every quarter mile just above the high water mark.

When they reached the place of Rolf's first deer they turned aside to see it. The gray jays had picked a good deal of the loose meat. No large animal had troubled it, and yet in the neighbourhood they found the tracks of both wolves and foxes.

When they got to the spot where Rolf's first deer was, they decided to check it out. The gray jays had eaten a lot of the loose meat. No large animal had disturbed it, but they did find tracks from both wolves and foxes nearby.

“Ugh,” said Quonab, “they smell it and come near, but they know that a man has been here; they are not very hungry, so keep away. This is good for trap.”

“Ugh,” said Quonab, “they smell it and come close, but they know a man has been here; they’re not very hungry, so stay away. This is good for trapping.”

So they made two deadfalls with the carrion half way between them. Then one or two more traps and they reached home, arriving at the camp just as darkness and a heavy rainfall began.

So they set up two deadfalls with the carcass halfway between them. Then they added one or two more traps and headed home, getting to the camp just as it started to get dark and rain heavily.

“Good,” said Quonab, “our deadfalls are ready; we have done all the work our fingers could not do when the weather is very cold, and the ground too hard for stakes to be driven. Now the traps can get weathered before we go round and set them. Yet we need some strong medicine, some trapper charm.”

“Good,” said Quonab, “our deadfalls are ready; we’ve finished all the work our hands couldn’t do when it was really cold and the ground was too hard to put in stakes. Now the traps can get weathered before we go around and set them. But we need some strong medicine, some trapper charm.”

Next morning he went forth with fish-line and fish-spear; he soon returned with a pickerel. He filled a bottle with cut-up shreds of this, corked it up, and hung it on the warm, sunny side of the shanty. “That will make a charm that every bear will come to,” he said, and left it to the action of the sun.

The next morning, he went out with a fishing line and spear; he quickly came back with a pickerel. He filled a bottle with chopped pieces of it, corked it, and hung it on the warm, sunny side of the cabin. “That will attract every bear,” he said, and left it for the sun to do its work.





Chapter 27. Sick Dog Skookum

Getting home is always a joy; but walking about the place in the morning they noticed several little things that were wrong. Quonab's lodge was down, the paddles that stood against the shanty were scattered on the ground, and a bag of venison hung high at the ridge was opened and empty.

Getting home is always a pleasure; but as they walked around the place in the morning, they noticed several little things that were off. Quonab's lodge was down, the paddles leaning against the shanty were scattered on the ground, and a bag of venison that hung high at the ridge was opened and empty.

Quonab studied the tracks and announced “a bad old black bear; he has rollicked round for mischief, upsetting things. But the venison he could not reach; that was a marten that ripped open the bag.”

Quonab looked at the tracks and said, “It’s an old black bear; he’s been messing around and knocking things over. But he couldn’t get to the venison; that was a marten that tore open the bag.”

“Then that tells what we should do; build a storehouse at the end of the shanty,” said Rolf, adding, “it must be tight and it must be cool.”

“Then that tells us what to do; let’s build a storage room at the end of the shanty,” Rolf said, adding, “it has to be secure and it has to stay cool.”

“Maybe! sometime before winter,” said the Indian; “but now we should make another line of traps while the weather is fine.”

“Maybe! Sometime before winter,” said the Indian; “but right now we should set up another line of traps while the weather is nice.”

“No,” replied the lad, “Skookum is not fit to travel now. We can't leave him behind, and we can make a storehouse in three days.”

“No,” the young man said, “Skookum isn’t ready to travel right now. We can’t leave him behind, and we can build a storehouse in three days.”

The unhappy little dog was worse than ever. He could scarcely breathe, much less eat or drink, and the case was settled.

The sad little dog was in even worse shape. He could barely breathe, let alone eat or drink, and it was clear what the outcome would be.

First they bathed the invalid's head in water as hot as he could stand it. This seemed to help him so much that he swallowed eagerly some soup that they poured into his mouth. A bed was made for him in a sunny place and the hunters set about the new building.

First, they bathed the patient’s head in water as hot as he could handle. This seemed to help him so much that he eagerly swallowed some soup they poured into his mouth. A bed was set up for him in a sunny spot, and the hunters got to work on the new building.

In three days the storehouse was done, excepting the chinking. It was October now, and a sharp night frost warned them of the hard white moons to come. Quonab, as he broke the ice in a tin cup and glanced at the low-hung sun, said: “The leaves are falling fast; snow comes soon; we need another line of traps.”

In three days, the storage building was finished, except for the chinking. It was October now, and a sharp night frost reminded them of the harsh winter nights ahead. Quonab, while breaking the ice in a tin cup and looking at the low-hanging sun, said, “The leaves are falling quickly; snow is coming soon; we need another line of traps.”

He stopped suddenly; stared across the lake. Rolf looked, and here came three deer, two bucks and a doe, trotting, walking, or lightly clearing obstacles, the doe in advance; the others, rival followers. As they kept along the shore, they came nearer the cabin. Rolf glanced at Quonab, who nodded, then slipped in, got down the gun, and quickly glided unseen to the river where the deer path landed. The bucks did not actually fight, for the season was not yet on, but their horns were clean, their necks were swelling, and they threatened each other as they trotted after the leader. They made for the ford as for some familiar path, and splashed through, almost without swimming. As they landed, Rolf waited a clear view, then gave a short sharp “Hist!” It was like a word of magic, for it turned the three moving deer to three stony-still statues. Rolf's sights were turned on the smaller buck, and when the great cloud following the bang had deared away, the two were gone and the lesser buck was kicking on the ground some fifty yards away.

He stopped suddenly and stared across the lake. Rolf looked, and here came three deer—two bucks and a doe—trotting, walking, or lightly jumping over obstacles, the doe leading the way while the others followed closely. As they moved along the shore, they approached the cabin. Rolf glanced at Quonab, who nodded, then slipped inside, grabbed the gun, and quickly made his way unseen to the river where the deer path led. The bucks didn’t actually fight since the season hadn’t started yet, but their antlers were sharp, their necks were thickening, and they threatened each other as they followed the leader. They headed for the ford like it was a familiar route, splashing through with almost no effort. When they reached the other side, Rolf waited for a clear shot, then gave a quick sharp “Hist!” It was like a magic word, freezing the three moving deer into still statues. Rolf had his sights on the smaller buck, and when the loud bang faded away, the two deer were gone, and the smaller buck was kicking on the ground about fifty yards away.

“We have found the good hunting; the deer walk into camp,” said Quonab; and the product of the chase was quickly stored, the first of the supplies to be hung in the new storehouse.

“We’ve found some great hunting; the deer are coming into camp,” said Quonab; and the results of the hunt were quickly stored, the first of the supplies to be hung in the new storehouse.

The entrails were piled up and covered with brush and stones. “That will keep off ravens and jays; then in winter the foxes will come and we can take their coats.”

The guts were stacked up and hidden under branches and rocks. “That will keep away the crows and jays; then in winter the foxes will show up and we can take their fur.”

Now they must decide for the morning. Skookum was somewhat better, but still very sick, and Rolf suggested: “Quonab, you take the gun and axe and lay a new line. I will stay behind and finish up the cabin for the winter and look after the dog.” So it was agreed. The Indian left the camp alone this time and crossed to the east shore of the lake; there to follow up another stream as before and to return in three or four days to the cabin.

Now they have to make a decision for the morning. Skookum was a bit better, but still really sick, and Rolf suggested, “Quonab, you take the gun and axe and set a new line. I’ll stay back and finish up the cabin for winter and take care of the dog.” So, they agreed. This time, the Indian left the camp alone and crossed to the east shore of the lake; there, he would follow another stream like before and come back to the cabin in three or four days.





Chapter 28. Alone in the Wilderness

Rolf began the day by giving Skookum a bath as hot as he could stand it, and later his soup. For the first he whined feebly and for the second faintly wagged his tail; but clearly he was on the mend.

Rolf started the day by giving Skookum a bath as hot as he could handle, and later fed him some soup. For the bath, Skookum whined weakly, and for the soup, he wagged his tail a bit, but it was clear he was getting better.

Now the chinking and moss-plugging of the new cabin required all attention. That took a day and looked like the biggest job on hand, but Rolf had been thinking hard about the winter. In Connecticut the wiser settlers used to bank their houses for the cold weather; in the Adirondacks he knew it was far, far colder, and he soon decided to bank the two shanties as deeply as possible with earth. A good spade made of white oak, with its edge hardened by roasting it brown, was his first necessity, and after two days of digging he had the cabin with its annex buried up to “the eyes” in fresh, clean earth.

Now the chinking and moss-plugging of the new cabin needed all his attention. That took a day and seemed like the biggest task ahead, but Rolf had been thinking hard about the winter. In Connecticut, the smarter settlers used to pile up dirt around their houses for the cold weather; in the Adirondacks, he knew it was much colder, and he quickly decided to bank both shanties as deeply as possible with soil. A good spade made of white oak, with its edge hardened by roasting it brown, was his first priority, and after two days of digging, he had the cabin and its annex buried up to “the eyes” in fresh, clean earth.

A stock of new, dry wood for wet weather helped to show how much too small the cabin was; and now the heavier work was done, and Rolf had plenty of time to think.

A supply of new, dry wood for rainy days highlighted just how small the cabin really was; now that the hard work was finished, Rolf had plenty of time to reflect.

Which of us that has been left alone in the wilderness does not remember the sensations of the first day! The feeling of self-dependency, not unmixed with unrestraint; the ending of civilized thought; the total reversion to the primitive; the nearness of the wood-folk; a sense of intimacy; a recurrent feeling of awe at the silent inexorability of all around; and a sweet pervading sense of mastery in the very freedom. These were among the feelings that swept in waves through Rolf, and when the first night came, he found such comfort—yes, he had to confess it—in the company of the helpless little dog whose bed was by his own.

Which of us who has been left alone in the wild doesn’t remember the feelings of the first day? The sense of independence, mixed with a lack of restraint; the end of civilized thinking; a complete return to the primitive; the closeness of the woodland creatures; a feeling of intimacy; a recurring sense of wonder at the silent inevitability of everything around; and a lovely, all-encompassing feeling of control in the freedom itself. These were some of the emotions that flooded through Rolf, and when night fell, he found such comfort—yes, he had to admit it—in the company of the helpless little dog whose bed was next to his own.

But these were sensations that come not often; in the four days and nights that he was alone they lost all force.

But these were feelings that didn't come around often; in the four days and nights that he was alone, they lost all their strength.

The hunter proverb about “strange beasts when you have no gun” was amply illustrated now that Quonab had gone with their only firearm. The second night before turning in (he slept in the shanty now), he was taking a last look at the stars, when a large, dark form glided among the tree trunks between him and the shimmering lake; stopped, gazed at him, then silently disappeared along the shore. No wonder that he kept the shanty door closed that night, and next morning when he studied the sandy ridges he read plainly that his night visitor had been not a lynx or a fox, but a prowling cougar or panther.

The hunter saying about “weird creatures when you don’t have a gun” was clearly shown now that Quonab had taken their only firearm. The second night before going to bed (he was sleeping in the cabin now), he was taking one last look at the stars when a large, dark shape moved silently among the tree trunks between him and the glimmering lake; it paused, stared at him, and then quietly vanished along the shore. It’s no surprise that he kept the cabin door shut that night, and the next morning when he examined the sandy ridges, it was clear that his nighttime visitor had been a prowling cougar or panther, not a lynx or a fox.

On the third morning as he went forth in the still early dawn he heard a snort, and looking toward the spruce woods, was amazed to see towering up, statuesque, almost grotesque, with its mulish ears and antediluvian horns, a large bull moose.

On the third morning, as he stepped out into the quiet early dawn, he heard a snort. Turning to the spruce woods, he was shocked to see a large bull moose standing tall—almost absurd, with its mule-like ears and ancient-looking horns.

Rolf was no coward, but the sight of that monster so close to him set his scalp a-prickling. He felt so helpless without any firearms. He stepped into the cabin, took down his bow and arrows, then gave a contemptuous “Humph; all right for partridge and squirrels, but give me a rifle for the woods!” He went out again; there was the moose standing as before. The lad rushed toward it a few steps, shouting; it stared unmoved. But Rolf was moved, and he retreated to the cabin. Then remembering the potency of fire he started a blaze on the hearth. The thick smoke curled up on the still air, hung low, made swishes through the grove, until a faint air current took a wreath of it to the moose. The great nostrils drank in a draught that conveyed terror to the creature's soul, and wheeling it started at its best pace to the distant swamp, to be seen no more.

Rolf wasn't a coward, but seeing that monster so close made his skin crawl. He felt totally defenseless without any guns. He stepped into the cabin, grabbed his bow and arrows, and scoffed, “Humph; fine for partridge and squirrels, but I need a rifle for the woods!” He went back outside; the moose was still standing there. The young man ran a few steps toward it, shouting, but it just stared without flinching. Rolf, on the other hand, felt shaken and retreated back to the cabin. Remembering the power of fire, he started a fire in the hearth. The thick smoke spiraled up into the still air, hung low, and swept through the grove until a slight breeze carried a wisp of it toward the moose. The massive nostrils inhaled deeply, sending a wave of fear through the creature, which quickly turned and dashed toward the distant swamp, never to be seen again.

Five times, during these four days, did deer come by and behave as though they knew perfectly well that this young human was harmless, entirely without the power of the far-killing mystery.

Five times over these four days, deer came by and acted like they knew this young human was harmless, completely devoid of the ability to invoke the deadly mystery.

How intensely Rolf wished for a gun. How vividly came back the scene in the trader's store,—when last month he had been offered a beautiful rifle for twenty-five dollars, to be paid for in fur next spring, and savagely he blamed himself for not realizing what a chance it was. Then and there he made resolve to be the owner of a gun as soon as another chance came, and to make that chance come right soon.

How badly Rolf wanted a gun. He could clearly remember the moment in the trader's store when he had been offered a beautiful rifle for twenty-five dollars, to be paid for in fur next spring, and he angrily regretted not recognizing what a great opportunity it was. Right then and there, he decided that he would own a gun as soon as another chance came along, and he was determined to make that chance happen soon.

One little victory he had in that time. The creature that had torn open the venison bag was still around the camp; that was plain by the further damage on the bag hung in the storehouse, the walls of which were not chinked. Mindful of Quonab's remark, he set two marten traps, one on the roof, near the hole that had been used as entry; the other on a log along which the creature must climb to reach the meat. The method of setting is simple; a hollow is made, large enough to receive the trap as it lies open; on the pan of the trap some grass is laid smoothly; on each side of the trap a piece of prickly brush is placed, so that in leaping over these the creature will land on the lurking snare. The chain was made fast to a small log.

One small win he had during that time. The animal that had ripped open the venison bag was still near the camp; that was obvious from the additional damage to the bag hanging in the storehouse, which had unchinked walls. Remembering Quonab's comment, he set two marten traps—one on the roof, close to the hole that had been used for entry, and the other on a log that the animal would have to climb to get to the meat. The way to set the trap is simple: a hollow is made that's big enough to hold the trap while it's open; some grass is neatly placed on the trap's pan; on each side of the trap, a piece of prickly brush is positioned so that when the animal jumps over, it will land on the hidden snare. The chain was securely fastened to a small log.

Although so seldom seen there is no doubt that the marten comes out chiefly by day. That night the trap remained unsprung; next morning as Rolf went at silent dawn to bring water from the lake, he noticed a long, dark line that proved to be ducks. As he sat gazing he heard a sound in the tree beyond the cabin. It was like the scratching of a squirrel climbing about. Then he saw the creature, a large, dark squirrel, it seemed. It darted up this tree and down that, over logs and under brush, with the lightning speed of a lightning squirrel, and from time to time it stopped still as a bump while it gazed at some far and suspicious object. Up one trunk it went like a brown flash, and a moment later, out, cackling from its top, flew two partridges. Down to the ground, sinuous, graceful, incessantly active flashed the marten. Along a log it raced in undulating leaps; in the middle it stopped as though frozen, to gaze intently into a bed of sedge; with three billowy bounds its sleek form reached the sedge, flashed in and out again with a mouse in its snarling jaws; a side leap now, and another squeaker was squeakless, and another. The three were slain, then thrown aside, as the brown terror scanned a flight of ducks passing over. Into a thicket of willow it disappeared and out again like an eel going through the mud, then up a tall stub where woodpecker holes were to be seen. Into the largest it went so quickly Rolf could scarcely see how it entered, and out in a few seconds bearing a flying squirrel whose skull it had crushed. Dropping the squirrel it leaped after it, and pounced again on the quivering form with a fearsome growl; then shook it savagely, tore it apart, cast it aside. Over the ground it now undulated, its shining yellow breast like a target of gold. Again it stopped. Now in pose like a pointer, exquisitely graceful, but oh, so wicked! Then the snaky neck swung the cobra head in the breeze and the brown one sniffed and sniffed, advanced a few steps, tried the wind and the ground. Still farther and the concentrated interest showed in its outstretched neck and quivering tail. Bounding into a thicket it went, when out of the other side there leaped a snowshoe rabbit, away and away for dear life. Jump, jump, jump; twelve feet at every stride, and faster than the eye could follow, with the marten close behind. What a race it was, and how they twinkled through the brush! The rabbit is, indeed, faster, but courage counts for much, and his was low; but luck and his good stars urged him round to the deer trail crossing of the stream; once there he could not turn. There was only one course. He sprang into the open river and swam for his life. And the marten—why should it go in? It hated the water; it was not hungry; it was out for sport, and water sport is not to its liking. It braced its sinewy legs and halted at the very brink, while bunny crossed to the safe woods.

Although it's rarely seen, the marten mostly comes out during the day. That night, the trap remained unsprung; the next morning, as Rolf quietly went to get water from the lake at dawn, he noticed a long, dark line that turned out to be ducks. As he sat watching, he heard a noise in the tree beyond the cabin. It sounded like a squirrel climbing around. Then he spotted the creature, which looked like a large, dark squirrel. It darted up this tree and down that one, over logs and under brush, moving as quickly as a squirrel. From time to time, it would freeze, staring intently at something suspicious in the distance. It shot up one trunk like a brown flash, and moments later, two partridges flew out with a cackle from the top. The marten dashed gracefully to the ground, moving quickly and smoothly along a log; it paused in the middle as if it were frozen, gazing intently into a patch of sedge. With three fluid bounds, it reached the sedge, dove in and out again, clutching a mouse in its snarling jaws. A quick leap to the side, and another squeaker was silenced, then another. The three were killed and discarded as the brown predator looked up at a flight of ducks passing overhead. It vanished into a thicket of willows and popped out like an eel through mud, then leaped up a tall stub where woodpecker holes could be seen. It slipped into the largest hole so fast that Rolf could hardly see how it got in, and moments later emerged carrying a flying squirrel, its skull crushed. It dropped the squirrel, leaped after it, and pounced again on the twitched form with a fearsome growl; then it shook it violently, tore it apart, and tossed it aside. It moved smoothly over the ground, its shining yellow breast resembling a target of gold. It stopped again, posing like a pointer, beautifully graceful yet oh, so wicked! Then its slender neck swayed, sniffing the breeze while it carefully advanced a few steps, testing the wind and the ground. As it moved further, its concentrated interest showed in its outstretched neck and quivering tail. It bounded into a thicket, and out the other side burst a snowshoe rabbit, fleeing for its life. Jump, jump, jump; twelve feet with every stride, faster than the eye could follow, with the marten right on its tail. What a race it was, zigzagging through the brush! The rabbit was indeed faster, but bravery matters, and his was running low; however, luck and good stars led him to a deer trail crossing the stream; once there, he couldn’t change course. His only option was to leap into the open river and swim for his life. And the marten—why would it follow? It hated the water; it wasn’t hungry; it was just in it for the chase, and water sports weren't its thing. It braced its sinewy legs and stopped right at the edge while the bunny made its way to safety in the woods.

Back now came Wahpestan, the brown death, over the logs like a winged snake, skimming the ground like a sinister shadow, and heading for the cabin as the cabin's owner watched. Passing the body of the squirrel it paused to rend it again, then diving into the brush came out so far away and so soon that the watcher supposed at first that this was another marten. Up the shanty corner it flashed, hardly appearing to climb, swung that yellow throat and dark-brown muzzle for a second, then made toward the entry.

Back came Wahpestan, the brown death, gliding over the logs like a winged snake, skimming the ground like an ominous shadow, and heading for the cabin as the cabin's owner watched. It paused to tear apart the body of the squirrel, then dove into the brush and emerged so far away, and so quickly, that the observer initially thought it was another marten. It shot up the shanty corner, barely seeming to climb, flashed its yellow throat and dark-brown muzzle for a moment, then headed toward the entry.

Rolf sat with staring eyes as the beautiful demon, elegantly spurning the roof sods, went at easy, measured bounds toward the open chink—toward its doom. One, two, three—clearing the prickly cedar bush, its forefeet fell on the hidden trap; clutch, a savage shriek, a flashing,—a struggle baffling the eyes to follow, and the master of the squirrels was himself under mastery.

Rolf sat wide-eyed as the beautiful demon gracefully jumped over the roof sods and headed boldly toward the open gap—toward its doom. One, two, three—clearing the prickly cedar bush, its front feet landed on the hidden trap; a grip, a savage scream, a flash,—a struggle so fast it was hard to follow, and the master of the squirrels was now under someone else's control.

Rolf rushed forward now. The little demon in the trap was frothing with rage and hate; it ground the iron with its teeth; it shrieked at the human foeman coming.

Rolf rushed forward now. The little demon in the trap was frothing with rage and hate; it ground the iron with its teeth; it shrieked at the human enemy approaching.

The scene must end, the quicker the better, and even as the marten itself had served the flying squirrel and the mice, and as Quonab served the mink, so Rolf served the marten and the woods was still.

The scene needs to wrap up, the sooner the better, and just like the marten had helped the flying squirrel and the mice, and how Quonab helped the mink, Rolf helped the marten, and the woods was quiet.





Chapter 29. Snowshoes

“That's for Annette,” said Rolf, remembering his promise as he hung the stretched marten skin to dry.

“That's for Annette,” Rolf said, recalling his promise as he hung the stretched marten skin up to dry.

“Yi! Yi! Yi!” came three yelps, just as he had heard them the day he first met Quonab, and crossing the narrow lake he saw his partner's canoe.

“Yay! Yay! Yay!” came three yelps, just like he had heard them the day he first met Quonab, and crossing the narrow lake he saw his partner's canoe.

“We have found the good hunting,” he said, as Rolf steadied the canoe at the landing and Skookum, nearly well again, wagged his entire ulterior person to welcome the wanderer home. The first thing to catch the boy's eye was a great, splendid beaver skin stretched on a willow hoop.

“We’ve found great hunting,” he said, as Rolf steadied the canoe at the landing and Skookum, almost fully recovered, wagged his whole body to welcome the wanderer home. The first thing to catch the boy's eye was a huge, beautiful beaver skin stretched on a willow hoop.

“Ho, ho!” he exclaimed.

"Ho, ho!" he exclaimed.

“Ugh; found another pond.”

“Ugh, found another pond.”

“Good, good,” said Rolf as he stroked the first beaver skin he had ever seen in the woods.

“Good, good,” Rolf said as he ran his hand over the first beaver pelt he had ever seen in the woods.

“This is better,” said Quonab, and held up the two barkstones, castors, or smell-glands that are found in every beaver and which for some hid reason have an irresistible attraction for all wild animals. To us the odour is slight, but they have the power of intensifying, perpetuating, and projecting such odorous substances as may be mixed with them. No trapper considers his bait to be perfect without a little of the mysterious castor. So that that most stenchable thing they had already concocted of fish-oil, putrescence, sewer-gas, and sunlight, when commingled and multiplied with the dried-up powder of a castor, was intensified into a rich, rancid, gas-exhaling hell-broth as rapturously bewitching to our furry brothers as it is poisonously nauseating to ourselves—seductive afar like the sweetest music, inexorable as fate, insidious as laughing-gas, soothing and numbing as absinthe—this, the lure and caution-luller, is the fellest trick in all the trappers' code. As deadly as inexplicable, not a few of the states have classed it with black magic and declared its use a crime.

“This is better,” Quonab said, holding up the two castor sacs, or smell-glands, found in every beaver that, for some hidden reason, have an irresistible attraction for all wild animals. To us, the smell is faint, but they can enhance, prolong, and project any scent mixed with them. No trapper considers his bait perfect without a bit of the mysterious castor. So, that foul concoction they’d made from fish oil, rot, sewer gas, and sunlight, when combined and amplified with the dried powder of a castor, turned into a rich, rancid, gas-emitting brew that is irresistibly enticing to our furry friends but poisonously sickening to us—seductive from a distance like the sweetest music, unavoidable as fate, sneaky like laughing gas, and soothing and numbing like absinthe—this, the lure and caution-distractor, is the deadliest trick in all the trappers' playbook. As dangerous as it is mysterious, several states have classified it as black magic and made its use illegal.

But no such sentiment prevailed in the high hills of Quonab's time, and their preparations for a successful trapping season were nearly perfect. Thirty deadfalls made by Quonab, with the sixty made on the first trip and a dozen steel traps, were surely promise of a good haul. It was nearly November now; the fur was prime; then why not begin? Because the weather was too fine. You must have frosty weather or the creatures taken in the deadfalls are spoiled before the trapper can get around.

But no such feeling was present in the high hills during Quonab's time, and their preparations for a successful trapping season were nearly flawless. Thirty deadfalls made by Quonab, along with the sixty made on the first trip and a dozen steel traps, guaranteed a good catch. It was almost November now; the fur was prime; so why not start? Because the weather was too nice. You need frosty weather or the animals caught in the deadfalls spoil before the trapper can get to them.

Already a good, big pile of wood was cut; both shanty and storeroom were chinked, plugged, and banked for the winter. It was not safe yet to shoot and store a number of deer, but there was something they could do. Snowshoes would soon be a necessary of life; and the more of this finger work they did while the weather was warm, the better.

Already, a good, big pile of wood was cut; both the cabin and storage room were sealed up and prepared for winter. It wasn't safe yet to hunt and store several deer, but there was still something they could work on. Snowshoes would soon be essential, and the more of this detailed work they did while the weather was warm, the better.

Birch and ash are used for frames; the former is less liable to split, but harder to work. White ash was plentiful on the near flat, and a small ten-foot log was soon cut and split into a lot of long laths. Quonab of course took charge; but Rolf followed in everything. Each took a lath and shaved it down evenly until an inch wide and three quarters of an inch thick. The exact middle was marked, and for ten inches at each side of that it was shaved down to half an inch in thickness. Two flat crossbars, ten and twelve inches long, were needed and holes to receive these made half through the frame. The pot was ready boiling and by using a cord from end to end of each lath they easily bent it in the middle and brought the wood into touch with the boiling water. Before an hour the steam had so softened the wood, and robbed it of spring, that it was easy to make it into any desired shape. Each lath was cautiously bent round; the crossbars slipped into their prepared sockets; a temporary lashing of cord kept all in place; then finally the frames were set on a level place with the fore end raised two inches and a heavy log put on the frame to give the upturn to the toe.

Birch and ash are used for frames; birch is less likely to split but harder to work with. White ash was abundant on the nearly flat land, and a small ten-foot log was quickly cut and split into several long strips. Quonab naturally took charge, but Rolf followed closely. Each of them took a strip and shaved it down until it was one inch wide and three-quarters of an inch thick. They marked the exact middle, and for ten inches on each side, they shaved it down to half an inch thick. They needed two flat crossbars, ten and twelve inches long, and made holes to receive these halfway through the frame. The pot was boiling, and by using a cord from one end of each strip to the other, they easily bent it in the middle and brought the wood into contact with the boiling water. In under an hour, the steam had softened the wood and removed its springiness, making it easy to shape. Each strip was carefully bent; the crossbars were slipped into their prepared slots; a temporary lashing of cord held everything in place; then finally, the frames were set on a level surface with the front end raised two inches, and a heavy log was placed on the frame to give an upward curve to the toe.

Here they were left to dry and the Indian set about preparing the necessary thongs. A buckskin rolled in wet, hard wood ashes had been left in the mud hole. Now after a week the hair was easily scraped off and the hide, cleaned and trimmed of all loose ends and tags, was spread out—soft, white, and supple. Beginning outside, and following round and round the edge, Quonab cut a thong of rawhide as nearly as possible a quarter inch wide. This he carried on till there were many yards of it, and the hide was all used up. The second deer skin was much smaller and thinner. He sharpened his knife and cut it much finer, at least half the width of the other. Now they were ready to lace the shoes, the finer for the fore and back parts, the heavy for the middle on which the wearer treads. An expert squaw would have laughed at the rude snowshoes that were finished that day, but they were strong and serviceable.

Here they were left to dry, and the Indian got to work preparing the necessary thongs. A buckskin rolled in wet, hardened wood ashes had been left in the mud hole. After a week, the hair came off easily, and the hide, cleaned and trimmed of all loose ends and tags, was spread out—soft, white, and supple. Starting from the outside and moving around the edge, Quonab cut a thong of rawhide as close to a quarter-inch wide as possible. He continued until he had several yards of it, and the hide was completely used up. The second deer skin was much smaller and thinner. He sharpened his knife and cut it even finer, at least half the width of the first one. Now they were ready to lace the shoes, using the thinner for the front and back parts and the heavier for the middle where the wearer steps. A skilled woman would have laughed at the crude snowshoes finished that day, but they were strong and practical.

Naturally the snowshoes suggested a toboggan. That was easily made by splitting four thin boards of ash, each six inches wide and ten feet long. An up-curl was steamed on the prow of each, and rawhide lashings held all to the crossbars.

Naturally, the snowshoes suggested a sled. That was easy to make by splitting four thin boards of ash, each six inches wide and ten feet long. An up-curl was steamed at the front of each one, and rawhide lashings held everything to the crossbars.





Chapter 30. Catching a Fox

     “As to wisdom, a man ain't a spring; he's a tank, an' gives
     out only what he gathers”—Sayings of Si Sylvanne
     “When it comes to wisdom, a man isn’t a spring; he’s a tank, and only shares what he collects.” — Sayings of Si Sylvanne

Quonab would not quit his nightly couch in the canvas lodge so Rolf and Skookum stayed with him. The dog was himself again, and more than once in the hours of gloom dashed forth in noisy chase of something which morning study of the tracks showed to have been foxes. They were attracted partly by the carrion of the deer, partly by the general suitability of the sandy beach for a gambolling place, and partly by a foxy curiosity concerning the cabin, the hunters, and their dog.

Quonab wouldn’t leave his nightly spot on the couch in the canvas lodge, so Rolf and Skookum stayed with him. The dog was back to his old self, and more than once during the dark hours, he bolted outside in a noisy chase after something that morning tracks revealed was foxes. They were drawn in partly by the dead deer, partly because the sandy beach was a great place to play, and partly by their curious nature about the cabin, the hunters, and their dog.

One morning after several night arousings and many raids by Skookum, Rolf said: “Fox is good now; why shouldn't I add some fox pelts to that?” and he pointed with some pride to the marten skin.

One morning after being woken up multiple times at night and dealing with several raids by Skookum, Rolf said, “Fox is good now; why shouldn’t I add some fox pelts to that?” and he pointed with some pride to the marten skin.

“Ugh, good; go ahead; you will learn,” was the reply.

“Ugh, fine; go for it; you’ll find out,” was the reply.

So getting out the two fox traps Rolf set to work. Noting where chiefly the foxes ran or played he chose two beaten pathways and hid the traps carefully, exactly as he did for the marten; then selecting a couple of small cedar branches he cut these and laid them across the path, one on each side of the trap, assuming that the foxes following the usual route would leap over the boughs and land in disaster. To make doubly sure he put a piece of meat by each trap and half-way between them set a large piece on a stone.

So, Rolf got to work setting up the two fox traps. He paid attention to where the foxes usually ran or played and picked two well-trodden paths, carefully hiding the traps just like he had for the marten. Then, he selected a couple of small cedar branches, cut them, and laid them across the path—one on each side of the trap—thinking that the foxes following their usual route would jump over the branches and end up in trouble. To be extra sure, he placed a piece of meat by each trap and set a large piece on a stone halfway between them.

Then he sprinkled fresh earth over the pathways and around each trap and bait so he should have a record of the tracks.

Then he spread fresh dirt over the paths and around each trap and bait so he would have a record of the tracks.

Foxes came that night, as he learned by the footprints along the beach, but never one went near his traps. He studied the marks; they slowly told him all the main facts. The foxes had come as usual, and frolicked about. They had discovered the bait and the traps at once—how could such sharp noses miss them—and as quickly noted that the traps were suspicious-smelling iron things, that manscent, hand, foot, and body, were very evident all about; that the only inducement to go forward was some meat which was coarse and cold, not for a moment to be compared with the hot juicy mouse meat that abounded in every meadow. The foxes were well fed and unhungry. Why should they venture into such evident danger? In a word, walls of stone could not have more completely protected the ground and the meat from the foxes than did the obvious nature of the traps; not a track was near, and many afar showed how quickly they had veered off.

Foxes came that night, as he learned from the footprints along the beach, but not one approached his traps. He examined the marks; they gradually revealed all the key facts. The foxes had come as usual and played around. They immediately discovered the bait and the traps—how could such keen noses miss them?—and quickly realized that the traps were suspicious-smelling iron devices, with the scent of humans—hands, feet, and bodies—strongly present. The only reason to go near was some coarse, cold meat, which couldn't compare to the hot, juicy mouse meat found in every meadow. The foxes were well-fed and not hungry. Why would they risk venturing into such obvious danger? In short, the traps' clear warning provided even more protection than walls of stone, and not a single track was close by, while many distant ones showed how quickly they had changed direction.

“Ugh, it is always so,” said Quonab. “Will you try again?”

“Ugh, it’s always like this,” said Quonab. “Will you try again?”

“Yes, I will,” replied Rolf, remembering now that he had omitted to deodorize his traps and his boots.

“Yes, I will,” Rolf replied, now realizing that he had forgotten to deodorize his traps and boots.

He made a fire of cedar and smoked his traps, chains, and all. Then taking a piece of raw venison he rubbed it on his leather gloves and on the soles of his boots, wondering how he had expected to succeed the night before with all these man-scent killers left out. He put fine, soft moss under the pan of each trap, then removed the cedar brush, and gently sprinkled all with fine, dry earth. The set was perfect; no human eye could have told that there was any trap in the place. It seemed a foregone success.

He built a fire with cedar and smoked his traps, chains, and everything. Then, taking a piece of raw venison, he rubbed it on his leather gloves and the soles of his boots, questioning how he thought he would succeed the night before with all these human-scent killers left out. He placed soft, fine moss under the pan of each trap, then removed the cedar brush and lightly sprinkled everything with dry earth. The setup was flawless; no human eye could have spotted any traps in the area. It felt like a guaranteed success.

“Fox don't go by eye,” was all the Indian said, for he reckoned it best to let the learner work it out.

“Foxes don’t rely on sight,” was all the Indian said, as he thought it was better to let the learner figure it out.

In the morning Rolf was up eager to see the results. There was nothing at all. A fox had indeed, come within ten feet at one place, but behaved then as though positively amused at the childishness of the whole smelly affair. Had a man been there on guard with a club, he could not have kept the spot more wholly clear of foxes. Rolf turned away baffled and utterly puzzled. He had not gone far before he heard a most terrific yelping from Skookum, and turned to see that trouble-seeking pup caught by the leg in the first trap. It was more the horrible surprise than the pain, but he did howl.

In the morning, Rolf was up, eager to see the results. There was nothing at all. A fox had indeed come within ten feet at one spot but then acted as if it found the whole smelly situation amusing. If a man had been standing guard with a club, he couldn't have kept that area more clear of foxes. Rolf turned away, baffled and completely puzzled. He hadn't gone far before he heard a terrible yelping from Skookum and turned to see that trouble-seeking pup caught by the leg in the first trap. It was more the horrible surprise than the pain, but he did howl.

The hunters came quickly to the rescue and at once he was freed, none the worse, for the traps have no teeth; they merely hold. It is the long struggle and the starvation chiefly that are cruel, and these every trapper should cut short by going often around his line.

The hunters rushed in to help, and he was quickly freed, not harmed at all, since the traps don’t have teeth; they just hold you in place. It’s the long struggle and the hunger that are truly cruel, and every trapper should minimize that by checking his lines frequently.

Now Quonab took part. “That is a good setting for some things. It would catch a coon, a mink, or a marten,—or a dog—but not a fox or a wolf. They are very clever. You shall see.”

Now Quonab joined in. “That's a great setup for some things. It could catch a raccoon, a mink, or a marten—or even a dog—but not a fox or a wolf. They're really clever. You’ll see.”

The Indian got out a pair of thick leather gloves, smoked them in cedar, also the traps. Next he rubbed his moccasin soles with raw meat and selecting a little bay in the shore he threw a long pole on the sand, from the line of high, dry shingle across to the water's edge. In his hand he carried a rough stake. Walking carefully on the pole and standing on it, he drove the stake in at about four feet from the shore; then split it, and stuffed some soft moss into the split. On this he poured three or four drops of the “smell-charm.” Now he put a lump of spruce gum on the pan of the trap, holding a torch under it till the gum was fused, and into this he pressed a small, flat stone. The chain of the trap he fastened to a ten-pound stone of convenient shape, and sank the stone in the water half-way between the stake and the shore. Last he placed the trap on this stone, so that when open everything would be under water except the flat stone on the pan. Now he returned along the pole and dragged it away with him.

The Indian took out a pair of thick leather gloves and smoked them in cedar, along with the traps. Then he rubbed the soles of his moccasins with raw meat and, choosing a small bay on the shore, threw a long pole onto the sand, stretching from the line of high, dry pebbles to the water's edge. He held a rough stake in his hand. Carefully walking on the pole and balancing on it, he drove the stake into the ground about four feet from the shore; then he split it and stuffed some soft moss into the split. On top of this, he poured three or four drops of the “smell-charm.” Next, he placed a lump of spruce gum on the pan of the trap, holding a torch underneath it until the gum melted, then pressed a small, flat stone into the melted gum. He attached the chain of the trap to a ten-pound stone of a suitable shape and sank the stone in the water halfway between the stake and the shore. Finally, he placed the trap on this stone so that when it was open, everything would be underwater except the flat stone on the pan. He then made his way back along the pole and pulled it away with him.

Thus there was now no track or scent of human near the place.

Thus, there was no trail or scent of anyone nearby.

The setting was a perfect one, but even then the foxes did not go near it the following night; they must become used to it. In their code, “A strange thing is always dangerous.” In the morning Rolf was inclined to scoff. But Quonab said: “Wah! No trap goes first night.”

The setting was perfect, but even then the foxes didn't approach it the next night; they needed to get used to it. In their code, “A strange thing is always dangerous.” In the morning, Rolf felt like making fun of it. But Quonab said, “Wow! No trap gets set off on the first night.”

They did not need to wait for the second morning. In the middle of the night Skookum rushed forth barking, and they followed to see a wild struggle, the fox leaping to escape and fast to his foot was the trap with its anchor stone a-dragging.

They didn't have to wait for the second morning. In the middle of the night, Skookum burst out barking, and they followed to see a fierce struggle, with the fox jumping to get away, its foot caught in a trap dragging an anchor stone.

Then was repeated the scene that ended the struggle of mink and marten. The creature's hind feet were tied together and his body hung from a peg in the shanty. In the morning they gloated over his splendid fur and added his coat to their store of trophies.

Then the scene that ended the struggle between the mink and marten was repeated. The animal's hind feet were bound together and its body was hung from a peg in the cabin. In the morning, they reveled in its beautiful fur and added its coat to their collection of trophies.





Chapter 31. Following the Trap Line

That night the moon changed. Next day came on with a strong north wind. By noon the wild ducks had left the lake. Many long strings of geese passed southeastward, honking as they flew. Colder and colder blew the strong wind, and soon the frost was showing on the smaller ponds. It snowed a little, but this ceased. With the clearing sky the wind fell and the frost grew keener.

That night, the moon changed. The next day arrived with a strong north wind. By noon, the wild ducks had left the lake. Many long lines of geese flew southeast, honking as they went. The wind blew colder and colder, and soon frost began to appear on the smaller ponds. It snowed a bit, but that stopped. As the sky cleared, the wind calmed down and the frost became sharper.

At daybreak, when the hunters rose, it was very cold. Everything but the open lake was frozen over, and they knew that winter was come; the time of trapping was at hand. Quonab went at once to the pinnacle on the hill, made a little fire, then chanting the “Hunter's Prayer,” he cast into the fire the whiskers of the fox and the marten, some of the beaver castor, and some tobacco. Then descended to prepare for the trail—blankets, beaver traps, weapons, and food for two days, besides the smell-charm and some fish for bait.

At daybreak, when the hunters woke up, it was really cold. Everything except the open lake was frozen, and they knew winter had arrived; trapping season was about to begin. Quonab immediately went to the high point on the hill, built a small fire, then while reciting the “Hunter's Prayer,” he threw the whiskers of the fox and the marten, some beaver castor, and some tobacco into the flames. Then he went back down to get ready for the trip—blankets, beaver traps, weapons, and food for two days, along with a smell-charm and some fish for bait.

Quickly the deadfalls were baited and set; last the Indian threw into the trap chamber a piece of moss on which was a drop of the “smell,” and wiped another drop on each of his moccasins. “Phew,” said Rolf.

Quickly, they baited and set the traps; finally, the Indian tossed a piece of moss with a drop of the “smell” into the trap chamber and wiped another drop on each of his moccasins. “Phew,” Rolf said.

“That make a trail the marten follow for a month,” was the explanation. Skookum seemed to think so too, and if he did not say “phew,” it was because he did not know how.

“That creates a trail the marten follows for a month,” was the explanation. Skookum seemed to agree, and if he didn’t say “phew,” it was because he didn’t know how.

Very soon the little dog treed a flock of partridge and Rolf with blunt arrows secured three. The breasts were saved for the hunters' table, but the rest with the offal and feathers made the best of marten baits and served for all the traps, till at noon they reached the beaver pond. It was covered with ice too thin to bear, but the freshly used landing places were easily selected. At each they set a strong, steel beaver-trap, concealing it amid some dry grass, and placing in a split stick a foot away a piece of moss in which were a few drops of the magic lure. The ring on the trap chain was slipped over a long, thin, smooth pole which was driven deep in the mud, the top pointing away from the deep water. The plan was old and proven. The beaver, eager to investigate that semifriendly smell, sets foot in the trap; instinctively when in danger he dives for the deep water; the ring slips along the pole till at the bottom and there it jams so that the beaver cannot rise again and is drowned.

Very soon, the little dog chased a flock of partridges, and Rolf managed to get three with his blunt arrows. The breasts were saved for the hunters' table, but the rest, along with the entrails and feathers, made great bait for marten traps and served for all the traps until they reached the beaver pond by noon. It was covered with ice that was too thin to support weight, but they could easily spot the recently used landing spots. At each spot, they set a sturdy steel beaver trap, hiding it among some dry grass, and placed a piece of moss with a few drops of the magic lure on a split stick a foot away. They slipped the ring on the trap chain over a long, thin, smooth pole that was driven deep into the mud, with the top pointing away from the deep water. This method was tried and true. The beaver, curious about that semi-friendly smell, steps into the trap; instinctively, when in danger, it dives for deeper water; the ring slides along the pole until it reaches the bottom, where it gets stuck, preventing the beaver from rising and causing it to drown.

In an hour the six traps were set for the beavers; presently the hunters, skirmishing for more partridges, had much trouble to save Skookum from another porcupine disaster.

In an hour, the six traps were set for the beavers; soon, the hunters, chasing after more partridges, had a hard time keeping Skookum safe from another porcupine disaster.

They got some more grouse, baited the traps for a couple of miles, then camped for the night.

They caught some more grouse, set up the traps for a couple of miles, then camped for the night.

Before morning it came on to snow and it was three inches deep when they arose. There is no place on earth where the first snow is more beautiful than in the Adirondacks. In early autumn nature seems to prepare for it. Green leaves are cleared away to expose the berry bunches in red; rushbeds mass their groups, turn golden brown and bow their heads to meet the silver load; the low hills and the lines of various Christmas trees are arrayed for the finest effect: the setting is perfect and the scene, but it lacks the lime light yet. It needs must have the lavish blaze of white. And when it comes like the veil on a bride, the silver mountings on a charger's trappings, or the golden fire in a sunset, the shining crystal robe is the finishing, the crowning glory, without which all the rest must fail, could have no bright completeness. Its beauty stirred the hunters though it found no better expression than Rolf's simple words, “Ain't it fine,” while the Indian gazed in silence.

Before morning, it started to snow, and it was three inches deep by the time they got up. There’s no place on earth where the first snowfall is more beautiful than in the Adirondacks. In early autumn, nature seems to get ready for it. Green leaves are cleared away to show off the red berry bunches; rush beds cluster together, turning golden brown and bowing down to carry their silver load; the low hills and lines of various Christmas trees are arranged for the best effect: the setting is perfect and the scene is stunning, but it still needs the spotlight. It has to have that lavish burst of white. And when it comes like a veil on a bride, like the silver adornments on a horse’s gear, or like the golden glow in a sunset, the shining crystal robe is the finishing touch, the crowning glory, without which all the rest would fall short, lacking bright completeness. Its beauty captivated the hunters, though Rolf could only manage a simple, “Ain't it fine,” while the Indian observed in silence.

There is no other place in the eastern woods where the snow has such manifold tales to tell, and the hunters that day tramping found themselves dowered over night with the wonderful power of the hound to whom each trail is a plain record of every living creature that has passed within many hours. And though the first day after a storm has less to tell than the second, just as the second has less than the third, there was no lack of story in the snow. Here sped some antlered buck, trotting along while yet the white was flying. There went a fox, sneaking across the line of march, and eying distrustfully that deadfall. This broad trail with many large tracks not far apart was made by one of Skookum's friends, a knight of many spears. That bounding along was a marten. See how he quartered that thicket like a hound, here he struck our odour trail. Mark, how he paused and whiffed it; now away he goes; yes, straight to our trap.

There’s no other spot in the eastern woods where the snow has so many stories to share, and the hunters that day, trudging through, found themselves gifted overnight with the amazing ability of the hound to read every trail as a clear record of each living creature that has passed by in the last several hours. And while the first day after a storm has less to reveal than the second, just as the second has less than the third, the snow was still full of tales. Here raced some antlered buck, trotting along while the white was still falling. There went a fox, sneaking across the path and eyeing that deadfall with suspicion. This broad trail with many large tracks spaced closely was made by one of Skookum's friends, a knight of many spears. That bounding creature was a marten. Look how he moved through that thicket like a hound; here he picked up our scent trail. Notice how he paused and sniffed it; now he’s off; yes, straight to our trap.

“It's down; hurrah!” Rolf shouted, for there, dead under the log, was an exquisite marten, dark, almost black, with a great, broad, shining breast of gold.

“It's down; hooray!” Rolf shouted, because there, lifeless under the log, was a beautiful marten, dark, nearly black, with a large, shiny gold chest.

They were going back now toward the beaver lake. The next trap was sprung and empty; the next held the body of a red squirrel, a nuisance always and good only to rebait the trap he springs. But the next held a marten, and the next a white weasel. Others were unsprung, but they had two good pelts when they reached the beaver lake. They were in high spirits with their good luck, but not prepared for the marvellous haul that now was theirs. Each of the six traps held a big beaver, dead, drowned, and safe. Each skin was worth five dollars, and the hunters felt rich. The incident had, moreover, this pleasing significance: It showed that these beavers were unsophisticated, so had not been hunted. Fifty pelts might easily be taken from these ponds.

They were heading back toward Beaver Lake now. The next trap was sprung and empty; the one after that had the body of a red squirrel, which was always a nuisance and only good for rebaiting the trap it sprang. But the next trap held a marten, and the following one had a white weasel. Some traps were still unsprung, but they had two good pelts by the time they reached Beaver Lake. They were in high spirits with their good luck, but they weren’t ready for the amazing haul that awaited them. Each of the six traps contained a big beaver, dead, drowned, and safe. Each pelt was worth five dollars, and the hunters felt rich. Moreover, this incident had a nice implication: It showed that these beavers were naive, so they hadn't been hunted. Fifty pelts could easily be taken from these ponds.

The trappers reset the traps; then dividing the load, sought a remote place to camp, for it does not do to light a fire near your beaver pond. One hundred and fifty pounds of beaver, in addition, to their packs, was not a load to be taken miles away; within half a mile on a lower level they selected a warm place, made a fire, and skinned their catch. The bodies they opened and hung in a tree with a view to future use, but the pelts and tails they carried on.

The trappers reset the traps, then divided the load and looked for a secluded spot to camp because it's not a good idea to start a fire near your beaver pond. One hundred and fifty pounds of beaver, plus their packs, was too heavy to carry far, so they chose a warm place just half a mile down at a lower elevation, made a fire, and skinned their catch. They opened the bodies and hung them in a tree for future use, but they carried the pelts and tails with them.

They made a long, hard tramp that day, baiting all the traps and reached home late in the night.

They took a long, exhausting hike that day, setting all the traps, and got home late at night.





Chapter 32. The Antler-bound Bucks

IN THE man-world, November is the month of gloom, despair, and many suicides. In the wild world, November is the Mad Moon. Many and diverse the madnesses of the time, but none more insane than the rut of the white-tailed deer. Like some disease it appears, first in the swollen necks of the antler-bearers, and then in the feverish habits of all. Long and obstinate combats between the bucks now, characterize the time; neglecting even to eat, they spend their days and nights in rushing about and seeking to kill.

IN THE man-world, November is a month filled with gloom, despair, and a high rate of suicides. In the wild, November is the Mad Moon. There are many different forms of madness during this time, but none is more chaotic than the rutting season of the white-tailed deer. It shows up like a sickness, first evident in the swollen necks of the bucks, and spreads to the rest of the animals. Long and intense battles between the bucks mark this period; they neglect to eat and instead spend their days and nights running around and trying to assert their dominance.

Their horns, growing steadily since spring, are now of full size, sharp, heavy, and cleaned of the velvet; in perfection. For what? Has Nature made them to pierce, wound, and destroy? Strange as it may seem, these weapons of offence are used for little but defence; less as spears than as bucklers they serve the deer in battles with its kind. And the long, hard combats are little more than wrestling and pushing bouts; almost never do they end fatally. When a mortal thrust is given, it is rarely a gaping wound, but a sudden springing and locking of the antlers, whereby the two deer are bound together, inextricably, hopelessly, and so suffer death by starvation. The records of deer killed by their rivals and left on the duel-ground are few; very few and far between. The records of those killed by interlocking are numbered by the scores.

Their horns, which have been growing since spring, are now fully developed, sharp, heavy, and free of velvet; they’re perfect. But for what? Did Nature give them to pierce, injure, and kill? Surprisingly, these offensive weapons are mainly used for defense; they act more like shields than spears when deer fight each other. The long, intense battles are mostly just wrestling and pushing matches; they almost never end in death. When a serious injury does occur, it’s not usually a deep wound, but rather a sudden locking of the antlers, which causes the two deer to become stuck together, inevitably leading to death by starvation. The number of deer killed by their rivals and left on the battlefield is very rare; it’s extremely uncommon. In contrast, the number of those that die from locking antlers is counted in the dozens.

There were hundreds of deer in this country that Rolf and Quonab claimed. Half of them were bucks, and at least half of these engaged in combat some times or many times a day, all through November; that is to say, probably a thousand duels were fought that month within ten miles of the cabin. It was not surprising that Rolf should witness some of them, and hear many more in the distance.

There were hundreds of deer in the area that Rolf and Quonab claimed. Half of them were males, and at least half of those males fought each other sometimes or many times a day throughout November; in other words, probably a thousand duels happened that month within ten miles of the cabin. It was not surprising that Rolf witnessed some of them and heard many more in the distance.

They were living in the cabin now, and during the still, frosty nights, when he took a last look at the stars, before turning in, Rolf formed the habit of listening intently for the voices of the gloom. Sometimes it was the “hoo-hoo” of the horned-owl, once or twice it was the long, smooth howl of the wolf; but many times it was the rattle of antlers that told of two bucks far up in the hardwoods, trying out the all-important question, “Which is the better buck?”

They were living in the cabin now, and during the quiet, chilly nights, when he took a final look at the stars before heading to bed, Rolf got into the habit of listening closely for the sounds of the night. Sometimes it was the “hoo-hoo” of the horned owl, a few times it was the deep, smooth howl of the wolf; but often it was the sound of antlers clashing that indicated two bucks high up in the woods, debating the crucial question, “Which is the better buck?”

One morning he heard still an occasional rattle at the same place as the night before. He set out alone, after breakfast, and coming cautiously near, peered into a little, open space to see two bucks with heads joined, slowly, feebly pushing this way and that. Their tongues were out; they seemed almost exhausted, and the trampled snow for an acre about plainly showed that they had been fighting for hours; that indeed these were the ones he had heard in the night. Still they were evenly matched, and the green light in their eyes told of the ferocious spirit in each of these gentle-looking deer.

One morning he still heard an occasional rattle in the same spot as the night before. After breakfast, he set out alone and, moving cautiously closer, peeked into a small clearing to see two bucks with their antlers locked together, slowly and weakly pushing against each other. Their tongues were hanging out; they looked almost exhausted, and the trampled snow for an acre around clearly showed that they had been fighting for hours; indeed, these were the ones he had heard during the night. Yet they were evenly matched, and the green light in their eyes revealed the fierce spirit in each of these gentle-looking deer.

Rolf had no difficulty in walking quite near. If they saw him, they gave slight heed to the testimony of their eyes, for the unenergetic struggle went on until, again pausing for breath, they separated, raised their heads a little, sniffed, then trotted away from the dreaded enemy so near. Fifty yards off, they turned, shook their horns, seemed in doubt whether to run away, join battle again, or attack the man. Fortunately the first was their choice, and Rolf returned to the cabin.

Rolf had no trouble walking pretty close. If they spotted him, they barely acknowledged what they saw, as their lackluster struggle continued until they paused to catch their breath, separated, lifted their heads slightly, sniffed, and then trotted away from the scary enemy that was so close. Fifty yards away, they stopped, shook their horns, and seemed unsure whether to run, fight again, or confront Rolf. Luckily, they chose to run, and Rolf headed back to the cabin.

Quonab listened to his account, then said: “You might have been killed. Every buck is crazy now. Often they attack man. My father's brother was killed by a Mad Moon buck. They found only his body, torn to rags. He had got a little way up a tree, but the buck had pinned him. There were the marks, and in the snow they could see how he held on to the deer's horns and was dragged about till his strength gave out. He had no gun. The buck went off. That was all they knew. I would rather trust a bear than a deer.”

Quonab listened to his story and said, “You could have been killed. Every buck is wild right now. They often attack people. My uncle was killed by a crazy buck during the Mad Moon. They only found his body, torn to pieces. He managed to climb a little way up a tree, but the buck pinned him down. There were the marks, and in the snow, they could see how he held onto the deer's antlers and was dragged around until he couldn’t hold on anymore. He had no gun. The buck ran off. That’s all they knew. I’d trust a bear over a deer any day.”

The Indian's words were few, but they drew a picture all too realistic. The next time Rolf heard the far sound of a deer fight, it brought back the horror of that hopeless fight in the snow, and gave him a new and different feeling for the antler-bearer of the changing mood.

The Indian's words were few, but they painted a strikingly realistic image. The next time Rolf heard the distant sounds of a deer fight, it reminded him of the terror of that desperate struggle in the snow, and gave him a new and different perspective on the antlered creature embodying the shifting mood.

It was two weeks after this, when he was coming in from a trip alone on part of the line, when his ear caught some strange sounds in the woods ahead; deep, sonorous, semi-human they were. Strange and weird wood-notes in winter are nearly sure to be those of a raven or a jay; if deep, they are likely to come from a raven.

It was two weeks later when he was returning from a solo trip along part of the line, and he heard some strange sounds coming from the woods ahead; they were deep, resonant, and somewhat human-like. Odd and eerie sounds in the winter are usually those of a raven or a jay; if they're deep, they’re probably from a raven.

“Quok, quok, ha, ha, ha-hreww, hrrr, hooop, hooop,” the diabolic noises came, and Rolf, coming gently forward, caught a glimpse of sable pinions swooping through the lower pines.

“Quok, quok, ha, ha, ha-hreww, hrrr, hooop, hooop,” the creepy noises came, and Rolf, moving cautiously forward, caught a glimpse of dark wings swooping through the lower pines.

“Ho, ho, ho yah—hew—w—w—w” came the demon laughter of the death birds, and Rolf soon glimpsed a dozen of them in the branches, hopping or sometimes flying to the ground. One alighted on a brown bump. Then the bump began to move a little. The raven was pecking away, but again the brown bump heaved and the raven leaped to a near perch. “Wah—wah—wah—wo—hoo—yow—wow—rrrrrr-rrrr-rrrr”—and the other ravens joined in.

“Ho, ho, ho yeah—hew—w—w—w” echoed the demon laughter of the death birds, and Rolf quickly spotted a dozen of them in the branches, hopping or sometimes flying down to the ground. One landed on a brown lump. Then the lump started to move a bit. The raven was pecking away, but once again the brown lump shifted, and the raven jumped to a nearby branch. “Wah—wah—wah—wo—hoo—yow—wow—rrrrrr-rrrr-rrrr”—and the other ravens chimed in.

Rolf had no weapons but his bow, his pocket knife, and a hatchet. He took the latter in his hand and walked gently forward; the hollow-voiced ravens “haw—hawed,” then flew to safe perches where they chuckled like ghouls over some extra-ghoulish joke.

Rolf had no weapons except for his bow, a pocket knife, and a hatchet. He picked up the hatchet and quietly moved ahead; the hollow-voiced ravens cawed, then flew to safe spots where they laughed like ghouls over some particularly dark joke.

The lad, coming closer, witnessed a scene that stirred him with mingled horror and pity. A great, strong buck—once strong, at least—was standing, staggering, kneeling there; sometimes on his hind legs, spasmodically heaving and tugging at a long gray form on the ground, the body of another buck, his rival, dead now, with a broken neck, as it proved, but bearing big, strong antlers with which the antlers of the living buck were interlocked as though riveted with iron, bolted with clamps of steel. With all his strength, the living buck could barely move his head, dragging his adversary's body with him. The snow marks showed that at first he had been able to haul the carcass many yards; had nibbled a little at shoots and twigs; but that was when he was stronger, was long before. How long? For days, at least, perhaps a week, that wretched buck was dying hopelessly a death that would not come. His gaunt sides, his parched and lolling tongue, less than a foot from the snow and yet beyond reach, the filmy eye, whose opaque veil of death was illumined again with a faint fire of fighting green as the new foe came. The ravens had picked the eyes out of the dead buck and eaten a hole in its back. They had even begun on the living buck, but he had been able to use one front foot to defend his eyes; still his plight could scarce have been more dreadful. It made the most pitiful spectacle Rolf had ever seen in wild life; yes, in all his life. He was full of compassion for the poor brute. He forgot it as a thing to be hunted for food; thought of it only as a harmless, beautiful creature in dire and horrible straits; a fellow-being in distress; and he at once set about being its helper. With hatchet in hand he came gently in front, and selecting an exposed part at the base of the dead buck's antler he gave a sharp blow with the hatchet. The effect on the living buck was surprising. He was roused to vigorous action that showed him far from death as yet. He plunged, then pulled backward, carrying with him the carcass and the would-be rescuer. Then Rolf remembered the Indian's words: “You can make strong medicine with your mouth.” He spoke to the deer, gently, softly. Then came nearer, and tapped o'n the horn he wished to cut; softly speaking and tapping he increased his force, until at last he was permitted to chop seriously at that prison bar. It took many blows, for the antler stuff is very thick and strong at this time, but the horn was loose at last. Rolf gave it a twist and the strong buck was free. Free for what?

The young man, moving closer, witnessed a scene that filled him with a mix of horror and pity. A powerful buck—once strong, at least—was standing, staggering, and kneeling there; sometimes on his hind legs, he was erratically heaving and tugging at a long gray form on the ground, the body of another buck, his rival, now dead, with a broken neck. The antlers of the dead buck were big and strong, locked with the living buck’s antlers as if they were fastened with iron and bolted with steel clamps. With all his might, the living buck could barely move his head, dragging his adversary's body along with him. The tracks in the snow showed that at first he had managed to pull the carcass many yards; he had nibbled a bit at shoots and twigs; but that was when he was stronger, long ago. How long? For days, at least, maybe a week, that unfortunate buck was enduring a hopeless death that wouldn’t come. His gaunt sides, his parched and lolling tongue, less than a foot from the snow yet completely out of reach, the cloudy eye, whose opaque veil of death was briefly lit up with a faint spark of fighting green as a new foe arrived. The ravens had pecked out the eyes of the dead buck and gnawed a hole in its back. They had even started on the living buck, but he had managed to use one front foot to protect his eyes; still, his situation could hardly have been more horrifying. It created the most pitiful sight Rolf had ever seen in the wild; yes, in all his life. He felt deep compassion for the poor animal. He forgot it as something to hunt for food; he saw it only as a helpless, beautiful creature in terrible and horrific conditions; a fellow being in distress; and he immediately set out to help. With a hatchet in hand, he carefully approached, selecting an exposed part at the base of the dead buck's antler and gave it a sharp blow. The effect on the living buck was surprising. He sprang into vigorous action, showing he was far from dead yet. He lunged forward, then pulled backward, dragging along the carcass and the would-be rescuer. Then Rolf recalled the Indian’s words: “You can make strong medicine with your mouth.” He spoke to the deer gently, softly. He moved closer and tapped on the horn he wished to cut; softly speaking and tapping, he gradually increased his force, until finally, he was allowed to chop seriously at that prison bar. It took many blows, as the antler material is very thick and strong at this time, but eventually the horn was loose. Rolf twisted it and the strong buck was free. Free for what?

Oh, tell it not among the folk who have been the wild deer's friend! Hide it from all who blindly believe that gratitude must always follow good-will! With unexpected energy, with pent-up fury, with hellish purpose, the ingrate sprang on his deliverer, aiming a blow as deadly as was in his power.

Oh, don't let the people who have been friends with the wild deer hear this! Keep it from everyone who naively thinks that gratitude always comes after kindness! With surprising force, filled with rage, and with a terrible intent, the ungrateful person attacked his rescuer, aiming a blow as deadly as he could manage.

Wholly taken by surprise, Rolf barely had time to seize the murderer's horns and ward them off his vitals. The buck made a furious lunge. Oh! what foul fiend was it gave him then such force?—and Rolf went down. Clinging for dear life to those wicked, shameful horns, he yelled as he never yelled before: “Quonab, Quonabi help me, oh, help me!” But he was pinned at once, the fierce brute above him pressing on his chest, striving to bring its horns to bear; his only salvation had been that their wide spread gave his body room between. But the weight on his chest was crushing out his force, his life; he had no breath to call again. How the ravens chuckled, and “haw-hawed” in the tree!

Totally caught off guard, Rolf hardly had time to grab the murderer's horns and protect himself. The buck charged fiercely. Oh! What evil spirit gave it such strength?—and Rolf fell down. Clinging desperately to those wicked, shameful horns, he screamed like never before: “Quonab, Quonabi help me, oh, help me!” But he was quickly pinned, the fierce beast above him pushing down on his chest, trying to use its horns against him; his only chance had been the wide spread of the horns allowing some space for his body. But the weight on his chest was crushing his strength, his life; he couldn’t catch his breath to call out again. How the ravens laughed and “haw-hawed” in the tree!

The buck's eyes gleamed again with the emerald light of murderous hate, and he jerked his strong neck this way and that with the power of madness. It could not last for long. The boy's strength was going fast; the beast was crushing in his chest.

The buck's eyes shone once more with a fierce, green light of pure hatred, and he twisted his strong neck back and forth with a wild intensity. This couldn't go on for much longer. The boy was quickly losing strength; the beast was squeezing his chest.

“Oh, God, help me!” he gasped, as the antlered fiend began again struggling for the freedom of those murderous horns. The brute was almost free, when the ravens rose with loud croaks, and out of the woods dashed another to join the fight. A smaller deer? No; what? Rolf knew not, nor how, but in a moment there was a savage growl and Skookum had the murderer by the hind leg. Worrying and tearing he had not the strength to throw the deer, but his teeth were sharp, his heart was in his work, and when he transferred his fierce attack to parts more tender still, the buck, already spent, reared, wheeled, and fell. Before he could recover Skookum pounced upon him by the nose and hung on like a vice. The buck could swing his great neck a little, and drag the dog, but he could not shake him off. Rolf saw the chance, rose to his tottering legs, seized his hatchet, stunned the fierce brute with a blow. Then finding on the snow his missing knife he gave the hunter stroke that spilled the red life-blood and sank on the ground to know no more till Quonab stood beside him.

“Oh, God, help me!” he gasped as the antlered beast struggled once more to escape the grip of its deadly horns. The creature was almost free when the ravens cawed loudly, and another figure dashed out of the woods to join the fray. A smaller deer? No; what was it? Rolf didn’t know, but suddenly there was a fierce growl, and Skookum had the beast by the hind leg. Struggling and tearing, he didn’t have the strength to throw the deer off, but his teeth were sharp, and his heart was in the fight. When he shifted his fierce attack to more vulnerable areas, the buck, already exhausted, kicked and stumbled before falling. Before he could recover, Skookum lunged for his nose and clung on tightly. The buck could swing his massive neck a bit and drag the dog, but he couldn’t shake him off. Rolf saw his opportunity, got to his shaky feet, grabbed his hatchet, and stunned the ferocious beast with a blow. Then, spotting his missing knife in the snow, he dealt the hunter a strike that spilled its blood, and he sank to the ground, unaware until Quonab stood beside him.





Chapter 33. A Song of Praise

ROLF was lying by a fire when he came to, Quonab bending over him with a look of grave concern. When he opened his eyes, the Indian smiled; such a soft, sweet smile, with long, ivory rows in its background.

ROLF was lying by a fire when he woke up, Quonab leaning over him with a look of serious concern. When he opened his eyes, the Indian smiled; such a gentle, warm smile, with long, ivory teeth behind it.

Then he brought hot tea, and Rolf revived so he could sit up and tell the story of the morning.

Then he brought hot tea, and Rolf perked up enough to sit up and share the story of the morning.

“He is an evil Manito,” and he looked toward the dead buck; “we must not eat him. You surely made medicine to bring Skookum.”

“He's an evil spirit,” he said, glancing at the dead buck. “We can't eat him. You definitely used magic to bring Skookum.”

“Yes, I made medicine with my mouth,” was the answer, “I called, I yelled, when he came at me.”

“Yes, I healed with my voice,” was the answer, “I called out, I shouted, when he came at me.”

“It is a long way from here to the cabin,” was Quonab's reply. “I could not hear you; Skookum could not hear you; but Cos Cob, my father, told me that when you send out a cry for help, you send medicine, too, that goes farther than the cry. May be so; I do not know: my father was very wise.”

“It’s a long way from here to the cabin,” Quonab replied. “I couldn’t hear you; Skookum couldn’t hear you; but Cos Cob, my father, told me that when you call for help, you also send out a kind of energy that travels further than your voice. Maybe that’s true; I don’t know: my father was very wise.”

“Did you see Skookum come, Quonab?”

“Did you see Skookum come, Quonab?”

“No; he was with me hours after you left, but he was restless and whimpered. Then he left me and it was a long time before I heard him bark. It was the 'something-wrong' bark. I went. He brought me here.”

“No; he was with me for hours after you left, but he was anxious and whined. Then he left me, and it was a long time before I heard him bark. It was the 'something's wrong' bark. I went. He brought me here.”

“He must have followed my track all 'round the line.”

“He must have followed my trail all around the line.”

After an hour they set out for the cabin. The ravens “Ha-ha-ed” and “Ho-ho-ed” as they went. Quonab took the fateful horn that Rolf had chopped off, and hung it on a sapling with a piece of tobacco and a red yam streamer ', to appease the evil spirit that surely was near. There it hung for years after, until the sapling grew to a tree that swallowed the horn, all but the tip, which rotted away.

After an hour, they headed out to the cabin. The ravens cawed and hooted as they walked. Quonab took the fateful horn that Rolf had chopped off and hung it on a young tree with a piece of tobacco and a red yam streamer to calm the evil spirit that was definitely nearby. It stayed there for years until the young tree grew into a full tree that engulfed the horn, except for the tip, which eventually rotted away.

Skookum took a final sniff at his fallen enemy, gave the body the customary expression of a dog's contempt, then led the procession homeward.

Skookum took one last sniff of his fallen enemy, showed the usual look of a dog's disdain at the body, and then led the way back home.

Not that day, not the next, but on the first day of calm, red, sunset
sky, went Quonab to his hill of worship; and when the little fire that
he lit sent up its thread of smoke, like a plumb-line from the red cloud
over him, he burnt a pinch of tobacco, and, with face and arms upraised
in the red light, he sang a new song:

     “The evil one set a trap for my son,
     But the Manito saved him;
     In the form of a Skookum he saved him.”
 
Not that day, not the next, but on the first day of calm, red sunset sky, Quonab went to his hill of worship. When the small fire he lit sent up its thread of smoke like a plumb line from the red cloud above him, he burned a pinch of tobacco and, with his face and arms raised in the red light, he sung a new song:  

     “The evil one set a trap for my son,  
     But the Manito saved him;  
     In the form of a Skookum, he saved him.”  




Chapter 34. The Birch-bark Vessels

Rolf was sore and stiff for a week afterward; so was Skookum. There were times when Quonab was cold, moody, and silent for days. Then some milder wind would blow in the region of his heart and the bleak ice surface melted into running rills of memory or kindly emanation.

Rolf was sore and stiff for a week after that; so was Skookum. There were times when Quonab was cold, moody, and quiet for days. Then a gentler breeze would stir in his heart, and the harsh ice surface would give way to streams of memories or warm feelings.

Just before the buck adventure, there had been an unpleasant time of chill and aloofness. It arose over little. Since the frost had come, sealing the waters outside, Quonab would wash his hands in the vessel that was also the bread pan. Rolf had New England ideas of propriety in cooking matters, and finally he forgot the respect due to age and experience. That was one reason why he went out alone that day. Now, with time to think things over, the obvious safeguard would be to have a wash bowl; but where to get it? In those days, tins were scarce and ex-pensive. It was the custom to look in the woods for nearly all the necessaries of life; and, guided by ancient custom and experience, they seldom looked in vain. Rolf had seen, and indeed made, watering troughs, pig troughs, sap troughs, hen troughs, etc., all his life, and he now set to work with the axe and a block of basswood to hew out a trough for a wash bowl. With adequate tools he might have made a good one; but, working with an axe and a stiff arm, the result was a very heavy, crude affair. It would indeed hold water, but it was almost impossible to dip it into the water hole, so that a dipper was needed.

Just before the buck adventure, there had been an uncomfortable time of chill and distance. It started over something small. Since the frost had arrived, sealing off the outside waters, Quonab would wash his hands in the vessel that also served as the bread pan. Rolf had New England ideas about proper cooking practices, and eventually, he forgot the respect due to age and experience. That was one reason he went out alone that day. Now, with time to reflect, the obvious solution would have been to get a wash bowl; but where could he find one? Back then, tins were scarce and expensive. It was common to look in the woods for nearly all the necessities of life, and following ancient traditions and experience, they usually found what they needed. Rolf had seen and even made watering troughs, pig troughs, sap troughs, hen troughs, etc., all his life, so he set to work with an axe and a block of basswood to carve out a trough for a wash bowl. With better tools, he might have made a decent one; however, working with just an axe and a stiff arm, the result was a heavy, rough creation. It could hold water, but it was almost impossible to dip it into the water hole, requiring a dipper.

When Quonab saw the plan and the result, he said: “In my father's lodge we had only birch bark. See; I shall make a bowl.” He took from the storehouse a big roll of birch bark, gathered in warm weather (it can scarcely be done in cold), for use in repairing the canoe. Selecting a good part he cut out a square, two feet each way, and put it in the big pot which was full of boiling water. At the same time he soaked with it a bundle of wattap, or long fibrous roots of the white spruce, also gathered before the frost came, with a view to canoe repairs in the spring.

When Quonab saw the plan and the result, he said, “In my father's lodge, we only had birch bark. Look; I’m going to make a bowl.” He took a large roll of birch bark from the storage area, gathered in warm weather (it’s almost impossible to do this in the cold), meant for fixing the canoe. Choosing a good section, he cut out a square, two feet on each side, and placed it in the large pot filled with boiling water. At the same time, he soaked a bundle of wattap, or long fibrous roots of the white spruce, which had also been gathered before the frost came, for canoe repairs in the spring.

While these were softening in the hot water, he cut a couple of long splints of birch, as nearly as possible half an inch wide and an eighth of an inch thick, and put them to steep with the bark. Next he made two or three straddle pins or clamps, like clothes pegs, by splitting the ends of some sticks which had a knot at one end.

While these were softening in the hot water, he cut a couple of long splints from birch, aiming to make them about half an inch wide and an eighth of an inch thick, and put them to soak with the bark. Next, he created two or three straddle pins or clamps, similar to clothes pegs, by splitting the ends of some sticks that had a knot at one end.

Now he took out the spruce roots, soft and pliant, and selecting a lot that were about an eighth of an inch in diameter, scraped off the bark and roughness, until he had a bundle of perhaps ten feet of soft, even, white cords.

Now he took out the spruce roots, soft and flexible, and chose a bunch that were about an eighth of an inch in diameter, peeled off the bark and rough spots, until he had a bundle of around ten feet of soft, smooth, white cords.

The bark was laid flat and cut as below.

The bark was flattened and cut as shown below.

The rounding of A and B is necessary, for the holes of the sewing would tear the piece off if all were on the same line of grain. Each corner was now folded and doubled on itself (C), then held so with a straddle pin (D). The rim was trimmed so as to be flat where it crossed the fibre of the bark, and arched where it ran along. The pliant rods of birch were bent around this, and using the large awl to make holes, Quonab sewed the rim rods to the bark with an over-lapping stitch that made a smooth finish to the edge, and the birch-bark wash pan was complete. (E.) Much heavier bark can be used if the plan F G be followed, but it is hard to make it water-tight.

The rounding of A and B is necessary because the sewing holes would tear the piece apart if everything was aligned with the same grain. Each corner was then folded and doubled back on itself (C), and held in place with a straddle pin (D). The rim was trimmed flat where it crossed the bark’s fibers and arched where it ran along. Flexible birch rods were bent around this, and using a large awl to create holes, Quonab sewed the rim rods to the bark with an overlapping stitch that created a smooth finish on the edge, completing the birch-bark wash pan. (E.) Much thicker bark can be used if plan F G is followed, but it’s difficult to make it waterproof.

So now they had a wash pan and a cause of friction was removed. Rolf found it amusing as well as useful to make other bark vessels of varying sizes for dippers and dunnage. It was work that he could do now while he was resting and recovering and he became expert. After watching a fairly successful attempt at a box to hold fish-hooks and tackle, Quonab said: “In my father's lodge these would bear quill work in colours.”

So now they had a wash pan, and one source of tension was gone. Rolf thought it was both funny and practical to make other bark containers of different sizes for scoops and storage. It was something he could do while he was resting and recovering, and he got really good at it. After seeing a pretty successful try at making a box for fishing hooks and tackle, Quonab said: “In my father's lodge, these would have colorful quill designs.”

“That's so,” said Rolf, remembering the birch-bark goods often sold by the Indians. “I wish we had a porcupine now.”

“That's true,” said Rolf, recalling the birch-bark items often sold by the Indians. “I wish we had a porcupine right now.”

“Maybe Skookum could find one,” said the Indian, with a smile.

“Maybe Skookum could find one,” said the Indian, smiling.

“Will you let me kill the next Kahk we find?”

“Can I kill the next Kahk we come across?”

“Yes, if you use the quills and burn its whiskers.”

“Yes, if you use the quills and burn its whiskers.”

“Why burn its whiskers?”

“Why burn its whiskers?”

“My father said it must be so. The smoke goes straight to the All-above; then the Manito knows we have killed, but we have remembered to kill only for use and to thank Him.”

“My father said it has to be that way. The smoke goes directly to the All-above; then the Manito knows we have killed, but we have remembered to kill only for a purpose and to thank Him.”

It was some days before they found a porcupine, and when they did, it was not necessary for them to kill it. But that belongs to another chapter.

It took them a few days to find a porcupine, and when they finally did, they didn't need to kill it. But that's a story for another chapter.

They saved its skin with all its spears and hung it in the storehouse. The quills with the white bodies and ready-made needle at each end are admirable for embroidering, but they are white only.

They saved its skin along with all its spears and hung it in the storage room. The quills with the white bodies and pre-made needles at each end are great for embroidery, but they are only white.

“How can we dye them, Quonab?

“How can we dye them, Quonab?

“In the summer are many dyes; in winter they are hard to get. We can get some.”

“In the summer, there are many dyes; in winter, they are hard to find. We can get some.”

So forth he went to a hemlock tree, and cut till he could gather the inner pink bark, which, boiled with the quills, turned them a dull pink; similarly, alder bark furnished rich orange, and butternut bark a brown. Oak chips, with a few bits of iron in the pot, dyed black.

So he went to a hemlock tree and cut until he could gather the inner pink bark, which, when boiled with the quills, turned them a dull pink; likewise, alder bark provided a rich orange, and butternut bark gave a brown color. Oak chips, along with a few pieces of iron in the pot, dyed things black.

“Must wait till summer for red and green,” said the Indian. “Red comes only from berries; the best is the blitum. We call it squaw-berry and mis-caw-wa, yellow comes from the yellow root (Hydrastis).”

“Must wait until summer for red and green,” said the Indian. “Red comes only from berries; the best is the blitum. We call it squaw-berry and mis-caw-wa, yellow comes from the yellow root (Hydrastis).”

But black, white, orange, pink, brown, and a dull red made by a double dip of orange and pink, are a good range of colour. The method in using the quills is simple. An awl to make holes in the bark for each; the rough parts behind are concealed afterward with a lining of bark stitched over them; and before the winter was over, Rolf had made a birch-bark box, decorated lid and all, with porcupine quill work, in which he kept the sable skin that was meant to buy Annette's new dress, the costume she had dreamed of, the ideal and splendid, almost unbelievable vision of her young life, ninety-five cents' worth of cotton print.

But black, white, orange, pink, brown, and a dull red created by a double dip of orange and pink provide a good range of colors. The technique for using the quills is straightforward. An awl is used to make holes in the bark for each quill; the rough parts behind are later covered with a lining of bark stitched over them. Before winter ended, Rolf had crafted a birch-bark box, fully decorated with porcupine quills, where he kept the sable skin meant to buy Annette's new dress—the outfit she had dreamed of, the ideal and beautiful, almost unbelievable vision of her young life, worth ninety-five cents of cotton print.

There was one other point of dangerous friction. Whenever it fell to Quonab to wash the dishes, he simply set them on the ground and let Skookum lick them off. This economical arrangement was satisfactory to Quonab, delightful to Skookum, and apparently justified by the finished product, but Rolf objected. The Indian said: “Don't he eat the same food as we do? You cannot tell if you do not see.”

There was one other point of dangerous tension. Whenever it was Quonab's turn to wash the dishes, he just put them on the ground and let Skookum lick them clean. This practical setup worked for Quonab, was a treat for Skookum, and seemed acceptable based on the end result, but Rolf disagreed. The Indian said, “Doesn’t he eat the same food we do? You can’t tell if you don’t see.”

Whenever he could do so, Rolf washed the doubtful dishes over again, yet there were many times when this was impossible, and the situation became very irritating. But he knew that the man who loses his temper has lost the first round of the fight, so, finding the general idea of uncleanness without avail, he sought for some purely Indian argument. As they sat by the evening fire, one day, he led up to talk of his mother—of her power as a medicine woman, of the many evil medicines that harmed her. “It was evil medicine for her if a dog licked her hand or touched her food. A dog licked her hand and the dream dog came to her three days before she died.” After a long pause, he added, “In some ways I am like my mother.”

Whenever he could, Rolf washed the questionable dishes again, but there were many times when that just wasn't possible, and it got really annoying. Still, he knew that the person who loses their cool has already lost the first round of the fight. So, unable to find a decent argument against the messiness, he looked for a purely Indian point of view. One evening, as they sat by the fire, he brought up his mother—her abilities as a medicine woman and the harmful medicines that affected her. “It was bad for her if a dog licked her hand or touched her food. A dog licked her hand, and the dream dog came to her three days before she died.” After a long pause, he added, “In some ways, I’m like my mother.”

Two days later, Rolf chanced to see his friend behind the shanty give Skookum the pan to clean off after they had been frying deer fat. The Indian had no idea that Rolf was near, nor did he ever learn the truth of it.

Two days later, Rolf happened to see his friend behind the shack giving Skookum the pan to clean up after they had been frying deer fat. The Indian had no idea Rolf was nearby, and he never found out the truth of it.

That night, after midnight, the lad rose quietly, lighted the pine splints that served them for a torch, rubbed some charcoal around each eye to make dark rings that should supply a horror-stricken look. Then he started in to pound on Quonab's tom-tom, singing:

That night, just after midnight, the boy got up quietly, lit the pine splinters they used as a torch, and rubbed some charcoal around his eyes to create dark rings for a terrified look. Then he began to pound on Quonab's tom-tom, singing:

     “Evil spirit leave me;
     Dog-face do not harm me.”
 
     “Evil spirit, go away;  
     Dog-face, don’t hurt me.”

Quonab sat up in amazement. Rolf paid no heed, but went on, bawling and drumming and staring upward into vacant space. After a few minutes Skookum scratched and whined at the shanty door. Rolf rose, took his knife, cut a bunch of hair from Skookum's neck and burned it in the torch, then went on singing with horrid solemnity:

Quonab sat up in shock. Rolf didn't pay attention, but continued shouting, drumming, and staring into empty space. After a few minutes, Skookum scratched and whined at the cabin door. Rolf got up, grabbed his knife, cut a bunch of hair from Skookum's neck, and burned it in the torch, then continued singing with dreadful seriousness:

     “Evil spirit leave me;
     Dog-face do not harm me.”
 
     “Evil spirit, leave me;  
     Dog-face, don’t hurt me.”

At last he turned, and seeming to discover that Quonab was looking on, said:

At last he turned and, noticing that Quonab was watching, said:

“The dream dog came to me. I thought I saw him lick deer grease from the frying pan behind the shanty. He laughed, for he knew that he made evil medicine for me. I am trying to drive him away, so he cannot harm me. I do not know. I am like my mother. She was very wise, but she died after it.”

“The dream dog came to me. I thought I saw him lick deer grease from the frying pan behind the shanty. He laughed, because he knew he created bad medicine for me. I'm trying to get rid of him, so he can't hurt me. I don't know. I'm just like my mother. She was very wise, but she died after that.”

Now Quonab arose, cut some more hair from Skookum, added a pinch of tobacco, then, setting it ablaze, he sang in the rank odour of the burning weed and hair, his strongest song to kill ill magic; and Rolf, as he chuckled and sweetly sank to sleep, knew that the fight was won. His friend would never, never more install Skookum in the high and sacred post of pot-licker, dishwasher, or final polisher.

Now Quonab got up, cut some more hair from Skookum, added a pinch of tobacco, and then, lighting it on fire, sang his strongest song to ward off bad magic amidst the strong smell of the burning weed and hair; and Rolf, as he chuckled and peacefully drifted off to sleep, knew that the battle was won. His friend would never again place Skookum in the high and sacred role of pot-licker, dishwasher, or final polisher.





Chapter 35. Snaring Rabbits

The deepening snow about the cabin was marked in all the thickets by the multitudinous tracks of the snowshoe rabbits or white hares. Occasionally the hunters saw them, but paid little heed. Why should they look at rabbits when deer were plentiful?

The deepening snow around the cabin was filled with countless tracks from snowshoe rabbits or white hares in all the bushes. Sometimes the hunters spotted them but didn't pay much attention. Why bother looking at rabbits when there were plenty of deer?

“You catch rabbit?” asked Quonab one day when Rolf was feeling fit again.

"You catch any rabbits?" asked Quonab one day when Rolf was feeling better again.

“I can shoot one with my bow,” was the answer, “but why should I, when we have plenty of deer?”

“I can shoot one with my bow,” was the answer, “but why would I, when we have plenty of deer?”

“My people always hunted rabbits. Sometimes no deer were to be found; then the rabbits were food. Sometimes in the enemy's country it was not safe to hunt, except rabbits, with blunt arrows, and they were food. Sometimes only squaws and children in camp—nothing to eat; no guns; then the rabbits were food.”

“My people always hunted rabbits. Sometimes there were no deer around, so the rabbits were our food. Sometimes, in enemy territory, it wasn't safe to hunt anything but rabbits with dull arrows, and they were our food. Sometimes only women and children were left in camp—nothing to eat, no guns; then the rabbits were our food.”

“Well, see me get one,” and Rolf took his bow and arrow. He found many white bunnies, but always in the thickest woods. Again and again he tried, but the tantalizing twigs and branches muffled the bow and turned the arrow. It was hours before he returned with a fluffy snowshoe rabbit.

“Well, watch me get one,” Rolf said as he grabbed his bow and arrow. He spotted a lot of white bunnies, but they were always deep in the thick woods. He tried again and again, but the annoying twigs and branches muffled the bow and redirected the arrow. It took him hours to come back with a fluffy snowshoe rabbit.

“That is not our way.” Quonab led to the thicket and selecting a place of many tracks he cut a lot of brush and made a hedge across with half a dozen openings. At each of these openings he made a snare of strong cord tied to a long pole, hung on a crotch, and so arranged that a tug at the snare would free the pole which in turn would hoist the snare and the creature in it high in the air.

“That's not how we do things.” Quonab walked to the thicket and picked a spot with lots of animal tracks. He cleared away some brush and created a barrier with several openings. At each opening, he set up a snare using strong cord tied to a long pole, positioned in a forked branch. It was designed so that pulling on the snare would release the pole, which would then lift the snare and whatever was caught in it high into the air.

Next morning they went around and found that four of the snares had each a snow-white rabbit hanging by the neck. As he was handling these, Quonab felt a lump I on the hind leg of one. He carefully cut it open and turned out a curious-looking object about the size of an acorn, flattened, made of flesh and covered with hair, and nearly the shape of a large bean. He gazed at it, and, turning to Rolf, said with intense meaning:

Next morning, they went around and found that four of the traps had a snow-white rabbit hanging by the neck. While he was handling these, Quonab felt a lump on the hind leg of one. He carefully cut it open and pulled out a strange-looking object about the size of an acorn, flattened, made of flesh, covered with hair, and nearly the shape of a large bean. He stared at it and, turning to Rolf, said with intense meaning:

“Ugh! we have found the good hunting. This is the Peeto-wab-oos-once, the little medicine rabbit. Now we have strong medicine in the lodge. You shall see.”

“Ugh! We’ve found great hunting. This is the Peeto-wab-oos-once, the little medicine rabbit. Now we have strong medicine in the lodge. You’ll see.”

He went out to the two remaining snares and passed the medicine rabbit through each. An hour later, when they returned, they found a rabbit taken in the first snare.

He went out to the last two traps and passed the medicine rabbit through each one. An hour later, when they came back, they found a rabbit caught in the first trap.

“It is ever so,” said the Indian. “We can always catch rabbits now. My father had the Peeto-wab-i-ush once, the little medicine deer, and so he never failed in hunting but twice. Then he found that his papoose, Quonab, had stolen his great medicine. He was a very wise papoose. He killed a chipmunk each of those days.”

“It’s always like that,” said the Indian. “We can catch rabbits any time now. My father had the Peeto-wab-i-ush once, the little medicine deer, and because of that, he only missed a hunt twice. Then he discovered that his child, Quonab, had taken his great medicine. He was a really clever child. He caught a chipmunk on each of those days.”

“Hark! what is that?” A faint sound of rustling branches, and some short animal noises in the woods had caught Rolf's ear, and Skookum's, too, for he was off like one whose life is bound up in a great purpose.

“Hear that? What is it?” A faint rustling of branches and some small animal sounds in the woods caught Rolf's attention, and Skookum's, too, because he took off like someone on an important mission.

“Yap, yap, yap,” came the angry sound from Skookum. Who can say that animals have no language? His merry “yip, yip, yip,” for partridge up a tree, or his long, hilarious, “Yow, yow, yow,” when despite all orders he chased some deer, were totally distinct from the angry “Yap, yap,” he gave for the bear up the tree, or the “Grrryapgrryap,” with which he voiced his hatred of the porcupine.

“Yap, yap, yap,” came the angry sound from Skookum. Who can say that animals have no language? His cheerful “yip, yip, yip,” for partridge up a tree, or his long, funny “Yow, yow, yow,” when he chased some deer despite all orders, were completely different from the angry “Yap, yap,” he made for the bear up the tree, or the “Grrryapgrryap,” with which he expressed his dislike for the porcupine.

But now it was the “Yap, yap,” as when he had treed the bears.

But now it was the "Yap, yap," just like when he had cornered the bears.

“Something up a tree,” was the Indian's interpretation, as they followed the sound. Something up a tree! A whole menagerie it seemed to Rolf when they got there. Hanging by the neck in the remaining snare, and limp now, was a young lynx, a kit of the year. In the adjoining tree, with Skookum circling and yapping 'round the base, was a savage old lynx. In the crotch above her was another young one, and still higher was a third, all looking their unutterable disgust at the noisy dog below; the mother, indeed, expressing it in occasional hisses, but none of them daring to come down and face him. The lynx is very good fur and very easy prey. The Indian brought the old one down with a shot; then, as fast as he could reload, the others were added to the bag, and, with the one from the snare, they returned laden to the cabin.

“Something’s up a tree,” the Indian said as they followed the sound. Something up a tree! It seemed like a whole collection of animals to Rolf when they arrived. Hanging by its neck in the leftover snare, limp now, was a young lynx, a kit from this year. In the nearby tree, with Skookum circling and barking around the base, was an angry old lynx. In the branch above her was another young one, and even higher was a third, all looking down with obvious disdain at the loud dog below; the mother even expressed her annoyance with occasional hisses, but none of them dared to come down and confront him. The lynx has great fur and is easy prey. The Indian brought the old one down with a shot; then, as quickly as he could reload, he got the others and, along with the one from the snare, they headed back to the cabin with their haul.

The Indian's eyes shone with a peculiar light. “Ugh! Ugh! My father told me; it is great medicine. You see, now, it does not fail.”

The Indian's eyes sparkled with a strange light. “Ugh! Ugh! My father told me; it's great medicine. You see, it doesn't fail now.”





Chapter 36. Something Wrong at the Beaver Traps

Once they had run the trap lines, and their store of furs was increasing finely. They had taken twenty-five beavers and counted on getting two or three each time they went to the ponds. But they got an unpleasant surprise in December, on going to the beaver grounds, to find all the traps empty and unmistakable signs that some man had been there and had gone off with the catch. They followed the dim trail of his snowshoes, half hidden by a recent wind, but night came on with more snow, and all signs were lost.

Once they had checked the trap lines, their collection of furs was growing nicely. They had caught twenty-five beavers and expected to get two or three each time they visited the ponds. However, in December, they received an unwelcome surprise when they went to the beaver grounds and found all the traps empty and clear signs that someone had been there and taken their catch. They followed the faint trail of his snowshoes, mostly obscured by recent snow, but night fell with more snowfall, and all traces were lost.

The thief had not found the line yet, for the haul of marten and mink was good. But this was merely the beginning.

The thief hadn’t found the line yet, because the catch of marten and mink was good. But this was just the start.

The trapper law of the wilderness is much like all primitive laws; first come has first right, provided he is able to hold it. If a strong rival comes in, the first must fight as best he can. The law justifies him in anything he may do, if he succeeds. The law justifies the second in anything he may do, except murder. That is, the defender may shoot to kill; the offender may not.

The trapper law of the wilderness is similar to all basic laws; the one who gets there first has the first right, as long as they can maintain it. If a strong competitor shows up, the first person must defend their claim as best as they can. The law supports any actions they take, as long as they succeed. The law allows the second person to act in any way they choose, except for murder. In other words, the defender can shoot to kill, but the aggressor cannot.

But the fact of Quonab's being an Indian and Rolf supposedly one, would turn opinion against them in the Adirondacks, and it was quite likely that the rival considered them trespassers on his grounds, although the fact that he robbed their traps without removing them, and kept out of sight, rather showed the guilty conscience of a self-accused poacher.

But the fact that Quonab was an Indian and Rolf was supposedly one too would turn people's opinions against them in the Adirondacks, and it was very likely that the rival saw them as trespassers on his land. However, the fact that he stole from their traps without actually taking them and stayed hidden showed he had the guilty conscience of a self-confessed poacher.

He came in from the west, obviously; probably the Racquet River country; was a large man, judging by his foot and stride, and understood trapping; but lazy, for he set no traps. His principal object seemed to be to steal.

He came in from the west, obviously; probably the Racquet River area; was a big guy, based on his footsteps and stride, and knew about trapping; but he was lazy, since he set no traps. His main goal appeared to be stealing.

And it was not long before he found their line of marten traps, so his depredations increased. Primitive emotions are near the surface at all times, and under primitive conditions are very ready to appear. Rolf and Quonab felt that now it was war.

And it wasn't long before he discovered their line of marten traps, so his destruction increased. Basic emotions are always close to the surface, and in primitive situations, they're quick to surface. Rolf and Quonab felt that now it was war.





Chapter 37. The Pekan or Fisher

There was one large track in the snow that they saw several times—it was like that of a marten, but much larger. “Pekan,” said the Indian, “the big marten; the very strong one, that fights without fear.”

There was one big track in the snow that they noticed several times—it looked like that of a marten, but much bigger. “Pekan,” said the Indian, “the big marten; the very strong one that fights without fear.”

“When my father was a papoose he shot an arrow at a pekan. He did not know what it was; it seemed only a big black marten. It was wounded, but sprang from the tree on my father's breast. It would have killed him, but for the dog; then it would have killed the dog, but my grandfather was near.

“When my dad was a kid, he shot an arrow at a squirrel. He didn’t know what it was; it just looked like a big black marten. It was hurt, but it jumped from the tree onto my dad’s chest. It would have killed him if it weren’t for the dog; then it would have killed the dog, but my grandfather was nearby.”

“He made my father eat the pekan's heart, so his heart might be like it. It sought no fight, but it turned, when struck, and fought without fear. That is the right way; seek peace, but fight without fear. That was my father's heart and mine.” Then glancing toward the west he continued in a tone of menace: “That trap robber will find it so. We sought no fight, but some day I kill him.”

"He made my dad eat the heart of the pecan so his heart could be like it. It didn’t look for a fight, but when it was hit, it turned and fought without fear. That’s the right way; seek peace, but don’t be afraid to fight. That was my dad’s heart and mine." Then, looking towards the west, he added in a threatening tone, "That trap robber will see it that way. We didn’t want a fight, but someday I will kill him."

The big track went in bounds, to be lost in a low, thick woods. But they met it again.

The main trail went into the woods, disappearing into a dense thicket. But they found it again.

They were crossing a hemlock ridge a mile farther on, when they came to another track which was first a long, deep furrow, some fifteen inches wide, and in this were the wide-spread prints of feet as large as those of a fisher.

They were crossing a hemlock ridge a mile ahead when they encountered another path, which started as a long, deep groove about fifteen inches wide, and in this were the wide prints of feet as large as those of a fisher.

“Kahk,” said Quonab, and Skookum said “Kahk,” too, but he did it by growling and raising his back hair, and doubtless also by sadly remembering. His discretion seemed as yet embryonic, so Rolf slipped his sash through the dog's collar, and they followed the track, for the porcupine now stood in Rolf's mind as a sort of embroidery outfit.

“Kahk,” said Quonab, and Skookum echoed “Kahk” as well, but he did it by growling and bristling his fur, likely also feeling sad as he remembered. His sense of discretion seemed still quite underdeveloped, so Rolf slipped his sash through the dog's collar, and they followed the trail, because the porcupine now appeared in Rolf's mind as a kind of crafting project.

They had not followed far before another track joined on—the track of the fisher-pekan; and soon after they heard in the woods ahead scratching sounds, as of something climbing, and once or twice a faint, far, fighting snarl.

They hadn't gone far before another trail merged with theirs—the trail of the fisher-pekan; and soon after, they heard scratching sounds in the woods ahead, as if something was climbing, and a few times, a faint, distant snarl of a struggle.

Quickly tying the over-valiant Skookum to a tree, they crept forward, ready for anything, and arrived on the scene of a very peculiar action.

Quickly tying the overly brave Skookum to a tree, they moved forward, ready for anything, and arrived at the scene of a very unusual event.

Action it was, though it was singularly devoid of action. First, there was a creature, like a huge black marten or a short-legged black fox, standing at a safe distance, while, partly hidden under a log, with hind quarters and tail only exposed, was a large porcupine. Both were very still, but soon the fisher snarled and made a forward lunge. The porcupine, hearing the sounds or feeling the snow dash up on that side, struck with its tail; but the fisher kept out of reach. Next a feint was made on the other side, with the same result; then many, as though the fisher were trying to tire out the tail or use up all its quills.

It was definitely action, even though it lacked movement. At first, there was a creature, like a big black marten or a short-legged black fox, standing a safe distance away, while partly hidden under a log, with only its hindquarters and tail showing, was a large porcupine. Both remained very still, but soon the fisher growled and lunged forward. The porcupine, sensing the sounds or feeling the snow kick up on that side, struck with its tail; but the fisher stayed just out of reach. Next, it feigned an attack from the other side, with the same outcome; then it made several attempts, as if the fisher was trying to wear out the porcupine's tail or exhaust its quills.

Sometimes the assailant leaped on the log and teased the quill-pig to strike upward, while many white daggers already sunk in the bark showed that these tactics had been going on for some time.

Sometimes the attacker jumped on the log and provoked the porcupine to strike up, while many white daggers already embedded in the bark indicated that these tactics had been in play for a while.

Now the two spectators saw by the trail that a similar battle had been fought at another log, and that the porcupine trail from that was spotted with blood. How the fisher had forced it out was not then clear, but soon became so.

Now the two observers noticed along the trail that a similar fight had taken place at another log, and the porcupine trail from there was marked with blood. It wasn't immediately obvious how the fisher had driven it out, but it soon became clear.

After feinting till the Kahk would not strike, the pekan began a new manceuvre. Starting on the opposite side of the log that protected the spiny one's nose, he burrowed quickly through the snow and leaves. The log was about three inches from the ground, and before the porcupine could realize it, the fisher had a space cleared and seized the spiny one by its soft, unspiny nose. Grunting and squealing it pulled back and lashed its terrible tail. To what effect? Merely to fill the log around with quills. With all its strength the quill-pig pulled and writhed, but the fisher was stronger. His claws enlarged the hole and when the victim ceased from exhaustion, the fisher made a forward dash and changed his hold from the tender nose to the still more tender throat of the porcupine. His hold was not deep enough and square enough to seize the windpipe, but he held on. For a minute or two the struggles of Kahk were of desperate energy and its lashing tail began to be short of spines, but a red stream trickling from the wound was sapping its strength. Protected by the log, the fisher had but to hold on and play a waiting game.

After faking the Kahk out so it wouldn’t attack, the pekan started a new move. He began on the opposite side of the log that shielded the porcupine’s nose, quickly digging through the snow and leaves. The log was about three inches off the ground, and before the porcupine could realize what was happening, the fisher cleared a space and grabbed the porcupine by its soft, unprotected nose. Grunting and squealing, the porcupine pulled back and thrashed its powerful tail. What good did it do? It just scattered quills around the log. With all its strength, the porcupine twisted and pulled, but the fisher was stronger. His claws made the hole bigger, and when the porcupine stopped from exhaustion, the fisher lunged forward, shifting his grip from the tender nose to the even more vulnerable throat of the porcupine. His hold wasn’t deep or secure enough to catch its windpipe, but he hung on. For a minute or two, the Kahk struggled fiercely, and its lashing tail started losing spines, but a red stream trickling from the wound was draining its strength. Protected by the log, the fisher just had to hang on and play the waiting game.

The heaving and backward pulling of Kahk were very feeble at length; the fisher had nearly finished the fight. But he was impatient of further delay and backing out of the hole he mounted the log, displaying a much scratched nose; then reaching down with deft paw, near the quill-pig's shoulder, he gave a sudden jerk that threw the former over on its back, and before it could recover, the fisher's jaws closed on its ribs, and crushed and tore. The nerveless, almost quilless tail could not harm him there. The red blood flowed and the porcupine lay still. Again and again as he uttered chesty growls the pekan ground his teeth into the warm flesh and shook and worried the unconquerable one he had conquered. He was licking his bloody chops for the twentieth time, gloating in gore, when “crack” went Quonab's gun, and the pekan had an opportunity of resuming the combat with Kahk far away in the Happy Hunting.

The heaving and pulling of Kahk were very weak at this point; the fisher was almost done with the fight. But he was tired of waiting and climbed up onto the log, showing off his scratched nose. Then, reaching down with his quick paw near the porcupine's shoulder, he gave a sudden tug that flipped it onto its back. Before it could recover, the fisher's jaws clamped down on its ribs, crushing and tearing. The lifeless, nearly quill-less tail couldn't do him any harm there. Blood flowed, and the porcupine lay still. Again and again, as he let out deep growls, the pekan sank his teeth into the warm flesh and shook and worried the once-unbeatable creature he had defeated. He was licking his bloody chops for the twentieth time, reveling in the carnage, when “crack” went Quonab's gun, giving the pekan a chance to continue the fight with Kahk far away in the Happy Hunting.

“Yap, yap, yap!” and in rushed Skookum, dragging the end of Rolf's sash which he had gnawed through in his determination to be in the fight, no matter what it cost; and it was entirely due to the fact that the porcupine was belly up, that Skookum did not have another hospital experience.

“Yap, yap, yap!” and in rushed Skookum, dragging the end of Rolf's sash which he had chewed through in his eagerness to join the fight, no matter the cost; and it was only because the porcupine was belly up that Skookum avoided another trip to the hospital.

This was Rolf's first sight of a fisher, and he examined it as one does any animal—or man—that one has so long heard described in superlative terms that it has become idealized into a semi-myth. This was the desperado of the woods; the weird black cat that feared no living thing. This was the only one that could fight and win against Kahk.

This was Rolf's first look at a fisher, and he checked it out like anyone does with an animal—or a person—that they've heard described in such glowing terms that it seems almost legendary. This was the rebel of the woods; the strange black cat that wasn't afraid of anything alive. This was the only one that could take on Kahk and come out on top.

They made a fire at once, and while Rolf got the mid-day meal of tea and venison, Quonab skinned the fisher. Then he cut out its heart and liver. When these were cooked he gave the first to Rolf and the second to Skookum, saying to the one, “I give you a pekan heart;” and to the dog, “That will force all of the quills out of you if you play the fool again, as I think you will.”

They started a fire right away, and while Rolf prepared lunch with tea and venison, Quonab skinned the fisher. Then he removed its heart and liver. After cooking them, he handed the heart to Rolf and the liver to Skookum, saying to Rolf, “Here’s a pekan heart for you;” and to the dog, “That will push all the quills out of you if you act stupid again, which I think you will.”

In the skin of the fisher's neck and tail they found several quills, some of them new, some of them dating evidently from another fight of the same kind, but none of them had done any damage. There was no inflammation or sign of poisoning. “It is ever so,” said Quonab, “the quills cannot hurt him.” Then, turning to the porcupine, he remarked, as he prepared to skin it:

In the fisher's neck and tail, they found several quills, some new and some obviously from another fight like this one, but none of them had caused any harm. There was no swelling or signs of poisoning. “It’s always like this,” Quonab said, “the quills can't hurt him.” Then, turning to the porcupine, he commented as he got ready to skin it:

“Ho, Kahk! you see now it was a big mistake you did not let Nana Bojou sit on the dry end of that log.”

“Hey, Kahk! You see now it was a big mistake not letting Nana Bojou sit on the dry end of that log.”





Chapter 38. The Silver Fox

They were returning to the cabin, one day, when Quonab stopped and pointed. Away off on the snow of the far shore was a moving shape to be seen.

They were on their way back to the cabin one day when Quonab stopped and pointed. Far off on the snow-covered shore, there was a moving figure.

“Fox, and I think silver fox; he so black. I think he lives there.”

“Fox, and I think a silver fox; he’s so black. I think he lives there.”

“Why?” “I have seen many times a very big fox track, and they do not go where they do not live. Even in winter they keep their own range.”

“Why?” “I've seen really large fox tracks many times, and they don’t go places where they don’t live. Even in winter, they stick to their own territory.”

“He's worth ten martens, they say?” queried Rolf.

“Is he worth ten martens, they say?” Rolf asked.

“Ugh! fifty.”

“Ugh! 50.”

“Can't we get him?”

"Can’t we get him?"

“Can try. But the water set will not work in winter; we must try different.”

“Can try. But the water set won't work in winter; we need to try something else.”

This was the plan, the best that Quonab could devise for the snow: Saving the ashes from the fire (dry sand would have answered), he selected six open places in the woods on the south of the lake, and in each made an ash bed on which he scattered three or four drops of the smell-charm. Then, twenty-five yards from each, on the north or west side (the side of the prevailing wind) he hung from some sapling a few feathers, a partridge wing or tail with some red yarns to it. He left the places unvisited for two weeks, then returned to learn the progress of act one.

This was the plan, the best Quonab could come up with for dealing with the snow: After saving the ashes from the fire (dry sand would have worked too), he picked six open spots in the woods south of the lake. In each spot, he made an ash bed and sprinkled three or four drops of the scent-charm on it. Then, twenty-five yards away from each spot, on the north or west side (the direction of the prevailing wind), he hung a few feathers and a partridge wing or tail attached to some red yarn from a sapling. He left the spots alone for two weeks, then came back to see how the first act was progressing.

Judging from past experience of fox nature and from the few signs that were offered by the snow, this is what had happened: A fox came along soon after the trappers left, followed the track a little way, came to the first opening, smelled the seductive danger-lure, swung around it, saw the dangling feathers, took alarm, and went off. Another of the places had been visited by a marten. He had actually scratched in the ashes. A wolf had gone around another at a safe distance.

Judging by what we've seen from fox behavior in the past and the few clues left in the snow, here's what likely happened: A fox came by shortly after the trappers left, followed their tracks for a bit, reached the first opening, caught a whiff of the tempting danger-lure, circled around it, noticed the hanging feathers, got alarmed, and left. Another spot had been checked out by a marten, which had actually scratched in the ashes. A wolf had circled another location from a safe distance.

Another had been shunned several times by a fox or by foxes, but they had come again and again and at last yielded to the temptation to investigate the danger-smell; finally had rolled in it, evidently wallowing in an abandon of delight. So far, the plan was working there.

Another had been rejected several times by a fox or by foxes, but they had come back repeatedly and finally gave in to the temptation to check out the danger smell; ultimately, they rolled in it, clearly reveling in a blissful indulgence. So far, the plan was working there.

The next move was to set the six strong fox traps, each thoroughly smoked, and chained to a fifteen-pound block of wood.

The next step was to set the six sturdy fox traps, each well smoked and attached to a fifteen-pound block of wood.

Approaching the place carefully and using his blood-rubbed glove, Quonab set in each ash pile a trap. Under its face he put a wad of white rabbit fur. Next he buried all in the ashes, scattered a few bits of rabbit and a few drops of smell-charm, then dashed snow over the place, renewed the dangling feathers to lure the eye; and finally left the rest to the weather.

Approaching the spot cautiously and using his blood-stained glove, Quonab set a trap in each ash pile. He placed a ball of white rabbit fur underneath. Then he covered everything with ashes, scattered some bits of rabbit, added a few drops of scent, and topped it off with snow to disguise the area. He refreshed the dangling feathers to catch the eye and finally left the rest to the elements.

Rolf was keen to go the next day, but the old man said: “Wah! no good! no trap go first night; man smell too strong.” The second day there was a snowfall, and the third morning Quonab said, “Now seem like good time.”

Rolf was eager to go the next day, but the old man said, “Whoa! That's not a good idea! No traps will catch anything the first night; the human scent is too strong.” On the second day, it snowed, and the third morning Quonab said, “Now it seems like a good time.”

The first trap was untouched, but there was clearly the track of a large fox within ten yards of it.

The first trap was undisturbed, but there was definitely the track of a large fox within ten yards of it.

The second was gone. Quonab said, with surprise in his voice, “Deer!” Yes, truly, there was the record. A deer—a big one—had come wandering past; his keen nose soon apprised him of a strong, queer appeal near by. He had gone unsuspiciously toward it, sniffed and pawed the unaccountable and exciting nose medicine; then “snap!” and he had sprung a dozen feet, with that diabolic smell-thing hanging to his foot. Hop, hop, hop, the terrified deer had gone into a slashing windfall. Then the drag had caught on the logs, and, thanks to the hard and taper hoofs, the trap had slipped off and been left behind, while the deer had sought safer regions.

The second one was gone. Quonab said, surprised, “A deer!” Yes, there it was, a big one that had wandered close by. Its sharp nose quickly picked up on a strong, strange scent nearby. It approached curiously, sniffing and pawing at the mysterious and intriguing smell; then “snap!” it jumped a dozen feet, with that crazy smell-thing clinging to its foot. Hop, hop, hop, the scared deer darted into a pile of fallen trees. Then the trap got caught on the logs, and thanks to its strong, pointed hooves, it managed to slip off and be left behind, while the deer moved on to safer areas.

In the next trap they found a beautiful marten dead, killed at once by the clutch of steel. The last trap was gone, but the tracks and the marks told a tale that any one could read; a fox had been beguiled and had gone off, dragging the trap and log. Not far did they need to go; held in a thicket they found him, and Rolf prepared the mid-day meal while Quonab gathered the pelt. After removing the skin the Indian cut deep and carefully into the body of the fox and removed the bladder. Its contents sprinkled near each of the traps was good medicine, he said; a view that was evidently shared by Skookum.

In the next trap, they found a beautiful marten dead, instantly killed by the steel jaws. The last trap was gone, but the tracks and marks told a story that anyone could understand; a fox had been tricked and had run off, dragging the trap and log with it. They didn’t have to go far; tucked away in a thicket, they found him. Rolf made lunch while Quonab gathered the pelt. After skinning the fox, the Indian carefully cut deep into its body and took out the bladder. He said that sprinkling its contents near each of the traps was good medicine, a belief that Skookum clearly agreed with.

More than once they saw the track of the big fox of the region, but never very near the snare. He was too clever to be fooled by smell-spells or kidney products, no matter how temptingly arrayed. The trappers did, indeed, capture three red foxes; but it was at cost of great labour. It was a venture that did not pay. The silver fox was there, but he took too good care of his precious hide. The slightest hint of a man being near was enough to treble his already double wariness. They would never have seen him near at hand, but for a stirring episode that told a tale of winter hardship.

More than once, they spotted the tracks of the big fox in the area, but never close to the trap. He was too smart to fall for smells or bait, no matter how enticingly presented. The trappers did manage to catch three red foxes, but it took a lot of effort. It was not a profitable venture. The silver fox was around, but he was very careful about his valuable coat. Even the slightest hint of a human nearby was enough to triple his already heightened caution. They would never have seen him up close, except for a dramatic event that revealed the struggles of winter.





Chapter 39. The Humiliation of Skookum

If Skookum could have been interviewed by a newspaper man, he would doubtless have said: “I am a very remarkable dog. I can tree partridges. I'm death on porcupines. I am pretty good in a dog fight; never was licked in fact: but my really marvellous gift is my speed; I'm a terror to run.”

If Skookum could have been interviewed by a journalist, he probably would have said: “I’m a really remarkable dog. I can chase partridges up trees. I’m tough on porcupines. I’m pretty good in a dog fight; I’ve never lost, actually: but my truly amazing talent is my speed; I’m a whirlwind to catch.”

Yes, he was very proud of his legs, and the foxes that came about in the winter nights gave him many opportunities of showing what he could do. Many times over he very nearly caught a fox. Skookum did not know that these wily ones were playing with him; but they were, and enjoyed it immensely.

Yes, he was really proud of his legs, and the foxes that appeared on winter nights gave him plenty of chances to show off what he could do. Many times he almost caught a fox. Skookum didn't realize that these clever animals were toying with him; they were, and they enjoyed it a lot.

The self-sufficient cur never found this out, and never lost a chance of nearly catching a fox. The men did not see those autumn chases because they were by night; but foxes hunt much by day in winter, perforce, and are often seen; and more than once they witnessed one of these farcical races.

The independent dog never figured this out, and never missed an opportunity to almost catch a fox. The men didn’t see those autumn hunts because they happened at night; but foxes do a lot of hunting during the day in winter, so they are often spotted; and more than once, they saw one of these ridiculous races.

And now the shining white furnished background for a much more important affair.

And now the bright white backdrop set the stage for a much more significant event.

It was near sundown one day when a faint fox bark was heard out on the snow-covered ice of the lake.

It was close to sunset one day when a distant fox bark echoed across the snow-covered ice of the lake.

“That's for me,” Skookum seemed to think, and jumping up, with a very fierce growl, he trotted forth; the men looked first from the window. Out on the snow, sitting on his haunches, was their friend, the big, black silver fox.

“That's mine,” Skookum seemed to think, and jumping up with a fierce growl, he trotted out; the men looked out the window first. On the snow, sitting on his haunches, was their friend, the big black silver fox.

Quonab reached for his gun and Rolf tried to call Skookum, but it was too late. He was out to catch that fox; their business was to look on and applaud. The fox sat on his haunches, grinning apparently, until Skookum dashed through the snow within twenty yards. Then, that shining, black fox loped gently away, his huge tail level out behind him, and Skookum, sure of success, raced up, within six or seven yards. A few more leaps now, and the victory would be won. But somehow he could not close that six or seven yard gap. No matter how he strained and leaped, the great black brush was just so far ahead. At first they had headed for the shore, but the fox wheeled back to the ice and up and down. Skookum felt it was because escape was hopeless, and he redoubled his effort. But all in vain. He was only wearing himself out, panting noisily now. The snow was deep enough to be a great disadvantage, more to dog than to fox, since weight counted as such a handicap. Unconsciously Skookum slowed up. The fox increased his headway; then audaciously turned around and sat down in the snow.

Quonab grabbed his gun, and Rolf tried to call Skookum, but it was too late. He was off to catch that fox; their job was to watch and cheer. The fox sat on its haunches, seemingly grinning, until Skookum dashed through the snow, getting within twenty yards. Then, that shiny black fox trotted away with its big tail held high behind it, and Skookum, confident of winning, sprinted up to within six or seven yards. Just a few more jumps, and victory would be his. But somehow, he couldn't close that six or seven yard gap. No matter how hard he pushed himself, that great black brush was always just out of reach. At first, they headed for the shore, but the fox quickly turned back onto the ice, moving back and forth. Skookum sensed that escape was impossible, so he increased his effort. But it was all for nothing. He was only exhausting himself, panting heavily now. The snow was deep enough to be a real disadvantage, hurting him more than the fox because his weight was such a handicap. Unconsciously, Skookum slowed down. The fox sped up; then, boldly, it turned around and sat down in the snow.

This was too much for the dog. He wasted about a lungful of air in an angry bark, and again went after the enemy. Again the chase was round and round, but very soon the dog was so wearied that he sat down, and now the black fox actually came back and barked at him.

This was too much for the dog. He let out an angry bark and then went after the enemy again. The chase went in circles, but soon the dog was so tired that he sat down, and now the black fox actually came back and barked at him.

It was maddening. Skookum's pride was touched.

It was infuriating. Skookum's pride was hurt.

He was in to win or break. His supreme effort brought him within five feet of that white-tipped brush. Then, strange to tell, the big black fox put forth his large reserve of speed, and making for the woods, left Skookum far behind. Why? The cause was clear. Quonab, after vainly watching for a chance to shoot, that would not endanger the dog, had, under cover, crept around the lake and now was awaiting in a thicket. But the fox's keen nose had warned him. He knew that the funny part was over, so ran for the woods and disappeared as a ball tossed up the snow behind him.

He was all in, determined to win or break. His intense effort brought him within five feet of that white-tipped brush. Then, oddly enough, the big black fox unleashed its full speed and headed for the woods, leaving Skookum far behind. Why? The reason was clear. Quonab, after unsuccessfully trying to find a safe shot that wouldn't put the dog in danger, had quietly snuck around the lake and was now waiting in a thicket. But the fox's sharp nose had alerted him. He realized the fun was over, so he sprinted for the woods and vanished like a ball tossed into the snow behind him.

Poor Skookum's tongue was nearly a foot long as he walked meekly ashore. He looked depressed; his tail was depressed; so were his ears; but there was nothing to show whether he would have told that reporter that he “wasn't feeling up to his usual, to-day,” or “Didn't you see me get the best of him?”

Poor Skookum's tongue was almost a foot long as he walked quietly ashore. He looked downcast; his tail was down; so were his ears; but there was no way to tell if he would have told that reporter that he “wasn't feeling his usual self today,” or “Didn't you see me outsmart him?”





Chapter 40. The Rarest of Pelts

They saw that silver fox three or four times during the winter, and once found that he had had the audacity to jump from a high snowdrift onto the storehouse and thence to the cabin roof, where he had feasted on some white rabbits kept there for deadfall baits. But all attempts to trap or shoot him were vain, and their acquaintance might have ended as it began, but for an accident.

They spotted that silver fox three or four times throughout the winter, and once found that he had the nerve to jump from a tall snowdrift onto the storehouse and then onto the cabin roof, where he had enjoyed some white rabbits kept there for deadfall bait. However, all their attempts to trap or shoot him were unsuccessful, and their interaction might have ended just like it started, if not for an accident.

It proved a winter of much snow. Heavy snow is the worst misfortune that can befall the wood folk in fur. It hides their food beyond reach, and it checks their movements so they can neither travel far in search of provender nor run fast to escape their enemies. Deep snow then means fetters, starvation, and death. There are two ways of meeting the problem: stilts and snowshoes. The second is far the better. The caribou, and the moose have stilts; the rabbit, the panther, and the lynx wear snowshoes. When there are three or four feet of soft snow, the lynx is king of all small beasts, and little in fear of the large ones. Man on his snowshoes has most wild four-foots at his mercy.

It turned out to be a winter full of snow. Heavy snowfall is the worst hardship that can happen to animals in fur. It hides their food out of reach and limits their movement, making it difficult for them to travel far in search of food or to run quickly to escape predators. Deep snow brings chains, starvation, and death. There are two ways to handle this situation: stilts and snowshoes. The latter is definitely the better option. Caribou and moose have stilts; rabbits, panthers, and lynxes wear snowshoes. When there are three or four feet of soft snow, the lynx is the ruler of all small animals and has little to fear from the larger ones. A person on snowshoes has most wild four-legged creatures at their mercy.

Skookum, without either means of meeting the trouble was left much alone in the shanty. Apparently, it was on one of these occasions that the silver fox had driven him nearly frantic by eating rabbits on the roof above him.

Skookum, with no way to handle the problem, was mostly left alone in the cabin. It seems that during one of these times, the silver fox drove him almost mad by eating rabbits on the roof above him.

The exasperating robbery of their trap line had gone on irregularly all winter, but the thief was clever enough or lucky enough to elude them.

The frustrating theft of their trap line had been happening sporadically all winter, but the thief was smart enough or fortunate enough to avoid getting caught.

They were returning to the cabin after a three days' round, when they saw, far out on the white expanse of the lake, two animals, alternately running and fighting. “Skookum and the fox,” was the first thought that came, but on entering the cabin Skookum greeted them in person.

They were coming back to the cabin after a three-day trip when they noticed, way out on the white surface of the lake, two animals that were alternately running and fighting. “Skookum and the fox,” was the first thought that crossed their minds, but when they entered the cabin, Skookum greeted them in person.

Quonab gazed intently at the two running specks and said: “One has no tail. I think it is a peeshoo (lynx) and a fox.”

Quonab stared closely at the two small figures running and said, “One doesn't have a tail. I think it's a peeshoo (lynx) and a fox.”

Rolf was making dinner. From time to time he glanced over the lake and saw the two specks, usually running. After dinner was over, he said, “Let's sneak 'round and see if we can get a shot.”

Rolf was making dinner. Occasionally, he looked over at the lake and saw the two small figures, usually running. After dinner was finished, he said, “Let’s sneak around and see if we can get a shot.”

So, putting on their snowshoes and keeping out of sight, they skimmed over the deer crossing and through the woods, till at a point near the fighters, and there they saw something that recalled at once the day of Skookum's humiliation.

So, putting on their snowshoes and staying hidden, they glided over the deer crossing and through the woods until they reached a spot close to the fighters, where they saw something that immediately reminded them of the day Skookum was humiliated.

A hundred yards away on the open snow was a huge lynx and their old friend, the black and shining silver fox, face to face; the fox desperate, showing his rows of beautiful teeth, but sinking belly deep in the snow as he strove to escape. Already he was badly wounded. In any case he was at the mercy of the lynx who, in spite of his greater weight, had such broad and perfect snowshoes that he skimmed on the surface, while the fox's small feet sank deep. The lynx was far from fresh, and still stood in some awe of those rows of teeth that snapped like traps when he came too near. He was minded, of course, to kill his black rival, but not to be hurt in doing so. Again and again there was in some sort a closing fight, the wearied fox plunging breathlessly through the treacherous, relentless snow. If he could only get back to cover, he might find a corner to protect his rear and have some fighting chance for life. But wherever he turned that huge cat faced him, doubly armed, and equipped as a fox can never be for the snow.

A hundred yards away on the open snow, a huge lynx faced off with their old friend, the sleek black and silver fox. The fox was desperate, showing his beautiful teeth but sinking belly-deep in the snow as he tried to escape. He was already badly injured. At this point, he was at the mercy of the lynx, who, despite being heavier, had wide and perfect snowshoes that allowed him to glide over the surface while the fox's small feet sank deep. The lynx wasn't in top condition, yet he still hesitated at the sight of those teeth that snapped like traps when he got too close. He intended to kill his black rival but wanted to avoid getting hurt in the process. Over and over, they engaged in a sort of closing fight, with the exhausted fox desperately plunging through the treacherous, unforgiving snow. If he could just reach some cover, he might find a spot to guard his back and have a fighting chance for survival. But no matter where he turned, that massive cat was there, fully armed and equipped in a way that a fox could never be in the snow.

No one could watch that plucky fight without feeling his sympathies go out to the beautiful silver fox. Rolf, at least, was for helping him to escape, when the final onset came. In another dash for the woods the fox plunged out of sight in a drift made soft by sedge sticking through, and before he could recover, the lynx's jaws closed on the back of his neck and the relentless claws had pierced his vitals.

No one could watch that brave struggle without feeling a connection to the beautiful silver fox. Rolf, at least, wanted to help him escape when the final attack came. In another rush for the woods, the fox disappeared into a patch softened by sedge sticking through the snow, and before he could regain his footing, the lynx's jaws clamped down on the back of his neck, and the merciless claws pierced his insides.

The justification of killing is self-preservation, and in this case the proof would have been the lynx making a meal of the fox. Did he do so? Not at all. He shook his fur, licked his chest and paws in a self-congratulatory way, then giving a final tug at the body, walked calmly over the snow along the shore.

The reason for killing is self-defense, and in this case, evidence would have been the lynx eating the fox. Did he do that? Not at all. He shook off his fur, licked his chest and paws in a proud way, then gave a final tug at the body and walked calmly over the snow along the shore.

Quonab put the back of his hand to his mouth and made a loud squeaking, much like a rabbit caught in a snare. The lynx stopped, wheeled, and came trotting straight toward the promising music. Unsuspectingly he came within twenty yards of the trappers. The flint-lock banged and the lynx was kicking in the snow.

Quonab covered his mouth with the back of his hand and let out a loud squeak, similar to a rabbit caught in a trap. The lynx stopped, turned around, and trotted right toward the enticing sound. Without realizing the danger, it came within twenty yards of the trappers. The flint-lock fired and the lynx started thrashing in the snow.

The beautiful silver fox skin was very little injured and proved of value almost to double their catch so far; while the lynx skin was as good as another marten.

The beautiful silver fox pelt was barely damaged and ended up being worth almost twice their total catch so far, while the lynx pelt was as good as getting another marten.

They now had opportunity of studying the tracks and learned that the fox had been hunting rabbits in a thicket when he was set on by the lynx. At first he had run around in the bushes and saved himself from serious injury, for the snow was partly packed by the rabbits. After perhaps an hour of this, he had wearied and sought to save himself by abandoning the lynx's territory, so had struck across the open lake. But here the snow was too soft to bear him at all, and the lynx could still skim over. So it proved a fatal error. He was strong and brave. He fought at least another hour here before the much stronger, heavier lynx had done him to death. There was no justification. It was a clear case of tyrannical murder, but in this case vengeance was swift and justice came sooner than its wont.

They had the chance to examine the tracks and discovered that the fox had been hunting rabbits in a thicket when the lynx attacked him. At first, he ran around in the bushes, avoiding serious injury since the snow was partially packed by the rabbits. After about an hour of this, he grew tired and tried to escape by leaving the lynx's territory, crossing the open lake. However, the snow was too soft to support him, while the lynx could effortlessly glide over it. This turned out to be a fatal mistake. He was strong and brave, fighting for at least another hour before the much stronger, heavier lynx killed him. There was no justification for this. It was a clear case of ruthless murder, but in this instance, revenge was quick, and the scales of justice tipped sooner than usual.





Chapter 41. The Enemy's Fort

     It pays 'bout once in  a hundred times to git mad, but there
     ain't any  way o' tellin' beforehand which is the time.
     —Sayings of Si Sylvanne.
     It pays about once in a hundred times to get angry, but there’s no way to know in advance which time that will be.  
     —Sayings of Si Sylvanne.

It generally took two days to run the west line of traps. At a convenient point they had built a rough shack for a half-way house. On entering this one day, they learned that since their last visit it had been occupied by some one who chewed tobacco. Neither of them had this habit. Quonab's face grew darker each time fresh evidence of the enemy was discovered, and the final wrong was added soon.

It usually took two days to check the west line of traps. They had set up a simple shack as a halfway house at a good spot. One day, when they walked in, they found out that since their last visit, someone who chewed tobacco had been staying there. Neither of them had that habit. Quonab's expression became more irritated each time they found more signs of the intruder, and soon the last straw was added.

Some trappers mark their traps; some do not bother. Rolf had marked all of theirs with a file, cutting notches on the iron. Two, one, three, was their mark, and it was a wise plan, as it turned out.

Some trappers mark their traps; others don’t bother. Rolf had marked all of theirs with a file, cutting notches into the iron. Two, one, three, was their mark, and it turned out to be a smart plan.

On going around the west beaver pond they found that all six traps had disappeared. In some, there was no evidence of the thief; in some, the tracks showed clearly that they were taken by the same interloper that had bothered them all along, and on a jagged branch was a short blue yarn.

As they walked around the west beaver pond, they discovered that all six traps were gone. In some cases, there was no sign of the thief; in others, the tracks clearly indicated that they were taken by the same intruder who had been a nuisance all along, and on a jagged branch was a short blue piece of yarn.

“Now will I take up his trail and kill him,” said the Indian.

“Now I’ll follow his trail and take him out,” said the Indian.

Rolf had opposed extreme measures, and again he remonstrated. To his surprise, the Indian turned fiercely and said: “You know it is white man. If he was Indian would you be patient? No!”

Rolf had opposed extreme measures, and once again he expressed his disagreement. To his surprise, the Indian turned sharply and said: “You know it’s the white man. If he were Indian, would you be patient? No!”

“There is plenty of country south of the lake; maybe he was here first.”

“There’s a lot of land south of the lake; maybe he was here first.”

“You know he was not. You should eat many pekan hearts. I have sought peace, now I fight.”

“You know he wasn’t. You should eat lots of pecan hearts. I’ve looked for peace, and now I fight.”

He shouldered his pack, grasped his gun, and his snowshoes went “tssape, tssape, tssape,” over the snow.

He slung on his backpack, grabbed his gun, and his snowshoes went “tssape, tssape, tssape” over the snow.

Skookum was sitting by Rolf. He rose to resume the march, and trotted a few steps on Quonab's trail. Rolf did not move; he was dazed by the sudden and painful situation. Mutiny is always worse than war. Skookum looked back, trotted on, still Rolf sat staring. Quonab's figure was lost in the distance; the dog's was nearly so. Rolf moved not. All the events of the last year were rushing through his mind; the refuge he had found with the Indian; the incident of the buck fight and the tender nurse the red man proved. He wavered. Then he saw Skookum coming back on the trail. The dog trotted up to the boy and dropped a glove, one of Quonab's. Undoubtedly the Indian had lost it; Skookum had found it on the trail and mechanically brought it to the nearest of his masters. Without that glove Quonab's hand would freeze. Rolf rose and sped along the other's trail. Having taken the step, he found it easy to send a long halloo, then another and another, till an answer came. In a few minutes Rolf came up. The Indian was sitting on a log, waiting. The glove was handed over in silence, and received with a grunt.

Skookum was sitting next to Rolf. He got up to continue the march and trotted a few steps along Quonab's trail. Rolf didn’t move; he was stunned by the sudden and painful situation. Mutiny is always worse than war. Skookum looked back, kept trotting on, but Rolf remained sitting and staring. Quonab's figure faded into the distance; the dog's was almost gone too. Rolf stayed still. All the events of the past year flooded his mind: the refuge he had found with the Indian, the buck fight incident, and how caring the red man had been. He hesitated. Then he saw Skookum returning along the trail. The dog trotted up to him and dropped a glove—one of Quonab's. The Indian had undoubtedly lost it; Skookum found it on the trail and brought it back to the closest of his masters. Without that glove, Quonab’s hand would freeze. Rolf got up and hurried after the other's trail. Once he took that step, he found it easy to let out a long shout, then another and another, until he got a response. In a few minutes, Rolf caught up. The Indian was sitting on a log, waiting. The glove was handed over in silence and received with a grunt.

After a minute or two, Rolf said “Let's get on,” and started on the dim trail of the robber.

After a minute or two, Rolf said, “Let’s move on,” and started down the dim trail of the robber.

For an hour or two they strode in silence. Then their course rose as they reached a rocky range. Among its bare, wind-swept ridges all sign was lost, but the Indian kept on till they were over and on the other side. A far cast in the thick, windless woods revealed the trail again, surely the same, for the snowshoe was two fingers wider on every side, and a hand-breadth longer than Quonab's; besides the right frame had been broken and the binding of rawhide was faintly seen in the snow mark. It was a mark they had seen all winter, and now it was headed as before for the west.

For an hour or two, they walked in silence. Then their path rose as they reached a rocky range. Among its bare, wind-swept ridges, all signs disappeared, but the Indian kept going until they were over and on the other side. A distant look into the dense, still woods revealed the trail again, definitely the same, because the snowshoe was two fingers wider on every side and a hand's length longer than Quonab's; also, the right frame had been broken, and the rawhide binding was faintly visible in the snow mark. It was a mark they had seen all winter, and now it was headed west just like before.

When night came down, they camped in a hollow. They were used to snow camps. In the morning they went on, but wind and snow had hidden their tell-tale guide.

When night fell, they set up camp in a hollow. They were familiar with snowy camps. In the morning, they continued on, but the wind and snow had covered their tell-tale marker.

What was the next move? Rolf did not ask, but wondered.

What should he do next? Rolf didn't ask, but he was curious.

Quonab evidently was puzzled.

Quonab was clearly confused.

At length Rolf ventured: “He surely lives by some river—that way—and within a day's journey. This track is gone, but we may strike a fresh one. We'll know it when we see it.”

At last, Rolf suggested, “He must live by some river over that way, within about a day's travel. This path is gone, but we can find a new one. We’ll recognize it when we find it.”

The friendly look came back to the Indian's face. “You are Nibowaka.”

The friendly look returned to the Indian's face. “You are Nibowaka.”

They had not gone half a mile before they found a fresh track—their old acquaintance. Even Skookum showed his hostile recognition. And in a few minutes it led them to a shanty. They slipped off their snowshoes, and hung them in a tree. Quonab opened the door without knocking. They entered, and in a moment were face to face with a lanky, ill-favoured white man that all three, including Skookum, recognized as Hoag, the man they had met at the trader's.

They hadn't traveled half a mile before they spotted a fresh track—their old acquaintance. Even Skookum showed his unfriendly recognition. In just a few minutes, the track led them to a cabin. They took off their snowshoes and hung them in a tree. Quonab opened the door without knocking. They walked in and soon found themselves face to face with a tall, unappealing white man whom all three, including Skookum, recognized as Hoag, the guy they had met at the trader's.

That worthy made a quick reach for his rifle, but Quonab covered him and said in tones that brooked no discussion, “Sit down!”

That guy quickly grabbed for his rifle, but Quonab stopped him and said firmly, “Sit down!”

Hoag did so, sullenly, then growled: “All right; my partners will be here in ten minutes.”

Hoag did that, grumpily, then said, “Fine; my partners will be here in ten minutes.”

Rolf was startled. Quonab and Skookum were not.

Rolf was surprised. Quonab and Skookum weren’t.

“We settled your partners up in the hills,” said the former, knowing that one bluff was as good as another. Skookum growled and sniffed at the enemy's legs. The prisoner made a quick move with his foot.

“We set your partners up in the hills,” said the former, knowing that one bluff was as good as another. Skookum growled and sniffed at the enemy's legs. The prisoner made a quick move with his foot.

“You kick that dog again and it's your last kick,” said the Indian.

“You kick that dog again and it’ll be your last kick,” said the Indian.

“Who's kicked yer dog, and what do you mean coming here with yer cutthroat ways? You'll find there's law in this country before yer through,” was the answer.

“Who kicked your dog, and what do you mean showing up here with your ruthless attitude? You'll find out there's law in this country before you're done,” was the reply.

“That's what we're looking for, you trap robber, you thief. We're here first to find our traps; second to tell you this: the next time you come on our line there'll be meat for the ravens. Do you suppose I don't know them?” and the Indian pointed to a large pair of snowshoes with long heels and a repair lashing on the right frame. “See that blue yarn,” and the Indian matched it with a blue sash hanging to a peg.

“That's what we're after, you trap robber, you thief. We're here first to find our traps; second to tell you this: the next time you come on our line, there'll be meat for the ravens. Do you really think I don't know them?” and the Indian pointed to a large pair of snowshoes with long heels and a repair lashing on the right frame. “See that blue yarn?” and the Indian matched it with a blue sash hanging from a peg.

“Yes, them belongs to Bill Hawkins; he'll be 'round in five minutes now.”

“Yes, they belong to Bill Hawkins; he'll be here in five minutes.”

The Indian made a gesture of scorn; then turning to Rolf said: “look 'round for our traps.” Rolf made a thorough search in and about the shanty and the adjoining shed. He found some traps but none with his mark; none of a familiar make even.

The Indian scoffed and then turned to Rolf, saying, “Look around for our traps.” Rolf searched thoroughly in and around the shanty and the nearby shed. He found some traps, but none had his mark; none were of a familiar design either.

“Better hunt for a squaw and papoose,” sneered Hoag, who was utterly puzzled by the fact that now Rolf was obviously a white lad.

“Better look for a woman and baby,” sneered Hoag, who was completely confused by the fact that Rolf was clearly a white kid now.

But all the search was vain. Either Hoag had not stolen the traps or had hidden them elsewhere. The only large traps they found were two of the largest size for taking bear.

But all the search was pointless. Either Hoag hadn’t stolen the traps or he had hidden them somewhere else. The only large traps they found were two of the biggest size for catching bears.

Hoag's torrent of bad language had been quickly checked by the threat of turning Skookum loose on his legs, and he looked such a grovelling beast that presently the visitors decided to leave him with a warning.

Hoag's wave of foul language was swiftly halted by the threat of unleashing Skookum on him, and he looked so pathetic that soon the visitors chose to leave him with just a warning.

The Indian took the trapper's gun, fired it off out of doors, not in the least perturbed by the possibility of its being heard by Hoag's partners. He knew they were imaginary. Then changing his plan, he said “Ugh! You find your gun in half a mile on our trail. But don't come farther and don't let me see the snowshoe trail on the divide again. Them ravens is awful hungry.”

The Indian took the trapper's gun, fired it outside, not at all worried that Hoag's partners might hear it. He knew they were just figments of his imagination. Then changing his approach, he said, “Ugh! You’ll find your gun half a mile down our trail. But don’t come any closer and don’t let me see the snowshoe tracks on the divide again. Those ravens are really hungry.”

Skookum, to his disappointment, was called off and, talking the trapper's gun for a time, they left it in a bush and made for their own country.

Skookum, to his disappointment, was called off and, taking the trapper's gun for a while, they left it in a bush and headed back to their own territory.





Chapter 42. Skookum's Panther

“Why are there so few deer tracks now?”

“Deer yarded for winter,” replied the Indian; “no travel in deep snow.”

“Deer stay in their winter spots,” replied the Native American; “you can’t travel in deep snow.”

“We'll soon need another,” said Rolf, which unfortunately was true. They could have killed many deer in early winter, when the venison was in fine condition, but they had no place to store it. Now they must get it as they could, and of course it was thinner and poorer every week.

“We'll soon need another,” Rolf said, which was unfortunately true. They could have taken down a lot of deer in early winter when the venison was in great shape, but they didn’t have anywhere to store it. Now they had to get it however they could, and naturally, it was getting thinner and poorer every week.

They were on a high hill some days later. There was a clear view and they noticed several ravens circling and swooping.

They were on a high hill a few days later. The view was clear, and they saw several ravens circling and diving.

“Maybe dead deer; maybe deer yard,” said the Indian.

“Maybe dead deer; maybe deer yard,” said the Native American.

It was over a thick, sheltered, and extensive cedar swamp near the woods where last year they had seen so many deer, and they were not surprised to find deer tracks in numbers, as soon as they got into its dense thicket.

It was over a thick, sheltered, and vast cedar swamp close to the woods where they had seen so many deer last year, and they weren't surprised to find a lot of deer tracks as soon as they entered its dense thicket.

A deer yard is commonly supposed to be a place in which the deer have a daily “bee” at road work all winter long and deliberately keep the snow hammered down so they can run on a hard surface everywhere within its limits. The fact is, the deer gather in a place where there is plenty of food and good shelter. The snow does not drift here, so the deer, by continually moving about, soon make a network of tracks in all directions, extending them as they must to seek more food. They may, of course, leave the yard at any time, but at once they encounter the dreaded obstacle of deep, soft snow in which they are helpless.

A deer yard is generally thought of as a spot where deer spend the winter, working on the roads daily to keep the snow packed down, allowing them to run on a hard surface everywhere within its boundaries. In reality, deer gather in an area where there's plenty of food and good shelter. The snow doesn't drift here, so by continually moving around, the deer quickly create a network of tracks in all directions, extending them as needed to find more food. They can leave the yard whenever they want, but as soon as they do, they face the challenging barrier of deep, soft snow, which leaves them stranded.

Once they reached the well-worn trails, the hunters took off their snowshoes and went gently on these deer paths. They saw one or two disappearing forms, which taught them the thick cover was hiding many more. They made for the sound of the ravens, and found that the feast of the sable birds was not a deer but the bodies of three, quite recently killed.

Once they got to the familiar trails, the hunters took off their snowshoes and quietly walked along the deer paths. They spotted one or two shapes disappearing, which suggested that the dense cover was concealing many more. They followed the sound of the ravens and discovered that the birds were feasting not on a deer, but on the bodies of three recently killed animals.

Quonab made a hasty study of the signs and said, “Panther.”

Quonab quickly examined the signs and said, “Panther.”

Yes, a panther, cougar, or mountain lion also had found the deer yard; and here he was living, like a rat in a grocer shop with nothing to do but help himself whenever he felt like feasting.

Yes, a panther, cougar, or mountain lion had also discovered the deer yard; and here he was living, like a rat in a grocery store with nothing to do but help himself whenever he felt like eating.

Pleasant for the panther, but hard on the deer; for the killer is wasteful and will often kill for the joy of murder.

Pleasant for the panther, but tough on the deer; because the killer is wasteful and often kills just for the thrill of it.

Not a quarter of the carcasses lying here did he eat; he was feeding at least a score of ravens, and maybe foxes, martens, and lynxes as well.

He didn't eat even a quarter of the carcasses lying here; he was feeding at least twenty ravens, and maybe some foxes, martens, and lynxes too.

Before killing a deer, Quonab thought it well to take a quiet prowl around in hopes of seeing the panther. Skookum was turned loose and encouraged to display his talents.

Before killing a deer, Quonab thought it would be a good idea to take a quiet walk around in hopes of spotting the panther. Skookum was let loose and encouraged to show off his skills.

Proud as a general with an ample and obedient following, he dashed ahead, carrying fresh dismay among the deer, if one might judge from the noise. Then he found some new smell of excitement, and voiced the new thrill in a new sound, one not unmixed with fear. At length his barking was far away to the west in a rocky part of the woods. Whatever the prey, it was treed, for the voice kept one place.

Proud like a general with a loyal and ready group behind him, he charged forward, spreading fresh panic among the deer, judging by the commotion. Then he caught a new scent of excitement and expressed the thrill in a different bark, tinged with some fear. Eventually, his barking became distant to the west in a rocky area of the woods. Whatever he was hunting, it was up a tree, as the sound stayed in one spot.

The hunters followed quickly and found the dog yapping furiously under a thick cedar. The first thought was of porcupine; but a nearer view showed the game to be a huge panther on the ground, not greatly excited, disdaining to climb, and taking little notice of the dog, except to curl his nose and utter a hissing kind of snarl when the latter came too near.

The hunters quickly caught up and saw the dog barking furiously under a thick cedar tree. At first, they thought it was a porcupine, but when they got closer, they realized it was a huge panther on the ground, not overly agitated, refusing to climb up and barely paying any attention to the dog, except to curl its nose and make a hissing snarl when the dog got too close.

But the arrival of the hunters gave a new colour to the picture. The panther raised his head, then sprang up a large tree and ensconced himself on a fork, while the valorous Skookum reared against the trunk, threatening loudly to come up and tear him to pieces.

But the arrival of the hunters added a new twist to the scene. The panther lifted his head, then jumped up a big tree and settled on a branch, while the brave Skookum stood against the trunk, barking loudly as if ready to climb up and rip him apart.

This was a rare find and a noble chance to conserve their stock of deer, so the hunters went around the tree seeking for a fair shot. But every point of view had some serious obstacle. It seemed as though the branches had been told off to guard the panther's vitals, for a big one always stood in the bullet's way.

This was a rare discovery and a great opportunity to preserve their deer population, so the hunters circled the tree looking for a clear shot. But every angle had a significant hurdle. It felt like the branches were assigned to protect the panther's vital areas, as a large one always blocked the way of the bullet.

After vainly going around, Quonab said to Rolf: “Hit him with something, so he'll move.”

After wandering around without success, Quonab said to Rolf, “Throw something at him to get him moving.”

Rolf always was a good shot with stones, but he found none to throw. Near where they stood, however, was an unfreezing spring, and the soggy snow on it was easily packed into a hard, heavy snowball. Rolf threw it straight, swift, and by good luck it hit the panther square on the nose and startled him so that he sprang right out of the tree and flopped into the snow.

Rolf was always great at throwing stones, but he couldn't find any to use. However, nearby was an unfrozen spring, and the wet snow covering it was easy to pack into a solid, heavy snowball. Rolf threw it straight and fast, and luckily, it hit the panther right on the nose, startling him so much that he jumped out of the tree and flopped into the snow.

Skookum was on him at once, but got a slap on the ear that changed his music, and the panther bounded away out of sight with the valiant Skookum ten feet behind, whooping and yelling like mad.

Skookum was on him right away, but he got a slap on the ear that changed his tune, and the panther sprang away out of sight with the brave Skookum ten feet behind, whooping and yelling like crazy.

It was annoyance rather than fear that made that panther take to a low tree while Skookum boxed the compass, and made a beaten dog path all around him. The hunters approached very carefully now, making little sound and keeping out of sight. The panther was wholly engrossed with observing the astonishing impudence of that dog, when Quonab came quietly up, leaned his rifle against a tree and fired. The smoke cleared to show the panther on his back, his legs convulsively waving in the air, and Skookum tugging valiantly at his tail.

It was annoyance, not fear, that caused the panther to climb a low tree while Skookum circled around him, creating a worn path. The hunters moved in carefully now, making little noise and staying out of sight. The panther was completely focused on the unbelievable boldness of that dog when Quonab quietly approached, leaned his rifle against a tree, and fired. When the smoke cleared, the panther was on his back, his legs flailing in the air, and Skookum was proudly pulling at his tail.

“My panther,” he seemed to say; “whatever would you do without me?”

“My panther,” he seemed to say; “what would you do without me?”

A panther in a deer yard is much like a wolf shut up in a sheepfold. He would probably have killed all the deer that winter, though there were ten times as many as he needed for food; and getting rid of him was a piece of good luck for hunters and deer, while his superb hide made a noble trophy that in years to come had unexpected places of honour.

A panther in a deer yard is much like a wolf locked up in a sheepfold. He would likely have killed all the deer that winter, even though there were ten times more than he needed for food; getting rid of him was a stroke of good luck for both hunters and deer, while his amazing hide became a valuable trophy that ended up in unexpected places of honor in the years to come.





Chapter 43. Sunday in the Woods

Rolf still kept to the tradition of Sunday, and Quonab had in a manner accepted it. It was a curious fact that the red man had far more toleration for the white man's religious ideas than the white man had for the red's.

Rolf still followed the Sunday tradition, and Quonab had somewhat embraced it. It was interesting to note that the Native American had much more tolerance for the white man's religious beliefs than the white man had for the Native’s.

Quonab's songs to the sun and the spirit, or his burning of a tobacco pinch, or an animal's whiskers were to Rolf but harmless nonsense. Had he given them other names, calling them hymns and incense, he would have been much nearer respecting them. He had forgotten his mother's teaching: “If any man do anything sincerely, believing that thereby he is worshipping God, he is worshipping God.” He disliked seeing Quonab use an axe or a gun on Sunday, and the Indian, realizing that such action made “evil medicine” for Rolf, practically abstained. But Rolf had not yet learned to respect the red yarns the Indian hung from a deer's skull, though he did come to understand that he must let them alone or produce bad feeling in camp.

Quonab's songs to the sun and the spirit, or his burning of a pinch of tobacco, or the whiskers of an animal, were nothing but harmless nonsense to Rolf. If he had given them different names, like hymns and incense, he would have respected them much more. He had forgotten his mother’s lesson: “If anyone does something sincerely, believing that they are worshipping God, they are worshipping God.” He didn’t like to see Quonab use an axe or a gun on Sunday, and the Indian understood that such actions created “evil medicine” for Rolf, so he mostly refrained. But Rolf hadn’t yet learned to respect the red yarns the Indian hung from a deer's skull, even though he realized he needed to leave them alone to avoid creating bad feelings in the camp.

Sunday had become a day of rest and Quonab made it also a day of song and remembrance.

Sunday had turned into a day of rest, and Quonab also made it a day for song and remembrance.

They were sitting one Sunday night by the fire in the cabin, enjoying the blaze, while a storm rattled on the window and door. A white-footed mouse, one of a family that lived in the shanty, was trying how close he could come to Skookum's nose without being caught, while Rolf looked on. Quonab was lying back on a pile of deer skins, with his pipe in his mouth, his head on the bunk, and his hands clasped back of his neck.

They were sitting one Sunday night by the fire in the cabin, enjoying the warmth, while a storm rattled the windows and door. A white-footed mouse, one of the family living in the shanty, was testing how close it could get to Skookum's nose without getting caught, while Rolf watched. Quonab was lying back on a pile of deer skins, with a pipe in his mouth, his head on the bunk, and his hands clasped behind his neck.

There was an atmosphere of content and brotherly feeling; the evening was young, when Rolf broke silence:

There was a vibe of happiness and camaraderie; the evening was still early when Rolf spoke up:

“Were you ever married, Quonab?”

"Were you ever married, Quonab?"

“Ugh,” was the Indian's affirmative.

"Ugh," was the person's yes.

“Where?”

"Where at?"

“Myanos.”

"Myanos."

Rolf did not venture more questions, but left the influence of the hour to work. It was a moment of delicate poise, and Rolf knew a touch would open the door or double bar it. He wondered how he might give that touch as he wished it. Skookum still slept. Both men watched the mouse, as, with quick movements it crept about. Presently it approached a long birch stick that stood up against the wall. High hanging was the song-drum. Rolf wished Quonab would take it and let it open his heart, but he dared not offer it; that might have the exact wrong effect. Now the mouse was behind the birch stick. Then Rolf noticed that the stick if it were to fall would strike a drying line, one end of which was on the song-drum peg. So he made a dash at the mouse and displaced the stick; the jerk it gave the line sent the song-drum with hollow bumping to the ground. The boy stooped to replace it; as he did, Quonab grunted and Rolf turned to see his hand stretched for the drum. Had Rolf officiously offered it, it would have been refused; now the Indian took it, tapped and warmed it at the fire, and sang a song of the Wabanaki. It was softly done, and very low, but Rolf was close, for almost the first time in any long rendition, and he got an entirely new notion of the red music. The singer's face brightened as he tummed and sang with peculiar grace notes and throat warbles of “Kaluscap's war with the magi,” and the spirit of his people, rising to the sweet magic of melody, came shining in his eyes. He sang the lovers' song, “The Bark Canoe.” (See F. R. Burton's “American Primitive Music.)

Rolf didn’t ask any more questions, letting the moment’s atmosphere do its work. It was a tense moment, and Rolf knew that a small action could either open the door or completely shut it. He wondered how he could make that move in the way he desired. Skookum was still asleep. Both men watched the mouse as it quickly scurried around. Eventually, it approached a long birch stick leaning against the wall. The song-drum hung high above. Rolf wished Quonab would take it and let it express his feelings, but he didn’t dare to suggest it; that could backfire completely. The mouse then went behind the birch stick. Rolf noticed that if the stick fell, it would hit a drying line, one end of which was attached to the song-drum peg. So, he quickly dashed at the mouse and knocked the stick over; the jolt sent the song-drum crashing to the ground. Rolf bent down to set it right, and just then, Quonab grunted, reaching for the drum. If Rolf had offered it too eagerly, it would have been turned down; instead, the Indian took it, warmed it by the fire, and began to sing a Wabanaki song. It was soft and very quiet, but Rolf was close by, for almost the first time in any lengthy performance, and he got a completely new understanding of the native music. The singer’s face lit up as he drummed and sang with unique grace notes and vocal embellishments about “Kaluscap's war with the magi,” and the spirit of his people shone through his eyes as the sweet magic of the melody filled the air. He sang the lovers’ song, “The Bark Canoe.” (See F. R. Burton's “American Primitive Music.”)

“While the stars shine and falls the dew, I seek my love in bark canoe.”

“While the stars shine and the dew falls, I search for my love in a canoe.”

And then the cradle song,

And then the lullaby,

     “The Naked Bear Shall Never Catch Thee.”
 
     “The Naked Bear Will Never Catch You.”

When he stopped, he stared at the fire; and after a long pause Rolf ventured, “My mother would have loved your songs.”

When he paused, he stared at the fire; and after a long moment, Rolf said, “My mom would have loved your songs.”

Whether he heard or not, the warm emanation surely reached the Indian, and he began to answer the question of an hour before:

Whether he heard it or not, the warm feeling definitely reached the Indian, and he started to respond to the question from an hour ago:

“Her name was Gamowini, for she sang like the sweet night bird at Asamuk. I brought her from her father's house at Saugatuck. We lived at Myanos. She made beautiful baskets and moccasins. I fished and trapped; we had enough. Then the baby came. He had big round eyes, so we called him Wee-wees, 'our little owl,' and we were very happy. When Gamowini sang to her baby, the world seemed full of sun. One day when Wee-wees could walk she left him with me and she went to Stamford with some baskets to sell. A big ship was in the harbour. A man from the ship told her that his sailors would buy all her baskets. She had no fear. On the ship they seized her for a runaway slave, and hid her till they sailed away.

“Her name was Gamowini because she sang like the sweet night bird at Asamuk. I brought her from her father's place in Saugatuck. We lived at Myanos. She made beautiful baskets and moccasins. I fished and trapped; we had enough. Then the baby came. He had big round eyes, so we called him Wee-wees, 'our little owl,' and we were very happy. When Gamowini sang to her baby, the world seemed full of sunshine. One day, when Wee-wees could walk, she left him with me and went to Stamford with some baskets to sell. A big ship was in the harbor. A man from the ship told her that his sailors would buy all her baskets. She had no fear. On the ship, they seized her as a runaway slave and hid her until they sailed away.”

“When she did not come back I took Wee-wees on my shoulder and went quickly to Stamford. I soon found out a little, but the people did not know the ship, or whence she came, or where she went, they said. They did not seem to care. My heart grew hotter and wilder. I wanted to fight. I would have killed the men on the dock, but they were many. They bound me and put me in jail for three months. 'When I came out Wee-wees was dead. They did not care. I have heard nothing since. Then I went to live under the rock, so I should not see our first home. I do not know; she may be alive. But I think it killed her to lose her baby.”

“When she didn’t come back, I grabbed Wee-wees and quickly headed to Stamford. I found out a little bit, but the people didn’t recognize the ship, or where it had come from, or where it was going. They didn’t seem to care. My heart became more heated and restless. I wanted to fight. I would have killed the men at the dock, but there were too many of them. They arrested me and put me in jail for three months. When I got out, Wee-wees was dead. They didn’t care. I haven’t heard anything since. Then I went to live under the rock, so I wouldn’t see our first home. I don’t know; she might still be alive. But I think losing her baby killed her.”

The Indian stopped; then rose quickly. His face was hard set. He stepped out into the snowstorm and the night. Rolf was left alone with Skookum.

The Indian paused, then quickly got to his feet. His expression was tense. He walked out into the snowstorm and the darkness. Rolf was left alone with Skookum.

Sad, sad, everything seemed sad in his friend's life, and Rolf, brooding over it with wisdom beyond his years, could not help asking: “Had Quonab and Gamowini been white folk, would it have happened so? Would his agony have been received with scornful indifference?” Alas! he knew it would not. He realized it would have been a very different tale, and the sequent questions that would not down, were, “Will this bread cast on the waters return after many days?” “Is there a God of justice and retribution?” “On whom will the flail of vengeance fall for all these abominations?”

Sad, sad, everything seemed sad in his friend’s life, and Rolf, reflecting on it with a maturity beyond his years, couldn’t help but ask: “If Quonab and Gamowini had been white folks, would it have happened this way? Would his suffering have been met with cold indifference?” Sadly, he knew the answer. He understood it would have been a very different story, and the lingering questions were, “Will this bread thrown on the waters come back after many days?” “Is there a God of justice and punishment?” “Who will face the consequences for all these atrocities?”

Two hours later the Indian returned. No word was spoken as he entered. He was not cold. He must have walked far. Rolf prepared for bed. The Indian stooped, picked up a needle from the dusty ground, one that had been lost the day before, silently handed it to his companion, who gave only a recognizant “Hm,” and dropped it into the birch-bark box.

Two hours later, the Indian came back. No words were exchanged as he walked in. He wasn't cold. He must have traveled a long way. Rolf got ready for bed. The Indian bent down, picked up a needle from the dusty ground—one that had been lost the day before—and silently handed it to Rolf, who only responded with a acknowledging “Hm” and dropped it into the birch-bark box.





Chapter 44. The Lost Bundle of Furs

There had been a significant cessation of robbery on their trap line after the inconclusive visit to the enemy's camp. But a new and extreme exasperation arose in the month of March, when the alternation of thaw and frost had covered the snow with a hard crust that rendered snowshoes unnecessary and made it easy to run anywhere and leave no track.

There had been a notable stop in robberies along their trap line after the unproductive visit to the enemy's camp. However, a new level of frustration emerged in March, when the freeze-and-thaw cycles had created a hard crust on the snow that made snowshoes unnecessary and allowed for easy movement without leaving any tracks.

They had gathered up a fisher and some martens before they reached the beaver pond. They had no beaver traps now, but it was interesting to call and see how many of the beavers were left, and what they were doing.

They had caught a fish and some martens before they reached the beaver pond. They didn’t have any beaver traps with them now, but it was interesting to call out and see how many beavers were still around and what they were up to.

Bubbling springs on the bank of the pond had made open water at several places, now that the winter frost was weakening. Out of these the beavers often came, as was plainly seen in the tracks, so the trappers approached them carefully.

Bubbling springs along the edge of the pond had created open water in several spots, now that the winter frost was easing up. The beavers frequently emerged from these areas, as was clearly evident from the tracks, prompting the trappers to approach them carefully.

They were scrutinizing one of them from behind a log, Quonab with ready gun, Rolf holding the unwilling Skookum, when the familiar broad, flat head appeared. A large beaver swam around the hole, sniffed and looked, then silently climbed the bank, evidently making for a certain aspen tree that he had already been cutting. He was in easy range, and the gunner was about to fire when Rolf pressed his arm and pointed. Here, wandering through the wood, came a large lynx. It had not seen or smelt any of the living creatures ahead, as yet, but speedily sighted the beaver now working away to cut down his tree.

They were watching one of them from behind a log, Quonab with his gun ready, Rolf holding back the reluctant Skookum, when the familiar broad, flat head appeared. A large beaver swam around the hole, sniffing and looking, then quietly climbed the bank, clearly heading for a specific aspen tree he had been cutting. He was in easy range, and the shooter was about to pull the trigger when Rolf grabbed his arm and pointed. Coming through the woods was a large lynx. It hadn’t seen or smelled any of the living creatures ahead yet, but quickly spotted the beaver now busy chopping down his tree.

As a pelt, the beaver was worth more than the lynx, but the naturalist is strong in most hunters, and they watched to see what would happen.

As a fur, the beaver was worth more than the lynx, but the naturalist is strong in most hunters, and they waited to see what would happen.

The lynx seemed to sink into the ground, and was lost to sight as soon as he knew of a possible prey ahead. And now he began his stalk. The hunters sighted him once as he crossed a level opening in the snow. He seemed less than four inches high as he crawled. Logs, ridges, trees, or twigs, afforded ample concealment, till his whiskers appeared in a thicket within fifteen feet of the beaver.

The lynx seemed to blend into the ground and disappeared from view as soon as he sensed potential prey nearby. And now he began his approach. The hunters spotted him briefly as he crossed a flat area in the snow. He looked less than four inches tall as he crawled. Logs, mounds, trees, and branches provided plenty of cover until his whiskers emerged from a thicket just fifteen feet away from the beaver.

All this was painfully exciting to Skookum, who, though he could not see, could get some thrilling whiffs, and he strained forward to improve his opportunities. The sound of this slight struggle caught the beaver's ear. It stopped work, wheeled, and made for the water hole. The lynx sprang from his ambush, seized the beaver by the back, and held on; but the beaver was double the lynx's weight, the bank was steep and slippery, the struggling animals kept rolling down hill, nearer and nearer the hole. Then, on the very edge, the beaver gave a great plunge, and splashed into the water with the lynx clinging to its back. At once they disappeared, and the hunters rushed to the place, expecting them to float up and be an easy prey; but they did not float. At length it was clear that the pair had gone under the ice, for in water the beaver was master.

All of this was incredibly thrilling for Skookum, who, even though he couldn't see, could catch some exciting scents, and he leaned in to seize the moment. The sound of the minor struggle caught the beaver's attention. It stopped what it was doing, turned around, and headed for the water hole. The lynx jumped from its hiding spot, grabbed the beaver by its back, and held on; but the beaver was twice the lynx's weight, the bank was steep and slippery, and the two animals kept tumbling downhill, closer and closer to the hole. Then, at the very edge, the beaver made a big leap and splashed into the water with the lynx still on its back. They immediately vanished, and the hunters rushed to the spot, expecting to see them float up and be easy targets; but they didn’t float. Eventually, it became clear that both had gone under the ice, because in the water, the beaver was in control.

After five minutes it was certain that the lynx must be dead. Quonab cut a sapling and made a grappler. He poked this way and that way under the ice, until at length he felt something soft. With the hatchet they cut a hole over the place and then dragged out the body of the lynx. The beaver, of course, escaped and was probably little the worse.

After five minutes, it was clear that the lynx had to be dead. Quonab cut a sapling and made a grappling hook. He poked around under the ice until he finally felt something soft. With the hatchet, they cut a hole over that spot and then pulled out the lynx's body. The beaver, of course, got away and was probably not much worse for wear.

While Quonab skinned the catch, Rolf prowled around the pond and soon came running back to tell of a remarkable happening.

While Quonab cleaned the fish, Rolf wandered around the pond and quickly returned to share an incredible event.

At another open hole a beaver had come out, wandered twenty yards to a mound which he had castorized, then passed several hard wood trees to find a large poplar or aspen, the favourite food tree. This he had begun to fell with considerable skill, but for some strange reason, perhaps because alone, he had made a miscalculation, and when the tree came crashing down, it had fallen across his back, killed him, and pinned him to the ground.

At another hole, a beaver had come out, wandered twenty yards to a mound he had marked, then passed several hardwood trees to find a large poplar or aspen, his favorite food tree. He had started to fell it with impressive skill, but for some strange reason, maybe because he was alone, he miscalculated, and when the tree came crashing down, it fell across his back, killed him, and pinned him to the ground.

It was an easy matter for the hunters to remove the log and secure his pelt, so they left the beaver pond, richer than they had expected.

It was simple for the hunters to move the log and grab his fur, so they left the beaver pond, better off than they had anticipated.

Next night, when they reached their half-way shanty, they had the best haul they had taken on this line since the memorable day when they got six beavers.

Next night, when they reached their halfway cabin, they had the best catch they had taken on this line since the memorable day when they got six beavers.

The morning dawned clear and bright. As they breakfasted, they noticed an extraordinary gathering of ravens far away to the north, beyond any country they had visited. At least twenty or thirty of the birds were sailing in great circles high above a certain place, uttering a deep, sonorous croak, from time to time. Occasionally one of the ravens would dive down out of sight.

The morning started off clear and bright. While they had breakfast, they spotted an unusual group of ravens far to the north, in a land they had never been to. At least twenty or thirty of the birds were gliding in large circles high above a specific spot, occasionally letting out a deep, resonant croak. Now and then, one of the ravens would dive down and disappear from view.

“Why do they fly above that way?”

“Why do they fly up there like that?”

“That is to let other ravens know there is food here. Their eyes are very good. They can see the signal ten miles away, so all come to the place. My father told me that you can gather all the ravens for twenty miles by leaving a carcass so they can see it and signal each other.”

“That lets other ravens know there’s food here. Their eyesight is excellent. They can see the signal from ten miles away, so they all come to the spot. My dad told me that you can attract all the ravens from twenty miles away by leaving a carcass where they can see it and signal each other.”

“Seems as if we should look into that. Maybe another panther,” was Rolf's remark.

“Looks like we should check that out. Maybe another panther,” was Rolf's comment.

The Indian nodded; so leaving the bundle of furs in a safe place with the snowshoes, that they carried on a chance, they set out over the hard crust. It was two or three miles to the ravens' gathering, and, as before, it proved to be over a cedar brake where was a deer yard.

The Indian nodded; so they left the bundle of furs in a safe spot along with the snowshoes they were carrying just in case, and set out across the hard crust. It was about two or three miles to where the ravens were gathering, and, like before, it turned out to be over a cedar thicket where there was a deer yard.

Skookum knew all about it. He rushed into the woods, filled with the joy of martial glory. But speedily came running out again as hard as he could, yelling “yow, yow, yowl” for help, while swiftly following, behind him were a couple of gray wolves. Quonab waited till they were within forty yards; then, seeing the men, the wolves slowed up and veered; Quonab fired; one of the wolves gave a little, doglike yelp. Then they leaped into the bushes and were lost to view.

Skookum knew exactly what was happening. He dashed into the woods, filled with the excitement of adventure. But he quickly ran back out as fast as he could, shouting “yow, yow, yowl” for help, with a couple of gray wolves chasing right behind him. Quonab waited until they were about forty yards away; then, seeing the men, the wolves slowed down and changed direction. Quonab took his shot; one of the wolves let out a small, dog-like yelp. Then they jumped into the bushes and disappeared from sight.

A careful study of the snow showed one or two trifling traces of blood. In the deer yard they found at least a dozen carcasses of deer killed by the wolves, but none very recent. They saw but few deer and nothing more of the wolves, for the crust had made all the country easy, and both kinds fled before the hunters.

A close look at the snow revealed a few small traces of blood. In the deer yard, they found at least a dozen deer carcasses that the wolves had killed, but none were very recent. They spotted only a handful of deer and nothing else of the wolves, as the hard crust made it easy to travel across the area, and both types of animals ran away from the hunters.

Exploring a lower level of willow country in hopes of finding beaver delayed them, and it was afternoon when they returned to the half-way shanty, to find everything as they left it, except that their Pack of furs had totally disappeared.

Exploring a lower area of willow country in hopes of finding beaver delayed them, and it was afternoon when they returned to the halfway shanty to find everything as they had left it, except that their pack of furs had completely disappeared.

Of course, the hard crust gave no sign of track. Their first thought was of the old enemy, but, seeking far and near for evidence, they found pieces of an ermine skin, and a quarter mile farther, the rest of it, then, at another place, fragments of a muskrat's skin. Those made it look like the work of the trapper's enemy, the wolverine, which, though rare, was surely found in these hills. Yes! there was a wolverine scratch mark, and here another piece of the rat skin. It was very clear who was the thief.

Of course, the hard crust showed no signs of tracks. Their first thought was of the old enemy, but after searching high and low for evidence, they found pieces of ermine skin, and a quarter mile farther, the rest of it. Then, at another spot, they discovered fragments of a muskrat’s skin. This pointed to the work of the trapper's enemy, the wolverine, which, although rare, was definitely present in these hills. Yes! There was a wolverine scratch mark, and here was another piece of rat skin. It was very clear who the thief was.

“He tore up the cheapest ones of the lot anyway,” said Rolf.

“He tore up the cheapest ones anyway,” Rolf said.

Then the trappers stared at each other significantly—only the cheap ones destroyed; why should a wolverine show such discrimination? There was no positive sign of wolverine; in fact, the icy snow gave no sign of anything. There was little doubt that the tom furs and the scratch marks were there to mislead; that this was the work of a human robber, almost certainly Hoag.

Then the trappers exchanged meaningful looks—only the cheap ones were destroyed; why would a wolverine be so selective? There was no clear evidence of a wolverine; in fact, the frozen snow revealed nothing. It was evident that the tom furs and scratch marks were meant to confuse; this had to be the work of a human thief, most likely Hoag.

He had doubtless seen them leave in the morning, and it was equally sure, since he had had hours of start, he would now be far away.

He must have seen them leave in the morning, and it was just as certain that, having had a head start of hours, he would now be far away.

“Ugh! Give him few days to think he safe, then I follow and settle all,” and this time the Indian clearly meant to end the matter.

“Ugh! Let him have a few days to think he's safe, then I'll follow and sort everything out,” and this time the Indian clearly meant to put an end to it.





Chapter 45. The Subjugation of Hoag

     A feller as weeps for pity and never does a finger-tap to
     help is 'bout as much use as an overcoat on a drowning man.
     —Sayings of Si Sylvanne.
     A guy who cries for help but never lifts a finger to assist is about as useful as an overcoat on someone who’s drowning.  
     —Sayings of Si Sylvanne.

SOME remarkable changes of weather made some remarkable changes in their plan and saved their enemy from immediate molestation. For two weeks it was a succession of thaws and there was much rain. The lake was covered with six inches of water; the river had a current above the ice, that was rapidly eating, the latter away. Everywhere there were slush and wet snow that put an end to travel and brought on the spring with a rush.

SOME remarkable changes in the weather led to significant changes in their plans and spared their enemy from immediate trouble. For two weeks, there were continuous thaws accompanied by a lot of rain. The lake was covered with six inches of water; the river had a current flowing above the ice, which was quickly melting away. Everywhere there was slush and wet snow that disrupted travel and hurried in the spring.

Each night there was, indeed, a trifling frost, but each day's sun seemed stronger, and broad, bare patches of ground appeared on all sunny slopes.

Each night there was, in fact, a slight frost, but each day's sun seemed stronger, and wide, bare patches of ground appeared on all the sunny slopes.

On the first crisp day the trappers set out to go the rounds, knowing full well that this was the end of the season. Henceforth for six months deadfall and snare would lie idle and unset.

On the first chilly day, the trappers set out to do their rounds, fully aware that this marked the end of the season. From now on, for six months, the deadfall and snare would remain unused and unset.

They went their accustomed line, carrying their snowshoes, but rarely needing them. Then they crossed a large track to which Quonab pointed, and grunted affirmatively as Rolf said “Bear?” Yes! the bears were about once more; their winter sleep was over. Now they were fat and the fur was yet prime; in a month they would be thin and shedding. Now is the time for bear hunting with either trap or dog.

They followed their usual route, carrying their snowshoes, but hardly ever needing to use them. Then they came across a large track that Quonab pointed out, and he grunted in agreement when Rolf asked, “Bear?” Yes! The bears were active again; their winter hibernation had ended. They were now fat, and their fur was still in good condition; in a month, they would be lean and losing their fur. This is the right time for bear hunting, whether with traps or dogs.

Doubtless Skookum thought the party most fortunately equipped in the latter respect, but no single dog is enough to bay a bear. There must be three or four to bother him behind, to make him face about and fight; one dog merely makes him run faster.

Doubtless, Skookum thought the group was well-prepared in that regard, but one dog alone isn't enough to chase a bear. You need three or four to pressure it from behind, forcing it to turn around and fight; just one dog only makes the bear run faster.

They had no traps, and knowing that a spring bear is a far traveller, they made no attempt to follow.

They had no traps, and knowing that a spring bear travels a long way, they made no effort to chase after it.

The deadfalls yielded two martens, but one of them was spoiled by the warm weather. They learned at last that the enemy had a trap-line, for part of which he used their deadfalls. He had been the rounds lately and had profited at least a little by their labours.

The deadfalls caught two martens, but one was ruined by the warm weather. They finally realized that their enemy had a trapline, part of which included their deadfalls. He had been checking it recently and had gained at least a bit from their efforts.

The track, though two days old, was not hard to follow, either on snow or ground. Quonab looked to the lock of his gun; his lower lip tightened and he strode along.

The trail, although two days old, was easy to follow, whether on snow or ground. Quonab checked the lock of his gun; his lower lip tightened, and he walked purposefully.

“What are you going to do, Quonab? Not shoot?”

“What are you going to do, Quonab? Not going to shoot?”

“When I get near enough,” and the dangerous look in the red man's eye told Rolf to be quiet and follow.

“When I get close enough,” and the dangerous look in the red man's eye told Rolf to stay quiet and follow.

In three miles they passed but three of his marten traps—very lazy trapping—and then found a great triangle of logs by a tree with a bait and signs enough to tell the experienced eye that, in that corner, was hidden a huge steel trap for bear.

In three miles, they saw only three of his marten traps—really lazy trapping—and then came across a big triangle of logs by a tree with bait and clear signs that would tell an experienced eye that, in that spot, was a huge steel trap for bear.

They were almost too late in restraining the knowledge-hunger of Skookum. They went on a mile or two and realized in so doing that, however poor a trapper the enemy might be, he was a good tramper and knew the country.

They were nearly too late to control Skookum's thirst for knowledge. They traveled a mile or two and realized that, no matter how bad the enemy was as a trapper, he was an experienced walker and knew the area well.

At sundown they came to their half-way shelter and put up there for the night. Once when Rolf went out to glimpse the skies before turning in, he heard a far tree creaking and wondered, for it was dead calm. Even Skookum noticed it. But it was not repeated. Next morning they went on.

At sunset, they arrived at their halfway shelter and settled in for the night. Once, when Rolf stepped outside to check the skies before going to bed, he heard a distant tree creaking and thought it was strange since the air was completely still. Even Skookum noticed it. But it didn’t happen again. The next morning, they continued their journey.

There are many quaint sounds in the woods at all times, the rasping of trees, at least a dozen different calls by jays, twice as many by ravens, and occasional notes from chicadees, grouse, and owls. The quadrupeds in general are more silent, but the red squirrel is ever about and noisy, as well as busy.

There are a lot of charming sounds in the woods at all times, like the rustling of trees, at least a dozen different calls from jays, twice that many from ravens, and occasional chirps from chickadees, grouse, and owls. Generally, the four-legged animals are quieter, but the red squirrel is always around and noisy, as well as active.

Far-reaching sounds are these echoes of the woods—some of them very far. Probably there were not five minutes of the day or night when some weird, woodland chatter, scrape, crack, screech, or whistle did not reach the keen ears of that ever-alert dog. That is, three hundred times a day his outer ear submitted to his inner ear some report of things a-doing, which same report was as often for many days disregarded as of no interest or value. But this did not mean that he missed anything; the steady tramp, tramp of their feet, while it dulled all sounds for the hunter, seemed to have no effect on Skookum. Again the raspy squeal of some far tree reached his inmost brain, and his hair rose as he stopped and gave a low “woof.”

The sounds echoing through the woods are vast—some coming from very far away. There probably wasn't a moment, day or night, when some strange chatter, scratch, crack, screech, or whistle didn't reach the sharp ears of that always-alert dog. In fact, three hundred times a day, his outer ear fed his inner ear reports of everything happening around him, which were often ignored for days as uninteresting or insignificant. But that didn’t mean he missed anything; the constant sound of their footsteps, which dulled other sounds for the hunter, seemed to have no effect on Skookum. Once again, the harsh squeal from a distant tree reached his deepest mind, causing his hair to stand up as he paused and let out a low “woof.”

The hunters held still; the wise ones always do, when a dog says “Stop!” They waited. After a few minutes it came again—merely the long-drawn creak of a tree bough, wind-rubbed on its neighbour.

The hunters stayed quiet; the smart ones always do when a dog barks “Stop!” They waited. After a few minutes, it happened again—just the slow creak of a tree branch, rubbing against its neighbor in the wind.

And yet, “Woof, woof, woof,” said Skookum, and ran ahead.

And yet, “Woof, woof, woof,” Skookum barked and took off running ahead.

“Come back, you little fool!” cried Rolf.

“Come back, you little fool!” Rolf shouted.

But Skookum had a mind of his own. He trotted ahead, then stopped, paused, and sniffed at something in the snow. The Indian picked it up. It was the pocket jackscrew that every bear trapper carries to set the powerful trap, and without which, indeed, one man cannot manage the springs.

But Skookum had his own agenda. He trotted ahead, then stopped, paused, and sniffed at something in the snow. The Indian picked it up. It was the pocket jackscrew that every bear trapper carries to set the powerful trap, and without it, one man simply can't manage the springs.

He held it up with “Ugh! Hoag in trouble now.” Clearly the rival trapper had lost this necessary tool.

He held it up and said, “Ugh! Hoag is in trouble now.” Clearly, the rival trapper had lost this essential tool.

But the finding was an accident. Skookum pushed on. They came along a draw to a little hollow. The dog, far forward, began barking and angrily baying at something. The men hurried to the scene to find on the snow, fast held in one of those devilish engines called a bear trap—the body of their enemy—Hoag, the trapper, held by a leg, and a hand in the gin he himself had been setting.

But the discovery was accidental. Skookum kept going. They followed a small ravine to a little hollow. The dog, ahead of them, started barking and furiously howling at something. The men rushed to the spot and found in the snow, caught in one of those wicked devices called a bear trap—the body of their enemy—Hoag, the trapper, trapped by a leg, with a hand stuck in the very trap he had been setting.

A fierce light played on the Indian's face. Rolf was stricken with horror. But even while they contemplated the body, the faint cry was heard again coming from it.

A harsh light shone on the Indian's face. Rolf was filled with dread. But even as they stared at the body, a faint cry was heard again coming from it.

“He's alive; hurry!” cried Rolf. The Indian did not hurry, but he came. He had vowed vengeance at sight; why should he haste to help?

“He's alive; hurry!” shouted Rolf. The Indian didn’t rush, but he came. He had sworn revenge at first glance; why should he be in a hurry to help?

The implacable iron jaws had clutched the trapper by one knee and the right hand. The first thing was to free him. How? No man has power enough to force that spring. But the jackscrew!

The unyielding iron jaws had locked onto the trapper by one knee and his right hand. The priority was to free him. How? No one has the strength to release that spring. But the jackscrew!

“Quonab, help him! For God's sake, come!” cried Rolf in agony, forgetting their feud and seeing only tortured, dying man.

“Quonab, help him! For God’s sake, come!” Rolf yelled in pain, putting aside their argument and focusing only on the suffering, dying man.

The Indian gazed a moment, then rose quickly, and put on the jackscrew. Under his deft fingers the first spring went down, but what about the other? They had no other screw. The long buckskin line they always carried was quickly lashed round and round the down spring to hold it. Then the screw was removed and put on the other spring; it bent, and the jaws hung loose. The Indian forced them wide open, drew out the mangled limbs, a the trapper was free, but so near death, it seemed they were too late.

The Indian stared for a moment, then quickly got up and used the jackscrew. With his skilled hands, he worked on the first spring, but what about the other one? They didn't have another screw. The long buckskin line they always carried was quickly wrapped around the down spring to secure it. Then the screw was taken off and placed on the other spring; it bent, and the jaws drooped uselessly. The Indian pried them wide open, pulled out the crushed limbs, the trapper was free, but it seemed they were too late, as he was so close to death.

Rolf spread his coat. The Indian made a fire. In fifteen minutes they were pouring hot tea between victim's lips. Even as they did, his feeble throat gave out again the long, low moan.

Rolf spread his coat. The Indian started a fire. In fifteen minutes, they were pouring hot tea between the victim's lips. Even as they did, his weak throat let out another long, low moan.

The weather was mild now. The prisoner was not actually frozen, but numbed and racked. Heat, hot tea, kindly rubbing, and he revived a little.

The weather was mild now. The prisoner wasn’t actually frozen, but numb and in pain. Heat, hot tea, gentle rubbing, and he started to feel a bit better.

At first they thought him dying, but in an hour recovered enough to talk. In feeble accents and broken phrases they learned the tale:

At first, they thought he was dying, but after an hour, he recovered enough to talk. In weak voices and fragmented sentences, they learned the story:

“Yest—m-m-m. Yesterday—no; two or three days back—m-m-m-m-m—I dunno; I was a goin'—roun' me traps—me bear traps. Didn't have no luck m-m-m (yes, I'd like another sip; ye ain't got no whiskey no?) m-m-m. Nothing in any trap, and when I come to this un—oh-h—m-m; I seen—the bait was stole by birds, an' the pan—m-m-m; an' the pan, m-m-m—(yes, that's better)—an' the pan laid bare. So I starts to cover it with—ce-ce-dar; the ony thing I c'd get—m-m-m-w—-wuz leanin' over—to fix tother side—me foot slipped on—the—ice—ev'rything was icy—an'—m-m-m-m—I lost—me balance—me knee the pan—O Lord—how I suffer!—m-m-m it grabbed me—knee an'—h-h-hand—” His voice died to a whisper and ceased; he seemed sinking.

“Yeah—m-m-m. Yesterday—no; two or three days ago—m-m-m-m-m—I don’t know; I was checking my traps—my bear traps. Didn’t have any luck m-m-m (yes, I’d like another sip; you don’t have any whiskey, do you?) m-m-m. Nothing in any trap, and when I got to this one—oh-h—m-m; I noticed—the bait was taken by birds, and the pan—m-m-m; and the pan, m-m-m—(yes, that’s better)—and the pan was completely uncovered. So I started to cover it with—cedar; the only thing I could get—m-m-m-w—was leaning over—to fix the other side—my foot slipped on—the—ice—everything was icy—and—m-m-m-m—I lost—my balance—my knee hit the pan—Oh Lord—how I suffer!—m-m-m it caught my—knee and—h-h-hand—” His voice trailed off to a whisper and stopped; he seemed to be sinking.

Quonab got up to hold him. Then, looking at Rolf, Indian shook his head as though to say all was over; the poor wretch had a woodman's constitution, and in spite of a mangled, dying body, he revived again. They gave him more hot tea, and again he began in a whisper:

Quonab stood up to support him. Then, glancing at Rolf, the Indian shook his head as if to say it was all finished; the poor guy had the strength of a woodcutter, and despite his broken, dying body, he rallied once more. They gave him more hot tea, and once again he started to speak in a whisper:

“I hed one arm free an'—an'—an'—I might—a—got out—m-m—but I hed no wrench—I lost it some place—m-m-m-m.

“I had one arm free and—and—and—I might have gotten out—but I had no wrench—I lost it somewhere—m-m-m-m.

“Then—I yelled—I dun—no—maybe some un might hear—it kin-kin-kinder eased me—to yell m-m-m.

“Then—I yelled—I don't—no—maybe someone might hear it kind of made it easier for me—to yell m-m-m.

“Say—make that yer dog keep—away—will yer I dunno—it seems like a week—must a fainted some M-m-m—I yelled—when I could.”

“Hey—make that dog of yours stay away—okay? I don’t know—it feels like it’s been a week—I must have fainted some—M-m-m—I yelled—when I could.”

There was a long pause. Rolf said, “Seems to me I heard you last night, when we were up there. And dog heard you, too. Do you want me to move that leg around?”

There was a long pause. Rolf said, “I think I heard you last night when we were up there. The dog heard you, too. Do you want me to shift that leg around?”

“M-m-m—yeh—that's better—say, you air white—ain't ye? Ye won't leave me—cos—I done some mean things—m-m-m. Ye won't, will ye?”

“M-m-m—yeah—that's better—say, you're white—aren't you? You won't leave me—because—I did some bad things—m-m-m. You won't, will you?”

“No, you needn't worry—we'll stay by ye.”

“No, you don't need to worry—we'll stay with you.”

Then he muttered, they could not tell what. He closed his eyes. After long silence he looked around wildly and began again:

Then he mumbled something that they couldn't make out. He shut his eyes. After a long silence, he looked around frantically and started again:

“Say—I done you dirt—but don't leave me—don't leave me.” Tears ran down his face and he moaned piteously. “I'll—make it—right—you're white, ain't ye?”

“Look—I messed up, but please don’t leave me—don’t leave me.” Tears streamed down his face as he moaned sadly. “I’ll—fix it—I know you’re a good person, right?”

Quonab rose and went for more firewood. The trapper whispered, “I'm scared o' him—now—he'll do me—say, I'm jest a poor ole man. If I do live—through—this—m-m-m-m—I'll never walk again. I'm crippled sure.”

Quonab got up and went to get more firewood. The trapper whispered, “I'm scared of him now—he'll get me—look, I'm just a poor old man. If I survive this—m-m-m-m—I’ll never walk again. I'm definitely crippled.”

It was long before he resumed. Then he began: “Say, what day is it—Friday!—I must—been two days in there—m-m-m—I reckoned it was a week. When—the—dog came I thought it was wolves. Oh—ah, didn't care much—m-m-m. Say, ye won't leave me—coz—coz—I treated—ye mean. I—ain't had no l-l-luck.” He went off into a stupor, but presently let out a long, startling cry, the same as that they had heard in the night. The dog growled; the men stared. The wretch's eyes were rolling again. He seemed delirious.

It took him a while to start again. Then he said, “Hey, what day is it—Friday!—I must—I've been in there for two days—m-m-m—I thought it was a week. When—the—dog came, I thought it was wolves. Oh—ah, I didn't really care—m-m-m. Look, you won't leave me—because—because—I treated—you badly. I—haven't had any l-l-luck.” He slipped back into a daze, but then suddenly let out a loud, shocking scream, just like the one they had heard at night. The dog growled; the men stared. The poor guy's eyes were rolling again. He seemed to be out of his mind.

Quonab pointed to the east, made the sun-up sign, and shook his head at the victim. And Rolf understood it to mean that he would never see the sunrise. But they were wrong.

Quonab pointed to the east, made the sunrise sign, and shook his head at the victim. Rolf understood it to mean that he would never see the sunrise. But they were mistaken.

The long night passed in a struggle between heath and the tough make-up of a mountaineer. The waiting light of dawn saw death defeated, retiring from the scene. As the sun rose high, the victim seemed to gain considerably in strength. There was no immediate danger of an end.

The long night dragged on as a battle between the wild and the resilient nature of a mountaineer. The waiting light of dawn witnessed death retreating from the scene. As the sun climbed higher, the victim appeared to regain significant strength. There was no immediate threat of an end.

Rolf said to Quonab: “Where shall we take him? Guess you better go home for the toboggan, and we'll fetch him to the shanty.”

Rolf said to Quonab, “Where should we take him? You’d better head home for the toboggan, and we’ll bring him back to the cabin.”

But the invalid was able to take part in the conversation. “Say, don't take me there. Ah—want to go home. 'Pears like—I'd be better at home. My folks is out Moose River way. I'd never get out if I went in there,” and by “there” he seemed to mean the Indian's lake, and glanced furtively at the unchanging countenance of the red man.

But the disabled man was able to join the conversation. “Hey, don’t take me there. Ah—I want to go home. It seems like—I'd be better off at home. My family is out by Moose River. I'd never get out if I went in there,” and by “there” he seemed to refer to the Indian's lake, glancing nervously at the expressionless face of the Native American.

“Have you a toboggan at your shanty?” asked Rolf.

“Do you have a toboggan at your cabin?” asked Rolf.

“Yes—good enough—it's on the roof—say,” and he beckoned feebly to Rolf, “let him go after it—don't leave me—he'll kill me,” and he wept feebly in his self pity.

“Yes—good enough—it’s on the roof—hey,” he called weakly to Rolf, “let him go after it—don’t leave me—he’ll kill me,” and he cried softly in his self-pity.

So Quonab started down the mountain—a sinewy man—a striding form, a speck in the melting distance.

So Quonab began his descent down the mountain—a lean man—his strides powerful, a small figure fading into the distance.





Chapter 46. Nursing Hoag

In two hours the red man reached the trapper's shanty, and at once, without hesitation or delicacy, set about a thorough examination of its contents. Of course there was the toboggan on the roof, and in fairly good condition for such a shiftless owner.

In two hours, the Native American reached the trapper's cabin and immediately, without pause or sensitivity, began a detailed inspection of its contents. Naturally, there was the toboggan on the roof, and it was in pretty good shape for such a careless owner.

There were bunches of furs hanging from the rafters, but not many, for fur taking is hard work; and Quonab, looking suspiciously over them, was 'not surprised to see the lynx skin he had lost, easily known by the absence of wound and the fur still in points as it had dried from the wetting. In another bundle, he discovered the beaver that had killed itself, for there was the dark band across its back.

There were bunches of furs hanging from the rafters, but not many, because fur gathering is tough work; and Quonab, looking suspiciously at them, was not surprised to see the lynx skin he had lost, easily recognizable by the absence of a wound and the fur still in points as it had dried after getting wet. In another bundle, he found the beaver that had killed itself, marked by the dark band across its back.

The martens he could not be sure of, but he had a strong suspicion that most of this fur came out of his own traps.

The martens were uncertain, but he strongly suspected that most of this fur came from his own traps.

He tied Hoag's blankets on the toboggan, and hastened back to where he left the two on the mountain.

He tied Hoag's blankets onto the sled and rushed back to where he had left the two on the mountain.

Skookum met him long before he was near. Skookum did not enjoy Hoag's company.

Skookum encountered him long before he got close. Skookum wasn’t a fan of Hoag’s presence.

The cripple had been talking freely to Rolf, but the arrival of the Indian seemed to suppress him.

The disabled man had been chatting openly with Rolf, but the arrival of the Indian seemed to quiet him down.

With the wounded man on the toboggan, they set out, The ground was bare in many places, so that the going was hard; but, fortunately, it was all down hill, and four hours' toil brought them to the cabin.

With the injured man on the sled, they set off. The ground was bare in many spots, making the journey difficult; but luckily, it was all downhill, and after four hours of effort, they reached the cabin.

They put the sick man in his bunk, then Rolf set about preparing a meal, while Quonab cut wood.

They laid the sick man in his bunk, then Rolf started making a meal, while Quonab chopped wood.

After the usual tea, bacon, and flour cakes, all were feeling refreshed. Hoag seemed much more like himself. He talked freely, almost cheerfully, while Quonab, with Skookum at his feet, sat silently smoking and staring into the fire.

After the usual tea, bacon, and flour cakes, everyone felt refreshed. Hoag seemed much more like himself. He talked openly, almost cheerfully, while Quonab, with Skookum at his feet, sat quietly smoking and staring into the fire.

After a long silence, the Indian turned, looked straight at the trapper, and, pointing with his pipestem to the furs, said, “How many is ours?”

After a long silence, the Indian turned, looked straight at the trapper, and, pointing with his pipestem at the furs, said, “How many do we have?”

Hoag looked scared, then sulky, and said; “I dunno what ye mean. I'm a awful sick man. You get me out to Lyons Falls all right, and ye can have the hull lot,” and he wept.

Hoag looked scared, then sulky, and said, “I don’t know what you mean. I'm really sick. If you get me out to Lyons Falls, you can have the whole lot,” and he cried.

Rolf shook his head at Quonab, then turned to the sufferer and said: “Don't you worry; we'll get you out all right. Have you a good canoe?”

Rolf shook his head at Quonab, then turned to the person in pain and said: “Don't worry; we'll get you out of this. Do you have a good canoe?”

“Pretty fair; needs a little fixing.”

"Looks good; just needs a bit of work."

The night passed with one or two breaks, when the invalid asked for a drink of water. In the morning he was evidently recovering, and they began to plan for the future.

The night went by with a couple of interruptions when the patient asked for a drink of water. By morning, he was clearly getting better, and they started to make plans for the future.

He took the first chance of wispering to Rolf, “Can't you send him away? I'll be all right with you.” Rolf said nothing.

He took the first chance to whisper to Rolf, “Can’t you send him away? I’ll be fine with you.” Rolf said nothing.

“Say,” he continued, “say, young feller, what's yer name?”

“Hey,” he continued, “hey, kid, what’s your name?”

“Rolf Kittering.”

“Rolf Kittering.”

“Say, Rolf, you wait a week or ten days, and the ice 'll be out; then I'll be fit to travel. There ain't on'y a few carries between here an' Lyons Falls.”

“Hey, Rolf, if you wait a week or ten days, the ice will be gone; then I'll be ready to travel. There are only a few portages between here and Lyons Falls.”

After a long pause, due to Quonab's entry, he continued again: “Moose River's good canoeing; ye can get me out in five days; me folks is at Lyons Falls.” He did not say that his folks consisted of a wife and boy that he neglected, but whom he counted on to nurse him now.

After a long pause because Quonab walked in, he started talking again: “Moose River's great for canoeing; you can get me out in five days; my family's at Lyons Falls.” He didn’t mention that his family included a wife and son he had ignored, but he was relying on them to take care of him now.

Rolf was puzzled by the situation.

Rolf was confused by the situation.

“Say! I'll give ye all them furs if ye git me out.” Rolf gave him a curious look—as much as to say, “Ye mean our furs.”

“Hey! I'll give you all those furs if you get me out.” Rolf gave him a curious look—as if to say, “You mean our furs.”

Again the conversation was ended by the entry of Quonab.

Again, the conversation was interrupted by the arrival of Quonab.

Rolf stepped out, taking the Indian with him. They had a long talk, then, as Rolf reentered, the sick man began:

Rolf stepped out, bringing the Indian with him. They had a long conversation, then, as Rolf came back in, the sick man started:

“You stay by me, and git me out. I'll give ye my rifle”—then, after a short silence—“an' I'll throw in all the traps an' the canoe.”

“You stay with me and get me out. I'll give you my rifle”—then, after a brief silence—“and I'll throw in all the traps and the canoe.”

“I'll stay by you,” said Rolf, “and in about two weeks we'll take you down to Lyons Falls. I guess you can guide us.”

“I'll stick with you,” Rolf said, “and in about two weeks, we'll take you down to Lyons Falls. I guess you can lead the way.”

“Ye can have all them pelts,” and again the trapper presented the spoils he had stolen, “an' you bet it's your rifle when ye get me out.”

“You can have all those pelts,” and again the trapper showed off the loot he had taken, “and you can count on it being your rifle when you get me out.”

So it was arranged. But it was necessary for Quonab to go back to their own cabin. Now what should he do? Carry the new lot of fur there, or bring the old lot here to dispose of all at Lyons Falls?

So it was arranged. But Quonab needed to go back to their own cabin. Now what should he do? Should he carry the new batch of fur there, or bring the old batch here to get rid of everything at Lyons Falls?

Rolf had been thinking hard. He had seen the evil side of many men, including Hoag. To go among Hoag's people with a lot of stuff that Hoag might claim was running risks, so he said:

Rolf had been thinking deeply. He had witnessed the darker side of many men, including Hoag. Going among Hoag's people with a bunch of things that Hoag might take was risky, so he said:

“Quonab, you come back in not more than ten days. We'll take a few furs to Lyons Falls so we can get supplies. Leave the rest of them in good shape, so we can go out later to Warren's. We'll get a square deal there, and we don't know what at Lyon's.”

“Quonab, come back in no more than ten days. We’ll take some furs to Lyons Falls to get supplies. Leave the rest in good condition, so we can head out later to Warren’s. We’ll get a fair deal there, and we’re uncertain about what we’ll find at Lyon’s.”

So they picked out the lynx, the beaver, and a dozen martens to leave, and making the rest into a pack, Quonab shouldered them, and followed by Skookum, trudged up the mountain and was lost to view in the woods.

So they chose the lynx, the beaver, and a dozen martens to leave behind, and with the rest packed up, Quonab shouldered them, and followed by Skookum, hiked up the mountain and disappeared into the woods.

The ten days went by very slowly. Hoag was alternately querulous, weeping, complaining, unpleasantly fawning, or trying to insure good attention by presenting again and again the furs, the gun, and the canoe.

The ten days dragged on. Hoag was sometimes whiny, crying, complaining, overly flattering, or trying to ensure good treatment by continually showing off the furs, the gun, and the canoe.

Rolf found it pleasant to get away from the cabin when the weather was fine. One day, taking Hoag's gun, he travelled up the nearest stream for a mile, and came on a big beaver pond. Round this he scouted and soon discovered a drowned beaver, held in a trap which he recognized at once, for it had the (” ' “') mark on the frame. Then he found an empty trap with a beaver leg in it, and another, till six traps were found. Then he gathered up the six and the beaver, and returned to the cabin to be greeted with a string of complaints:

Rolf enjoyed getting away from the cabin when the weather was nice. One day, he took Hoag's gun and hiked up the nearest stream for a mile, eventually coming across a large beaver pond. He scouted around and soon spotted a drowned beaver caught in a trap he recognized immediately because it had the (” ' “') mark on the frame. Then he found an empty trap with a beaver leg in it, and another one, until he had discovered six traps in total. He collected the six traps and the beaver, then headed back to the cabin, where he was met with a barrage of complaints:

“Ye didn't ought to leave me like this. I'm paying ye well enough. I don't ax no favours,” etc.

“Y'all shouldn’t leave me like this. I’m paying you well enough. I’m not asking for any favors,” etc.

“See what I got,” and Rolf showed the beaver. “An' see what I found;” then he showed the traps. “Queer, ain't it,” he went on, “we had six traps just like them, and I marked the face just like these, and they all disappeared, and there was a snowshoe trail pointing this way. You haven't got any crooked neighbours about here, have you?”

“Check this out,” Rolf said as he showed the beaver. “And look what I found;” then he showed the traps. “Weird, right?” he continued, “We had six traps just like these, and I marked them exactly like this, and they all vanished, and there was a snowshoe trail leading this way. You don't have any shady neighbors around here, do you?”

The trapper looked sulky and puzzled, and grumbled, “I bet it was Bill Hawkins done it”; then relapsed into silence.

The trapper looked sullen and confused, and muttered, “I bet it was Bill Hawkins who did it,” before falling silent again.





Chapter 47. Hoag's Home-coming

     When it comes to personal feelin's better let yer friends
     do the talkin' and jedgin'.  A man can't handle his own
     case any more than a delirious doctor kin give hisself the
     right physic—Sayings of Si Sylvanne.
     When it comes to personal feelings, it's better to let your friends do the talking and judging. A man can't handle his own situation any more than a delirious doctor can prescribe himself the right medicine—Sayings of Si Sylvanne.

The coming of springtime in the woods is one of the gentlest, sweetest advents in the world. Sometimes there are heavy rains which fill all the little rivers with an overflood that quickly eats away the ice and snow, but usually the woodland streams open, slowly and gradually. Very rarely is there a spate, an upheaval, and a cataclysmal sweep that bursts the ice and ends its reign in an hour or two. That is the way of the large rivers, whose ice is free and floating. The snow in the forest melts slowly, and when the ice is attacked, it goes gradually, gently, without uproar. The spring comes in the woods with swelling of buds and a lengthening of drooping catkins, with honking of wild geese, and cawing of crows coming up from the lower countries to divide with their larger cousins, the ravens, the spoils of winter's killing.

The arrival of spring in the woods is one of the softest, sweetest changes in the world. Sometimes there are heavy rains that fill all the little rivers to overflowing, quickly melting the ice and snow, but usually the woodland streams open up slowly and gradually. It's very rare to see a sudden flood or a dramatic rush that breaks the ice and ends its hold within a couple of hours. That’s how the large rivers behave, where the ice is loose and floating. The snow in the forest melts slowly, and when the ice starts to give way, it happens gently and quietly, without fuss. Spring arrives in the woods with the swelling of buds and the lengthening of drooping catkins, along with the honking of wild geese and the cawing of crows coming up from the lowlands to share their winter leftovers with their larger relatives, the ravens.

The small birds from the South appear with a few short notes of spring, and the pert chicadees that have braved it all winter, now lead the singing with their cheery “I told you so” notes, till robins and blackbirds join in, and with their more ambitious singing make all the lesser roundelays forgot.

The little birds from the South show up with a few quick spring notes, and the bold chickadees that have endured all winter now kick off the singing with their cheerful "I told you so" calls, until robins and blackbirds join in, and with their more ambitious songs make all the simpler melodies fade away.

Once the winter had taken a backward step—spring found it easy to turn retreat into panic and rout; and the ten days Quonab stayed away were days of revolutionary change. For in them semi-winter gave place to smiling spring, with all the snow-drifts gone, except perhaps in the shadiest hollows of the woods.

Once winter took a step back, spring quickly turned that retreat into chaos and defeat; and the ten days Quonab was gone were days of dramatic change. During that time, late winter gave way to cheerful spring, with all the snowdrifts melted, except maybe in the shadiest parts of the woods.

It was a bright morning, and a happy one for Rolf, when he heard the Indian's short “Ho,” outside, and a minute later had Skookum dancing and leaping about him. On Hoag the effect was quite different. He was well enough to be up, to hobble about painfully on a stick; to be exceedingly fault-finding, and to eat three hearty meals a day; but the moment the Indian appeared, he withdrew into himself, and became silent and uneasy. Before an hour passed, he again presented the furs, the gun, the canoe, and the traps to Rolf, on condition that he should get him out to his folks.

It was a bright morning, and a happy one for Rolf, when he heard the Indian's short “Ho” outside, and a minute later had Skookum dancing and leaping around him. For Hoag, the effect was completely different. He was well enough to be up, to hobble around painfully with a stick, to be very critical, and to eat three hearty meals a day. But the moment the Indian showed up, he withdrew into himself and became quiet and anxious. Before an hour had passed, he once again offered the furs, the gun, the canoe, and the traps to Rolf, on the condition that he would get him back to his family.

All three were glad to set out that very day on the outward trip to Lyons Falls.

All three were excited to head out that same day on the journey to Lyons Falls.

Down Little Moose River to Little Moose Lake and on to South Branch of Moose, then by the Main Moose, was their way. The streams were flush; there was plenty of water, and this fortunately reduced the number of carries; for Hoag could not walk and would not hobble. They sweat and laboured to carry him over every portage; but they covered the fifty miles in three days, and on the evening of the third, arrived at the little backwoods village of Lyons Falls.

Down Little Moose River to Little Moose Lake and on to South Branch of Moose, then by the Main Moose, was their route. The streams were full; there was plenty of water, and this luckily cut down the number of portages; because Hoag couldn't walk and wouldn't use crutches. They sweated and struggled to carry him over every portage; but they made the fifty miles in three days, and on the evening of the third, they reached the small backwoods village of Lyons Falls.

The change that took place in Hoag now was marked and unpleasant. He gave a number of orders, where, the day before, he would have made whining petitions. He told them to “land easy, and don't bump my canoe.” He hailed the loungers about the mill with an effusiveness that they did not respond to. Their cool, “Hello, Jack, are you back?” was little but a passing recognition. One of them was persuaded to take Rolf's place in carrying Hoag to his cabin. Yes, his folks were there, but they did not seem overjoyed at his arrival. He whispered to the boy, who sullenly went out to the river and returned with the rifle, Rolf's rifle now, the latter supposed, and would have taken the bundle of furs had not Skookum sprung on the robber and driven him away from the canoe.

The change in Hoag was obvious and uncomfortable. He gave a number of orders that just the day before he would have made as reluctant requests. He told them to “land smoothly and don't bump my canoe.” He greeted the people hanging around the mill with enthusiasm, but they didn’t really respond. Their casual, “Hey, Jack, you’re back?” was barely more than a quick acknowledgment. One of them agreed to take Rolf's place in carrying Hoag to his cabin. Sure, his family was there, but they didn’t seem particularly excited about his return. He whispered to the boy, who reluctantly went out to the river and came back with the rifle, which was now Rolf's, he assumed, and would have taken the bundle of furs if Skookum hadn’t jumped on the thief and chased him away from the canoe.

And now Hoag showed his true character. “Them's my furs and my canoe,” he said to one of the mill hands, and turning to the two who had saved him, he said: “An' you two dirty, cutthroat, redskin thieves, you can get out of town as fast as ye know how, or I'll have ye jugged,” and all the pent-up hate of his hateful nature frothed out in words insulting and unprintable.

And now Hoag revealed his true colors. “Those are my furs and my canoe,” he said to one of the mill workers, and turning to the two who had saved him, he added, “And you two dirty, backstabbing, Native thieves, you can leave town as quickly as you can, or I’ll have you arrested,” and all the bottled-up hatred of his nasty character spilled out in words that were insulting and unprintable.

“Talks like a white man,” said Quonab coldly. Rolf was speechless. To toil so devotedly, and to have such filthy, humiliating words for thanks! He wondered if even his Uncle Mike would have shown so vile a spirit.

“Talks like a white guy,” Quonab said coldly. Rolf was at a loss for words. To work so hard and receive such disgusting, humiliating words in return! He wondered if even his Uncle Mike would have shown such a nasty attitude.

Hoag gave free rein to his tongue, and found in his pal, Bill Hawkins, one with ready ears to hear his tale of woe. The wretch began to feel himself frightfully ill-used. So, fired at last by the evermore lurid story of his wrongs, the “partner” brought the magistrate, so they could swear out a warrant, arrest the two “outlaws,” and especially secure the bundle of “Hoag's furs” in the canoe.

Hoag let loose with his words and found in his buddy, Bill Hawkins, someone who was ready to listen to his sad story. The poor guy started to feel really mistreated. Finally, fueled by the increasingly dramatic tale of his grievances, the “partner” went to get the magistrate so they could get a warrant, arrest the two “outlaws,” and especially make sure to grab the bundle of “Hoag's furs” in the canoe.

Old Silas Sylvanne, the mill-owner and pioneer of the place, was also its magistrate. He was tall, thin, blacklooking, a sort of Abe Lincoln in type, physically, and in some sort, mentally. He heard the harrowing tale of terrible crime, robbery, and torture, inflicted on poor harmless Hoag by these two ghouls in human shape; he listened, at first shocked, but little by little amused.

Old Silas Sylvanne, the mill owner and pioneer of the area, was also its magistrate. He was tall, thin, and had a dark appearance, kind of like Abe Lincoln both physically and in some ways mentally. He heard the horrifying story of the terrible crime, robbery, and torture inflicted on the innocent Hoag by these two monsters in human form; at first, he was shocked, but gradually he became amused.

“You don't get no warrant till I hear from the other side,” he said. Roff and Quonab came at call. The old pioneer sized up the two, as they stood, then, addressing Rolf, said:

“You don’t get a warrant until I hear from the other side,” he said. Roff and Quonab came at his call. The old pioneer assessed the two as they stood, then, addressing Rolf, said:

“Air you an Injun?” “No, sir.” “Air you half-breed?” “No, sir.” “Well, let's hear about this business,” and he turned his piercing eyes full on the lad's face.

“Are you an Indian?” “No, sir.” “Are you a half-breed?” “No, sir.” “Well, let’s hear about this business,” and he fixed his intense gaze directly on the boy’s face.

Rolf told the simple, straight story of their acquaintance with Hoag, from the first day at Warren's to their arrival at the Falls. There is never any doubt about the truth of a true story, if it be long enough, and this true story, presented in its nakedness to the shrewd and kindly old hunter, trader, mill-owner and magistrate, could have only one effect.

Rolf shared the straightforward story of how they met Hoag, starting from their first day at Warren's all the way to their arrival at the Falls. A true story never raises doubts if it's detailed enough, and this true story, laid bare for the perceptive and friendly old hunter, trader, mill-owner, and magistrate, could only have one outcome.

“Sonny,” he said, slowly and kindly, “I know that ye have told me the truth. I believe every word of it. We all know that Hoag is the meanest cuss and biggest liar on the river. He's a nuisance, and always was. He only promised to give ye the canoe and the rifle, and since he don't want to, we can't help it. About the trouble in the woods, you got two witnesses to his one, and ye got the furs and the traps; it's just as well ye left the other furs behind, or ye might have had to divide 'em; so keep them and call the hull thing square. We'll find ye a canoe to get out of this gay metropolis, and as to Hoag, ye needn't a-worry; his travelling days is done.”

“Sonny,” he said gently and kindly, “I know you’ve told me the truth. I believe every word of it. We all know Hoag is the meanest jerk and biggest liar on the river. He’s a pain, and he always has been. He only promised to give you the canoe and the rifle, and since he doesn’t want to, there's nothing we can do about it. Regarding the trouble in the woods, you have two witnesses against his one, and you have the furs and the traps; it’s just as well you left the other furs behind, or you might have had to split them; so keep those and consider it even. We’ll find you a canoe to get out of this crazy city, and as for Hoag, you don’t need to worry; his traveling days are over.”

A man with a bundle of high-class furs is a man of means in any frontier town. The magistrate was trader, too, so they set about disposing of their furs and buying the supplies they needed.

A man with a bundle of luxury furs is a wealthy person in any frontier town. The magistrate was also a trader, so they started selling their furs and buying the supplies they needed.

The day was nearly done before their new canoe was gummed and ready with the new supplies. When dealing, old Sylvanne had a mild, quiet manner, and a peculiar way of making funny remarks that led some to imagine he was “easy” in business; but it was usual to find at the end that he had lost nothing by his manners, and rival traders shunned an encounter with Long Sylvanne of the unruffled brow.

The day was almost over by the time their new canoe was glued and stocked with the new supplies. When negotiating, old Sylvanne had a calm, soft-spoken style and a unique way of making jokes that led some to think he was “easy” in business; however, it was common to discover in the end that he hadn’t lost anything because of his demeanor, and competing traders avoided crossing paths with Long Sylvanne, who always kept his cool.

When business was done—keen and complete—he said: “Now, I'm a goin' to give each of ye a present,” and handed out two double-bladed jackknives, new things in those days, wonderful things, precious treasures in their eyes, sources of endless joy; and even had they known that one marten skin would buy a quart of them, their pleasant surprise and childish joy would not have been in any way tempered or alloyed.

When the business was finished—sharp and thorough—he said, “Now, I’m going to give each of you a gift,” and handed out two double-bladed jackknives, which were new and amazing at the time, valuable treasures in their eyes, sources of endless joy. Even if they had known that one marten skin could buy a quart of them, their delightful surprise and childlike happiness wouldn’t have been diminished at all.

“Ye better eat with me, boys, an' start in the morning.” So they joined the miller's long, continuous family, and shared his evening meal. Afterward as they sat for three hours and smoked on the broad porch that looked out on the river, old Sylvanne, who had evidently taken a fancy to Rolf, regaled them with a long, rambling talk on “fellers and things,” that was one of the most interesting Rolf had ever listened to. At the time it was simply amusing; it was not till years after that the lad realized by its effect on himself, its insight, and its hold on his memory, that Si Sylvanne's talk was real wisdom. Parts of it would not look well in print; but the rugged words, the uncouth Saxonism, the obscene phrase, were the mere oaken bucket in which the pure and precious waters were hauled to the surface.

“Better eat with me, guys, and start in the morning.” So they joined the miller's big, close-knit family and shared his dinner. Afterward, as they sat for three hours smoking on the wide porch that overlooked the river, old Sylvanne, who clearly liked Rolf, entertained them with a long, meandering talk about “guys and stuff,” which was one of the most interesting things Rolf had ever heard. At the time, it was just entertaining; it wasn't until years later that the boy realized, by its impact on him, its insights, and how it stuck in his memory, that Si Sylvanne's talk was real wisdom. Some of it wouldn't come off well in writing; but the rough words, the awkward phrasing, the inappropriate expressions were just the tough exterior that held the pure and valuable ideas that surfaced.

“Looked like he had ye pinched when that shyster got ye in to Lyons Falls. Wall, there's two bad places for Jack Hoag; one is where they don't know him at all, an' take him on his looks; an' t'other is where they know him through and through for twenty years, like we hev. A smart rogue kin put up a false front fer a year or maybe two, but given twenty year to try him, for and bye, summer an' winter, an' I reckon a man's make is pretty well showed up, without no dark corners left unexplored.

“Looked like you had him caught when that con artist got you into Lyons Falls. Well, there are two bad situations for Jack Hoag; one is where they don't know him at all and judge him by his looks; and the other is where they know him inside and out for twenty years, like we have. A clever trickster can put on a false front for a year or maybe two, but given twenty years to test him, through summer and winter, I think a man's true character is pretty much revealed, with no hidden corners left unexplored.”

“Not that I want to jedge him harsh, coz I don't know what kind o' maggots is eatin' his innards to make him so ornery. I'm bound to suppose he has 'em, or he wouldn't act so dum like it. So I says, go slow and gentle before puttin' a black brand on any feller; as my mother used to say, never say a bad thing till ye ask, 'Is it true, is it kind, is it necessary?' An' I tell you, the older I git, the slower I jedge; when I wuz your age, I wuz a steel trap on a hair trigger, an' cocksure. I tell you, there ain't anythin' wiser nor a sixteen-year-old boy, 'cept maybe a fifteen-year-old girl.

“Not that I want to judge him harshly, because I don't know what kind of issues he's dealing with that make him so difficult. I have to assume he has some, or he wouldn't act so foolishly. So, I say take it slow and easy before labeling anyone; as my mother used to say, never speak negatively until you ask, 'Is it true, is it kind, is it necessary?' And I’ll tell you, the older I get, the more careful I am in my judgments; when I was your age, I was like a steel trap ready to snap, and I was so sure of myself. I swear, there’s nothing wiser than a sixteen-year-old boy, except maybe a fifteen-year-old girl.”

“Ye'll genilly find, lad, jest when things looks about as black as they kin look, that's the sign of luck a-comin' your way, pervidin' ye hold steady, keep cool and kind; something happens every time to make it all easy. There's always a way, an' the stout heart will find it.

“You'll usually find, kid, just when things look as bad as they can get, that's the sign that luck is coming your way, as long as you stay steady, keep cool, and be kind; something always happens to make it all easier. There's always a way, and the brave heart will find it."

“Ye may be very sure o' this, boy, yer never licked till ye think ye air an' if ye won't think it, ye can't be licked. It's just the same as being sick. I seen a lot o' doctorin' in my day, and I'm forced to believe there ain't any sick folks 'cept them that thinks they air sick.

“You can be sure of this, boy, you’re never beaten until you think you are, and if you don’t think it, you can’t be beaten. It’s just like being sick. I’ve seen a lot of medical stuff in my day, and I have to believe there aren’t any sick people except those who think they are sick.”

“The older I git, the more I'm bound to consider that most things is inside, anyhow, and what's outside don't count for much.

“The older I get, the more I realize that most things are inside, anyway, and what’s outside doesn’t matter much.”

“So it stands to reason when ye play the game for what's inside, ye win over all the outside players. When ye done kindness to Hoag, ye mightn't a meant it, but ye was bracin' up the goodness in yerself, or bankin' it up somewher' on the trail ahead, where it was needed. And he was simply chawin' his own leg off, when he done ye dirt. I ain't much o' a prattlin' Christian, but I reckon as a cold-blooded, business proposition it pays to lend the neighbour a hand; not that I go much on gratitude. It's scarcer'n snowballs in hell—which ain't the point; but I take notice there ain't any man'll hate ye more'n the feller that knows he's acted mean to ye. An' there ain't any feller more ready to fight yer battles than the chap that by some dum accident has hed the luck to help ye, even if he only done it to spite some one else—which 'minds me o' McCarthy's bull pup that saved the drowning kittens by mistake, and ever after was a fightin' cat protector, whereby he lost the chief joy o' his life, which had been cat-killin'. An' the way they cured the cat o' eatin' squirrels was givin' her a litter o' squirrels to raise.

“So it makes sense that when you play the game for what’s inside, you win over all the outside players. When you did something kind for Hoag, you might not have meant it, but you were building up the goodness in yourself or saving it for some time ahead when it would be needed. And he was just hurting himself when he wronged you. I’m not much of a talkative Christian, but I think as a cold-blooded business idea, it pays to help your neighbor; not that I care much about gratitude. It’s rarer than snowballs in hell—which isn’t the point; but I notice there isn’t any man who’ll hate you more than the one who knows he’s treated you poorly. And there isn’t anyone more ready to fight your battles than the guy who, by some stupid accident, has had the luck to help you, even if he only did it to spite someone else—which reminds me of McCarthy's bull pup that saved the drowning kittens by mistake, and afterward became a fighting cat protector, giving up the chief joy of his life, which had been killing cats. And the way they got the cat to stop eating squirrels was by giving her a litter of squirrels to raise.”

“I tell ye there's a lot o' common-sense an' kindness in the country, only it's so dum slow to git around; while the cussedness and meanness always acts like they felt the hell fire sizzlin' their hind-end whiskers, an' knowed they had jest so many minutes to live an' make a record. There's where a man's smart that fixes things so he kin hold out a long time, fer the good stuff in men's minds is what lasts; and the feller what can stay with it hez proved hisself by stayin'. How'd ye happen to tie up with the Injun, Rolf?”

“I’m telling you there’s a lot of common sense and kindness in the country, it just takes so long to come out; while the meanness and badness act like they feel hellfire burning their behinds, and know they only have so much time left to make their mark. That’s where a smart person comes in, someone who can hold on for a long time, because the good stuff in people’s minds is what endures; and the person who can stick with it has proven themselves by lasting. How did you end up with the Indian, Rolf?”

“Do ye want me to tell it long or short?” was the reply. “Wall, short, fer a start,” and Silas Sylvanne chuckled.

“Do you want me to tell it long or short?” was the reply. “Well, short, for a start,” and Silas Sylvanne chuckled.

So Rolf gave a very brief account of his early life.

So Rolf shared a quick summary of his early life.

“Pretty good,” said the miller; “now let's hear it long.”

“Pretty good,” said the miller; “now let's hear the whole thing.”

And when he had finished, the miller said: “I've seen yer tried fer most everything that goes to make a man, Rolf, an' I hev my own notion of the results. You ain't goin' to live ferever in them hills. When ye've hed yer fling an' want a change, let me know.”

And when he was done, the miller said: “I’ve seen you try just about everything that makes a man, Rolf, and I have my own thoughts on the results. You’re not going to live forever in those hills. When you’ve had your fun and want a change, let me know.”

Early next day the two hunters paddled up the Moose River with a good canoe, an outfit of groceries, and a small supply of ready cash.

Early the next day, the two hunters paddled up the Moose River with a sturdy canoe, a pack of groceries, and a little bit of cash.

“Good-bye, lad, good-bye! Come back again and ye'll find we improve on acquaintance; an' don't forget I'm buying fur,” was Si Sylvanne's last word. And as they rounded the point, on the home way, Rolf turned in the canoe, faced Quonab, and said: “Ye see there are some good white men left;” but the Indian neither blinked, nor moved, nor made a sound.

“Goodbye, kid, goodbye! Come back again and you’ll see we get better with each meeting; and don’t forget I’m buying fur,” were Si Sylvanne’s last words. As they rounded the bend on their way home, Rolf turned in the canoe, faced Quonab, and said: “You see there are some good white men left;” but the Indian neither blinked, nor moved, nor made a sound.





Chapter 48. Rolf's Lesson in Trailing

The return journey was hard paddling against strong waters, but otherwise uneventful. Once over any trail is enough to fix it in the memory of a woodman. They made no mistakes and their loads were light, so the portages were scarcely any loss of time, and in two days they were back at Hoag's cabin.

The trip back was tough, fighting against strong currents, but nothing really happened. Once a woodman travels a path, it sticks in his memory. They didn't mess up, and their loads were light, so the portages barely took any time, and in two days, they were back at Hoag's cabin.

Of this they took possession. First, they gathered all things of value, and that was little since the furs and bedding were gone, but there were a few traps and some dishes. The stuff was made in two packs; now it was an overland journey, so the canoe was hidden in a cedar thicket, a quarter of a mile inland. The two were about to shoulder the packs, Quonab was lighting his pipe for a start, when Rolf said:

Of this they took possession. First, they gathered everything of value, which was minimal since the furs and bedding were gone, but there were a few traps and some dishes. They packed it into two bundles; now it was an overland journey, so they hid the canoe in a cedar thicket, a quarter of a mile inland. The two were about to shoulder the packs, Quonab was lighting his pipe to kick things off, when Rolf said:

“Say, Quonab! that fellow we saw at the Falls claimed to be Hoag's partner. He may come on here and make trouble if we don't head him off. Let's burn her,” and he nodded toward the shanty.

“Hey, Quonab! That guy we saw at the Falls said he was Hoag's partner. He might come here and cause problems if we don’t stop him. Let’s burn it down,” he said, nodding towards the shanty.

“Ugh!” was the reply.

“Ugh!” was the response.

They gathered some dry brush and a lot of birch bark, piled them up against the wall inside, and threw plenty of firewood on this. With flint and steel Quonab made the vital spark, the birch bark sputtered, the dry, resinous logs were easily set ablaze, and soon great volumes of smoke rolled from the door, the window, and the chimney; and Skookum, standing afar, barked pleasantly aloud.

They collected some dry twigs and a bunch of birch bark, stacked them up against the wall inside, and added a lot of firewood on top. Using flint and steel, Quonab created the crucial spark, the birch bark flared, the dry, resinous logs caught fire easily, and soon thick smoke was billowing from the door, the window, and the chimney; and Skookum, standing nearby, barked happily.

The hunters shouldered their packs and began the long, upward slope. In an hour they had reached a high, rocky ridge. Here they stopped to rest, and, far below them, marked with grim joy a twisted, leaning column of thick black smoke.

The hunters hoisted their packs and started the long, steep climb. After an hour, they reached a high, rocky ridge. They paused to rest and, far below them, with a dark sense of satisfaction, noticed a twisted, leaning column of thick black smoke.

That night they camped in the woods and next day rejoiced to be back again at their own cabin, their own lake, their home.

That night they camped in the woods, and the next day they were happy to be back at their own cabin, their own lake, their home.

Several times during the march they had seen fresh deer tracks, and now that the need of meat was felt, Rolf proposed a deer hunt.

Several times during the march, they had come across fresh deer tracks, and now that they needed meat, Rolf suggested going on a deer hunt.

Many deer die every winter; some are winter-killed; many are devoured by beasts of prey, or killed by hunters; their numbers are at low ebb in April, so that now one could not count on finding a deer by roaming at random. It was a case for trailing.

Many deer die every winter; some fall victim to the harsh conditions; many are eaten by predators, or hunted by people; their numbers are really low in April, so you can't just expect to find a deer by wandering around. It was time to track one down.

Any one can track a deer in the snow. It is not very hard to follow a deer in soft ground, when there are no other deer about. But it is very hard to take one deer trail and follow it over rocky ground and dead leaves, never losing it or changing off, when there are hundreds of deer tracks running in all directions.

Anyone can track a deer in the snow. It isn't very difficult to follow a deer on soft ground when there are no other deer around. But it's really challenging to stick to one deer trail and follow it over rocky ground and dead leaves without losing it or switching trails, especially when there are hundreds of deer tracks going in all directions.

Rolf's eyes were better than Quonab's, but experience counts for as much as eyes, and Quonab was leading. They picked out a big buck track that was fresh—no good hunter kills a doe at this season. They knew it for a buck, because of its size and the roundness of the toes.

Rolf's eyesight was sharper than Quonab's, but experience matters just as much as vision, and Quonab was in the lead. They spotted a big buck track that was fresh—no skilled hunter takes a doe during this season. They recognized it as a buck due to its size and the round shape of the toes.

Before long, Rolf said: “See, Quonab, I want to learn this business; let me do the trailing, and you set me right if I get off the line.”

Before long, Rolf said: “Look, Quonab, I want to learn this skill; let me handle the trailing, and you correct me if I go off track.”

Within a hundred yards, Quonab gave a grunt and shook his head. Rolf looked surprised, for he was on a good, fresh track.

Within a hundred yards, Quonab grunted and shook his head. Rolf looked surprised because he had a solid, fresh trail to follow.

Quonab said but one word, “Doe.”

Quonab said only one word, “Doe.”

Yes, a closer view showed the tracks to be a little narrower, a little closer together, and a little sharper than those he began with.

Yes, a closer look revealed that the tracks were a bit narrower, a little closer together, and a bit sharper than the ones he started with.

Back went Rolf to the last marks that he was sure of, and plainly read where the buck had turned aside. For a time, things went along smoothly, Quonab and Skookum following Rolf. The last was getting very familiar with that stub hoof on the left foot. At length they came to the “fumet” or “sign”; it was all in one pile. That meant the deer had stood, so was unalarmed; and warm; that meant but a few minutes ahead. Now, they must use every precaution for this was the crux of the hunt. Of this much only they were sure—the deer was within range now, and to get him they must see him before he saw them.

Rolf went back to the last signs he was confident about and clearly saw where the buck had turned. For a while, everything went smoothly, with Quonab and Skookum trailing behind Rolf. Skookum was getting very comfortable with that stubby hoof on his left foot. Finally, they reached the “fumet” or “sign”; it was all in one spot. That indicated the deer had paused, so it was unalarmed and still warm; this meant it was only a few minutes ahead. Now, they had to be extra careful because this was the turning point of the hunt. The only thing they were certain of was that the deer was within range now, and to catch it, they needed to see it before it spotted them.

Skookum was leashed. Rolf was allowed to get well ahead, and crawling cautiously, a step at a time, he went, setting down his moccasined foot only after he had tried and selected a place. Once or twice he threw into the air a tuft of dry grass to make sure that the wind was right, and by slow degrees he reached the edge of a little opening.

Skookum was on a leash. Rolf was allowed to get far ahead, and moving carefully, step by step, he went, placing his moccasined foot down only after he had checked and chosen a spot. Once or twice, he tossed a handful of dry grass into the air to make sure the wind was blowing the right way, and gradually, he made his way to the edge of a small clearing.

Across this he peered long, without entering it. Then he made a sweep with his hand and pointed, to let Quonab know the buck had gone across and he himself must go around. But he lingered still and with his eyes swept the near woods. Then, dim gray among the gray twigs, he saw a slight movement, so slight it might have been made by the tail of a tomtit. But it fixed his attention, and out of this gray haze he slowly made out the outline of a deer's head, antlers, and neck. A hundred yards away, but “take a chance when it comes” is hunter wisdom. Rolf glanced at the sight, took steady aim, fired, and down went the buck behind a log. Skookum whined and leaped high in his eagerness to see. Rolf restrained his impatience to rush forward, at once reloaded, then all three went quickly to the place. Before they were within fifty yards, the deer leaped up and bounded off. At seventy-five yards, it stood for a moment to gaze. Rolf fired again; again the buck fell down, but jumped to its feet and bounded away.

He looked long without going in. Then he waved his hand and pointed to let Quonab know the buck had crossed and he needed to go around. But he stayed put, scanning the nearby woods. Then, among the gray branches, he noticed a slight movement, so subtle it could have been the tail of a small bird. But it caught his attention, and from the gray mist, he gradually picked out the shape of a deer's head, antlers, and neck. It was a hundred yards away, but “take a chance when it comes” is what hunters believe. Rolf glanced at the sight, took aim, fired, and the buck dropped behind a log. Skookum whined and jumped up in excitement to see. Rolf held back his urge to rush forward, reloaded, and then the three of them made their way quickly to the spot. Before they reached fifty yards, the deer sprang up and ran off. At seventy-five yards, it paused for a moment to look back. Rolf fired again; the buck fell once more but then got back on its feet and dashed away.

They went to the two places, but found no blood. Utterly puzzled, they gave it up for the day, as already the shades of night were on the woods, and in spite of Skookum's voluble offer to solve and settle everything, they returned to the cabin.

They went to the two places but found no blood. Completely confused, they decided to call it a day since the evening shadows were creeping into the woods, and despite Skookum's enthusiastic promise to figure everything out, they headed back to the cabin.

“What do you make of it, Quonab?'

“What do you think of it, Quonab?"

The Indian shook his head, then: “Maybe touched his head and stunned him, first shot; second, wah! I not know.”

The Indian shook his head and said, “Maybe I hit his head and stunned him with the first shot; the second one, wow! I don’t know.”

“I know this,” said Rolf. “I touched him and I mean to get him in the morning.”

“I know this,” Rolf said. “I touched him, and I'm going to get him in the morning.”

True to this resolve, he was there again at dawn, but examined the place in vain for a sign of blood. The red rarely shows up much on leaves, grass, or dust; but there are two kinds of places that the hunter can rely on as telltales—stones and logs. Rolf followed the deer track, now very dim, till at a bare place he found a speck of blood on a pebble. Here the trail joined onto a deer path, with so many tracks that it was hard to say which was the right one. But Rolf passed quickly along to a log that crossed the runway, and on that log he found a drop of dried-up blood that told him what he wished to know.

Sticking to his plan, he was there again at dawn, but searched the area in vain for any sign of blood. Red doesn't usually show up well on leaves, grass, or dirt; however, there are two types of spots a hunter can count on as clues—rocks and logs. Rolf followed the deer track, which was now very faint, until he found a spot of blood on a pebble at a bare patch. Here, the trail merged with a deer path, with so many tracks that it was hard to determine which one was the right one. But Rolf quickly moved to a log that crossed the path, and on that log, he discovered a drop of dried blood that confirmed what he wanted to know.

Now he had a straight run of a quarter of a mile, and from time to time he saw a peculiar scratching mark that puzzled him. Once he found a speck of blood at one of these scratches but no other evidence that the buck was touched.

Now he had a clear stretch of a quarter of a mile, and every so often he spotted a strange scratching mark that confused him. Once he noticed a drop of blood at one of these scratches, but there was no other sign that the buck had been injured.

A wounded deer is pretty sure to work down hill, and Quonab, leaving Skookum with Rolf, climbed a lookout that might show whither the deer was heading.

A wounded deer is likely to move downhill, so Quonab, leaving Skookum with Rolf, climbed a lookout that could show where the deer was headed.

After another half mile, the deer path forked; there were buck trails on both, and Rolf could not pick out the one he wanted. He went a few yards along each, studying the many marks, but was unable to tell which was that of the wounded buck.

After another half mile, the deer path split; there were buck trails on both sides, and Rolf couldn't figure out which one he wanted. He walked a few yards down each one, examining the various marks, but couldn't determine which belonged to the wounded buck.

Now Skookum took a share in it. He had always been forbidden to run deer and knew it was a contraband amusement, but he put his nose to that branch of the trail that ran down hill, followed it for a few yards, then looked at Rolf, as much as to say: “You poor nose-blind creature; don't you know a fresh deer track when you smell it? Here it is; this is where he went.”

Now Skookum decided to get involved. He had always been told not to chase deer and knew it was a forbidden pleasure, but he pressed his nose to that section of the trail that went downhill, followed it for a few yards, then looked at Rolf, as if to say: “You poor, clueless guy; can't you recognize a fresh deer track when you smell it? Here it is; this is where it went.”

Rolf stared, then said, “I believe he means it”; and followed the lower trail. Very soon he came to another scrape, and, just beyond it, found the new, velvet-covered antler of a buck, raw and bloody, and splintered at the base.

Rolf stared and then said, “I think he really means it,” and took the lower trail. Before long, he reached another scrape, and just past it, he discovered the new, soft-covered antler of a buck, fresh and bloody, and splintered at the base.

From this on, the task was easier, as there were no other tracks, and this was pointing steadily down hill.

From this point on, the task was simpler, as there were no other tracks, and this one was consistently leading downhill.

Soon Quonab came striding along. He had not seen the buck, but a couple of jays and a raven were gathered in a thicket far down by the stream. The hunters quit the trail and made for that place. As they drew near, they found the track again, and again saw those curious scrapes.

Soon Quonab came walking up confidently. He hadn’t spotted the deer, but a couple of jays and a raven were hanging out in a thicket down by the stream. The hunters left the trail and headed toward that spot. As they got closer, they picked up the tracks again and noticed those weird scrapes once more.

Every hunter knows that the bluejay dashing about a thicket means that hidden there is game of some kind, probably deer. Very, very slowly and silently they entered that copse. But nothing appeared until there was a rush in the thickest part and up leaped the buck. This was too much for Skookum. He shot forward like a wolf, fastened on one hind leg, and the buck went crashing head over heels. Before it could rise, another shot ended its troubles. And now a careful study shed the light desired. Rolf's first shot had hit the antler near the base, breaking it, except for the skin on one side, and had stunned the buck. The second shot had broken a hind leg. The scratching places he had made were efforts to regain the use of this limb, and at one of them the deer had fallen and parted the rag of skin by which the antler hung.

Every hunter knows that when a blue jay flits around in a thicket, it means there's some kind of game hiding there, probably deer. They entered that grove very slowly and quietly. But nothing showed up until there was a commotion in the densest part, and the buck jumped up. This was too much for Skookum. He shot forward like a wolf, grabbed onto one hind leg, and the buck went tumbling over. Before it could get back up, another shot put an end to its struggles. Now, a careful examination revealed what had happened. Rolf's first shot had hit the antler near the base, breaking it except for the skin on one side, and had stunned the buck. The second shot had broken a hind leg. The marks he left were attempts to regain the use of that limb, and at one point, the deer had fallen and torn the thin skin that was holding the antler on.

It was Rolf's first important trailing on the ground; it showed how possible it was, and how quickly he was learning the hardest of all the feats of woodcraft.

It was Rolf's first important experience on the ground; it demonstrated how achievable it was, and how quickly he was grasping the toughest skills of woodcraft.





Chapter 49. Rolf Gets Lost

Every one who lives in the big woods gets lost at some time. Yes, even Daniel Boone did sometimes go astray. And whether it is to end as a joke or a horrible tragedy depends entirely on the way in which the person takes it. This is, indeed, the grand test of a hunter and scout, the trial of his knowledge, his muscle, and, above everything, his courage; and, like all supreme trials, it comes without warning.

Anyone who lives in the big woods gets lost at some point. Yes, even Daniel Boone sometimes went off track. Whether it ends as a funny story or a terrible tragedy totally depends on how the person handles it. This is truly the ultimate test for a hunter and scout, a measure of their knowledge, strength, and, above all, their courage; and, like all major challenges, it happens without any warning.

The wonderful flocks of wild pigeons had arrived. For a few days in May they were there in millions, swarming over the ground in long-reaching hordes, walking along, pecking and feeding, the rearmost flying on ahead, ever to the front. The food they sought so eagerly now was chiefly the seeds of the slippery elm, tiny nuts showered down on wings like broad-brimmed hats. And when the flock arose at some alarm, the sound was like that of the sea beach in a storm.

The amazing flocks of wild pigeons had shown up. For a few days in May, they filled the area by the millions, swarming over the ground in large groups, walking around, pecking at the ground and eating, while those at the back flew ahead, always moving to the front. The food they were after was mostly the seeds of the slippery elm, tiny nuts falling like broad-brimmed hats. And when the flock took off in response to some disturbance, the noise was like the crashing waves of the ocean during a storm.

There seemed to be most pigeons in the low country southeast of the lake, of course, because, being low, it had most elms. So Rolf took his bow and arrows, crossed in the canoe, and confidently set about gathering in a dozen or two for broilers.

There seemed to be the most pigeons in the low country southeast of the lake, of course, because it was low and had the most elms. So Rolf grabbed his bow and arrows, crossed in the canoe, and confidently started gathering a dozen or two for broilers.

It is amazing how well the game seems to gauge the range of your weapon and keep the exact safe distance. It is marvellous how many times you may shoot an arrow into a flock of pigeons and never kill one. Rolf went on and on, always in sight of the long, straggling flocks on the ground or in the air, but rarely within range of them. Again and again he fired a random shot into the distant mass, without success for two hours. Finally a pigeon was touched and dropped, but it rose as he ran forward, and flew ten yards, to drop once more. Again he rushed at it, but it fluttered out of reach and so led him on and on for about half an hour's breathless race, until at last he stopped, took deliberate aim, and killed it with an arrow.

It’s incredible how well the game seems to measure the range of your weapon and keep the exact safe distance. It’s amazing how many times you can shoot an arrow into a flock of pigeons and never hit one. Rolf kept going, always in sight of the long, scattered flocks on the ground or in the air, but rarely within range of them. Time and again he fired a random shot into the distant mass, with no luck for two hours. Finally, one pigeon was hit and fell, but it flew away as he ran forward, only to drop another ten yards ahead. He rushed at it again, but it fluttered out of reach, leading him on and on for about half an hour of exhausting chasing, until he finally stopped, took careful aim, and shot it down with an arrow.

Now a peculiar wailing and squealing from the woods far ahead attracted him. He stalked and crawled for many minutes before he found out, as he should have known, that it was caused by a mischievous bluejay.

Now a strange wailing and squealing from the woods far ahead caught his attention. He crept and crawled for many minutes before he realized, as he should have, that it was caused by a playful bluejay.

At length he came to a spring in a low hollow, and leaving his bow and arrows on a dry log, he went down to get a drink.

At last, he arrived at a spring in a low area, and after placing his bow and arrows on a dry log, he went down to have a drink.

As he arose, he found himself face to face with a doe and a fat, little yearling buck, only twenty yards away. They stared at him, quite unalarmed, and, determining to add the yearling to his bag, Rolf went back quietly to his bow and arrows.

As he got up, he came across a doe and a chubby little yearling buck, just twenty yards away. They looked at him, totally unbothered, and deciding to add the yearling to his haul, Rolf quietly went back to grab his bow and arrows.

The deer were just out of range now, but inclined to take a curious interest in the hunter. Once when he stood still for a long time, they walked forward two or three steps; but whenever he advanced, they trotted farther away.

The deer were just out of reach now, but seemed to be curiously interested in the hunter. Once, when he stood still for a long time, they took a few steps forward; but every time he moved closer, they trotted farther away.

To kill a deer with an arrow is quite a feat of woodcraft, and Rolf was keen to show his prowess; so he kept on with varying devices, and was continually within sight of the success that did not actually arrive.

To kill a deer with an arrow is quite a skill in the woods, and Rolf was eager to showcase his talent; so he kept trying different techniques and was always close to the success that never quite happened.

Then the deer grew wilder and loped away, as he entered another valley that was alive with pigeons.

Then the deer became more wild and dashed off as he entered another valley filled with pigeons.

He was feeling hungry now, so he plucked the pigeon he had secured, made a fire with the flint and steel he always carried, then roasted the bird carefully on a stick, and having eaten it, felt ready for more travel.

He was feeling hungry now, so he took the pigeon he had caught, built a fire with the flint and steel he always carried, then roasted the bird carefully on a stick. After eating it, he felt ready to continue his journey.

The day was cloudy, so he could not see the sun; but he knew it was late, and he made for camp.

The day was overcast, so he couldn't see the sun; but he knew it was getting late, and he headed back to camp.

The country he found himself in was entirely strange to him, and the sun's whereabouts doubtful; but he knew the general line of travel and strode along rapidly toward the place where he had left the canoe.

The country he was in felt completely unfamiliar to him, and he wasn't sure where the sun was; but he understood the general direction to head and walked quickly toward the spot where he had left the canoe.

After two hours' tramping, he was surprised at not seeing the lake through the trees, and he added to his pace.

After two hours of walking, he was surprised not to see the lake through the trees, so he picked up his pace.

Three hours passed and still no sign of the water.

Three hours went by, and there was still no sign of the water.

He began to think he had struck too far to the north; so corrected his course and strode along with occasional spells of trotting. But another hour wore away and no lake appeared.

He started to think he had gone too far north, so he adjusted his course and walked on with occasional bursts of jogging. But another hour passed, and still no lake showed up.

Then Rolf knew he was off his bearings. He climbed a tree and got a partial view of the country. To the right was a small hill. He made for that. The course led him through a hollow. In this he recognized two huge basswood trees, that gave him a reassuring sense. A little farther he came on a spring, strangely like the one he had left some hours ago. As he stooped to drink, he saw deer tracks, then a human track. He studied it. Assuredly it was his own track, though now it seemed on the south side instead of the north. He stared at the dead gray sky, hoping for sign of sun, but it gave no hint. He tramped off hastily toward the hill that promised a lookout. He went faster and faster. In half an hour the woods opened a little, then dipped. He hastened down, and at the bottom found himself standing by the same old spring, though again it had changed its north bearing.

Then Rolf realized he was lost. He climbed a tree to get a better view of the area. To his right, he spotted a small hill and headed toward it. The path took him through a hollow where he recognized two large basswood trees, which gave him a comforting feeling. A bit further along, he came across a spring that looked oddly similar to the one he had left a few hours earlier. As he bent down to drink, he noticed deer tracks, followed by a human track. He examined it closely. It was definitely his own track, but now it seemed to be on the south side instead of the north. He gazed up at the dead gray sky, hoping for a sign of the sun, but there was no indication. He hurried off toward the hill that promised a view. He picked up speed, moving faster and faster. In half an hour, the woods opened up a little before dipping. He rushed down, and at the bottom, he found himself standing by the same old spring, though, once again, it had shifted its northern direction.

He was stunned by this succession of blows. He knew now he was lost in the woods; had been tramping in a circle.

He was shocked by this series of hits. He realized he was lost in the woods; he had been walking in a circle.

The spring whirled around him; it seemed now north and now south. His first impulse was to rush madly northwesterly, as he understood it. He looked at all the trees for guidance. Most moss should be on the north side. It would be so, if all trees were perfectly straight and evenly exposed, but alas! none are so. All lean one way or another, and by the moss he could prove any given side to be north. He looked for the hemlock top twigs. Tradition says they always point easterly; but now they differed among themselves as to which was east.

The spring swirled around him; at times it felt like it was coming from the north and at other times from the south. His first instinct was to charge off madly to the northwest, as he saw it. He searched the trees for clues. Most of the moss should be on the north side. That would be true if all the trees were perfectly straight and evenly lit, but sadly, none of them are. They all lean in different directions, and he could use the moss to argue that any side could be north. He looked at the top twigs of the hemlock. Tradition says they always point east; yet now they were uncertain about which way was east.

Rolf got more and more worried. He was a brave boy, but grim fear came into his mind as he realized that he was too far from camp to be heard; the ground was too leafy for trailing him; without help he could not get away from that awful spring. His head began to swim, when all at once he remembered a bit of advice his guide had given him long ago: “Don't get scared when you're lost. Hunger don't kill the lost man, and it ain't cold that does it; it's being afraid. Don't be afraid, and everything will come out all right.”

Rolf became increasingly worried. He was a courageous boy, but a deep fear crept into his mind as he realized he was too far from camp to be heard; the ground was too covered in leaves to track him; without help, he couldn't escape that dreadful spring. His head started to spin, when suddenly he recalled a piece of advice his guide had given him long ago: “Don’t panic when you’re lost. Hunger doesn’t kill a lost person, and it’s not the cold that does; it’s fear. Don’t be afraid, and everything will turn out fine.”

So, instead of running, Rolf sat down to think it over.

So, instead of running, Rolf sat down to think it through.

“Now,” said he, “I went due southeast all day from the canoe.” Then he stopped; like a shock it came to him that he had not seen the sun all day. Had he really gone southeast? It was a devastating thought, enough to unhinge some men; but again Rolf said to himself “Never mind, now; don't get scared, and it'll be all right. In the morning the sky will be clear.”

“Now,” he said, “I traveled straight southeast all day from the canoe.” Then he paused; it hit him like a shock that he hadn’t seen the sun all day. Had he really gone southeast? It was a crushing thought, enough to throw some people off balance; but again Rolf told himself, “Never mind that now; don’t get scared, and it’ll be fine. In the morning, the sky will be clear.”

As he sat pondering, a red squirrel chippered and scolded from a near tree; closer and closer the impudent creature came to sputter at the intruder.

As he sat thinking, a red squirrel chirped and scolded from a nearby tree; the cheeky little animal got closer and closer to chide the intruder.

Rolf drew his bow, and when the blunt arrow dropped to the ground, there also dropped the red squirrel, turned into acceptable meat. Rolf put this small game into his pocket, realizing that this was his supper.

Rolf pulled back his bow, and when the blunt arrow fell to the ground, it took down the red squirrel, which now could be considered good meat. Rolf tucked this small game into his pocket, knowing that it would be his dinner.

It would soon be dark now, so he prepared to spend the night.

It was almost dark, so he got ready to spend the night.

While yet he could see, he gathered a pile of dry wood into a sheltered hollow. Then he made a wind-break and a bed of balsam boughs. Flint, steel, tinder, and birch bark soon created a cheerful fire, and there is no better comforter that the lone lost man can command.

While he could still see, he collected a stack of dry wood into a sheltered hollow. Then he built a windbreak and a bed of balsam branches. Flint, steel, tinder, and birch bark quickly started a cozy fire, and there's no better source of comfort that a lonely, lost man can have.

The squirrel roasted in its hide proved a passable supper, and Rolf curled up to sleep. The night would have been pleasant and uneventful, but that it turned chilly, and when the fire burnt low, the cold awakened him, so he had a succession of naps and fire-buildings.

The squirrel cooked in its skin made for an okay dinner, and Rolf settled in for the night. The evening could have been nice and quiet, but it got cold, and when the fire went down, the chill woke him up, so he had a series of short sleeps and built up the fire again.

Soon after dawn, he heard a tremendous roaring, and in a few minutes the wood was filled again with pigeons.

Soon after dawn, he heard a loud noise, and in a few minutes, the woods were filled with pigeons again.

Rolf was living on the country now, so he sallied forth with his bow. Luck was with him; at the first shot he downed a big, fat cock. At the second he winged another, and as it scrambled through the brush, he rushed headlong in pursuit. It fluttered away beyond reach, half-flying, half-running, and Rolf, in reckless pursuit, went sliding and tumbling down a bank to land at the bottom with a horrid jar. One leg was twisted under him; he thought it was broken, for there was a fearful pain in the lower part. But when he pulled himself together he found no broken bones, indeed, but an ankle badly sprained. Now his situation was truly grave, for he was crippled and incapable of travelling.

Rolf was living in the countryside now, so he set out with his bow. Luck was on his side; with his first shot, he brought down a big, fat rooster. With his second shot, he hit another one, and as it struggled through the brush, he charged after it. It fluttered away, half-flying and half-running, and Rolf, in a reckless chase, slid and tumbled down a bank, landing at the bottom with a jarring thud. One leg was twisted underneath him; he thought it was broken because of the intense pain in his lower leg. But when he gathered himself, he found there were no broken bones, just a badly sprained ankle. Now, his situation was serious; he was injured and unable to move.

He had secured the second bird, and crawling painfully and slowly back to the fire, he could not but feel more and more despondent and gloomy as the measure of his misfortune was realized.

He had caught the second bird, and as he crawled back to the fire, painfully and slowly, he couldn't help but feel increasingly despondent and gloomy as he came to terms with the extent of his misfortune.

“There is only one thing that can shame a man, that is to be afraid.” And again, “There's always a way out.” These were the sayings that came ringing through his head to his heart; one was from Quonab, the other from old Sylvanne. Yes, there's always a way, and the stout heart can always find it.

“There’s only one thing that can shame a man, and that’s being afraid.” And again, “There’s always a way out.” These were the phrases echoing in his mind and resonating in his heart; one was from Quonab, the other from old Sylvanne. Yes, there’s always a way, and a strong heart can always find it.

Rolf prepared and cooked the two birds, made a breakfast of one and put the other in his pocket for lunch, not realizing at the time that his lunch would be eaten on this same spot. More than once, as he sat, small flocks of ducks flew over the trees due northward. At length the sky, now clear, was ablaze with the rising sun, and when it came, it was in Rolf's western sky.

Rolf prepared and cooked the two birds, making one for breakfast and putting the other in his pocket for lunch, not realizing that he’d end up eating his lunch right there. A few times, while he sat, small groups of ducks flew over the trees heading north. Eventually, the sky cleared and lit up with the rising sun, which appeared in Rolf's western sky.

Now he comprehended the duck flight. They were really heading southeast for their feeding grounds on the Indian Lake, and Rolf, had he been able to tramp, could have followed, but his foot was growing worse. It was badly swollen, and not likely to be of service for many a day—perhaps weeks—and it took all of his fortitude not to lie down and weep over this last misfortune.

Now he understood the duck flight. They were actually heading southeast for their feeding grounds at Indian Lake, and Rolf, if he had been able to walk, could have followed them, but his foot was getting worse. It was badly swollen and unlikely to be useful for many days—maybe weeks—and it took all of his strength not to lie down and cry over this latest misfortune.

Again came the figure of that grim, kindly, strong old pioneer, with the gray-blue eyes and his voice was saying: “Jest when things looks about as black as they can look, if ye hold steady, keep cool and kind, something sure happens to make it all easy. There's always a way and the stout heart will find it.”

Again appeared the figure of that tough, kind, strong old pioneer, with the gray-blue eyes, and his voice said: “Just when things look as dark as they can get, if you stay calm, keep your cool, and be kind, something will happen to make it all easier. There's always a way, and a brave heart will find it.”

What way was there for him? He would die of hunger and cold before Quonab could find him, and again came the spectre of fear. If only he could devise some way of letting his comrade know. He shouted once or twice, in the faint hope that the still air might carry the sound, but the silent wood was silent when he ceased.

What options did he have? He’d starve to death from hunger and cold before Quonab could reach him, and once again, fear haunted him. If only he could figure out a way to signal his friend. He yelled a couple of times, hoping that the still air might carry his voice, but the quiet woods remained silent when he stopped.

Then one of his talks with Quonab came to mind. He remembered how the Indian, as a little papoose, had been lost for three days. Though, then but ten years old, he had built a smoke fire that brought him help. Yes, that was the Indian way; two smokes means “I am lost”; “double for trouble.”

Then he recalled a conversation he had with Quonab. He remembered how the Indian, as a young child, had been lost for three days. Even at just ten years old, he had made a signal fire that brought him help. Yes, that was the way of the Indian; two smoke signals mean “I am lost”; “double for trouble.”

Fired by this new hope, Rolf crawled a little apart from his camp and built a bright fire, then smothered it with rotten wood and green leaves. The column of smoke it sent up was densely white and towered above the trees.

Fueled by this new hope, Rolf crawled a little away from his camp and built a bright fire, then covered it with rotten wood and green leaves. The column of smoke it sent up was thick and white, rising high above the trees.

Then painfully he hobbled and crawled to a place one hundred yards away, and made another smoke. Now all he could do was wait.

Then, painfully, he hobbled and crawled to a spot a hundred yards away and made another fire. Now all he could do was wait.

A fat pigeon, strayed from its dock, sat on a bough above his camp, in a way to tempt Providence. Rolf drew a blunt arrow to the head and speedily had the pigeon in hand for some future meal.

A plump pigeon, lost from its perch, sat on a branch above his campsite, tempting fate. Rolf nocked a dull arrow to his bowstring and quickly had the pigeon in hand for a future meal.

As he prepared it, he noticed that its crop was crammed with the winged seed of the slippery elm, so he put them all back again into the body when it was cleaned, knowing well that they are a delicious food and in this case would furnish a welcome variant to the bird itself.

As he got it ready, he saw that its crop was packed with the winged seeds of the slippery elm, so he put them all back into the body after it was cleaned, knowing that they are tasty and would provide a nice change for the bird itself.

An hour crawled by. Rolf had to go out to the far fire, for it was nearly dead. Instinctively he sought a stout stick to help him; then remembered how Hoag had managed with one leg and two crutches. “Ho!” he exclaimed. “That is the answer—this is the 'way.”'

An hour dragged on. Rolf needed to head out to the distant fire because it was almost out. He instinctively looked for a strong stick to assist him, then recalled how Hoag had coped with one leg and two crutches. “Oh!” he exclaimed. “That’s the solution—this is the 'way.'”

Now his attention was fixed on all the possible crutches. The trees seemed full of them, but all at impossible heights. It was long before he found one that he could cut with his knife. Certainly he was an hour working at it; then he heard a sound that made his blood jump.

Now he focused on all the potential crutches. The trees appeared to be full of them, but they were all at impossible heights. It took him a long time to find one that he could cut with his knife. He spent about an hour working on it; then he heard a sound that made his heart race.

From far away in the north it came, faint but reaching;

From far away in the north it arrived, faint but still making its way;

“Ye-hoo-o.”

"Yay!"

Rolf dropped his knife and listened with the instinctively open mouth that takes all pressure from the eardrums and makes them keen. It came again: “Ye-hoo-o.” No mistake now, and Rolf sent the ringing answer back:

Rolf dropped his knife and listened with his mouth naturally open, which relieved the pressure from his eardrums and sharpened his hearing. It came again: “Ye-hoo-o.” There was no doubt this time, and Rolf sent the echoing reply back:

“Ye-hoo-o, ye-hoo-o.”

“Yee-haw, yee-haw!”

In ten minutes there was a sharp “yap, yap,” and Skookum bounded out of the woods to leap and bark around Rolf, as though he knew all about it; while a few minutes later, came Quonab striding.

In ten minutes, there was a sudden "yap, yap," and Skookum burst out of the woods to jump and bark around Rolf, as if he knew everything; shortly after, Quonab walked in.

“Ho, boy,” he said, with a quiet smile, and took Rolf's hand. “Ugh! That was good,” and he nodded to the smoke fire. “I knew you were in trouble.”

“Wow,” he said with a gentle smile, taking Rolf's hand. “Wow! That was great,” he nodded at the smoking fire. “I knew you were in a tough spot.”

“Yes,” and Rolf pointed to the swollen ankle.

“Yes,” Rolf said, pointing to the swollen ankle.

The Indian picked up the lad in his arms and carried him back to the little camp. Then, from his light pack, he took bread and tea and made a meal for both. And, as they ate, each heard the other's tale.

The Indian picked up the boy in his arms and carried him back to the small camp. Then, from his light pack, he took out bread and tea and prepared a meal for both of them. As they ate, they listened to each other's stories.

“I was troubled when you did not come back last night, for you had no food or blanket. I did not sleep. At dawn I went to the hill, where I pray, and looked away southeast where you went in the canoe. I saw nothing. Then I went to a higher hill, where I could see the northeast, and even while I watched, I saw the two smokes, so I knew my son was alive.”

“I was worried when you didn’t come back last night because you had no food or blanket. I couldn’t sleep. At dawn, I went to the hill where I pray and looked southeast where you left in the canoe. I saw nothing. Then I went to a higher hill where I could see northeast, and while I was watching, I saw two smoke signals, so I knew my son was alive.”

“You mean to tell me I am northeast of camp?”

“You're telling me I'm northeast of the camp?”

“About four miles. I did not come very quickly, because I had to go for the canoe and travel here.

“About four miles. I didn’t come very quickly because I had to get the canoe and travel here.

“How do you mean by canoe?” said Rolf, in surprise.

“How do you mean by canoe?” Rolf asked, surprised.

“You are only half a mile from Jesup River,” was the reply. “I soon bring you home.”

“You're only half a mile from Jesup River,” was the reply. “I'll take you home soon.”

It was incredible at first, but easy of proof. With the hatchet they made a couple of serviceable crutches and set out together.

It was amazing at first, but easy to prove. With the hatchet, they made a couple of sturdy crutches and set out together.

In twenty minutes they were afloat in the canoe; in an hour they were safely home again.

In twenty minutes, they were on the water in the canoe; in an hour, they were safely back home again.

And Rolf pondered it not a little. At the very moment of blackest despair, the way had opened, and it had been so simple, so natural, so effectual. Surely, as long as he lived, he would remember it. “There is always a way, and the stout heart will find it.”

And Rolf thought about it a lot. Just when he felt the most hopeless, a solution appeared, and it was so simple, so natural, and so effective. He would definitely remember this for the rest of his life. “There’s always a way, and a brave heart will find it.”





Chapter 50. Marketing the Fur

If Rolf had been at home with his mother, she would have rubbed his black and swollen ankle with goose grease. The medical man at Stamford would have rubbed it with a carefully prepared and secret ointment. His Indian friend sang a little crooning song and rubbed it with deer's fat. All different, and all good, because each did something to reassure the patient, to prove that big things were doing on his behalf, and each helped the process of nature by frequent massage.

If Rolf had been home with his mom, she would have rubbed his black and swollen ankle with goose grease. The doctor in Stamford would have used a carefully prepared and secret ointment. His Indian friend sang a little soothing song and rubbed it with deer fat. All different, and all effective, because each one did something to comfort the patient, to show that important things were being done for him, and each helped nature heal through frequent massage.

Three times a day, Quonab rubbed that blackened ankle. The grease saved the skin from injury, and in a week Rolf had thrown his crutches away.

Three times a day, Quonab rubbed that blackened ankle. The grease protected the skin from injury, and within a week, Rolf had tossed aside his crutches.

The month of May was nearly gone; June was at hand; that is, the spring was over.

The month of May was almost over; June was around the corner; in other words, spring had come to an end.

In all ages, man has had the impulse, if not the habit, of spring migration. Yielding to it he either migrated or made some radical change in his life. Most of the Adirondack men who trapped in the winter sought work on the log drives in spring; some who had families and a permanent home set about planting potatoes and plying the fish nets. Rolf and Quonab having neither way open, yet feeling the impulse, decided to go out to Warren's with the fur.

In every era, people have felt the urge, if not the routine, of spring migration. Acting on this impulse, they either moved to a new place or made significant changes in their lives. Most of the men in the Adirondacks who trapped in the winter looked for jobs on the log drives in the spring; some who had families and stable homes started planting potatoes and fishing with nets. Rolf and Quonab, having no other options but still feeling the urge, decided to head out to Warren's with the fur.

Quonab wanted tobacco—and a change.

Quonab wanted tobacco—and a shift.

Rolf wanted a rifle, and to see the Van Trumpers—and a change.

Rolf wanted a rifle, to see the Van Trumpers, and to experience something different.

So June 1st saw them all aboard, with Quonab steering at the stern, and Skookum bow-wowing at the bow, bound for the great centre of Warren's settlement—one store and three houses, very wide apart.

So June 1st had them all on board, with Quonab steering at the back and Skookum barking at the front, headed for the main hub of Warren's settlement—one store and three houses, pretty far apart.

There was a noble flush of water in the streams, and, thanks to their axe work in September, they passed down Jesup's River without a pause, and camped on the Hudson that night, fully twenty-five miles from home.

There was a rich flow of water in the streams, and, thanks to their chopping in September, they went down Jesup's River without stopping and set up camp on the Hudson that night, a full twenty-five miles from home.

Long, stringing flocks of pigeons going north were the most numerous forms of life. But a porcupine on the bank and a bear in the water aroused Skookum to a pitch of frightful enthusiasm and vaulting ambition that he was forced to restrain.

Long, flying flocks of pigeons heading north were the most common sight. But a porcupine on the shore and a bear in the water sparked a level of intense excitement and soaring ambition in Skookum that he had to hold back.

On the evening of the third day they landed at Warren's and found a hearty welcome from the trader, who left a group of loafers and came forward:

On the evening of the third day, they arrived at Warren's and received a warm welcome from the trader, who stepped away from a group of idle bystanders and approached them:

“Good day to ye, boy. My, how ye have growed.”

“Good day to you, boy. Wow, how you have grown.”

So he had. Neither Rolf nor Quonab had remarked it, but now they were much of the same height. “Wall, an' how'd ye make out with yer hunt?—Ah, that's fine!” as each of them dropped a fur pack on the counter. “Wall, this is fine; we must have a drink on the head of it,” and the trader was somewhat nonplussed when both the trappers refused. He was disappointed, too, for that refusal meant that they would get much better prices for their fun But he concealed his chagrin and rattled on: “I reckon I'll sell you the finest rifle in the country this time,” and he knew by Rolf's face that there was business to do in that line.

So he had. Neither Rolf nor Quonab had noticed it, but now they were about the same height. “Well, how did your hunt go?—Ah, that's great!” as each of them dropped a fur pack on the counter. “Well, this is excellent; we should celebrate with a drink,” and the trader was somewhat taken aback when both trappers declined. He was disappointed too, since that refusal meant they would get much better prices for their furs. But he hid his annoyance and continued, “I guess I'll sell you the best rifle in the country this time,” and he could tell from Rolf's expression that there was a deal to be made in that area.

Now came the listing of the fur, and naturally the bargaining was between the shrewd Yankee boy and the trader. The Indian stood shyly aside, but he did not fail to help with significant grunts and glances.

Now came the listing of the fur, and naturally the bargaining was between the sharp Yankee boy and the trader. The Indian stood quietly to the side, but he didn’t hesitate to help with meaningful grunts and glances.

“There, now,” said Warren, as the row of martens were laid out side by side, “thirty martens—a leetle pale—worth three dollars and fifty cents each, or, to be generous, we'll say four dollars.” Rolf glanced at Quonab, who, unseen by the trader shook his head, held his right hand out, open hollow up, then raised it with a jerk for two inches.

“There, now,” said Warren, as the row of martens were laid out side by side, “thirty martens—a little pale—worth three dollars and fifty cents each, or, to be generous, let’s say four dollars.” Rolf glanced at Quonab, who, unseen by the trader, shook his head, held out his right hand, palm up, then raised it with a quick jerk for two inches.

Quickly Rolf caught the idea and said; “No, I don't reckon them pale. I call them prime dark, every one of them.” Quonab spread his hand with all five fingers pointed up, and Rolf continued, “They are worth five dollars each, if they're worth a copper.”

Quickly, Rolf got the idea and said, “No, I don’t see them as pale. I call them prime dark, every single one of them.” Quonab spread his hand with all five fingers pointing up, and Rolf continued, “They’re worth five dollars each, if they’re worth a penny.”

“Phew!” said the trader. “you forget fur is an awful risky thing; what with mildew, moth, mice, and markets, we have a lot of risk. But I want to please you, so let her go; five each. There's a fine black fox; that's worth forty dollars.”

“Phew!” said the trader. “You forget that fur is really risky; with mildew, moths, mice, and market fluctuations, there's a lot at stake. But I want to make you happy, so let's do it; five each. There's a nice black fox; that's worth forty dollars.”

“I should think it is,” said Rolf, as Quonab, by throwing to his right an imaginary pinch of sand, made the sign “refuse.”

“I think it is,” Rolf said, as Quonab, by tossing an imaginary pinch of sand to his right, made the sign for “refuse.”

They had talked over the value of that fox skin and Rolf said, “Why, I know of a black fox that sold for two hundred dollars.”

They discussed the worth of that fox skin, and Rolf said, “I know of a black fox that sold for two hundred dollars.”

“Where?”

"Where at?"

“Oh, down at Stamford.”

“Oh, down at Stamford.”

“Why, that's near New York.”

“Wow, that's close to New York.”

“Of course; don't you send your fur to New York?”

“Of course. Don’t you send your fur to New York?”

“Yes, but it costs a lot to get it there.

“Yes, but it’s expensive to get it there."

“Now,” said Warren, “if you'll take it in trade, I'll meet you half-way and call it one hundred dollars.”

“Now,” said Warren, “if you’ll take it as a trade, I’ll meet you halfway and call it one hundred dollars.”

“Make it one hundred and twenty-five dollars and I'll take a rifle, anyway.”

“Make it one hundred twenty-five dollars and I’ll take a rifle, anyway.”

“Phew!” whistled the trader. “Where do ye get such notions?”

“Phew!” whistled the trader. “Where do you get such ideas?”

“Nothing wrong about the notion; old Si Sylvanne offered me pretty near that, if I'd come out his way with the stuff.”

“There's nothing wrong with that idea; old Si Sylvanne almost offered me that if I went out his way with the goods.”

This had the desired effect of showing that there were other traders. At last the deal was closed. Besides the fox skin, they had three hundred dollars' worth of fur. The exchange for the fox skin was enough to buy all the groceries and dry goods they needed. But Rolf had something else in mind.

This had the intended effect of showing that there were other traders. Finally, the deal was finalized. In addition to the fox skin, they had three hundred dollars' worth of fur. The trade for the fox skin was enough to cover all the groceries and dry goods they needed. But Rolf had something else in mind.

He had picked out some packages of candies, some calico prints and certain bright ribbons, when the trader grasped the idea. “I see; yer goin' visitin'. Who is it? Must be the Van Trumpers!”

He had chosen some candy bags, some colorful fabrics, and a few bright ribbons when the trader got the hint. “I see; you’re going visiting. Who is it? It must be the Van Trumpers!”

Rolf nodded and now he got some very intelligent guidance. He did not buy Annette's dress, because part of her joy was to be the expedition in person to pick it out; but he stocked up with some gorgeous pieces of jewellery that were ten cents each, and ribbons whose colours were as far beyond expression as were the joys they could create in the backwoods female heart.

Rolf nodded, feeling he received some smart advice. He didn’t buy Annette’s dress since part of her excitement was being there in person to choose it; instead, he picked up some beautiful pieces of jewelry that cost ten cents each, along with ribbons in colors that were beyond description, just like the happiness they could bring to a woman’s heart in the wilderness.

Proudly clutching his new rlile, and carrying in his wallet a memorandum of three hundred dollars for their joint credit, Rolf felt himself a person of no little importance. As he was stepping out of the store, the trader said, “Ye didn't run across Jack Hoag agin, did ye?”

Proudly holding his new rifle and carrying a note for three hundred dollars for their joint credit in his wallet, Rolf felt pretty important. As he was stepping out of the store, the trader said, "You didn't run into Jack Hoag again, did you?"

“Did we? Hmph!” and Rolf told briefly of their experience with that creature.

“Did we? Hmph!” Rolf then shared a quick account of their encounter with that creature.

“Just like him, just like him; served him right; he was a dirty cuss. But, say; don't you be led into taking your fur out Lyons Falls way. They're a mean lot in there, and it stands to reason I can give you better prices, being a hundred miles nearer New York.”

“Just like him, just like him; he got what he deserved; he was a real sleaze. But, listen; don't get tricked into taking your fur out to Lyons Falls. Those people are no good, and it makes sense that I can offer you better prices since I'm a hundred miles closer to New York.”

And that lesson was not forgotten. The nearer New York the better the price; seventy-five dollars at Lyons Falls; one hundred and twenty-five dollars at Warren's; two hundred dollars at New York. Rolf pondered long and the idea was one which grew and bore fruit.

And that lesson stuck with him. The closer you got to New York, the better the price; seventy-five dollars at Lyons Falls; one hundred and twenty-five dollars at Warren's; two hundred dollars in New York. Rolf thought about it a lot, and the idea took root and flourished.





Chapter 51. Back at Van Trumper's

“Nibowaka”—Quonab always said “Nibowaka” when he was impressed with Rolf's astuteness—“What about the canoe and stuff?”

“Nibowaka”—Quonab always said “Nibowaka” when he was impressed with Rolf's sharpness—“What about the canoe and stuff?”

“I think we better leave all here. Callan will lend us a canoe.” So they shouldered the guns, Rolf clung to his, and tramped across the portage, reaching Callan's in less than two hours.

“I think we should leave everything here. Callan will lend us a canoe.” So they picked up their guns, Rolf held onto his, and trekked across the portage, getting to Callan's in under two hours.

“Why, certainly you can have the canoe, but come in and eat first,” was the kindly backwoods greeting. However, Rolf was keen to push on; they launched the canoe at once and speedily were flashing their paddles on the lake.

“Of course you can have the canoe, but come in and eat first,” was the friendly backwoods welcome. However, Rolf was eager to move on; they launched the canoe right away and quickly started paddling across the lake.

The place looked sweetly familiar as they drew near. The crops in the fields were fair; the crop of chickens at the barn was good; and the crop of children about the door was excellent.

The place looked pleasantly familiar as they got closer. The crops in the fields were healthy; the group of chickens in the barn was plentiful; and the bunch of kids by the door was great.

“Mein Hemel! mein Hemel!” shouted fat old Hendrik, as they walked up to the stable door. In a minute he was wringing their hands and smiling into great red, white, and blue smiles. “Coom in, coom in, lad. Hi, Marta, here be Rolf and Quonab. Mein Hemel! mein Hemel! what am I now so happy.”

“My goodness! my goodness!” shouted plump old Hendrik as they approached the stable door. In a moment, he was shaking their hands and beaming with big red, white, and blue smiles. “Come in, come in, lads. Hey, Marta, here are Rolf and Quonab. My goodness! my goodness! why am I so happy right now?”

“Where's Annette?” asked Rolf.

“Where's Annette?” Rolf asked.

“Ach, poor Annette, she fever have a little; not mooch, some,” and he led over to a corner where on a low cot lay Annette, thin, pale, and listless.

“Ah, poor Annette, she’s hardly got a fever; not much, just a little,” and he led over to a corner where on a low bed lay Annette, thin, pale, and lifeless.

She smiled faintly, in response, when Rolf stooped and kissed her.

She smiled softly in response when Rolf bent down and kissed her.

“Why, Annette, I came back to see you. I want to take you over to Warren's store, so you can pick out that dress. See, I brought you my first marten and I made this box for you; you must thank Skookum for the quills on it.”

“Why, Annette, I came back to see you. I want to take you over to Warren's store so you can pick out that dress. Look, I brought you my first marten, and I made this box for you; you should thank Skookum for the quills on it.”

“Poor chile; she bin sick all spring,” and Marta used a bunch of sedge to drive away the flies and mosquitoes that, bass and treble, hovered around the child.

“Poor child; she’s been sick all spring,” and Marta used a bunch of sedge to swat away the flies and mosquitoes that buzzed around the child.

“What ails her?” asked Rolf anxiously.

“What’s wrong with her?” asked Rolf anxiously.

“Dot ve do not know,” was the reply.

“Dot, we don’t know,” was the reply.

“Maybe there's some one here can tell,” and Roll glanced at the Indian.

“Maybe someone here can explain,” Roll said as he looked at the Indian.

“Ach, sure! Have I you that not always told all-vays—eet is so. All-vays, I want sumpin bad mooch. I prays de good Lord and all-vays, all-vays, two times now, He it send by next boat. Ach, how I am spoil,” and the good Dutchman's eyes filled with tears of thankfulness.

“Ah, sure! Haven’t I always told you—it’s true. Always, I want something so badly. I pray to the good Lord and always, always, two times now, He sends it by the next boat. Ah, how spoiled I am,” and the good Dutchman's eyes filled with tears of gratitude.

Quonab knelt by the sufferer. He felt her hot, dry hand; he noticed her short, quick breathing, her bright eyes, and the untouched bowl of mush by her bed.

Quonab knelt beside the patient. He felt her hot, dry hand; he noticed her short, rapid breaths, her bright eyes, and the untouched bowl of mush next to her bed.

“Swamp fever,” he said. “I bring good medicine.” He passed quietly out into the woods. When he returned, he carried a bundle of snake-root which he made into tea.

“Swamp fever,” he said. “I have good medicine.” He quietly walked out into the woods. When he came back, he was carrying a bundle of snake root that he made into tea.

Annette did not wish to touch it, but her mother persuaded her to take a few sips from a cup held by Rolf.

Annette didn't want to touch it, but her mom convinced her to take a few sips from a cup that Rolf was holding.

“Wah! this not good,” and Quonab glanced about the close, fly-infested room. “I must make lodge.” He turned up the cover of the bedding; three or four large, fiat brown things moved slowly out of the light. “Yes, I make lodge.”

“Wow! This isn’t good,” and Quonab looked around the cramped, fly-infested room. “I need to set up a lodge.” He lifted the cover of the bedding; three or four large, flat brown things crawled slowly out of the light. “Yeah, I’ll set up a lodge.”

It was night now, and all retired; the newcomers to the barn. They had scarcely entered, when a screaming of poultry gave a familiar turn to affairs. On running to the spot, it proved not a mink or coon, but Skookum, up to his old tricks. On the appearance of his masters, he fled with guilty haste, crouched beneath the post that he used to be, and soon again was, chained to.

It was now nighttime, and everyone had settled down in the barn. Just after the newcomers arrived, a loud ruckus from the chickens changed the atmosphere. When we rushed over, we found it wasn't a mink or raccoon causing the chaos, but Skookum, up to his old antics again. As soon as he saw his owners, he quickly ran off, hiding beneath the post where he used to be, and soon was, chained again.

In the morning Quonab set about his lodge, and Rolf said: “I've got to go to Warren's for sugar.” The sugar was part truth and part blind. As soon as he heard the name swamp fever, Rolf remembered that, in Redding, Jesuit's bark (known later as quinine) was the sovereign remedy. He had seen his mother administer it many times, and, so far as he knew, with uniform success. Every frontier (or backwoods, it's the same) trader carries a stock of medicine, and in two hours Rolf left Warren's counter with twenty-five pounds of maple sugar and a bottle of quinine extract in his pack.

In the morning, Quonab took care of his lodge, and Rolf said, “I need to go to Warren's for some sugar.” The sugar was partly true and partly a smokescreen. As soon as he heard the term swamp fever, Rolf remembered that in Redding, Jesuit's bark (later known as quinine) was the go-to remedy. He had watched his mother give it many times, and as far as he knew, it worked every time. Every frontier (or backwoods, same thing) trader keeps a supply of medicine, and in two hours, Rolf left Warren's with twenty-five pounds of maple sugar and a bottle of quinine extract in his pack.

“You say she's bothered with the flies; why don't you take some of this new stuff for a curtain?” and the trader held up a web of mosquito gauze, the first Rolf had seen. That surely was a good idea, and ten yards snipped off was a most interesting addition to his pack. The amount was charged against him, and in two hours more he was back at Van Trumper's.

“You say she's having trouble with the flies; why don't you grab some of this new stuff for a curtain?” the trader said, holding up a piece of mosquito netting, the first Rolf had ever encountered. That was definitely a smart idea, and ten yards cut off was a really interesting addition to his pack. The cost was charged to him, and in two more hours, he was back at Van Trumper's.

On the cool side of the house, Quonab had built a little lodge, using a sheet for cover. On a low bed of pine boughs lay the child. Near the door was a smouldering fire of cedar, whose aromatic fumes on the lazy wind reached every cranny of the lodge.

On the cool side of the house, Quonab had built a small shelter, using a sheet for a roof. On a low bed of pine branches lay the child. Near the door was a smoldering cedar fire, its aromatic smoke drifting lazily into every corner of the lodge.

Sitting by the bed head, with a chicken wing to keep off the few mosquitoes, was the Indian. The child's eyes were closed; she was sleeping peacefully. Rolf crept gently forward, laid his hand on hers, it was cool and moist. He went into the house with his purchases; the mother greeted him with a happy look: Yes, Annette was a little better; she had slept quietly ever since she was taken outdoors. The mother could not understand. Why should the Indian want to have her surrounded by pine boughs? why cedar-smoke? and why that queer song? Yes, there it was again. Rolf went out to see and hear. Softly summing on a tin pan, with a mudded stick, the Indian sang a song. The words which Rolf learned in the after-time were:

Sitting at the head of the bed, using a chicken wing to swat away the few mosquitoes, was the Indian. The child's eyes were closed; she was sleeping peacefully. Rolf quietly crept forward and placed his hand on hers; it felt cool and damp. He went into the house with his purchases; his mother greeted him with a happy expression: Yes, Annette was feeling a bit better; she had slept soundly ever since she was taken outside. The mother couldn’t understand. Why did the Indian want her surrounded by pine branches? Why cedar smoke? And what was that strange song? Yes, there it was again. Rolf stepped outside to see and listen. Softly tapping on a tin pan with a muddy stick, the Indian sang a song. The words Rolf learned later were:

“Come, Kaluskap, drive the witches; Those who came to harm the dear one.”

“Come, Kaluskap, chase away the witches; Those who came to hurt the beloved one.”

Annette moved not, but softly breathed, as she slept a sweet, restful slumber, the first for many days.

Annette didn't move but breathed softly as she enjoyed a sweet, peaceful sleep, the first in many days.

“Vouldn't she be better in de house?” whispered the anxious mother.

“Wouldn't she be better in the house?” whispered the anxious mother.

“No, let Quonab do his own way,” and Rolf wondered if any white man had sat by little Wee-wees to brush away the flies from his last bed.

“No, let Quonab do things his way,” and Rolf wondered if any white man had ever sat by little Wee-wees to swat away the flies from his last resting place.





Chapter 52. Annette's New Dress

     Deep feelin's ain't any count by themselves; work 'em off,
     an' ye're somebody; weep 'em off an' you'd be more use with
     a heart o' stone—Sayings of Si Sylvanne.
     Deep feelings don’t mean anything on their own; deal with them, and you’re someone; cry them out and you’d be more helpful with a heart of stone—Sayings of Si Sylvanne.

“Quonab, I am going out to get her a partridge.” “Ugh, good.”

“Quonab, I'm going out to get her a partridge.” “Ugh, great.”

So Rolf went off. For a moment he was inclined to grant Skookom's prayer for leave to, follow, but another and better plan came in mind. Skookum would most likely find a mother partridge, which none should kill in June, and there was a simple way to find a cock; that was, listen. It was now the evening calm, and before Rolf had gone half a mile he heard the distant “Thump, thump, thump, thump—rrrrrrr” of a partridge, drumming. He went quickly and cautiously toward the place, then waited for the next drumming. It was slow in coming, so he knelt down by a mossy, rotten log, and struck it with his hands to imitate the thump and roll of the partridge. At once this challenge procured response.

So Rolf set off. For a moment, he thought about letting Skookum join him, but then a better idea came to mind. Skookum would probably find a mother partridge, which shouldn’t be hunted in June, and there was an easy way to locate a male; all he had to do was listen. It was now the calm of the evening, and before Rolf had gone half a mile, he heard the distant “Thump, thump, thump, thump—rrrrrrr” of a partridge drumming. He moved quickly and quietly toward the sound, then paused to wait for the next drumming. It took a while to come, so he knelt by a mossy, rotten log and tapped it with his hands to mimic the thump and roll of the partridge. Immediately, this challenge elicited a response.

“Thump—thump—thump,, thump rrrrrrrrrrrr” it came, with martial swing and fervour, and crawling nearer, Rolf spied the drummer, pompously strutting up and down a log some forty yards away. He took steady aim, not for the head—a strange gun, at forty yards—for the body. At the crack, the bird fell dead, and in Rolf's heart there swelled up a little gush of joy, which he believed was all for the sake of the invalid, but which a finer analysis might have proved to be due quite as much to pride in himself and his newly bought gun.

“Thump—thump—thump, thump rrrrrrrrrrrr,” it came, with a military rhythm and enthusiasm, and as Rolf crept closer, he spotted the drummer, pompously strutting back and forth on a log about forty yards away. He took careful aim, not for the head—a tricky shot at forty yards—but for the body. At the sound of the shot, the bird fell dead, and Rolf felt a surge of joy in his heart, which he thought was all for the sake of the injured man, but a deeper look might reveal that it was just as much about his own pride in himself and his newly acquired gun.

Night was coming on when he got back, and he found the Dutch parents in some excitement. “Dot Indian he gay no bring Annette indoors for de night. How she sleep outdoors—like dog—like Bigger—like tramp? Yah it is bad, ain't it?” and poor old Hendrik looked sadly upset and mystified.

Night was falling when he returned, and he found the Dutch parents in a bit of a frenzy. "That Indian guy didn’t bring Annette inside for the night. How can she sleep outside—like a dog—like a bum—like a drifter? Yeah, it’s bad, isn’t it?" and poor old Hendrik looked sadly troubled and confused.

“Hendrik, do you suppose God turns out worse air in the night than in the day?”

“Hendrik, do you think God makes worse air at night than during the day?”

“Ach, dunno.”

"Ugh, I don't know."

“Well, you see Quonab knows what he's doing.”

“Well, you see, Quonab knows what he’s doing.”

“Yah.”

"Yeah."

“Well, let him do it. He or I'll sleep alongside the child she'll be all right,” and Rolf thought of those horrible brown crawlers under the bedding indoors.

“Well, let him do it. He or I’ll sleep next to the child; she’ll be fine,” and Rolf thought of those awful brown bugs crawling under the bedding inside.

Rolf had much confidence in the Indian as a doctor, but he had more in his own mother. He was determined to give Annette the quinine, yet he hesitated to interfere. At length, he said: “It is cool enough now; I will put these thin curtains round her bed.”

Rolf had a lot of confidence in the Indian doctor, but he trusted his own mother even more. He was set on giving Annette the quinine, but he hesitated to step in. Finally, he said, “It's cool enough now; I’ll put these thin curtains around her bed.”

“Ugh, good!” but the red man sat there while it was being done.

“Ugh, good!” but the red man sat there while it happened.

“You need not stay now; I'll watch her, Quonab.”

"You don't need to stay now; I'll take care of her, Quonab."

“Soon, give more medicine,” was the reply that Rolf did not want. So he changed his ruse. “I wish you'd take that partridge and make soup of it. I've had my hands in poison ivy, so I dare not touch it.”

“Soon, give me more medicine,” was the answer that Rolf didn’t want. So he changed his approach. “I wish you’d take that partridge and make soup out of it. I’ve gotten into poison ivy, so I can’t touch it.”

“Ach, dot shall I do. Dot kin myself do,” and the fat mother, laying the recent baby in its cradle, made cumbrous haste to cook the bird.

“Ah, what should I do? I can do it myself,” and the plump mother, placing the newborn in its crib, hurriedly set about preparing the bird.

“Foiled again,” was Rolf's thought, but his Yankee wit was with him. He laid one hand on the bowl of snake-root tea. It was lukewarm. “Do you give it hot or cold, Quonab?”

“Foiled again,” Rolf thought, but his Yankee wit was still sharp. He laid one hand on the bowl of snake-root tea. It was lukewarm. “Do you serve it hot or cold, Quonab?”

“Hot.”

“Spicy.”

“I'll take it in and heat it.” He carried it off, thinking, “If Quonab won't let me give the bark extract, I'll make him give it.” In the gloom of the kitchen he had no difficulty in adding to the tea, quite unseen, a quarter of the extract; when heated, he brought it again, and the Indian himself gave the dose.

“I'll take it in and heat it.” He carried it away, thinking, “If Quonab won’t let me give the bark extract, I’ll make him.” In the dim kitchen, he easily added a quarter of the extract to the tea without being noticed; after heating it, he brought it back, and the Indian himself administered the dose.

As bedtime drew near, and she heard the red man say he would sleep there, the little one said feebly, “Mother, mother,” then whispered in her mother's ear, “I want Rolf.”

As bedtime got closer, and she heard the red man say he would sleep there, the little one said weakly, “Mom, mom,” then whispered in her mother's ear, “I want Rolf.”

Rolf spread his blanket by the cot and slept lightly. Once or twice he rose to look at Annette. She was moving in her sleep, but did not awake. He saw to it that the mosquito bar was in place, and slept till morning.

Rolf laid out his blanket by the cot and slept lightly. A couple of times, he got up to check on Annette. She stirred in her sleep but didn’t wake up. He made sure the mosquito net was set up and then slept until morning.

There was no question that the child was better. The renewed interest in food was the first good symptom, and the partridge served the end of its creation. The snakeroot and the quinine did noble work, and thenceforth her recovery was rapid. It was natural for her mother to wish the child back indoors. It was a matter of course that she should go. It was accepted as an unavoidable evil that they should always have those brown crawlers about the bed.

There was no doubt that the child was doing better. The newfound interest in food was the first positive sign, and the partridge served its purpose well. The snakeroot and the quinine worked wonders, and from that point on, her recovery was quick. It was only natural for her mother to want the child back inside. It was expected that she would go. It was considered an unavoidable hassle that they always had those brown crawlers around the bed.

But Rolf felt differently. He knew what his mother would have thought and done. It meant another visit to Warren's, and the remedy he brought was a strong-smelling oil, called in those days “rock oil”—a crude petroleum. When all cracks in the bed and near wall were treated with this, it greatly mitigated, if it did not quite end, the nuisance of the “plague that walks in the dark.”

But Rolf felt differently. He knew what his mother would have thought and done. It meant another trip to Warren's, and the solution he brought was a strong-smelling oil, known at the time as “rock oil”—a type of crude petroleum. When all the cracks in the bed and near the wall were treated with this, it significantly reduced, if it didn’t completely eliminate, the annoyance of the “plague that walks in the dark.”

Meanwhile, Quonab had made good his welcome by working on the farm. But when a week had flown, he showed signs of restlessness. “We have enough money, Nibowaka, why do we stay?”

Meanwhile, Quonab had earned his welcome by working on the farm. But after a week had passed, he started to show signs of restlessness. “We have enough money, Nibowaka, why are we still here?”

Rolf was hauling a bucket of water from the well at the time. He stopped with his burden on the well-sweep, gazed into the well, and said slowly: “I don't know.” If the truth were set forth, it would be that this was the only home circle he knew. It was the clan feeling that held him, and soon it was clearly the same reason that was driving Quonab to roam.

Rolf was pulling a bucket of water from the well at that moment. He paused with his load on the well-sweep, looked into the well, and said slowly, “I don’t know.” If the truth were revealed, it would be that this was the only family circle he knew. It was the sense of belonging that connected him, and soon it became clear that it was the same reason pushing Quonab to wander.

“I have heard,” said the Indian, “that my people still dwell in Canada, beyond Rouse's Point. I would see them. I will come again in the Red Moon (August).”

“I’ve heard,” said the Indian, “that my people still live in Canada, beyond Rouse's Point. I want to see them. I’ll come again in the Red Moon (August).”

So they hired a small canoe, and one bright morning, with Skookum in the bow, Quonab paddled away on his voyage of 120 miles on the plead waters of Lakes George and Champlain. His canoe became a dark spot on the water; slowly it faded till only the flashing paddle was seen, and that was lost around a headland.

So they rented a small canoe, and one sunny morning, with Skookum in the front, Quonab set off on his journey of 120 miles across the calm waters of Lakes George and Champlain. His canoe became a dark dot on the water; gradually it disappeared until only the glint of the paddle was visible, and that vanished around a bend.

The next day Rolf was sorry he let Quonab go alone, for it was evident that Van Trumper needed no help for a month yet; that is, he could not afford to hire, and while it was well enough for Rolf to stay a few days and work to equalize his board, the arrangement would not long continue satisfactory to both.

The next day, Rolf regretted letting Quonab go alone because it was clear that Van Trumper wouldn't need any help for at least a month; he simply couldn't afford to hire anyone. While it was fine for Rolf to stay a few days and earn his keep, that arrangement wouldn't be satisfying for long for either of them.

Yet there was one thing he must do before leaving, take Annette to pick out her dress. She was well again now, and they set off one morning in the canoe, she and Rolf. Neither father nor mother could leave the house. They had their misgivings, but what could they do? She was bright and happy, full of the childish joy that belongs to that age, and engaged on such an important errand for the first time in her life.

Yet there was one thing he had to do before leaving: take Annette to pick out her dress. She was better now, and they set off one morning in the canoe, just her and Rolf. Neither the father nor the mother could leave the house. They had their concerns, but what could they do? She was bright and happy, full of the childish joy that comes with that age, and on such an important mission for the first time in her life.

There was something more than childish joy showing in her face, an older person would have seen that, but it was largely lost on Rolf. There was a tendency to blush when she laughed, a disposition to tease her “big brother,” to tyrannize over him in little things.

There was something beyond just childish happiness on her face; an adult would have noticed that, but it mostly went over Rolf's head. She often blushed when she laughed, had a habit of teasing her “big brother,” and liked to boss him around in small ways.

“Now, you tell me some more about 'Robinson Crusoe,'” she began, as soon as they were in the canoe, and Rolf resumed the ancient, inspiring tale to have it listened to eagerly, but criticized from the standpoint of a Lake George farm. “Where was his wife?” “How could he have a farm without hens?” “Dried grapes must be nice, but I'd rather have pork than goat,” etc.

“Now, tell me more about 'Robinson Crusoe,'” she started, as soon as they were in the canoe, and Rolf picked up the old, inspiring story, which was listened to eagerly but critiqued from the perspective of a Lake George farm. “Where was his wife?” “How could he have a farm without chickens?” “Dried grapes sound nice, but I’d rather have pork than goat,” etc.

Rolf, of course, took the part of Robinson Crusoe, and it gave him a little shock to hear Quonab called his man Friday.

Rolf, of course, took on the role of Robinson Crusoe, and it surprised him a bit to hear Quonab referred to as his man Friday.

At the west side they were to invite Mrs. Callan to join their shopping trip, but in any case they were to borrow a horse and buckboard. Neither Mrs. Callan nor the buckboard was available, but they were welcome to the horse. So Annette was made comfortable on a bundle of blankets, and chattered incessantly while Rolf walked alongside with the grave interest and superiority of a much older brother. So they crossed the five-mile portage and came to Warren's store. Nervous and excited, with sparkling eyes, Annette laid down her marten skin, received five dollars, and set about the tremendous task of selecting her first dress of really, truly calico print; and Rolf realized that the joy he had found in his new rifle was a very small affair, compared with the epoch-making, soul-filling, life-absorbing, unspeakable, and cataclysmal bliss that a small girl can have in her first chance of unfettered action in choice of a cotton print.

On the west side, they planned to invite Mrs. Callan to join their shopping trip, but they still needed to borrow a horse and a buckboard. Neither Mrs. Callan nor the buckboard was available, but they could use the horse. So, Annette settled comfortably on a bundle of blankets and chatted nonstop while Rolf walked alongside her with the serious interest and superiority of an older brother. They crossed the five-mile portage and arrived at Warren's store. Nervous and excited, with sparkling eyes, Annette laid down her marten skin, got five dollars, and began the huge task of picking out her first dress in real calico print. Rolf realized that the joy he felt from his new rifle was nothing compared to the extraordinary, soul-filling, life-changing bliss a small girl experiences when given her first chance to freely choose a cotton print.

“Beautiful?” How can mere words do justice to masses of yellow corn, mixed recklessly with green and scarlet poppies on a bright blue ground. No, you should have seen Annette's dress, or you cannot expect to get the adequate thrill. And when they found that there was enough cash left over to add a red cotton parasol to the glorious spoils, every one there beamed in a sort of friendly joy, and the trader, carried away by the emotions of the hour, contributed a set of buttons of shining brass.

“Beautiful?” How can simple words capture the stunning sight of vast fields of yellow corn, carelessly mixed with vibrant green and scarlet poppies against a bright blue background? No, you needed to see Annette's dress to truly feel the thrill. When they discovered there was enough money left to buy a red cotton parasol to complement the amazing finds, everyone there lit up with a warm, friendly joy, and the trader, swept up in the excitement of the moment, added a set of shiny brass buttons as a gift.

Warren kept a “meal house,” which phrase was a ruse that saved him from a burdensome hospitality. Determined to do it all in the best style, Rolf took Annette to the meal-house table. She was deeply awed by the grandeur of a tablecloth and white plates, but every one was kind.

Warren ran a "meal house," a clever way to avoid the hassle of hospitality. Wanting to impress, Rolf took Annette to the meal-house table. She was amazed by the elegance of the tablecloth and white plates, but everyone was friendly.

Warren, talking to a stranger opposite, and evidently resuming a subject they had discussed, said:

Warren, speaking to a stranger across from him and clearly picking up on a topic they had previously talked about, said:

“Yes, I'd like to send the hull lot down to Albany this week, if I could get another man for the canoe.”

“Yes, I’d like to send the whole lot down to Albany this week, if I could get another person for the canoe.”

Rolf was interested at once and said: “What wages are you offering?”

Rolf was immediately interested and asked, “What salary are you offering?”

“Twenty-five dollars and board.”

"$25 plus room and board."

“How will I do?”

“How will I manage?”

“Well,” said Warren, as though thinking it over: “I dunno but ye would. Could ye go to-morrow?”

“Well,” said Warren, as if considering it: “I don’t know but you might. Could you go tomorrow?”

“Yes, indeed, for one month.”

"Yes, definitely, for one month."

“All right, it's a bargain.”

"Okay, it's a deal."

And so Rolf took the plunge that influenced his whole life.

And so Rolf made the leap that changed his entire life.

But Annette whispered gleefully and excitedly, “May I have some of that, and that?” pointing to every strange food she could see, and got them all.

But Annette whispered happily and eagerly, “Can I have some of that, and that?” pointing to every unusual food she could see, and she got them all.

After noon they set out on their return journey, Annette clutching her prizes, and prattling incessantly, while Rolf walked alongside, thinking deeply, replying to her chatter, but depressed by the thought of good-bye tomorrow. He was aroused at length by a scraping sound overhead and a sharp reprimand, “Rolf, you'll tear my new parasol, if you don't lead the horse better.”

After noon, they started their journey back, with Annette holding onto her treasures and chatting non-stop, while Rolf walked beside her, lost in thought, responding to her remarks but feeling down about saying goodbye tomorrow. Eventually, he was brought back to reality by a scraping noise above him and a sharp warning, “Rolf, you’re going to ruin my new parasol if you don’t handle the horse better.”

By two o'clock they were at Callan's. Another hour and they had crossed the lake, and Annette, shrill with joy, was displaying her treasures to the wonder and envy of her kin.

By two o'clock, they were at Callan's. An hour later, they had crossed the lake, and Annette, filled with excitement, was showing off her treasures to the amazement and jealousy of her family.

Making a dress was a simple matter in those and Marta promised: “Yah, soom day ven I one have, shall I it sew.” Meanwhile, Annette was quaffing deep, soul-satisfying draughts in the mere contempt of the yellow, red, green, and blue glories in which was soon to appear in public. And when the bed came, she fell asleep holding the dress-goods stuff in arms, and with the red parasol spread above her head, tired out, but inexpressibly happy.

Making a dress was easy back then, and Marta promised, “Yeah, one day when I have it, I’ll sew it.” Meanwhile, Annette was enjoying big, soul-satisfying sips, completely disregarding the yellow, red, green, and blue beauties she would soon show off in public. When the bed came, she fell asleep holding the fabric in her arms, with the red parasol spread over her head, exhausted but incredibly happy.





Chapter 53. Travelling to the Great City

     He's a bad failure that ain't king in some little corner.
     —Sayings of Sylvanne Sylvanne
     He's a complete failure if he isn't a king in some small corner.  
     —Sayings of Sylvanne Sylvanne

The children were not astir when Rolf was off in the morning. He caught a glimpse of Annette, still asleep under the red parasol, but the dress goods and the brass buttons had fallen to the floor. He stepped into the canoe. The dead calm of early morning was on the water, and the little craft went skimming and wimpling across. In half an hour it was beached at Callan's. In a little more than an hour's jog and stride he was at Warren's, ready for work. As he marched in, strong and brisk, his colour up, his blue eyes kindled with the thought of seeing Albany, the trader could not help being struck by him, especially when he remembered each of their meetings—meetings in which he discerned a keen, young mind of good judgment, one that could decide quickly.

The kids were still asleep when Rolf left in the morning. He caught sight of Annette, still dozing under the red umbrella, but her dress and the brass buttons had fallen to the floor. He climbed into the canoe. The water was completely calm in the early morning, and the little boat glided smoothly across it. In half an hour, it landed at Callan's. After a little more than an hour of jogging and walking, he arrived at Warren's, ready to work. As he walked in, strong and energetic, his cheeks flushed and his blue eyes lit up with the thought of seeing Albany, the trader couldn't help but notice him, especially when he recalled each of their previous meetings—meetings where he recognized a sharp, young mind with good judgment, one that could make decisions quickly.

Gazing at the lithe, red-checked lad, he said: “Say, Rolf, air ye an Injun??”

Gazing at the slim, red-checked boy, he said: “Hey, Rolf, are you an Indian?”

“No, sir.”

"No, thanks."

“Air ye a half-breed?”

"Are you a half-breed?"

“No, I'm a Yank; my name is Kittering; born and bred in Redding, Connecticut.”

“No, I'm an American; my name is Kittering; I was born and raised in Redding, Connecticut.”

“Well, I swan, ye look it. At fust I took ye fur an Injun; ye did look dark (and Rolf laughed inside, as he thought of that butternut dye), but I'm bound to say we're glad yer white.”

“Well, I swear, you look it. At first, I thought you were an Indian; you did look dark (and Rolf laughed inside, thinking about that butternut dye), but I have to say we’re glad you’re white.”

“Here, Bill, this is Rolf, Rolf Kittering, he'll go with ye to Albany.” Bill, a loose-jointed, middle-aged, flat-footed, large-handed, semi-loafer, with keen gray eyes, looked up from a bundle he was roping.

“Hey, Bill, this is Rolf, Rolf Kittering. He'll go with you to Albany.” Bill, a casually built, middle-aged guy with flat feet, big hands, and a laid-back attitude, looked up from a bundle he was tying up.

Then Warren took Rolf aside and explained: “I'm sending down all my fur this trip. There's ten bales of sixty pounds each, pretty near my hull fortune. I want it took straight to Vandam's, and, night or day, don't leave it till ye git it there. He's close to the dock. I'm telling ye this for two reasons: The river's swarming with pirates and sneaks. They'd like nothing better than to get away with a five-hundred-dollar bundle of fur; and, next, while Bill is A1 on the river and true as steel, he's awful weak on the liquor; goes crazy, once it's in him. And I notice you've always refused it here. So don't stop at Troy, an' when ye get to Albany go straight past there to Vandam's. You'll have a letter that'll explain, and he'll supply the goods yer to bring back. He's a sort of a partner, and orders from him is same as from me.

Then Warren pulled Rolf aside and explained, “I’m sending down all my fur this trip. There are ten bales weighing sixty pounds each, which is almost my entire fortune. I want it taken straight to Vandam’s, and don’t leave it until you get it there, day or night. He’s close to the dock. I’m telling you this for two reasons: The river is full of pirates and thieves. They would love to make off with a five-hundred-dollar bundle of fur; and also, while Bill is great on the river and as reliable as they come, he has a serious weakness for alcohol; he goes wild once he’s had some. And I see you’ve always turned it down here. So don’t stop at Troy, and when you get to Albany, go straight past there to Vandam’s. You’ll have a letter that explains everything, and he’ll supply the things you need to bring back. He’s sort of a partner, and orders from him are just as good as from me.”

“I suppose I ought to go myself, but this is the time all the fur is coming in here, an' I must be on hand to do the dickering, and there's too much much to risk it any longer in the storehouse.”

“I guess I should go myself, but this is when all the fur is coming in here, and I need to be around to handle the negotiations, and there’s too much at stake to risk it any longer in the storehouse.”

“Suppose,” said Rolf, “Bill wants to stop at Troy?”

“Let’s say,” Rolf said, “Bill wants to stop at Troy?”

“He won't. He's all right, given he's sober. I've give him the letter.”

“He won't. He's fine, as long as he's sober. I've given him the letter.”

“Couldn't you give me the letter, in case?”

“Could you give me the letter, just in case?”

“Law, Bill'd get mad and quit.”

“Law, Bill would get angry and leave.”

“He'll never know.”

"He'll never find out."

“That's so; I will.” So when they paddled away, Bill had an important letter of instructions ostentatiously tucked in his outer pocket. Rolf, unknown to any one else but Warren, had a duplicate, wrapped in waterproof, hidden in an inside pocket.

“That's right; I will.” So when they paddled away, Bill had an important letter of instructions boldly tucked in his outer pocket. Rolf, known only to Warren, had a duplicate, wrapped in waterproof material, hidden in an inside pocket.

Bill was A1 on the river; a kind and gentle old woodman, much stronger than he looked. He knew the value of fur and the danger of wetting it, so he took no chances in doubtful rapids. This meant many portages and much hard labour.

Bill was top-notch on the river; a kind and gentle old woodsman, much stronger than he appeared. He understood the value of fur and the risks of getting it wet, so he never took chances in uncertain rapids. This meant a lot of portaging and hard work.

I wonder if the world realizes the hard labour of the portage or carry? Let any man who seeks for light, take a fifty-pound sack of flour on his shoulders and walk a quarter of a mile on level ground in cool weather. Unless he is in training, he will find it a heavy burden long before he is half-way. Suppose, instead of a flour sack, the burden has sharp angles; the bearer is soon in torture. Suppose the weight carried be double; then the strain is far more than doubled. Suppose, finally, the road be not a quarter mile but a mile, and not on level but through swamps, over rocks, logs, and roots, and the weather not cool, but suffocating summer weather in the woods, with mosquitoes boring into every exposed part, while both hands are occupied, steadying the burden or holding on to branches for help up steep places—and then he will have some idea of the horror of the portage; and there were many of these, each one calling for six loaded and five light trips for each canoe-man. What wonder that men will often take chances in some fierce rapid, rather than to make a long carry through the fly-infested woods.

I wonder if the world understands the tough job of portaging? Let anyone seeking enlightenment take a fifty-pound sack of flour on their shoulders and walk a quarter of a mile on flat ground in cool weather. Unless they're in training, they’ll find it a heavy load long before they’re halfway there. Now imagine if, instead of a flour sack, the burden has sharp edges; then the person will be in pain pretty quickly. If the weight is doubled, the strain is much more than just double. Finally, picture the distance not being a quarter mile but a mile, and the terrain not flat but through swamps, over rocks, logs, and roots, with the weather not cool but sweltering summer heat in the woods, with mosquitoes biting every exposed area, while both hands are busy either stabilizing the load or grabbing branches for support on steep sections—and then they might get a sense of the nightmare of portaging; and there were many of these, each requiring six loaded and five light trips for each canoeist. It's no surprise that people often take risks in some intense rapids rather than endure a long carry through the mosquito-filled woods.

It was weighty evidence of Bill's fidelity that again and again they made a portage around rapids he had often run, because in the present case he was in sacred trust of that much prized commodity—fur.

It was strong proof of Bill's loyalty that time and again they carried their gear around rapids he had often navigated, because in this case he was entrusted with the highly valued item—fur.

Eighty miles they called it from Warren's to Albany, but there were many halts and carries which meant long delay, and a whole week was covered before Bill and Rolf had passed the settlements of Glens Falls, Fort Edward, and Schuylerville, and guided their heavily laden canoe on the tranquil river, past the little town of Troy. Loafers hailed them from the bank, but Bill turned a deaf ear to all temptation; and they pushed on happy in the thought that now their troubles were over; the last rapid was past; the broad, smooth waters extended to their port.

Eighty miles was the distance from Warren's to Albany, but there were many stops and carries that caused long delays, and it took a whole week for Bill and Rolf to move past the towns of Glens Falls, Fort Edward, and Schuylerville, guiding their heavily loaded canoe on the calm river, past the little town of Troy. People on the bank called out to them, but Bill ignored all the temptations; they continued on, happy in the thought that their troubles were finally over; the last rapid was behind them, and the wide, smooth waters stretched ahead to their destination.





Chapter 54. Albany

Only a man who in his youth has come at last in sight of some great city he had dreamed of all his life and longed to see, can enter into Rolf's feelings as they swept around the big bend, and Albany—Albany, hove in view. Albany, the first chartered city of the United States; Albany, the capital of all the Empire State; Albany, the thriving metropolis with nearly six thousand living human souls; Albany with its State House, beautiful and dignified, looking down the mighty Hudson highway that led to the open sea.

Only a man who, in his youth, finally catches sight of some great city he has dreamed about and longed to see can truly understand Rolf's feelings as they rounded the big bend and Albany—Albany—came into view. Albany, the first chartered city in the United States; Albany, the capital of the Empire State; Albany, the bustling metropolis with nearly six thousand residents; Albany with its beautiful and dignified State House, overlooking the majestic Hudson River that leads out to the open sea.

Rolf knew his Bible, and now he somewhat realized the feelings of St. Paul on that historic day when his life-long dream came true, when first he neared the Eternal City—when at last he glimpsed the towers of imperial, splendid Rome.

Rolf knew his Bible, and now he somewhat understood the feelings of St. Paul on that historic day when his lifelong dream came true, when he first approached the Eternal City—when he finally caught sight of the towers of magnificent, glorious Rome.

The long-strung docks were massed and webbed with ship rigging; the water was livened with boats and canoes; the wooden warehouses back of the docks were overtopped by wooden houses in tiers, until high above them all the Capitol itself was the fitting climax.

The long docks were crowded with ship rigging; the water was filled with boats and canoes; the wooden warehouses behind the docks were overshadowed by wooden houses stacked in tiers, all topped off by the Capitol towering above everything.

Rolf knew something of shipping, and amid all the massed boats his eyes fell on a strange, square-looking craft with a huge water-wheel on each side. Then, swinging into better view, he read her name, the Clermont, and knew that this was the famous Fulton steamer, the first of the steamboat age.

Rolf knew a bit about shipping, and among all the boats, his eyes landed on a peculiar, square-looking vessel with a massive water wheel on each side. Then, as it came into better view, he saw its name, the Clermont, and realized that this was the famous Fulton steamer, the pioneer of the steamboat era.

But Bill was swamped by no such emotion. Albany, Hudson, Clermont, and all, were familiar stories to him and he stolidly headed the canoe for the dock he knew of old.

But Bill felt no such emotion. Albany, Hudson, Clermont, and all of them were familiar stories to him, and he calmly steered the canoe toward the dock he had known for years.

Loafers roosting on the snubbing posts hailed him, at first with raillery; but, coming nearer, he was recognized. “Hello, Bill; back again? Glad to see you,” and there was superabundant help to land the canoe.

Loafers hanging out on the posts called out to him, initially teasing him; but as he got closer, they recognized him. “Hey, Bill; back again? Good to see you,” and there was plenty of help to get the canoe ashore.

“Wall, wall, wall, so it's really you,” said the touter of a fur house, in extremely friendly voice; “come in now and we'll hev a drink.”

“Wall, wall, wall, so it’s really you,” said the fur shop guy, in a very friendly voice; “come on in and let’s have a drink.”

“No, sir-ree,” said Bill decisively, “I don't drink till business is done.”

“No way,” Bill said firmly, “I don't drink until work is finished.”

“Wall, now, Bill, here's Van Roost's not ten steps away an' he hez tapped the finest bar'l in years.”

“Wall, now, Bill, here’s Van Roost’s not ten steps away and he has tapped the best barrel in years.”

“No, I tell ye, I'm not drinking—now.”

“No, I’m telling you, I’m not drinking—right now.”

“Wall, all right, ye know yer own business. I thought maybe ye'd be glad to see us.”

“Alright, you know what you're doing. I thought maybe you'd be happy to see us.”

“Well, ain't I?”

"Well, am I?"

“Hello, Bill,” and Bill's fat brother-in-law came up. “Thus does me good, an' yer sister is spilin' to see ye. We'll hev one on this.”

“Hey, Bill,” his overweight brother-in-law approached. “This does me good, and your sister can’t wait to see you. We're going to celebrate this.”

“No, Sam, I ain't drinkin'; I've got biz to tend.”

“No, Sam, I'm not drinking; I have business to take care of.”

“Wall, hev just one to clear yer head. Then settle yer business and come back to us.”

“Wall, just take a moment to clear your head. Then handle your business and come back to us.”

So Bill went to have one to clear his head. “I'll be back in two minutes, Rolf,” but Rolf saw him no more for many days.

So Bill went to have one to clear his head. “I’ll be back in two minutes, Rolf,” but Rolf never saw him again for many days.

“You better come along, cub,” called out a red-nosed member of the group. But Rolf shook his head.

“You better come along, kid,” yelled a guy with a red nose. But Rolf shook his head.

“Here, I'll help you git them ashore,” volunteered an effusive stranger, with one eye.

“Here, I'll help you get them ashore,” volunteered an enthusiastic stranger, with one eye.

“I don't want help.”

"I don't need help."

“How are ye gain' to handle 'em alone?”

“How are you going to handle them alone?”

“Well, there's one thing I'd be glad to have ye do; that is, go up there and bring Peter Vandam.”

“Well, there's one thing I’d be happy for you to do; that is, go up there and get Peter Vandam.”

“I'll watch yer stuff while you go.”

“I'll keep an eye on your things while you go.”

“No, I can't leave.” “Then go to blazes; d'yte take me for yer errand boy?” And Rolf was left alone.

“No, I can't leave.” “Then go to hell; do you take me for your errand boy?” And Rolf was left alone.

He was green at the business, but already he was realizing the power of that word fur and the importance of the peltry trade. Fur was the one valued product of the wilderness that only the hunter could bring. The merchants of the world were as greedy for fur as for gold, and far more so than for precious stones.

He was new to the business, but he was already understanding the power of the word fur and the significance of the fur trade. Fur was the only valuable product from the wilderness that only hunters could provide. Merchants around the world were just as greedy for fur as they were for gold, and even more so than for precious gems.

It was a commodity so light that, even in those days, a hundred weight of fur might range in value from one hundred to five thousand dollars, so that a man with a pack of fine furs was a capitalist. The profits of the business were good for trapper, very large for the trader, who doubled his first gain by paying in trade; but they were huge for the Albany middleman, and colossal for the New Yorker who shipped to London.

It was such a lightweight product that, even back then, a hundred pounds of fur could be worth anywhere from one hundred to five thousand dollars, making any man with a pack of fine furs quite the capitalist. The profits from the business were decent for the trapper, substantial for the trader, who could double his initial earnings by trading goods; but they were massive for the middleman in Albany, and enormous for the New Yorker who shipped to London.

With such allurements, it was small wonder that more country was explored and opened for fur than for settlement or even for gold; and there were more serious crimes and high-handed robberies over the right to trade a few furs than over any other legitimate business. These things were new to Rolf within the year, but he was learning the lesson, and Warren's remarks about fur stuck in his memory with growing value. Every incident since the trip began had given them new points.

With such temptations, it was no surprise that more land was explored and opened up for fur than for settlement or even for gold; and there were more serious crimes and blatant robberies over the right to trade a few furs than over any other legitimate business. These things were new to Rolf this past year, but he was picking up the lesson, and Warren's comments about fur stuck in his memory with increasing significance. Every incident since the trip started had provided them with new insights.

The morning passed without sign of Bill; so, when in the afternoon, some bare-legged boys came along, Rolf said to them: “Do any of ye know where Peter Vandam's house is?”

The morning went by with no sign of Bill, so in the afternoon, when a group of boys in shorts walked by, Rolf asked them, “Do any of you know where Peter Vandam’s house is?”

“Yeh, that's it right there,” and they pointed to a large log house less than a hundred yards away.

“Yeah, that’s it right there,” they said, pointing to a large log house less than a hundred yards away.

“Do ye know him?”

“Do you know him?”

“Yeh, he's my paw,” said a sun-bleached freckle-face.

“Yeah, he's my dad,” said a sun-bleached freckle-faced kid.

“If you bring him here right away, I'll give you a dime. Tell him I'm from Warren's with a cargo.”

“If you bring him here right away, I’ll give you a dime. Tell him I’m from Warren’s with a shipment.”

The dusty stampede that followed was like that of a mustang herd, for a dime was a dime in those days. And very soon, a tall, ruddy man appeared at the dock. He was a Dutchman in name only. At first sight he was much like the other loafers, but was bigger, and had a more business-like air when observed near at hand.

The dusty rush that followed was like a herd of mustangs, because a dime really meant something back then. Before long, a tall, ruddy man showed up at the dock. He was a Dutchman in name only. At first glance, he seemed like the other lazy folks, but he was bigger and had a more serious vibe when you got a closer look.

“Are you from Warren's?”

“Are you from Warren's place?”

“Yes, sir.”

"Yes, sir."

“Alone?”

"By yourself?"

“No, sir. I came with Bill Bymus. But he went off early this morning; I haven't seen him since. I'm afraid he's in trouble.”

“No, sir. I came with Bill Bymus. But he left early this morning; I haven't seen him since. I'm worried he might be in trouble.”

“Where'd he go?”

"Where did he go?"

“In there with some friends.”

“Inside with some friends.”

“Ha, just like him; he's in trouble all right. He'll be no good for a week. Last time he came near losing all our stuff. Now let's see what ye've got.”

“Ha, just like him; he’s in trouble for sure. He won’t be any good for a week. Last time, he almost lost all our stuff. Now let’s see what you’ve got.”

“Are you Mr. Peter Vandam?”

"Are you Mr. Peter Vandam?"

“Of course I am.”

"Absolutely, I am."

Still Rolf looked doubtful. There was a small group around, and Rolf heard several voices, “Yes, this is Peter; ye needn't a-worry.” But Rolf knew none of the speakers. His look of puzzlement at first annoyed then tickled the Dutchman, who exploded into a hearty guffaw.

Still, Rolf looked unsure. There was a small group around, and Rolf heard several voices saying, “Yes, this is Peter; you don’t need to worry.” But Rolf didn’t know any of the speakers. His confused expression first annoyed then amused the Dutchman, who burst out laughing.

“Wall, wall, you sure think ill of us. Here, now look at that,” and he drew out a bundle of letters addressed to Master Peter Vandam. Then he displayed a gold watch inscribed on the back “Peter Vandam”; next he showed a fob seal with a scroll and an inscription, “Petrus Vandamus”; then he turned to a youngster and said, “Run, there is the Reverend Dr. Powellus, he may help us”; so the black-garbed, knee-breached, shovel-hatted clergyman came and pompously said: “Yes, my young friend, without doubt you may rest assured that this is our very estimable parishioner, Master Peter Vandam; a man well accounted in the world of trade.”

“Wall, wall, you really think poorly of us. Look at this,” and he pulled out a bundle of letters addressed to Master Peter Vandam. Then he showed a gold watch with “Peter Vandam” engraved on the back; next, he displayed a fob seal with a scroll and the inscription “Petrus Vandamus”; then he turned to a young kid and said, “Run, there’s the Reverend Dr. Powellus, he can help us”; so the clergyman in black clothing, knee-breeches, and a shovel hat came over and said pompously: “Yes, my young friend, you can be sure that this is our esteemed parishioner, Master Peter Vandam; a man well regarded in the business world.”

“And now,” said Peter, “with the help of my birth-register and marriage-certificate, which will be placed at your service with all possible haste, I hope I may win your recognition.” The situation, at first tense, had become more and more funny, and the bystanders laughed aloud. Rolf rose to it, and smiling said slowly, “I am inclined to think that you must be Master Peter Vandam, of Albany. If that's so, this letter is for you, also this cargo.” And so the delivery was made.

“And now,” Peter said, “with my birth certificate and marriage certificate, which I'll get to you as quickly as possible, I hope to earn your recognition.” The atmosphere, initially tense, had turned increasingly amusing, and the onlookers laughed out loud. Rolf picked up on it and smiled as he said slowly, “I believe you must be Master Peter Vandam from Albany. If that's the case, this letter is for you, along with this cargo.” And with that, the delivery was made.

Bill Bymus has not delivered the other letter to this day. Presumably he went to stay with his sister, but she saw little of him, for his stay at Albany was, as usual, one long spree. It was clear that, but for Rolf, there might have been serious loss of fur, and Vandam showed his appreciation by taking the lad to his own home, where the story of the difficult identification furnished ground for gusty laughter and primitive jest on many an after day.

Bill Bymus still hasn't delivered the other letter. He probably went to stay with his sister, but she hardly saw him because his time in Albany was, as usual, one big party. It was obvious that if it weren't for Rolf, there could have been a serious loss of fur, and Vandam showed his gratitude by taking the kid to his own home, where the story of the tricky identification provided plenty of laughs and crude jokes for many days to come.

The return cargo for Warren consisted of stores that the Vandam warehouse had in stock, and some stuff that took a day or more to collect in town.

The return cargo for Warren included supplies that the Vandam warehouse had available, along with some items that took a day or more to gather in town.

As Rolf was sorting and packing next day, a tall, thin, well-dressed young man walked in with the air of one much at home.

As Rolf was sorting and packing the next day, a tall, thin, well-dressed young man walked in, acting like he belonged there.

“Good morrow, Peter.”

"Good morning, Peter."

“Good day to ye, sir,” and they talked of crops and politics.

“Good day to you, sir,” and they talked about crops and politics.

Presently Vandam said, “Rolf, come over here.”

Presently, Vandam said, “Rolf, come over here.”

He came and was presented to the tall man, who was indeed very thin, and looked little better than an invalid. “This,” said Peter, “is Master Henry van Cortlandt the son of his honour, the governor, and a very learned barrister. He wants to go on a long hunting trip for his health. I tell him that likely you are the man he needs.”

He arrived and was introduced to the tall man, who was quite thin and looked almost frail. “This,” Peter said, “is Master Henry van Cortlandt, the son of the governor, and a very knowledgeable lawyer. He wants to go on a long hunting trip for his health. I told him you’re probably the right person for the job.”

This was so unexpected that Rolf turned red and gazed on the ground. Van Cortlandt at once began to clear things by interjecting: “You see, I'm not strong. I want to live outdoors for three months, where I can have some hunting and be beyond reach of business. I'll pay you a hundred dollars for the three months, to cover board and guidance. And providing I'm well pleased and have good hunting, I'll give you fifty dollars more when I get back to Albany.”

This was so unexpected that Rolf turned red and looked down. Van Cortlandt immediately tried to clarify things by saying, “You see, I'm not strong. I want to live outdoors for three months, where I can do some hunting and be away from business. I'll pay you a hundred dollars for those three months, which will cover food and guidance. And if I'm happy and have good hunting, I'll give you another fifty dollars when I get back to Albany.”

“I'd like much to be your guide,” said Rolf, “but I have a partner. I must find out if he's willing.”

“I'd really like to be your guide,” Rolf said, “but I have a partner. I need to check if he's on board.”

“Ye don't mean-that drunken Bill Bymus?”

“Do you mean that drunk Bill Bymus?”

“No! my hunting partner; he's an Indian.” Then, after a pause, he added, “You wouldn't go in fly-time, would you?”

“No! My hunting partner; he's Native American.” Then, after a pause, he added, “You wouldn't go in fly time, would you?”

“No, I want to be in peace. But any time after the first of August.”

“No, I want to be at peace. But any time after August 1st.”

“I am bound to help Van Trumper with his harvest; that will take most of August.”

“I’m obligated to help Van Trumper with his harvest; that will take up most of August.”

As he talked, the young lawyer sized him up and said to himself, “This is my man.”

As he spoke, the young lawyer evaluated him and thought to himself, “This is the guy I need.”

And before they parted it was agreed that Rolf should come to Albany with Quonab as soon as he could return in August, to form the camping party for the governor's son.

And before they said goodbye, they agreed that Rolf would go to Albany with Quonab as soon as he could come back in August, to put together the camping trip for the governor's son.





Chapter 55. The Rescue of Bill

Bales were ready and the canoe newly gummed three days after their arrival, but still no sign of Bill. A messengers sent to the brother-in-law's home reported that he had not been seen for two days. In spite of the fact that Albany numbered nearly “six thousand living human souls,” a brief search by the docksharps soon revealed the sinner's retreat. His worst enemy would have pitied him; a red-eyed wreck; a starved, sick and trembling weakling; conscience-stricken, for the letter intrusted to him was lost; the cargo stolen—so his comforters had said—and the raw country lad murdered and thrown out into the river. What wonder that he should shun the light of day! And when big Peter with Rolf in the living flesh, instead of the sheriff, stood before him and told him to come out of that and get into the canoe, he wept bitter tears of repentance and vowed that never, never, never, as long as he lived would he ever again let liquor touch his lips. A frame of mind which lasted in strength for nearly one day and a half, and did not entirely varnish for three.

Bales were ready and the canoe newly gummed three days after their arrival, but there was still no sign of Bill. A messenger sent to his brother-in-law's home reported that he hadn’t been seen for two days. Despite Albany having nearly “six thousand living human souls,” a quick search by the dock workers soon found where he had been hiding. Even his worst enemy would have felt sorry for him; he was a red-eyed wreck, starved, sick, and trembling. He was consumed by guilt because the letter entrusted to him was lost; the cargo was stolen—so his comforters said—and the raw country boy was murdered and tossed into the river. It was no wonder he avoided the light of day! When big Peter stood before him with Rolf, in the flesh instead of the sheriff, and told him to get out of there and into the canoe, he wept bitter tears of regret and swore that he would never, ever, as long as he lived, let liquor touch his lips again. This state of mind lasted in full strength for nearly a day and a half and didn’t completely fade for three.

They passed Troy without desiring to stop, and began their fight with the river. It was harder than when coming, for their course was against stream when paddling, up hill when portaging, the water was lower, the cargo was heavier, and Bill not so able. Ten days it took them to cover those eighty miles. But they came out safely, cargo and all, and landed at Warren's alive and well on the twenty-first day since leaving.

They passed Troy without wanting to stop and started their battle with the river. It was harder than the trip there, as they were going upstream when paddling, climbing when carrying their gear, the water level was lower, the load was heavier, and Bill wasn’t as strong. It took them ten days to cover those eighty miles. But they made it out safely, cargo and all, and arrived at Warren's alive and well on the twenty-first day since they left.

Bill had recovered his usual form. Gravely and with pride he marched up to Warren and handed out a large letter which read outside, “Bill of Lading,” and when opened, read: “The bearer of this, Bill Bymus, is no good. Don't trust him to Albany any more. (Signed) Peter Vandam.”

Bill had gotten back to his usual self. Seriously and with pride, he walked up to Warren and handed him a big letter that said "Bill of Lading" on the outside, and when opened, it read: "The bearer of this, Bill Bymus, isn't trustworthy. Don't send him to Albany anymore. (Signed) Peter Vandam."

Warren's eyes twinkled, but he said nothing. He took

Warren's eyes sparkled, but he said nothing. He took

Rolf aside and said, “Let's have it.” Rolf gave him the real letter that, unknown to Bill, he had carried, and Warren learned some things that he knew before.

Rolf stepped aside and said, “Let’s see it.” Rolf handed him the actual letter that, without Bill’s knowledge, he had been carrying, and Warren discovered some things he already knew.

Rolf's contract was for a month; it had ten days to run, and those ten days were put in weighing sugar, checking accounts, milking cows, and watching the buying of fur. Warren didn't want him to see too much of the fur business, but Rolf gathered quickly that these were the main principles: Fill the seller with liquor, if possible; “fire water for fur” was the idea; next, grade all fur as medium or second-class, when cash was demanded, but be easy as long as payment was to be in trade. That afforded many loopholes between weighing, grading, charging, and shrinkage, and finally he noticed that Albany prices were 30 to 50 per cent. higher than Warren prices. Yet Warren was reckoned a first-class fellow, a good neighbour, and a member of the church. But it was understood everywhere that fur, like horseflesh, was a business with moral standards of its own.

Rolf's contract was for a month; he had ten days left, and during those ten days, he spent his time weighing sugar, checking accounts, milking cows, and observing fur buying. Warren didn't want him to see too much of the fur business, but Rolf quickly figured out the main principles: Get the seller drunk if you can; "fire water for fur" was the idea; then, grade all fur as medium or second-class when cash was requested, but be lenient as long as payment was in trade. This created plenty of loopholes between weighing, grading, charging, and shrinkage, and eventually he noticed that Albany prices were 30 to 50 percent higher than Warren's prices. Still, Warren was considered a top-notch guy, a good neighbor, and a church member. But it was universally understood that fur, like horseflesh, had its own moral standards in business.

A few days before their contract was up, Warren said: “How'd ye like to renew for a month?”

A few days before their contract was up, Warren said: “How would you like to renew for a month?”

“Can't; I promised to help Van Trumper with his harvest.”

“Can’t; I promised to help Van Trumper with his harvest.”

“What does he pay ye?”

“What does he pay you?”

“Seventy-five cents a day and board.”

“Seventy-five cents a day, including meals.”

“I'll make it a dollar.”

"I'll make it a buck."

“I've given my word,” said Rolf, in surprise.

“I've given my word,” Rolf said, surprised.

“Hey ye signed papers?”

"Hey, did you sign the papers?"

“They're not needed. The only use of signed papers is to show ye have given your word,” said Rolf, quoting his mother, with rising indignation.

“They're not necessary. The only purpose of signed papers is to prove you’ve kept your word,” said Rolf, quoting his mother, with growing anger.

The trader sniffed a little contemptuously and said nothing. But he realized the value of a lad who was a steady, intelligent worker, wouldn't drink, and was absolutely bound by a promise; so, after awhile, he said: “Wall, if Van don't want ye now, come back for a couple of weeks.”

The trader scoffed a bit and didn’t say anything. But he understood the worth of a kid who was a reliable, smart worker, didn’t drink, and was completely committed to his promise; so, after a while, he said, “Well, if Van doesn’t want you now, come back in a couple of weeks.”

Early in the morning Rolf gathered the trifles he had secured for the little children and the book he had bought for Annette, a sweet story of a perfect girl who died and went to heaven, the front embellished with a thrilling wood-cut. Then he crossed the familiar five-mile portage at a pace that in an hour brought him to the lake.

Early in the morning, Rolf collected the little things he had gotten for the kids and the book he bought for Annette, a lovely story about a perfect girl who died and went to heaven, with a fantastic woodcut on the front. Then he went across the well-known five-mile portage at a pace that got him to the lake in an hour.

The greeting at Van's was that of a brother come home.

The welcome at Van's was like that of a brother returning home.

“Vell, Rolf, it's goood to see ye back. It's choost vat I vented. Hi, Marta, I told it you, yah. I say, now I hope ze good Gott send Rolf. Ach, how I am shpoil!”

“Well, Rolf, it's good to see you back. It's just what I wanted. Hi, Marta, I told you, yes. I hope God sends Rolf. Oh, how I am spoiled!”

Yes, indeed. The hay was ready; the barley was changing. So Rolf took up his life on the farm, doing work that a year before was beyond his strength, for the spirit of the hills was on him, with its impulse of growth, its joy in effort, its glory in strength. And all who saw the longlegged, long-armed, flat-backed youth plying fork or axe or hoe, in some sort ventured a guess: “He'll be a good 'un some day; the kind o' chap to keep friendly with.

Yes, definitely. The hay was ready; the barley was changing. So Rolf took up his life on the farm, doing work that a year before was beyond his strength because the spirit of the hills inspired him, filled him with a drive to grow, a joy in hard work, and a pride in his strength. And everyone who saw the tall, long-armed, flat-backed young man using a fork, axe, or hoe would venture a guess: “He'll turn out great one day; the kind of guy you want to be friends with.”





Chapter 56. The Sick Ox

The Thunder Moon passed quickly by; the hay was in; the barley partly so. Day by day the whitefaced oxen toiled at the creaking yoke, as the loads of hay and grain were jounced cumbrously over roots and stumps of the virgin fields. Everything was promising well, when, as usual, there came a thunderbolt out of the clear sky. Buck, the off ox, fell sick.

The Thunder Moon flew by quickly; the hay was gathered in, and the barley was mostly collected. Day after day, the white-faced oxen worked hard at the creaking yoke, as the heavy loads of hay and grain bounced awkwardly over the roots and stumps of the untouched fields. Everything was looking good when, as usual, disaster struck out of nowhere. Buck, the off ox, got sick.

Those who know little about cattle have written much of the meek and patient ox. Those who know them well tell us that the ox is the “most cussedest of all cussed” animals; a sneak, a bully, a coward, a thief, a shirk, a schemer; and when he is not in mischief he is thinking about it. The wickedest pack mule that ever bucked his burden is a pinfeathered turtle-dove compared with an average ox. There are some gentle oxen, but they are rare; most are treacherous, some are dangerous, and these are best got rid of, as they mislead their yoke mates and mislay their drivers. Van's two oxen, Buck and Bright, manifested the usual variety and contrariety of disposition. They were all right when well handled, and this Rolf could do better than Van, for he was “raised on oxen,” and Van's over voluble, sputtering, Dutch-English seemed ill comprehended of the massive yoke beasts. The simpler whip-waving and fewer orders of the Yankee were so obviously successful that Van had resigned the whip of authority and Rolf was driver.

People who don’t know much about cattle have written a lot about the meek and patient ox. Those who know them well say that the ox is the “most cursed of all cursed” animals; a sneak, a bully, a coward, a thief, a shirker, a schemer; and when he’s not causing trouble, he’s thinking about it. The meanest pack mule that ever bucked his load is like a sweet little dove compared to an average ox. There are some gentle oxen, but they’re rare; most are treacherous, some are dangerous, and it’s best to get rid of them, as they mislead their yoke mates and misdirect their drivers. Van’s two oxen, Buck and Bright, showed the usual mix of personalities. They were fine when handled properly, and Rolf could manage them better than Van, as he was “raised on oxen,” while Van’s over-talkative, sputtering Dutch-English seemed poorly understood by the large yoke beasts. The simpler whip-waving and fewer commands from the Yankee were so clearly effective that Van gave up his authority, and Rolf became the driver.

Ordinarily, an ox driver walks on the hew (nigh or left) side, near the head of his team, shouting “gee” (right), “haw” (left), “get up,” “steady,” or “whoa” (stop), accompanying the order with a waving of the whip. Foolish drivers lash the oxen on the haw side when they wish them to gee—and vice versa; but it is notorious that all good drivers do little lashing. Spare the lash or spoil your team. So it was not long before Rolf could guide them from the top of the load, as they travelled from shook to shook in the field. This voice of command saved his life, or at least his limb, one morning, for he made a misstep that tumbled him down between the oxen and the wagon. At once the team started, but his ringing “Whoa!” brought them to a dead stop, and saved him; whereas, had it been Van's “Whoa!” it would have set them off at a run, for every shout from him meant a whip lick to follow.

Typically, an ox driver walks on the right or left side, close to the front of his team, shouting “gee” (right), “haw” (left), “get up,” “steady,” or “whoa” (stop), while waving the whip. Unskilled drivers hit the oxen on the left side when they want them to go right—and vice versa; but it’s well-known that all good drivers don't lash much. Use the whip sparingly or you’ll ruin your team. It wasn't long before Rolf could steer them from the top of the load, as they moved from bush to bush in the field. This command saved his life, or at least his leg, one morning, when he misstepped and fell between the oxen and the wagon. The team started moving right away, but his loud “Whoa!” made them stop dead in their tracks and saved him; if it had been Van's “Whoa!”, they would have taken off running, because any shout from him meant a whip crack to follow.

Thus Rolf won the respect, if not the love, of the huge beasts; more and more they were his charge, and when, on that sad morning, in the last of the barley, Van came in, “Ach, vot shall I do! Vot shall I do! Dot Buck ox be nigh dead.”

Thus Rolf earned the respect, if not the affection, of the massive animals; increasingly, they were his responsibility, and when, on that tragic morning, as he was finishing the barley, Van arrived, saying, “Oh, what should I do! What should I do! That Buck ox is almost dead.”

Alas! there he lay on the ground, his head sometimes raised, sometimes stretched out flat, while the huge creature uttered short moans at times.

Alas! there he lay on the ground, his head sometimes lifted, sometimes stretched out flat, while the massive creature occasionally let out short moans.

Only four years before, Rolf had seen that same thing at Redding. The rolling eye, the working of the belly muscles, the straining and moaning. “It's colic; have you any ginger?”

Only four years earlier, Rolf had witnessed the same thing at Redding. The rolling eye, the tightening of the stomach muscles, the straining and moaning. “It’s colic; do you have any ginger?”

“No, I hat only dot soft soap.”

“No, I only have that soft soap.”

What soft soap had to do with ginger was not clear, and Rolf wondered if it had some rare occult medical power that had escaped his mother.

What soft soap had to do with ginger was unclear, and Rolf wondered if it had some rare magical medical power that his mother had missed.

“Do you know where there's any slippery elm?”

“Do you know where I can find any slippery elm?”

“Yah.”

"Yeah."

“Then bring a big boiling of the bark, while I get some peppermint.”

“Then boil the bark for a while, while I grab some peppermint.”

The elm bark was boiled till it made a kettleful of brown slime. The peppermint was dried above the stove till it could be powdered, and mixed with the slippery slush. Some sulphur and some soda were discovered and stirred in, on general principles, and they hastened to the huge, helpless creature in the field.

The elm bark was boiled until it turned into a kettleful of brown goo. The peppermint was dried above the stove until it could be ground into powder and mixed with the slippery mixture. Some sulfur and some soda were found and stirred in, just in case, and they quickly went to the huge, helpless creature in the field.

Poor Buck seemed worse than ever. He was flat on his side, with his spine humped up, moaning and straining at intervals. But now relief was in sight—so thought the men. With a tin dipper they tried to pour some relief into the open mouth of the sufferer, who had so little appreciation that he simply taxed his remaining strength to blow it out in their faces. Several attempts ended the same way. Then the brute, in what looked like temper, swung his muzzle and dashed the whole dipper away. Next they tried the usual method, mixing it with a bran mash, considered a delicacy in the bovine world, but Buck again took notice, under pressure only, to dash it away and waste it all.

Poor Buck looked worse than ever. He was lying flat on his side, his spine arched, moaning and straining every now and then. But now relief was on the way—at least that's what the men thought. With a tin dipper, they tried to pour some relief into the open mouth of the suffering animal, who had little appreciation for their efforts and instead used his remaining strength to blow it back in their faces. Several attempts ended in the same way. Then the animal, seemingly frustrated, swung his muzzle and knocked the whole dipper away. Next, they went with the usual method, mixing it with a bran mash, which is considered a treat in the cattle world, but Buck again only reacted under pressure to push it away and waste it all.

It occurred to them they might force it down his throat if they could raise his head. So they used a hand lever and a prop to elevate the muzzle, and were about to try another inpour, when Buck leaped to his feet, and behaving like one who has been shamming, made at full gallop for the stable, nor stopped till safely in his stall, where at once he dropped in all the evident agony of a new spasm.

It struck them that they could make him swallow it if they could lift his head. So, they used a lever and a support to raise the muzzle and were about to try pouring it in again when Buck sprang to his feet, acting like someone who had been faking, and took off at full speed toward the stable, not stopping until he was safely in his stall, where he immediately collapsed in obvious pain from a new spasm.

It is a common thing for oxen to sham sick, but this was the real thing, and it seemed they were going to lose the ox, which meant also lose a large part of the harvest.

It’s not uncommon for oxen to pretend to be sick, but this was the real deal, and it looked like they were going to lose the ox, which also meant losing a big portion of the harvest.

In the stable, now, they had a better chance; they tied him, then raised his head with a lever till his snout was high above his shoulders. Now it seemed easy to pour the medicine down that long, sloping passage. But his mouth was tightly closed, any that entered his nostrils was blown afar, and the suffering beast strained at the rope till he seemed likely to strangle.

In the stable, they had a better shot; they tied him up and lifted his head with a lever until his snout was high above his shoulders. Now it looked easy to pour the medicine down that long, sloping passage. But his mouth was tightly shut, anything that entered his nostrils was blown away, and the suffering animal struggled against the rope until it seemed like he might choke.

Both men and ox were worn out with the struggle; the brute was no better, but rather worse.

Both the men and the ox were exhausted from the struggle; the beast was no better, but actually worse.

“Wall,” said Rolf, “I've seen a good many ornery steers, but that's the orneriest I ever did handle, an' I reckon we'll lose him if he don't get that poison into him pretty soon.”

“Wall,” said Rolf, “I've dealt with a lot of stubborn cattle, but that’s the most stubborn one I’ve ever handled, and I think we’ll lose him if we don’t get that poison into him pretty soon.”

Oxen never were studied as much as horses, for they were considered a temporary shift, and every farmer looked forward to replacing them with the latter. Oxen were enormously strong, and they could flourish without grain when the grass was good; they never lost their head in a swamp hole, and ploughed steadily among all kinds of roots and stumps; but they were exasperatingly slow and eternally tricky. Bright, being the trickier of the two, was made the nigh ox, to be more under control. Ordinarily Rolf could manage Buck easily, but the present situation seemed hopeless. In his memory he harked back to Redding days, and he recalled old Eli Gooch, the ox expert, and wondered what he would have done. Then, as he sat, he caught sight of the sick ox reaching out its head and deftly licking up a few drops of bran mash that had fallen from his yoke fellow's portion. A smile spread over Rolf's face. “Just like you; you think nothing's good except it's stolen. All right; we'll see.” He mixed a big dose of medicine, with bran, as before. Then he tied Bright's head so that he could not reach the ground, and set the bucket of mash half way between the two oxen. “Here ye are, Bright,” he said, as a matter of form, and walked out of the stable; but, from a crack, he watched. Buck saw a chance to steal Bright's bran; he looked around; Oh, joy! his driver was away. He reached out cautiously; sniffed; his long tongue shot forth for a first taste, when Rolf gave a shout and ran in. “Hi, you old robber! Let that alone; that's for Bright.”

Oxen were never studied as much as horses because they were seen as a temporary option, and every farmer looked forward to switching to horses. Oxen were incredibly strong and could thrive without grain when the grass was good; they never panicked in muddy spots and plowed steadily through all sorts of roots and stumps. However, they were frustratingly slow and always up to something. Bright, being the sneakier of the two, was chosen as the near ox to keep him more manageable. Normally, Rolf could handle Buck without a problem, but the current situation felt hopeless. He remembered the days in Redding and thought of old Eli Gooch, the ox expert, and wondered what Eli would do. Then, as he sat there, he noticed the sick ox stretching out its head and skillfully licking up a few drops of bran mash that had fallen from Buck's share. A smile crossed Rolf's face. “Just like you; you think nothing’s good unless it’s stolen. Okay; let’s see.” He mixed a big dose of medicine with bran, like before. Then he tied Bright’s head so he couldn’t reach the ground and placed the bucket of mash halfway between the two oxen. “Here you go, Bright,” he said as a formality, and walked out of the stable; but from a crack, he kept an eye on them. Buck saw a chance to snag Bright's bran; he looked around; Oh, joy! His driver was gone. He stretched out cautiously, sniffed, and his long tongue shot out for a first taste when Rolf shouted and rushed in. “Hey, you old thief! Leave that alone; that’s for Bright.”

The sick ox was very much in his own stall now, and stayed there for some time after Rolf went to resume his place at the peephole. But encouraged by a few minutes of silence, he again reached out, and hastily gulped down a mouthful of the mixture before Rolf shouted and rushed in armed with a switch to punish the thief. Poor Bright, by his efforts to reach the tempting mash, was unwittingly playing the game, for this was proof positive of its desirableness.

The sick ox was now really settled in his stall and stayed there for a while after Rolf left to return to his spot by the peephole. But after a few moments of silence gave him some confidence, he reached out again and quickly swallowed a mouthful of the mixture before Rolf shouted and rushed in with a switch to punish the thief. Poor Bright, in trying to get to the tempting mash, was unknowingly proving just how desirable it was.

After giving Buck a few cuts with the switch, Rolf retired, as before. Again the sick ox waited for silence, and reaching out with greedy haste, he gulped down the rest and emptied the bucket; seeing which, Rolf ran in and gave the rogue a final trouncing for the sake of consistency.

After giving Buck a few swats with the switch, Rolf stepped back, just like before. Again, the sick ox waited for the quiet, and reaching out eagerly, he quickly gulped down the rest and finished the bucket; seeing this, Rolf rushed in and gave the rascal one last beating for the sake of consistency.

Any one who knows what slippery elm, peppermint, soda, sulphur, colic, and ox do when thoroughly interincorporated will not be surprised to learn that in the morning the stable needed special treatment, and of all the mixture the ox was the only ingredient left on the active list. He was all right again, very thirsty, and not quite up to his usual standard, but, as Van said, after a careful look, “Ah, tell you vot, dot you vas a veil ox again, an' I t'ink I know not vot if you all tricky vas like Bright.”

Anyone who knows what slippery elm, peppermint, soda, sulfur, colic, and ox do when mixed together won’t be surprised to hear that by morning the stable needed some serious attention, and of all the ingredients, the ox was the only one still active. He was fine again, very thirsty, and not quite back to his usual self, but as Van said after a careful glance, “Ah, I’ll tell you what, you’re a good ox again, and I wonder what would happen if you were as tricky as Bright.”





Chapter 57. Rolf and Skookum at Albany

The Red Moon (August) follows the Thunder Moon, and in the early part of its second week Rolf and Van, hauling in the barley and discussing the fitness of the oats, were startled by a most outrageous clatter among the hens. Horrid murder evidently was stalking abroad, and, hastening to the rescue, Rolf heard loud, angry barks; then a savage beast with a defunct “cackle party” appeared, but dropped the victim to bark and bound upon the “relief party” with ecstatic expressions of joy, in spite of Rolf's—“Skookum! you little brute!”

The Red Moon (August) comes after the Thunder Moon, and in the early part of its second week, Rolf and Van, bringing in the barley and discussing the quality of the oats, were startled by a loud commotion among the hens. It was clear that trouble was brewing, and as they rushed to help, Rolf heard loud, angry barking; then a fierce animal showed up, having dropped its “cackle party” victim, but instead ran over to the “relief party,” wagging its tail in pure joy, despite Rolf's exclamation—“Skookum! you little brute!”

Yes! Quonab was back; that is, he was at the lake shore, and Skookum had made haste to plunge into the joys and gayeties of this social centre, without awaiting the formalities of greeting or even of dry-shod landing.

Yes! Quonab was back; he was at the lake shore, and Skookum had quickly jumped into the fun and excitement of this social hub, without waiting for any formal greetings or even for a dry landing.

The next scene was—a big, high post, a long, strong chain and a small, sad dog.

The next scene was—a tall post, a heavy chain, and a little, sad dog.

“Ho, Quonab, you found your people? You had a good time?”

“Hey, Quonab, did you find your people? Did you have a good time?”

“Ugh,” was the answer, the whole of it, and all the light Rolf got for many a day on the old man's trip to the North. The prospect of going to Albany for Van Cortlandt was much more attractive to Quonab than that of the harvest field, so a compromise was agreed on. Callan's barley was in the stock; if all three helped Callan for three days, Callan would owe them for nine, and so it was arranged.

“Ugh,” was the answer, the whole of it, and all the insight Rolf got for many days about the old man's trip to the North. The idea of going to Albany for Van Cortlandt was way more appealing to Quonab than the harvest field, so they reached a compromise. Callan's barley was in the stock; if all three helped Callan for three days, Callan would owe them for nine, and that’s how they set it up.

Again “good-bye,” and Rolf, Quonab, and little dog Skookum went sailing down the Schroon toward the junction, where they left a cache of their supplies, and down the broadening Hudson toward Albany.

Again “goodbye,” and Rolf, Quonab, and little dog Skookum went sailing down the Schroon toward the junction, where they left a stash of their supplies, and down the widening Hudson toward Albany.

Rolf had been over the road twice; Quonab never before, yet his nose for water was so good and the sense of rapid and portage was so strong in the red man, that many times he was the pilot. “This is the way, because it must be”; “there it is deep because so narrow”; “that rapid is dangerous, because there is such a well-beaten portage trail”; “that we can run, because I see it,” or, “because there is no portage trail,” etc. The eighty miles were covered in three sleeps, and in the mid-moon days of the Red Moon they landed at the dock in front of Peter Vandam's. If Quonab had any especial emotions for the occasion, he cloaked them perfectly under a calm and copper-coloured exterior of absolute immobility.

Rolf had traveled this route twice; Quonab had never been here before, but his instinct for finding water was so sharp and his sense of rapids and portaging was so strong that he often acted as the guide. “This is the way, because it needs to be”; “over there it’s deep because it’s so narrow”; “that rapid is risky because there’s a well-used portage trail nearby”; “we can navigate that, because I can see it,” or, “because there isn’t a portage trail,” and so on. They covered the eighty miles in three nights, and during the mid-moon days of the Red Moon, they arrived at the dock in front of Peter Vandam’s. If Quonab had any special feelings about the moment, he hid them perfectly behind his calm and copper-colored exterior of complete stillness.

Their Albany experiences included a meeting with the governor and an encounter with a broad and burly river pirate, who, seeing a lone and peaceable-looking red man, went out of his way to insult him; and when Quonab's knife flashed out at last, it was only his recently established relations with the governor's son that saved him from some very sad results, for there were many loafers about. But burly Vandam appeared in the nick of time to halt the small mob with the warning: “Don't you know that's Mr. Van Cortlandt's guide?” With the governor and Vandam to back him, Quonab soon had the mob on his side, and the dock loafer's own friends pelted him with mud as he escaped. But not a little credit is due to Skookum, for at the critical moment he had sprung on the ruffian's bare and abundant leg with such toothsome effect that the owner fell promptly backward and the knife thrust missed. It was quickly over and Quonab replaced his knife, contemptuous of the whole crowd before, during and after the incident. Not at the time, but days later, he said of his foe: “He was a talker; he was full of fear.”

Their Albany experiences included a meeting with the governor and an encounter with a big, burly river pirate who, upon seeing a solitary and peaceful-looking Native American, decided to insult him. When Quonab finally pulled out his knife, it was only because of his recent connections with the governor's son that he avoided serious trouble, as there were plenty of idle bystanders around. But burly Vandam showed up just in time to stop the small mob with a warning: “Don’t you know that’s Mr. Van Cortlandt’s guide?” With the governor and Vandam supporting him, Quonab quickly gained the mob's sympathy, and the dock loiterer's own friends threw mud at him as he fled. Skookum also deserves some credit because, at the crucial moment, he jumped onto the thug's bare, heavy leg with such force that the guy fell backward, causing the knife thrust to miss. It was over quickly, and Quonab put away his knife, looking down on the entire crowd before, during, and after the incident. Not at the moment, but days later, he commented about his opponent: “He was just a talker; he was filled with fear.”

With the backwoods only thirty miles away, and the unbroken wilderness one hundred, it was hard to believe how little Henry van Cortlandt knew of the woods and its life. He belonged to the ultra-fashionable set, and it was rather their pose to affect ignorance of the savage world and its ways. But he had plenty of common-sense to fan back on, and the inspiring example of Washington, equally at home in the nation's Parliament, the army intrenchment, the glittering ball room, or the hunting lodge of the Indian, was a constant reminder that the perfect man is a harmonious development of mind, morals, and physique.

With the backwoods only thirty miles away and the unspoiled wilderness a hundred miles out, it was hard to believe how little Henry van Cortlandt knew about the woods and its life. He was part of the ultra-fashionable crowd, and it was kind of their thing to pretend they didn’t know anything about the wild world and its ways. But he had plenty of common sense to rely on, and the inspiring example of Washington—equally comfortable in the nation’s government, army camps, fancy ballrooms, or the Indian hunting lodge—was a constant reminder that the ideal person is a balanced mix of intellect, morals, and physicality.

His training had been somewhat warped by the ultraclassic fashion of the times, so he persisted in seeing in Quonab a sort of discoloured, barbaric clansman of Alaric or a camp follower of Xenophon's host, rather than an actual living, interesting, native American, exemplifying in the highest degree the sinewy, alert woodman, and the saturated mystic and pantheist of an age bygone and out of date, combined with a middle-measure intelligence. And Rolf, tall, blue-eyed with brown, curling hair, was made to pose as the youthful Achilles, rather than as a type of America's best young manhood, cleaner, saner, and of far higher ideals and traditions than ever were ascribed to Achilles by his most blinded worshippers. It recalled the case of Wordsworth and Southey living side by side in England; Southey, the famous, must needs seek in ancient India for material to write his twelve-volume romance that no one ever looks at; Wordsworth, the unknown, wrote of the things of his own time, about his own door? and produced immortal verse.

His training had been somewhat influenced by the outdated style of the times, so he continued to see Quonab as some sort of faded, primitive follower of Alaric or a camp follower from Xenophon's army, instead of an actual living, fascinating Native American, representing the epitome of a strong, alert woodsman and the deeply spiritual mystic of a long-gone age, combined with a moderate degree of intelligence. And Rolf, tall, blue-eyed with brown, curly hair, was expected to be portrayed as a youthful Achilles, rather than as an example of America's best young men, who were cleaner, healthier, and held much higher ideals and traditions than anything Achilles's most fervent admirers ever attributed to him. It reminded one of Wordsworth and Southey living side by side in England; Southey, the famous one, felt he needed to look to ancient India for inspiration to write his twelve-volume romance that no one ever reads; Wordsworth, the unknown, wrote about the things of his own time, right outside his door, and produced timeless poetry.

What should we think of Homer, had he sung his impressions of the ancient Egyptians? or of Thackeray, had he novelized the life of the Babylonians? It is an ancient blindness, with an ancient wall to bruise one's head. It is only those who seek ointment of the consecrated clay that gives back sight, who see the shining way at their feet, who beat their face against no wall, who safely climb the heights. Henry van Cortlandt was a man of rare parts, of every advantage, but still he had been taught steadfastly to live in the past. His eyes were yet to be opened. The living present was not his—but yet to be.

What should we think of Homer if he had shared his thoughts on the ancient Egyptians? Or of Thackeray if he had written a novel about the lives of the Babylonians? It's an old blindness, with an old wall to bump one's head against. Only those who seek the healing power of the sacred clay that restores vision can see the bright path at their feet, who don’t hit their face against any wall, who safely climb to new heights. Henry van Cortlandt was a remarkable man, with every advantage, but he had still been taught to live firmly in the past. His eyes were yet to be opened. The vibrant present was not his—it was still to come.

The young lawyer had been assembling his outfit at Vandam's warehouse, for, in spite of scoffing friends, he knew that Rolf was coming back to him.

The young lawyer had been putting together his outfit at Vandam's warehouse, because, despite the teasing from his friends, he was sure that Rolf would return to him.

When Rolf saw the pile of stuff that was gathered for that outfit, he stared at it aghast, then looked at Vandam, and together they roared. There was everything for light housekeeping and heavy doctoring, even chairs, a wash stand, a mirror, a mortar, and a pestle. Six canoes could scarcely have carried the lot.

When Rolf saw the huge pile of stuff collected for that outfit, he stared at it in shock, then looked at Vandam, and together they burst out laughing. There was everything for light housekeeping and serious medical care, including chairs, a washstand, a mirror, a mortar, and a pestle. Six canoes could barely have carried it all.

“'Tain't so much the young man as his mother,” explained Big Pete; “at first I tried to make 'em understand, but it was no use; so I says, 'All right, go ahead, as long as there's room in the warehouse.' I reckon I'll set on the fence and have some fun seein' Rolf ontangle the affair.”

“It's not really about the young man, but his mother,” Big Pete explained. “At first, I tried to help them understand, but it was pointless. So I said, 'Fine, go ahead, as long as there's space in the warehouse.' I guess I'll just sit back and enjoy watching Rolf sort things out.”

“Phew, pheeeww—ph-e-e-e-e-w,” was all Rolf could say in answer. But at last, “Wall, there's always a way. I sized him up as pretty level headed. We'll see.”

“Phew, pheeeww—ph-e-e-e-e-w,” was all Rolf could say in response. But finally, “Well, there’s always a way. I figured he was pretty level-headed. We’ll see.”

There was a way and it was easy, for, in a secret session, Rolf, Pete, and Van Cortlandt together sorted out the things needed. A small tent, blankets, extra clothes, guns, ammunition, delicate food for three months, a few medicines and toilet articles—a pretty good load for one canoe, but a trifle compared with the mountain of stuff piled up on the floor.

There was a simple way to do it, as Rolf, Pete, and Van Cortlandt got together in a private meeting to figure out what they needed. They packed a small tent, blankets, extra clothes, guns, ammo, enough food for three months, a few medicines, and toiletries—a decent load for one canoe, but nothing compared to the huge pile of stuff on the floor.

“Now, Mr. van Cortlandt,” said Rolf, “will you explain to your mother that we are going on with this so as to travel quickly, and will send back for the rest as we need it?”

“Now, Mr. van Cortlandt,” Rolf said, “could you please tell your mom that we’re moving forward with this so we can travel quickly and will send back for the others as we need them?”

A quiet chuckle was now heard from Big Pete. “Good! I wondered how he'd settle it.”

A soft laugh came from Big Pete. “Great! I was curious how he’d handle it.”

The governor and his lady saw them off; therefore, there was a crowd. The mother never before had noted what a frail and dangerous thing a canoe is. She cautioned her son never to venture out alone, and to be sure that he rubbed his chest with the pectoral balm she had made from such and such a famous receipt, the one that saved the life but not the limb of old Governor Stuyvesant, and come right home if you catch a cold; and wait at the first camp till the other things come, and (in a whisper) keep away from that horrid red Indian with the knife, and never fail to let every one know who you are, and write regularly, and don't forget to take your calomel Monday, Wednesday, and Friday, alternating with Peruvian bark Tuesday, Thursday, and Saturday, and squills on Sunday, except every other week, when he should devote Tuesdays, Fridays, and Sundays to rhubarb and catnip tea, except in the full moon, when the catnip was to be replaced with graveyard bergamot and the squills with opodeldoc in which an iron nail had been left for a week.

The governor and his wife saw them off, so there was a crowd. The mother had never realized how fragile and risky a canoe could be. She warned her son never to go out alone and to make sure he rubbed his chest with the special balm she had made from that famous recipe, the one that saved old Governor Stuyvesant's life but not his leg, and to come straight home if he caught a cold; and to wait at the first camp until the other stuff arrived, and (in a whisper) to stay away from that awful red Indian with the knife, and to always let everyone know who he was, and to write regularly, and not to forget to take his calomel on Monday, Wednesday, and Friday, alternating with Peruvian bark on Tuesday, Thursday, and Saturday, and squills on Sunday, except every other week, when he should use Tuesdays, Fridays, and Sundays for rhubarb and catnip tea, except during the full moon, when he was to swap out the catnip for graveyard bergamot and the squills for opodeldoc that had an iron nail soaked in it for a week.

So Henry was embraced, Rolf was hand-shaken, Quonab was nodded at, Skookum was wisely let alone, and the trim canoe swung from the dock. Amid hearty cheers, farewells, and “God speed ye's” it breasted the flood for the North.

So Henry received hugs, Rolf got handshakes, Quonab got a nod, Skookum was wisely left alone, and the sleek canoe swung away from the dock. Amid cheers, goodbyes, and "Godspeed to you," it headed out into the river towards the North.

And on the dock, with kerchief to her eyes, stood the mother, weeping to think that her boy was going far, far away from his home and friends in dear, cultured, refined Albany, away, away, to that remote and barbarous inaccessible region almost to the shore land of Lake Champlain.

And on the dock, with a handkerchief to her eyes, stood the mother, crying at the thought that her boy was going far, far away from his home and friends in dear, cultured, refined Albany, away, away, to that distant and wild, hard-to-reach area almost to the shore of Lake Champlain.





Chapter 58. Back to Indian Lake

Young Van Cortlandt, six feet two in his socks and thirty-four inches around the chest, was, as Rolf long afterward said, “awful good raw material, but awful raw.” Two years out of college, half of which had been spent at the law, had done little but launch him as a physical weakling and a social star. But his mental make-up was more than good; it was of large promise. He lacked neither courage nor sense, and the course he now followed was surely the best for man-making.

Young Van Cortlandt, six feet two in his socks and thirty-four inches around the chest, was, as Rolf later remarked, “great raw material, but pretty unrefined.” Two years out of college, with half of that time spent in law school, had done little more than establish him as a physically weak individual and a social standout. However, his mental makeup was not just good; it had great potential. He had both bravery and common sense, and the path he was now on was definitely the best for personal development.

Rolf never realized how much a farmer-woodman-canoeman-hunter-camper had to know, until now he met a man who did not know anything, nor dreamed how many wrong ways there were of doing a job, till he saw his new companion try it.

Rolf never understood how much a farmer, woodworker, canoeist, hunter, and camper needed to know until he met a guy who didn’t know anything and had no idea how many mistakes there were in doing a job until he watched his new companion attempt it.

There is no single simple thing that is a more complete measure of one's woodcraft than the lighting of a fire. There are a dozen good ways and a thousand wrong ones. A man who can light thirty fires on thirty successive days with thirty matches or thirty sparks from flint and steel is a graduated woodman, for the feat presupposes experience of many years and the skill that belongs to a winner.

There’s no single, straightforward way to fully measure someone's woodcraft skills like lighting a fire. There are plenty of effective methods and countless wrong ones. A person who can start thirty fires on thirty consecutive days using thirty matches or thirty sparks from flint and steel is a seasoned woodsman, as this achievement implies years of experience and the finesse of someone who has succeeded.

When Quonab and Rolf came back from taking each a load over the first little portage, they found Van Cortlandt getting ready for a fire with a great, solid pile of small logs, most of them wet and green. He knew how to use flint and steel, because that was the established household way of the times. Since childhood had he lighted the candle at home by this primitive means. When his pile of soggy logs was ready, he struck his flint, caught a spark on the tinder that is always kept on hand, blew it to a flame, thrust in between two of the wet logs, waited for all to blaze up, and wondered why the tiny blaze went out at once, no matter how often he tried.

When Quonab and Rolf returned after each carrying a load over the first small portage, they found Van Cortlandt preparing to start a fire with a large, sturdy stack of small logs, most of which were wet and green. He knew how to use flint and steel because that was the common method of the time. Since childhood, he had lit candles at home using this primitive technique. Once his pile of soggy logs was ready, he struck his flint, caught a spark on the tinder that was always kept nearby, blew it into a flame, pushed it between two of the wet logs, waited for everything to catch fire, and wondered why the small flame went out immediately, no matter how many times he tried.

When the others came back, Van Cortlandt remarked: “It doesn't seem to burn.” The Indian turned away in silent contempt. Rolf had hard work to keep the forms of respect, until the thought came: “I suppose I looked just as big a fool in his world at Albany.”

When the others returned, Van Cortlandt said, “It doesn’t seem to burn.” The Indian turned away in silent disdain. Rolf struggled to maintain a respectful demeanor until it occurred to him, “I guess I looked just as foolish in his world in Albany.”

“See,” said he, “green wood and wet wood won't do, but yonder is some birch bark and there's a pine root.” He took his axe and cut a few sticks from the root, then used his knife to make a sliver-fuzz of each; one piece, so resinous that it would not whittle, he smashed with the back of the axe into a lot of matchwood. With a handful of finely shredded birch bark he was now quite ready. A crack of the flint a blowing of the spark caught on the tinder from the box, a little flame that at once was magnified by the birch bark, and in a minute the pine splinters made a sputtering fire. Quonab did not even pay Van Cortlandt the compliment of using one of his logs. He cut a growing poplar, built a fireplace of the green logs around the blaze that Rolf had made, and the meal was ready in a few minutes.

“Look,” he said, “green and wet wood won’t work, but over there is some birch bark and a pine root.” He took his axe and cut a few sticks from the root, then used his knife to make tiny shavings from each. One piece was so resinous that it wouldn’t carve, so he smashed it with the back of the axe into a pile of kindling. With a handful of finely shredded birch bark, he was now all set. A spark from the flint ignited the tinder from the box, and a small flame quickly grew with the birch bark, and within a minute, the pine splinters created a crackling fire. Quonab didn’t even bother to use one of Van Cortlandt’s logs. He cut down a live poplar and built a fireplace out of the green logs around the fire Rolf had started, and the meal was ready in just a few minutes.

Van Cortlandt was not a fool; merely it was all new to him. But his attention was directed to fire-making now, and long before they reached their cabin he had learned this, the first of the woodman's arts—he could lay and light a fire. And when, weeks later, he not only made the flint fire, but learned in emergency to make the rubbing stick spark, his cup of joy was full. He felt he was learning.

Van Cortlandt wasn’t foolish; it was just all new to him. But his focus was on making fire now, and long before they got to their cabin, he had mastered the first of the woodsman's skills—he could set up and light a fire. When, weeks later, he not only created a spark with flint but also learned how to make a spark using a rubbing stick in an emergency, his happiness was complete. He felt like he was really learning.

Determined to be in everything, now he paddled all day; at first with vigour, then mechanically, at last feebly and painfully. Late in the afternoon they made the first long portage; it was a quarter mile. Rolf took a hundred pounds, Quonab half as much more, Van Cortlandt tottered slowly behind with his pill-kit and his paddle. That night, on his ample mattress, he slept the sleep of utter exhaustion. Next day he did little and said nothing. It came on to rain; he raised a huge umbrella and crouched under it till the storm was over. But the third day he began to show signs of new life, and before they reached the Schroon's mouth, on the fifth day, his young frame was already responding to the elixir of the hills.

Determined to be involved in everything, he paddled all day; at first with energy, then mechanically, and finally weakly and painfully. Late in the afternoon, they made the first long portage; it was a quarter mile. Rolf carried a hundred pounds, Quonab half as much, while Van Cortlandt slowly struggled behind with his pill kit and paddle. That night, on his large mattress, he slept the sleep of complete exhaustion. The next day he did little and said nothing. It started to rain; he opened a large umbrella and huddled under it until the storm passed. But by the third day, he began to show signs of renewed life, and before they reached the mouth of the Schroon on the fifth day, his young body was already responding to the energy of the hills.

It was very clear that they could not take half of the stuff that they had cached at the Schroon's mouth, so that a new adjustment was needed and still a cache to await another trip.

It was obvious that they couldn't take half of the things they had stored at Schroon's mouth, so a new plan was needed along with another stash for the next trip.

That night as they sat by their sixth camp fire, Van Cortlandt pondered over the recent days, and they seemed many since he had left home. He felt much older and stronger. He felt not only less strange, but positively intimate with the life, the river, the canoe, and his comrades; and, pleased with his winnings, he laid his hand on Skookum, slumbering near, only to arouse in response a savage growl, as that important animal arose and moved to the other side of the fire. Never did small dog give tall man a more deliberate snub. “You can't do that with Skookum; you must wait till he's ready,” said Rolf.

That night, as they sat by their sixth campfire, Van Cortlandt reflected on the recent days, which felt like a lot since he had left home. He felt much older and stronger. He didn't just feel less out of place; he felt genuinely connected to the life, the river, the canoe, and his companions. Happy with his achievements, he put his hand on Skookum, who was sleeping nearby, only to elicit a fierce growl in response as that important little dog got up and moved to the other side of the fire. Never had a small dog snubbed a tall man more pointedly. “You can't do that with Skookum; you have to wait until he's ready,” Rolf said.

The journey up the Hudson with its “mean” waters and its “carries” was much as before. Then they came to the eagle's nest and the easy waters of Jesup's River, and without important incident they landed at the cabin. The feeling of “home again” spread over the camp and every one was gay.

The trip up the Hudson with its rough waters and its portages was pretty much the same as before. Then they reached the eagle's nest and the smooth waters of Jesup's River, and without any major events, they arrived at the cabin. The feeling of “home again” washed over the camp, and everyone was in a cheerful mood.





Chapter 59. Van Cortlandt's Drugs

“AIN'T ye feelin' all right?” said Rolf, one bright, calomel morning, as he saw Van Cortlandt preparing his daily physic.

“Are you feeling alright?” said Rolf, one bright, calomel morning, as he saw Van Cortlandt getting ready for his daily medicine.

“Why, yes; I'm feeling fine; I'm better every day,” was the jovial reply.

"Of course! I'm doing great; I'm getting better every day," was the cheerful response.

“Course I don't know, but my mother used to say: 'Med'cine's the stuff makes a sick man well, an' a well man sick.”'

“Of course I don't know, but my mom used to say: 'Medicine is what makes a sick person better, and a healthy person sick.'”

“My mother and your mother would have fought at sight, as you may judge. B-u-t,” he added with reflective slowness, and a merry twinkle in his eye, “if things were to be judged by their product, I am afraid your mother would win easily,” and he laid his long, thin, scrawny hand beside the broad, strong hand of the growing youth.

“My mom and your mom would have fought on sight, as you can imagine. B-u-t,” he added slowly, with a playful sparkle in his eye, “if we were to judge based on the results, I’m afraid your mom would win hands down,” and he laid his long, thin, scrawny hand next to the broad, strong hand of the growing young man.

“Old Sylvanne wasn't far astray when he said: 'There aren't any sick, 'cept them as thinks they are,”' said Rolf. “I suppose I ought to begin to taper off,” was the reply. But the tapering was very sudden. Before a week went by, it seemed desirable to go back for the stuff left in cache on the Schroon, where, of course, it was subject to several risks. There seemed no object in taking Van Cortlandt back, but they could not well leave him alone. He went. He had kept time with fair regularity—calomel, rhubarb; calomel, rhubarb; calomel, rhubarb, squills—but Rolf's remarks had sunk into his intelligence, as a red-hot shot will sink through shingles, letting in light and creating revolution.

“Old Sylvanne wasn't totally off-base when he said: 'There aren't any sick, 'cept those who think they are,'” said Rolf. “I guess I should start to cut back,” was the response. But the cutback was very abrupt. Before a week passed, it seemed like a good idea to go back for the supplies left in storage on the Schroon, where, of course, it was exposed to several risks. There seemed to be no reason to take Van Cortlandt back, but they couldn't just leave him alone. So he came along. He had been keeping pretty regular time—calomel, rhubarb; calomel, rhubarb; calomel, rhubarb, squills—but Rolf's comments had made an impact on him, like a red-hot shot piercing through shingles, letting in light and sparking upheaval.

This was a rhubarb morning. He drank his potion, then, carefully stoppering the bottle, he placed it with its companions in a box and stowed that near the middle of the canoe. “I'll be glad when it's finished,” he said reflectively; “I don't believe I need it now. I wish sometimes I could run short of it all.”

This was a chaotic morning. He took his drink, then, carefully capping the bottle, he put it with the others in a box and stored that near the center of the canoe. “I'll be glad when it’s done,” he said thoughtfully; “I don’t think I need it anymore. Sometimes I wish I could just run out of it all.”

That was what Rolf had been hoping for. Without such a remark, he would not have dared do as he did. He threw the tent cover over the canoe amidships, causing the unstable craft to cant: “That won't do,” he remarked, and took out several articles, including the medicine chest, put them ashore under the bushes, and, when he replaced them, contrived that the medicine should be forgotten.

That was what Rolf had been hoping for. Without that comment, he wouldn’t have dared to act as he did. He tossed the tent cover over the canoe in the middle, making the wobbly craft tilt: “That won’t work,” he said, and took out several items, including the first aid kit, placed them onshore under the bushes, and, when he put them back, made sure that the first aid kit was overlooked.

Next morning Van Cortlandt, rising to prepare his calomel, got a shock to find it not.

Next morning, Van Cortlandt woke up to get his calomel ready and was shocked to find he didn’t have any.

“It strikes me,” says Rolf, “the last time I saw that, it was on the bank when we trimmed the canoe.” Yes, there could be no doubt of it. Van must live his life in utter druglessness for a time. It gave him somewhat of a scare, much like that a young swimmer gets when he finds he has drifted away from his floats; and, like that same beginner, it braced him to help himself. So Van found that he could swim without corks.

“It strikes me,” says Rolf, “the last time I saw that, it was on the bank when we were trimming the canoe.” Yes, there was no doubt about it. Van must live his life completely clean for a while. It gave him quite a scare, similar to what a young swimmer feels when he realizes he has drifted away from his floats; and, like that same beginner, it motivated him to take action. So Van discovered that he could swim without any aids.

They made a rapid journey down, and in a week they were back with the load.

They made a quick trip down, and within a week, they returned with the load.

There was the potion chest where they had left it. Van Cortlandt picked it up with a sheepish smile, and they sat down for evening meal. Presently Rolf said: “I mind once I seen three little hawks in a nest together. The mother was teaching them to fly. Two of them started off all right, and pretty soon were scooting among the treetops. The other was scared. He says: 'No, mother, I never did fly, and I'm scared I'd get killed if I tried.' At last the mother got mad and shoved him over. As soon as he felt he was gone, he spread out his wings to save himself. The wings were all right enough, and long before he struck the ground, he was flying.”

There was the potion chest where they had left it. Van Cortlandt picked it up with a shy smile, and they sat down for dinner. Soon, Rolf said, “I remember once seeing three little hawks in a nest together. The mother was teaching them to fly. Two of them took off without any issues and were soon darting among the treetops. The other was too scared. He said, 'No, mom, I've never flown before, and I'm afraid I'll get hurt if I try.' Finally, the mother got frustrated and pushed him over. As soon as he realized he was falling, he spread out his wings to save himself. His wings were perfectly fine, and long before he hit the ground, he was flying.”

Chapter 60. Van Cortlandt's Adventure

The coming of Van had compelled the trappers to build a new and much larger cabin. When they were planning it, the lawyer said: “If I were, you, I'd make it twenty by thirty, with a big stone fireplace.”

The arrival of Van had forced the trappers to construct a new and much larger cabin. While they were planning it, the lawyer said, “If I were you, I'd make it twenty by thirty, with a big stone fireplace.”

“Why?”

"Why?"

“I might want to come back some day and bring a friend.”

“I might want to come back someday and bring a friend.”

Rolf looked at him keenly. Here was an important possibility, but it was too difficult to handle such large logs without a team; so the new cabin was made fifteen by twenty, and the twenty-foot logs were very slim indeed. Van Cortlandt took much trouble to fix it up inside with two white birch bedsteads, balsam beds, and basswood mats on the floor.

Rolf stared at him closely. This was an important opportunity, but it was too challenging to manage such large logs without a crew; so the new cabin was built to be fifteen by twenty feet, and the twenty-foot logs were quite thin. Van Cortlandt worked hard to set it up inside with two white birch beds, balsam mattresses, and basswood mats on the floor.

After the first depression, he had recovered quickly since abandoning his apothecary diet, and now he was more and more in their life, one of themselves. But Quonab never liked him. The incident of the fire-making was one of many which reduced him far below zero in the red man's esteem. When he succeeded with the rubbing-stick fire, he rose a few points; since then he had fallen a little, nearly every day, and now an incident took place which reduced him even below his original low level.

After the first depression, he bounced back quickly after ditching his apothecary diet, and now he was increasingly part of their lives, one of them. But Quonab never warmed up to him. The fire-making incident was just one of many that made him lose significant respect in the eyes of the Native man. When he finally managed to create fire with the rubbing stick, his standing improved slightly; however, since then, he had slipped a bit almost every day, and now another event occurred that dropped him even further beneath his already low status.

In spite of his admirable perseverance, Van Cortlandt failed in his attempts to get a deer. This was depressing and unfortunate because of the Indian's evident contempt, shown, not in any act, but rather in his avoiding Van and never noticing him; while Van, on his part, discovered that, but for this, that, and the other negligence on Quonab's part, he himself might have done thus and so.

Despite his impressive determination, Van Cortlandt failed in his attempts to hunt a deer. This was disheartening and unfortunate because of the Indian's clear disdain, shown not through actions, but by consistently ignoring Van and not acknowledging him; meanwhile, Van realized that if it weren't for this, that, and some other slip-ups on Quonab's part, he himself could have succeeded.

To relieve the situation, Rolf said privately to the Indian, “Can't we find some way of giving him a deer?”

To ease the situation, Rolf said quietly to the Indian, “Can’t we figure out a way to give him a deer?”

“Humph,” was the voluble reply.

“Humph,” was the loud reply.

“I've heard of that jack-light trick. Can ye work it?”

"I've heard of that jack-light trick. Can you do it?"

“Ugh!”

"Ugh!"

So it was arranged.

So it was decided.

Quonab prepared a box which he filled with sand. On three sides of it he put a screen of bark, eighteen inches high, and in the middle he made a good torch of pine knots with a finely frizzled lighter of birch bark. Ordinarily this is placed on the bow of the canoe, and, at the right moment, is lighted by the sportsman. But Quonab distrusted Van as a lighter, so placed this ancient search-light on the after thwart in front of himself and pointing forward, but quartering.

Quonab set up a box that he filled with sand. He put a bark screen, eighteen inches high, on three sides of it, and in the middle, he made a sturdy torch out of pine knots, topped with finely shredded birch bark. Normally, this torch is placed on the front of the canoe and lit by the sportsman at the right moment. But Quonab didn’t trust Van to light it, so he positioned this old searchlight on the back seat in front of himself, angled slightly forward.

The scheme is to go along the lake shore about dark, as the deer come to the water to drink or eat lily pads. As soon as a deer is located by the sound, the canoe is silently brought to the place, the torch is lighted, the deer stops to gaze at this strange sunrise; its body is not usually visible in the dim light, but the eyes reflect the glare like two lamps; and now the gunner, with a volley of buckshot, plays his part. It is the easiest and most unsportsmanlike of all methods. It has long been declared illegal; and was especially bad, because it victimized chiefly the does and fawns.

The plan is to go along the lake shore at dusk, as the deer come to the water to drink or munch on lily pads. As soon as a deer is spotted by the sound, the canoe is quietly rowed to the spot, the torch is lit, and the deer stops to stare at this strange light; its body isn't usually visible in the low light, but its eyes shine like two lamps; and now the shooter, with a blast of buckshot, takes his shot. It's the easiest and least sporting method of all. It's long been considered illegal; and it was particularly bad because it mainly targeted does and fawns.

But now it seemed the proper way to “save Van Cortlandt's face.”

But now it seemed like the right thing to do to "save Van Cortlandt's face."

So forth they went; Van armed with his double-barrelled shotgun and carrying in his belt a huge and ornamental hunting knife, the badge of woodcraft or of idiocy, according as yon took Van's view or Quonab's. Rolf stayed in camp.

So they continued on their way; Van had his double-barreled shotgun and a big, fancy hunting knife strapped to his belt, which he saw as a sign of his skills in the outdoors, while Quonab thought it was just foolish. Rolf stayed back at the campsite.

At dusk they set out, a slight easterly breeze compelling them to take the eastern shore, for the deer must not smell them. As they silently crossed the lake, the guide's quick eye caught sight of a long wimple on the surface, across the tiny ripples of the breeze--surely the wake of some large animal, most likely a deer. Good luck. Putting on all speed, he sent the canoe flying after it, and in three or four minutes they sighted a large, dark creature moving fast to escape, but it was low on the water, and had no horns. They could not make out what it was. Van sat tensely gazing, with gun in hand, but the canoe overran the swimmer; it disappeared under the prow, and a moment later there scrambled over the gunwale a huge black fisher.

At dusk, they set out, a light easterly breeze pushing them to the eastern shore, so the deer wouldn't catch their scent. As they quietly crossed the lake, the guide's sharp eye spotted a long wake on the surface, cutting through the tiny ripples of the breeze—definitely the trail of some large animal, probably a deer. Good luck. Accelerating, he urged the canoe to chase after it, and in three or four minutes, they spotted a large, dark creature moving quickly to escape, but it was low in the water and had no antlers. They couldn't tell what it was. Van sat tensely, gun in hand, but the canoe overtook the swimmer; it vanished beneath the bow, and a moment later, a huge black fisher scrambled over the edge.

“Knife,” cried Quonab, in mortal fear that Van would shoot and blow a hole throught the canoe.

“Knife,” shouted Quonab, terrified that Van would shoot and put a hole through the canoe.

The fisher went straight at the lawyer hissing and snarling with voice like a bear.

The fisherman charged at the lawyer, hissing and snarling with a voice like a bear.

Van grasped his knife, and then and there began A most extraordinary fight; holding his assailant off as best he could, he stabbed again and again with that long blade. But the fisher seemed cased in iron. The knife glanced off or was solidly stopped again and again, while the fierce, active creature, squirming, struggling, clawing, and tearing had wounded the lawyer in a dozen places. Jab, jab went the knife in vain. The fisher seemed to gain in strength and fury. It fastened on Van's leg just below the knee, and grow/ed and tore like a bulldog. Van seized its throat in both hands and choked with all his strength. The brute at length let go and sprang back to attack again, when Quonab saw his chance and felled it with a blow of the paddle across the nose. It tumbled forward; Van lunged to avoid what seemed a new attack, and in a moment the canoe upset, and all were swimming for their lives.

Van grabbed his knife, and right then started a crazy fight; holding off his attacker as best he could, he stabbed again and again with that long blade. But the fisher seemed to be made of iron. The knife bounced off or was firmly blocked time after time, while the fierce, active creature, squirming, struggling, clawing, and tearing, had injured the lawyer in a dozen spots. Jab, jab went the knife in vain. The fisher seemed to gain strength and fury. It latched onto Van's leg just below the knee and bit and tore like a bulldog. Van grabbed its throat with both hands and choked it with all his might. Eventually, the creature let go and jumped back to attack again, when Quonab saw his chance and knocked it down with a blow of the paddle across the nose. It tumbled forward; Van lunged to avoid what looked like a new attack, and in a moment, the canoe tipped over, and everyone was swimming for their lives.

As luck would have it, they had drifted to the west side and the water was barely six feet deep. So Quonab swam ashore holding onto a paddle, and hauling the canoe, while Van waded ashore, hauling the dead fisher by the tail.

As fate would have it, they had floated to the west side where the water was only about six feet deep. So Quonab swam to shore holding a paddle and pulling the canoe along, while Van waded to shore, dragging the dead fish by its tail.

Quonab seized a drift pole and stuck it in the mud as near the place as possible, so they could come again in daylight to get the guns; then silently paddled back to camp.

Quonab grabbed a drift pole and pushed it into the mud as close to the spot as he could, so they could come back in the daylight to retrieve the guns; then he silently paddled back to camp.

Next day, thanks to the pole, they found the place and recovered first Van's gun, second, that mighty hunting knife; and learned to the amazement and disgust of all that it had not been out of its sheath: during all that stabbing and slashing, the keen edge was hidden and the knife was wearing its thick, round scabbard of leather and studs of brass.

The next day, thanks to the pole, they located the spot and retrieved first Van's gun and then that powerful hunting knife; to everyone's shock and disgust, they discovered that it had never even come out of its sheath: throughout all that stabbing and slashing, the sharp edge remained concealed while the knife was still in its sturdy, round leather sheath with brass studs.





Chapter 61. Rolf Learns Something from Van

     A man can't handle his own case, any more than a delirious
     doctor kin give himself the right physic.—Saying of Si
     Sylvanne.
     A man can't manage his own situation any more than a delirious doctor can prescribe the right medicine for himself. —Saying of Si Sylvanne.

However superior Rolf might feel in the canoe or the woods, there was one place where Van Cortlandt took the lead, and that was in the long talks they had by the campfire or in Van's own shanty which Quonab rarely entered.

However superior Rolf might feel in the canoe or the woods, there was one place where Van Cortlandt took the lead, and that was in the long talks they had by the campfire or in Van's own cabin, which Quonab rarely entered.

The most interesting subjects treated in these were ancient Greece and modern Albany. Van Cortlandt was a good Greek scholar, and, finding an intelligent listener, he told the stirring tales of royal Ilion, Athens, and Pergamos, with the loving enthusiasm of one whom the teachers found it easy to instruct in classic lore. And when he recited or intoned the rolling Greek heroics of the siege of Troy, Rolf listened with an interest that was strange, considering that he knew not a word of it. But he said, “It sounded like real talk, and the tramp of men that were all astir with something big a-doing.”

The most interesting topics discussed were ancient Greece and modern Albany. Van Cortlandt was a skilled Greek scholar, and with an attentive listener, he shared the thrilling stories of royal Ilion, Athens, and Pergamos, with the passionate enthusiasm of someone who found it easy to learn classic knowledge from his teachers. And when he recited or chanted the grand Greek epics of the siege of Troy, Rolf listened with an unusual interest, even though he didn't understand a word. But he remarked, “It sounded like real conversation, and the march of men who were all stirred up about something important happening.”

Albany and politics, too, were vital strains, and life at the Government House, with the struggling rings and cabals, social and political. These were extraordinarily funny and whimsical to Rolf. No doubt because Van Cortlandt presented them that way. And he more than once wondered how rational humans could waste their time in such tomfoolery and childish things as all conventionalities seemed to be. Van Cortlandt smiled at his remarks, but made no answer for long.

Albany and politics were also important aspects, and life at the Government House, with its competing factions and groups, both social and political, was at times incredibly amusing and quirky to Rolf. This was likely because Van Cortlandt portrayed them in that light. More than once, he found himself questioning how sensible people could squander their time on such nonsense and trivial matters that all the social norms seemed to represent. Van Cortlandt smiled at his comments but didn’t respond for quite a while.

One day, the first after the completion of Van Cortlandt's cabin, as the two approached, the owner opened the door and stood aside for Rolf to enter.

One day, the day after Van Cortlandt finished building his cabin, as the two approached, the owner opened the door and stepped aside for Rolf to come in.

“Go ahead,” said Rolf.

"Go ahead," Rolf said.

“After you,” was the polite reply.

“After you,” was the courteous response.

“Oh, go on,” rejoined the lad, in mixed amusement and impatience.

“Oh, come on,” replied the boy, with a mix of amusement and impatience.

Van Cortlandt touched his hat and went in.

Van Cortlandt tipped his hat and walked in.

Inside, Rolf turned squarely and said: “The other day you said there was a reason for all kinds o' social tricks; now will you tell me what the dickens is the why of all these funny-do's? It 'pears to me a free-born American didn't ought to take off his hat to any one but God.”

Inside, Rolf turned and said, “The other day you mentioned there was a reason for all sorts of social customs; now can you tell me what on earth the point of all these antics is? It seems to me a free-born American shouldn't have to take off his hat to anyone except God.”

Van Cortlandt chuckled softly and said: “You may be very sure that everything that is done in the way of social usage is the result of common-sense, with the exception of one or two things that have continued after the reason for them has passed, like the buttons you have behind on your coat; they were put there originally to button the tails out of the way of your sword. Sword wearing and using have passed away, but still you see the buttons.

Van Cortlandt chuckled softly and said, “You can be sure that everything done in terms of social customs comes from common sense, except for a couple of things that have stuck around even after their original purpose faded away, like the buttons on the back of your coat; they were originally meant to hold the tails out of the way of your sword. Wearing and using swords is a thing of the past, but those buttons are still around.”

“As to taking off your hat to no man: it depends entirely on what you mean by it; and, being a social custom, you must accept its social meaning.

“As for taking off your hat to no one: it really depends on what you mean by that; and since it's a social custom, you have to accept its social significance."

“In the days of knight errantry, every one meeting a stranger had to suppose him an enemy; ten to one he was. And the sign and proof of friendly intention was raising the right hand without a weapon in it. The hand was raised high, to be seen as far as they could shoot with a bow, and a further proof was added when they raised the vizor and exposed the face. The danger of the highway continued long after knights ceased to wear armour; so, with the same meaning, the same gesture was used, but with a lifting of the hat. If a man did not do it, he was either showing contempt, or hostility for the other, or proving himself an ignorant brute. So, in all civilized countries, lifting the hat is a sign of mutual confidence and respect.”

“In the days of chivalry, anyone who encountered a stranger had to assume he was an enemy; chances were he was. The sign and proof of friendly intent was raising the right hand without a weapon in it. The hand was raised high enough to be seen from as far away as someone could shoot an arrow, and an additional proof came when they lifted their visor to show their face. The danger on the roads lasted long after knights stopped wearing armor; thus, the same gesture continued, but now it involved tipping the hat. If a man didn’t do this, he was either showing disrespect, hostility, or proving himself to be an ignorant brute. Therefore, in all civilized countries, tipping the hat is a sign of mutual trust and respect.”

“Well! that makes it all look different. But why should you touch your hat when you went ahead of me just now?”

“Well! That changes everything. But why did you tip your hat when you walked ahead of me just now?”

“Because this is my house; you are my guest. I am supposed to serve you in reasonable ways and give you precedence. Had I let you open my door for me, it would have been putting you in the place of my servant; to balance that, I give you the sign of equality and respect.”

“Because this is my house; you are my guest. I’m supposed to serve you in reasonable ways and prioritize you. If I had let you open the door for me, it would have put you in the position of my servant; to balance that, I’m offering you a sign of equality and respect.”

“H'm,” said Rolf, “'it just shows,' as old Sylvanne sez, 'this yer steel-trap, hair-trigger, cocksure jedgment don't do. An' the more a man learns, the less sure he gits. An' things as hez lasted a long time ain't liable to be on a rotten foundation.'”

“Hmm,” said Rolf, “'this just goes to show,' as old Sylvanne says, 'that this steel-trap, hair-trigger, overconfident judgment doesn’t cut it. And the more a person learns, the less certain they become. And things that have lasted a long time aren’t likely built on a shaky foundation.'”





Chapter 62. The Charm of Song

With a regular tum ta tum ta, came a weird sound from the sunrise rock one morning, as Van slipped out of his cabin.

With a steady thump thump, a strange noise came from the sunrise rock one morning as Van stepped out of his cabin.

     “Ag-aj-way-o-say
     Pem-o-say
     Gezhik-om era-bid ah-keen
     Ena-bid ah-keen”
 
     “Ag-aj-way-o-say  
     Pem-o-say  
     Gezhik-om era-bid ah-keen  
     Ena-bid ah-keen”

“What's he doing, Rolf?”

"What's he up to, Rolf?"

“That's his sunrise prayer,” was the answer.

"That's his morning prayer," was the answer.

“Do you know what it means?”

“Do you know what that means?”

“Yes, it ain't much; jest 'Oh, thou that walkest in the sky in the morning, I greet thee.”'

“Yes, it’s not much; just ‘Oh, you who walk in the sky in the morning, I greet you.’”

“Why, I didn't know Indians had such performances; that's exactly like the priests of Osiris. Did any one teach him? I mean any white folk.”

“Wow, I didn’t know Native Americans had shows like that; it’s just like the priests of Osiris. Did someone teach him? I mean, any white people?”

“No, it's always been the Indian way. They have a song or a prayer for most every big event, sunrise, sunset, moonrise, good hunting, and another for when they're sick, or when they're going on a journey, or when their heart is bad.”

“No, it's always been the Indian way. They have a song or a prayer for almost every major event: sunrise, sunset, moonrise, good hunting, and another for when they're sick, or when they're going on a journey, or when their heart is troubled.”

“You astonish me. I had no idea they were so human. It carries me back to the temple of Delphi. It is worthy of Cassandra of Ilion. I supposed all Indians were just savage Indians that hunted till their bellies were full, and slept till they were empty again.”

“You amaze me. I had no idea they were so human. It takes me back to the temple of Delphi. It's worthy of Cassandra of Ilion. I thought all Indians were just wild folks who hunted until they were full and then slept until they were hungry again.”

“H'm,” rejoined Rolf, with a gentle laugh. “I see you also have been doing some 'hair-trigger, steel-trap, cocksure jedgin'.'”

“Hmm,” Rolf replied with a soft laugh. “I see you've also been doing some 'hair-trigger, steel-trap, cocksure jedgin.'”

“I wonder if he'd like to hear some of my songs?”

“I wonder if he’d like to hear some of my songs?”

“It's worth trying; anyway, I would,” said Rolf.

“It's worth a shot; I would do it anyway,” said Rolf.

That night, by the fire, Van sang the “Gay Cavalier,” “The Hunting of John Peel,” and “Bonnie Dundee.” He had a fine baritone voice. He was most acceptable in the musical circles of Albany. Rolf was delighted, Skookum moaned sympathetically, and Quonab sat nor moved till the music was over. He said nothing, but Rolf felt that it was a point gained, and, trying to follow it up, said:

That night, by the fire, Van sang “The Gay Cavalier,” “The Hunting of John Peel,” and “Bonnie Dundee.” He had a great baritone voice and was well-liked in Albany’s music scene. Rolf was thrilled, Skookum groaned sympathetically, and Quonab stayed still until the music ended. He didn’t say anything, but Rolf sensed it was a win, and trying to build on that, he said:

“Here's your drum, Quonab; won't you sing 'The Song of the Wabanaki?'” But it was not well timed, and the Indian shook his head.

“Here’s your drum, Quonab; will you sing 'The Song of the Wabanaki?'” But it was not the right moment, and the Indian shook his head.

“Say, Van,” said Rolf, (Van Cortlandt had suggested this abbreviation) “you'll never stand right with Quonab till you kill a deer.”

“Hey, Van,” Rolf said, (Van Cortlandt had suggested this short form) “you'll never really be in good standing with Quonab until you take down a deer.”

“I've done some trying.”

"I've made some attempts."

“Well, now, we'll go out to-morrow evening and try once more. What do you think of the weather, Quonab?”

“Well, now, we’ll head out tomorrow evening and give it another shot. What do you think about the weather, Quonab?”

“Storm begin noon and last three days,” was the brief answer, as the red man walked away.

“Storm starts at noon and lasts three days,” was the quick reply as the Native man walked away.

“That settles it,” said Rolf; “we wait.”

“That’s it,” Rolf said; “we wait.”

Van was surprised, and all the more so when in an hour the sky grew black and heavy rain set in, with squalls.

Van was surprised, and even more so when, within an hour, the sky turned dark and heavy rain started pouring down, accompanied by gusts of wind.

“How in the name of Belshazzar's weather bugler does he tell?”

“How on earth does he know?”

“I guess you better not ask him, if you want to know. I'll find out and tell you later.”

“I guess you shouldn't ask him if you want to know. I'll find out and tell you later.”

Rolf learned, not easily or at single talk:

Rolf learned, not easily or in just one conversation:

“Yesterday the chipmunks worked hard; to-day there are none to be seen.

“Yesterday the chipmunks worked hard; today there are none to be seen."

“Yesterday the loons were wailing; now they are still, and no small birds are about.

“Yesterday the loons were crying; now they are quiet, and there are no little birds around.”

“Yesterday it was a yellow sunrise; to-day a rosy dawn.

“Yesterday it was a bright yellow sunrise; today a lovely pink dawn.”

“Last night the moon changed and had a thick little ring.

“Last night, the moon changed and had a thick little ring.

“It has not rained for ten days, and this is the third day of easterly winds.

“It hasn't rained for ten days, and today is the third day of easterly winds.

“There was no dew last night. I saw Tongue Mountain at daybreak; my tom-tom will not sing.

“There was no dew last night. I saw Tongue Mountain at dawn; my drum won't sing.

“The smoke went three ways at dawn, and Skookum's nose was hot.”

“The smoke drifted in three directions at dawn, and Skookum's nose felt warm.”

So they rested, not knowing, but forced to believe, and it was not till the third day that the sky broke; the west wind began to pay back its borrowings from the east, and the saying was proved that “three days' rain will empty any sky.”

So they rested, not knowing but having to believe, and it wasn't until the third day that the sky finally opened up; the west wind started to repay what it owed to the east, and the saying was shown to be true that “three days' rain will clear any sky.”

That evening, after their meal, Rolf and Van launched the canoe and paddled down the lake. A mile from camp they landed, for this was a favourite deer run. Very soon Rolf pointed to the ground. He had found a perfectly fresh track, but Van seemed not to comprehend. They went along it, Rolf softly and silently, Van with his long feet and legs making a dangerous amount of clatter. Rolf turned and whispered, “That won't do. You must not stand on dry sticks.” Van endeavoured to move more cautiously and thought he was doing well, but Rolf found it very trying to his patience and began to understand how Quonab had felt about himself a year ago. “See,” said Rolf, “lift your legs so; don't turn your feet out that way. Look at the place before you put it down again; feel with your toe to make sure there is no dead stick, then wriggle it down to the solid ground. Of course, you'd do better in moccasins. Never brush past any branches; lift them aside and don't let them scratch; ease them back to the place; never try to bend a dry branch; go around it,” etc. Van had not thought of these things, but now he grasped them quickly, and they made a wonderful improvement in his way of going.

That evening, after they had dinner, Rolf and Van launched the canoe and paddled down the lake. A mile from camp, they landed because this was a favorite deer path. Soon, Rolf pointed to the ground. He had found a fresh track, but Van didn’t seem to get it. They followed the track, Rolf moving softly and silently, while Van clomped along loudly with his long legs and feet. Rolf turned and whispered, “That’s not going to work. You can’t step on dry sticks.” Van tried to move more carefully and thought he was doing well, but Rolf found it really frustrating and began to see how Quonab felt about him a year ago. “Look,” Rolf said, “lift your legs like this; don’t turn your feet out like that. Check the ground before you step again; feel with your toe to make sure there’s no dead stick, then ease it down to solid ground. You’d do better in moccasins. Don’t brush past branches; lift them aside and don’t let them scratch you; push them back into place; never try to bend a dry branch; go around it,” and so on. Van hadn’t thought of these things, but now he picked them up quickly, and they made a huge difference in how he moved.

They came again to the water's edge; across a little bay Rolf sighted at once the form of a buck, perfectly still, gazing their way, wondering, no doubt, what made those noises.

They arrived again at the water's edge; across a small bay, Rolf immediately spotted a buck, perfectly still, looking their way, probably wondering what was making those sounds.

“Here's your chance,” he whispered.

"Here’s your chance," he whispered.

“Where?” was the eager query.

“Where?” was the excited question.

“There; see that gray and white thing?”

“There; see that gray and white thing?”

“I can't see him.”

"I can't see him."

For five minutes Rolf tried in vain to make his friend see that statuesque form; for five minutes it never moved. Then, sensing danger, the buck gave a bound and was lost to view.

For five minutes, Rolf tried unsuccessfully to get his friend to notice that statue-like figure; for five minutes, it didn’t move at all. Then, sensing danger, the buck jumped and disappeared from sight.

It was disheartening. Rolf sat down, nearly disgusted; then one of Sylvanne's remarks came to him: “It don't prove any one a fool, coz he can't play your game.”

It was disheartening. Rolf sat down, almost feeling sick; then one of Sylvanne's comments came to him: “It doesn't prove anyone a fool just because they can't play your game.”

Presently Rolf said, “Van, hev ye a book with ye?”

Presently, Rolf said, “Van, do you have a book with you?”

“Yes, I have my Virgil.”

“Yes, I have my Virgil.”

“Read me the first page.”

“Please read me the first page.”

Van read it, holding the book six inches from his nose.

Van read it, holding the book six inches from his face.

“Let's see ye read this page there,” and Rolf held it up four feet away.

“Let’s see you read this page here,” Rolf said, holding it up four feet away.

“I can't; it's nothing but a dim white spot.”

“I can’t; it’s just a blurry white spot.”

“Well, can ye see that loon out there?”

“Well, can you see that guy out there?”

“You mean that long, dark thing in the bay?”

“You mean that long, dark shape in the bay?”

“No, that's a pine log close to,” said Rolf, with a laugh, “away out half a mile.”

“No, that's a pine log nearby,” Rolf said with a laugh, “out there about half a mile.”

“No, I can't see anything but shimmers.”

“No, I can only see shimmers.”

“I thought so. It's no use your trying to shoot deer till ye get a pair of specs to fit yer eyes. You have brains enough, but you haven't got the eyesight of a hunter. You stay here till I go see if I have any luck.”

“I thought so. There's no point in trying to shoot deer until you get a pair of glasses that fit your eyes. You’ve got enough brains, but you don’t have the eyesight of a hunter. Stay here while I go see if I have any luck.”

Rolf melted into the woods. In twenty minutes Van heard a shot and very soon Rolf reappeared, carrying a two-year-old buck, and they returned to their camp by nightfall. Quonab glanced at their faces as they passed carrying the little buck. They tried to look inscrutable. But the Indian was not deceived. He gave out nothing but a sizzling “Humph!”

Rolf disappeared into the woods. About twenty minutes later, Van heard a gunshot, and soon Rolf came back, carrying a two-year-old buck. They made their way back to camp as night fell. Quonab looked at their faces as they walked by with the little buck. They tried to appear unfazed, but the Indian saw right through it. He just let out a sharp "Humph!"





Chapter 63. The Redemption of Van

“WHEN things is looking black as black can be, it's a sure sign of luck coming your way.” so said Si Sylvanne, and so it proved to Van Cortlandt The Moon of the Falling Leaves was waning, October was nearly over, the day of his return to Albany was near, as he was to go out in time for the hunters to return in open water. He was wonderfully improved in strength and looks. His face was brown and ruddy. He had abandoned all drugs, and had gained fully twenty pounds in weight. He had learned to make a fire, paddle a canoe, and go through the woods in semi-silence. His scholarly talk had given him large place in Rolf's esteem, and his sweet singing had furnished a tiny little shelf for a modicum of Quonab's respect. But his attempts to get a deer were failures. “You come back next year with proper, farsight glasses and you'll all right,” said Rolf; and that seemed the one ray of hope.

“WHEN things are looking as dark as they can be, it's a sure sign that good luck is on the way,” said Si Sylvanne, and it turned out to be true for Van Cortlandt. The Moon of the Falling Leaves was waning, October was almost over, and the day of his return to Albany was approaching, as he was supposed to leave just in time for the hunters to come back in open water. He had noticeably improved in strength and appearance. His face was tan and healthy. He had given up all medications and had gained a solid twenty pounds. He had learned how to make a fire, paddle a canoe, and navigate the woods in near silence. His scholarly conversations had earned him a significant place in Rolf's esteem, and his pleasant singing had gained him a small bit of Quonab's respect. However, his attempts to hunt a deer were unsuccessful. "You come back next year with proper binoculars, and you'll be fine," said Rolf; and that seemed to be the only glimmer of hope.

The three days' storm had thrown so many trees that the hunters decided it would be worth while making a fast trip down to Eagle's Nest, to cut such timber as might have fallen across the stream, and so make an easy way for when they should have less time.

The three days of the storm had knocked down so many trees that the hunters figured it would be worth it to take a quick trip down to Eagle's Nest to cut up any timber that might have fallen across the stream, making it easier for when they had less time.

The surmise was quite right. Much new-fallen timber was now across the channel. They chopped over twenty-five trunks before they reached Eagle's Nest at noon, and, leaving the river in better shape than ever it was, they turned, for the swift, straight, silent run of ten miles home.

The guess was spot on. There was a lot of newly fallen timber blocking the channel. They chopped through over twenty-five trunks before they reached Eagle's Nest at noon, and, after clearing the river better than it had ever been, they turned for the fast, direct, quiet ten-mile run back home.

As they rounded the last point, a huge black form in the water loomed to view. Skookum's bristles rose. Quonab whispered, “Moose! Shoot quick!” Van was the only one with a gun. The great black beast stood for a moment, gazing at them with wide-open eyes, ears, and nostrils, then shook his broad horns, wheeled, and dashed for the shore. Van fired and the bull went down with a mighty splash among the lilies. Rolf and Skookum let off a succession of most unhunterlike yells of triumph. But the giant sprang up again and reached the shore, only to fall to Van Cortlandt's second barrel. Yet the stop was momentary; he rose and dashed into the cover. Quonab turned the canoe at once and made for the land.

As they rounded the last point, a huge black shape in the water came into view. Skookum's fur bristled. Quonab whispered, "Moose! Shoot fast!" Van was the only one with a gun. The massive black animal stood for a moment, staring at them with wide-open eyes, ears, and nostrils, then shook its big antlers, turned, and rushed for the shore. Van fired, and the bull fell with a huge splash among the lilies. Rolf and Skookum let out a series of uncharacteristically loud victory cheers. But the giant sprang up again and made it to the shore, only to go down from Van Cortlandt's second shot. However, the pause was brief; he got back up and sprinted into the brush. Quonab immediately turned the canoe and headed for land.

A great sob came from the bushes, then others at intervals. Quonab showed his teeth and pointed. Rolf seized his rifle, Skookum sprang from the boat, and a little later was heard letting off his war-cry in the bushes not far away.

A loud sob came from the bushes, followed by others at intervals. Quonab bared his teeth and pointed. Rolf grabbed his rifle, Skookum jumped out of the boat, and a little later, his war cry echoed from the bushes nearby.

The men rushed forward, guns in hand, but Quonab called, “Look out! Maybe he waiting.”

The men rushed forward, guns in hand, but Quonab shouted, “Watch out! He might be waiting!”

“If he is, he'll likely get one of us.” said Rolf, with a light laugh, for he had some hearsay knowledge of moose.

“If he is, he'll probably get one of us.” said Rolf with a light laugh, since he had some hearsay knowledge about moose.

Covered each by a tree, they waited till Van had reloaded his double-barrelled, then cautiously approached. The great frothing sobs had resounded from time to time.

Covered by a tree, they waited until Van had reloaded his double-barrel, then cautiously approached. The loud, shuddering sobs had echoed intermittently.

Skookum's voice also was heard in the thicket, and when they neared and glimpsed the place, it was to see the monster on the ground, lying at full length, dinging up his head at times when he uttered that horrid sound of pain.

Skookum's voice was also heard in the bushes, and as they got closer and caught sight of the area, they saw the creature on the ground, lying flat, occasionally lifting his head as he let out that awful sound of pain.

The Indian sent a bullet through the moose's brain; then all was still, the tragedy was over.

The Indian shot the moose in the head; then everything was quiet, the tragedy was over.

But now their attention was turned to Van Cortlandt. He reeled, staggered, his knees trembled, his face turned white, and, to save himself from falling, he sank onto a log. Here he covered his face with his hands, his feet beat the ground, and his shoulders heaved up and down.

But now their focus shifted to Van Cortlandt. He swayed, stumbled, his knees shook, his face went pale, and to keep from collapsing, he sank onto a log. There, he covered his face with his hands, his feet pounded the ground, and his shoulders rose and fell.

The others said nothing. They knew by the signs and the sounds that it was only through a mighty effort that young Van Cortlandt, grown man as he was, could keep himself from hysterical sobs and tears.

The others said nothing. They could tell from the signs and sounds that it took a tremendous effort for young Van Cortlandt, despite being an adult, to hold back his sobs and tears.

Not then, but the next day it was that Quonab said: “It comes to some after they kill, to some before, as it came to you, Rolf; to me it came the day I killed my first chipmunk, that time when I stole my father's medicine.”

Not then, but the next day Quonab said, “Some people feel it after they kill, some before, like you did, Rolf; for me, it hit the day I killed my first chipmunk, that time I took my dad's medicine.”

They had ample work for several hours now, to skin the game and save the meat. It was fortunate they were so near home. A marvellous change there was in the atmosphere of the camp. Twice Quonab spoke to Van Cortlandt, as the latter laboured with them to save and store the meat of his moose. He was rubbed, doped, soiled, and anointed with its flesh, hair, and blood, and that night, as they sat by their camp fire, Skookum arose, stretched, yawned, walked around deliberately, put his nose in the lawyer's hand, gave it a lick, then lay down by his feet. Van Cortlandt glanced at Rolf, a merry twinkle was in the eyes of both. “It's all right. You can pat Skookum now, without risk of being crippled. He's sized you up. You are one of us at last;” and Quonab looked on with two long ivory rows a-gleaming in his smile.

They had a lot of work to do for several hours now, to skin the game and preserve the meat. It was lucky that they were so close to home. There was a wonderful change in the atmosphere of the camp. Twice Quonab spoke to Van Cortlandt as the latter worked with them to save and store the meat from his moose. He was covered in, doped with, and smeared by its flesh, fur, and blood, and that night, as they sat by their campfire, Skookum got up, stretched, yawned, walked around slowly, nudged his nose into the lawyer's hand, licked it, and then lay down by his feet. Van Cortlandt glanced at Rolf, and there was a playful sparkle in both of their eyes. “It's all good. You can pet Skookum now without worrying about getting hurt. He’s figured you out. You’re one of us at last;” and Quonab watched with a smile, his long white teeth gleaming.





Chapter 64. Dinner at the Governor's

Was ever there a brighter blazing sunrise after such a night of gloom? Not only a deer, but the biggest of all deer, and Van himself the only one of the party that had ever killed a moose. The skin was removed and afterward made into a hunting coat for the victor. The head and horns were carefully preserved to be carried back to Albany, where they were mounted and still hang in the hall of a later generation of the name. The final days at the camp were days of happy feeling; they passed too soon, and the long-legged lawyer, bronzed and healthy looking, took his place in their canoe for the flying trip to Albany. With an empty canoe and three paddles (two and one half, Van said), they flew down the open stretch of Jesup's River in something over two hours and camped that night fully thirty-five miles from their cabin. The next day they nearly reached the Schroon and in a week they rounded the great bend, and Albany hove in view.

Was there ever a brighter sunrise after such a dark night? Not just a deer, but the biggest one of all, and Van was the only one in the group who had ever killed a moose. They took the skin off and turned it into a hunting coat for the winner. The head and antlers were carefully kept to be brought back to Albany, where they were mounted and still hang in the hall of a later generation of the family. The last days at the camp were filled with joy; they went by too quickly, and the tall lawyer, tanned and looking healthy, took his place in their canoe for the quick trip to Albany. With an empty canoe and three paddles (two and a half, as Van said), they sped down the open stretch of Jesup's River in just over two hours and camped that night about thirty-five miles from their cabin. The next day they almost reached the Schroon and within a week they rounded the great bend, and Albany came into view.

How Van's heart did beat! How he did exult to come in triumph home, reestablished in health and strengthened in every way. They were sighted and recognized. Messengers were seen running; a heavy gun was fired, the flag run up on the Capitol, bells set a-ringing, many people came running, and more flags ran up on vessels.

How Van's heart raced! How he rejoiced to come home in triumph, restored to health and feeling stronger in every way. They were spotted and recognized. Messengers were seen rushing; a heavy gun fired, the flag was raised at the Capitol, bells rang out, many people came rushing, and more flags were raised on ships.

A great crowd gathered by the dock.

A large crowd gathered by the dock.

“There's father, and mother too!” shouted Van, waving his hat.

“There's Dad, and Mom too!” shouted Van, waving his hat.

“Hurrah,” and the crowd took it up, while the bells went jingle, jangle, and Skookum in the bow sent back his best in answer.

“Yay,” and the crowd echoed it, while the bells rang out, and Skookum in the bow responded with his best.

The canoe was dragged ashore. Van seized his mother in his arms, as she cried: “My boy, my boy, my darling boy! how well you look. Oh, why didn't you write? But, thank God, you are back again, and looking so healthy and strong. I know you took your squills and opodeldoc. Thank God for that! Oh, I'm so happy! my boy, my boy! There's nothing like squills and God's blessing.”

The canoe was pulled up onto the shore. Van grabbed his mother in a tight hug as she cried, “My boy, my boy, my darling boy! You look so good! Oh, why didn’t you write? But thank God you’re back and looking so healthy and strong. I know you took your squills and opodeldoc. Thank God for that! Oh, I’m so happy! My boy, my boy! There’s nothing like squills and God’s blessing.”

Rolf and Quonab were made to feel that they had a part in it all. The governor shook them warmly by the hand, and then a friendly voice was heard: “Wall, boy, here ye air agin; growed a little, settin' up and sassin' back, same as ever.” Rolf turned to see the gigantic, angular form and kindly face of grizzly old Si Sylvanne and was still more surprised to hear him addressed “senator.”

Rolf and Quonab felt like they were part of it all. The governor shook their hands warmly, and then a friendly voice called out, “Well, boy, here you are again; grown a bit, sitting up and talking back, just like always.” Rolf turned to see the huge, angular figure and kind face of the grizzled old Si Sylvanne and was even more surprised to hear him called “senator.”

“Yes,” said the senator, “one o' them freak elections that sometimes hits right; great luck for Albany, wa'nt it?”

“Yeah,” said the senator, “one of those random elections that sometimes goes our way; what great luck for Albany, right?”

“Ho,” said Quonab, shaking the senator's hand, while Skookum looked puzzled and depressed.

“Hey,” said Quonab, shaking the senator's hand, while Skookum looked confused and down.

“Now, remember,” said the governor, addressing the Indian, the lad, and the senator, “we expect you to dine tonight at the mansion; seven o'clock.”

“Now, remember,” said the governor, speaking to the Indian, the young man, and the senator, “we expect you to join us for dinner tonight at the mansion; seven o'clock.”

Then the terror of the dragon conventionality, that guards the gate and hovers over the feast, loomed up in Rolf's imagination. He sought a private word with Van. “I'm afraid I have no fit clothes; I shan't know how to behave,” he said.

Then the fear of the dragon of conformity, that guards the entrance and hovers over the celebration, surfaced in Rolf's mind. He wanted a moment alone with Van. “I'm worried I don't have the right clothes; I won't know how to act,” he said.

“Then I'll show you. The first thing is to be perfectly clean and get a shave; put on the best clothes you have, and be sure they're clean; then you come at exactly seven o'clock, knowing that every one is going to be kind to you and you're bound to have a good time. As to any other 'funny-do' you watch me, and you'll have no trouble.”

“Then I’ll show you. The first thing is to be completely clean and shave; put on your best clothes, and make sure they’re clean; then you’ll arrive exactly at seven o'clock, knowing that everyone will be nice to you and you're guaranteed to have a good time. As for any other ‘weird stuff,’ just watch me, and you won’t have any trouble.”

So when the seven o'clock assemblage came, and guests were ascending the steps of the governor's mansion, there also mounted a tall, slim youth, an easy-pacing Indian, and a prick-eared, yellow dog. Young Van Cortlandt was near the door, on watch to save them any embarrassment. But what a swell he looked, cleanshaven, ruddy, tall, and handsome in the uniform of an American captain, surrounded by friends and immensely popular. How different it all was from that lonely cabin by the lake.

So when the seven o'clock gathering started, and guests were heading up the steps of the governor's mansion, a tall, slim young man, a relaxed Indian, and a perk-eared yellow dog followed behind. Young Van Cortlandt stood near the door, ready to help them avoid any awkwardness. But he looked so impressive, clean-shaven, rosy-cheeked, tall, and handsome in his American captain's uniform, surrounded by friends and really popular. It was such a contrast to that lonely cabin by the lake.

A butler who tried to remove Skookum was saved from mutilation by the intervention first of Quonab and next of Van; and when they sat down, this uncompromising four-legged child of the forest ensconced himself under Quonab's chair and growled whenever the silk stockings of the footman seemed to approach beyond the line of true respect.

A butler who tried to get rid of Skookum was saved from harm by Quonab and then Van; and when they sat down, this stubborn four-legged creature of the forest settled under Quonab's chair and growled whenever the footman's silk stockings came too close for comfort.

Young Van Cortlandt was chief talker at the dinner, but a pompous military man was prominent in the company. Once or twice Rolf was addressed by the governor or Lady Van Cortlandt, and had to speak to the whole table; his cheeks were crimson, but he knew what he wanted to say and stopped when it was said, so suffered no real embarrassment.

Young Van Cortlandt was the main speaker at the dinner, but a self-important military man stood out in the group. Every now and then, Rolf was spoken to by the governor or Lady Van Cortlandt, and had to address the entire table; his cheeks were red, but he knew what he wanted to say and stopped once he said it, so he didn't feel any real embarrassment.

After what seemed an interminable feast of countless dishes and hours' duration, an extraordinary change set in. Led by the hostess, all stood up, the chairs were lifted out of their way, and the ladies trooped into another room; the doors were closed, and the men sat down again at the end next the governor.

After what felt like an endless feast of countless dishes and hours of eating, something remarkable happened. Led by the hostess, everyone stood up, the chairs were moved out of the way, and the ladies walked into another room; the doors were closed, and the men sat back down at the end next to the governor.

Van stayed by Rolf and explained: “This is another social custom that began with a different meaning. One hundred years ago, every man got drunk at every formal dinner, and carried on in a way that the ladies did not care to see, so to save their own feelings and give the men a free rein, the ladies withdrew. Nowadays, men are not supposed to indulge in any such orgy, but the custom continues, because it gives the men a chance to smoke, and the ladies a chance to discuss matters that do not interest the men. So again you see it is backed by common sense.”

Van stayed with Rolf and explained, “This is another social custom that started with a different meaning. A hundred years ago, every guy would get drunk at every formal dinner and behave in a way that the women didn't want to see. To protect their feelings and let the men have their fun, the women would leave. These days, men aren’t supposed to go wild like that anymore, but the custom continues because it gives the men a chance to smoke, and it lets the women discuss things that don't interest the men. So, once again, you can see it’s rooted in common sense.”

This proved the best part of the dinner to Rolf. There was a peculiar sense of over-politeness, of insincerity, almost, while the ladies were present; the most of the talking had been done by young Van Cortlandt and certain young ladies, assisted by some very gay young men and the general. Their chatter was funny, but nothing more. Now a different air was on the group; different subjects were discussed, and by different men, in a totally different manner.

This turned out to be the best part of the dinner for Rolf. There was a strange feeling of excessive politeness, almost insincerity, while the ladies were there; most of the talking had been done by young Van Cortlandt and a few young ladies, with help from some very lively young men and the general. Their chatter was entertaining, but nothing more. Now the atmosphere among the group had changed; different topics were being discussed by different men, in a completely different way.

“We've stood just about all we can stand,” said the governor, alluding to an incident newly told, of a British frigate boarding an American merchant vessel by force and carrying off half her crew, under presence that they were British seamen in disguise. “That's been going on for three years now. It's either piracy or war, and, in either case, it's our duty to fight.”

“We've put up with just about all we can take,” said the governor, referring to a recent incident where a British frigate forcefully boarded an American merchant ship and took half of its crew, claiming they were British sailors in disguise. “This has been happening for three years now. It's either piracy or war, and in either case, we have a duty to fight.”

“Jersey's dead against war,” said a legislator from down the river.

“Jersey is completely against war,” said a lawmaker from upstream.

“Jersey always was dead against everything that was for the national good, sir,” said a red-faced, puffy, military man, with a husky voice, a rolling eye, and a way of ending every sentence in “sir.”

“Jersey was always opposed to anything that was for the national good, sir,” said a red-faced, puffy, military man, with a husky voice, a rolling eye, and a habit of ending every sentence with “sir.”

“So is Connecticut,” said another; “they say, 'Look at all our defenceless coasts and harbour towns.'”

“So is Connecticut,” said another; “they say, 'Look at all our unprotected coasts and harbor towns.'”

“They're not risking as much as New York,” answered the governor, “with her harbours all the way up the Hudson and her back door open to invasion from Canada.”

“They're not taking as big of a risk as New York,” the governor replied, “with its ports all the way up the Hudson and its back door wide open to an invasion from Canada.”

“Fortunately, sir, Pennyslvania, Maryland, and the West have not forgotten the glories of the past. All I ask—is a chance to show what we can do, sir. I long for the smell of powder once more, sir.”

“Fortunately, sir, Pennsylvania, Maryland, and the West haven’t forgotten the glories of the past. All I ask is a chance to show what we can do, sir. I’m eager for the smell of gunpowder once again, sir.”

“I understand that President Madison has sent several protests, and, in spite of Connecticut and New Jersey, will send an ultimatum within three months. He believes that Britain has all she can manage, with Napoleon and his allies battering at her doors, and will not risk a war.

“I understand that President Madison has sent several protests, and, despite Connecticut and New Jersey, will send an ultimatum within three months. He believes that Britain has all she can handle, with Napoleon and his allies knocking at her doors, and won't risk a war."

“It's my opinion,” said Sylvanne; “that these English men is too pig-headed an' ornery to care a whoop in hell whether we get mad or not. They've a notion Paul Jones is dead, but I reckon we've got plenty of the breed only waitin' a chance. Mor'n twenty-five of our merchantmen wrecked each year through being stripped of their crews by a 'friendly power.' 'Pears to me we couldn't be worse off going to war, an' might be a dum sight better.”

“Honestly,” said Sylvanne, “I think these English guys are too stubborn and difficult to care at all whether we get upset or not. They believe Paul Jones is dead, but I think there are plenty more like him just waiting for their opportunity. More than twenty-five of our merchant ships are wrecked each year because they lose their crews to a 'friendly power.' It seems to me we couldn’t be worse off going to war, and it might actually be a whole lot better.”

“Your home an' holdings are three hundred safe miles from the seacoast,” objected the man from Manhattan.

“Your home and property are three hundred safe miles from the coast,” objected the man from Manhattan.

“Yes, and right next Canada,” was the reply.

“Yes, and right next to Canada,” was the reply.

“The continued insults to our flag, sir, and the personal indignities offered to our people are even worse than the actual loss in ships and goods. It makes my blood fairly boil,” and the worthy general looked the part as his purple jowl quivered over his white cravat.

“The ongoing insults to our flag, sir, and the personal disrespect shown to our people are even worse than the actual loss of ships and goods. It makes my blood boil,” and the honorable general looked the part as his purple jowl trembled over his white cravat.

“Gosh all hemlock! the one pricks, but t'other festers, it's tarnal sure you steal a man's dinner and tell him he's one o' nature's noblemen, he's more apt to love you than if you give him five dollars to keep out o' your sight,” said Sylvanne, with slow emphasis.

“Wow, it stings, but the other one hurts way worse, it’s definitely true that if you steal a guy’s lunch and tell him he’s one of nature’s noblemen, he’s more likely to appreciate you than if you just give him five bucks to stay out of your way,” Sylvanne said, with careful emphasis.

“There's something to be said on the other side,” said the timid one. “You surely allow that the British government is trying to do right, and after all we must admit that that Jilson affair resected very little credit on our own administration.”

“There's another perspective to consider,” said the shy one. “You have to admit that the British government is trying to do the right thing, and we must acknowledge that the Jilson affair gave our own administration very little credit.”

“A man ken make one awful big mistake an' still be all right, but he can't go on making a little mistake every day right along an' be fit company for a clean crowd,” retorted the new senator.

“A man can make one huge mistake and still be okay, but he can't keep making little mistakes every day and expect to fit in with a good crowd,” countered the new senator.

At length the governor rose and led the way to the drawing-room, where they rejoined the ladies and the conversation took on a different colour and weight, by which it lost all value for those who knew not the art of twittering persiflage and found less joy in a handkerchief flirtation than in the nation's onward march. Rolf and Quonab enjoyed it now about as much as Skookum had done all the time.

At last, the governor stood up and took the lead to the living room, where they met up with the ladies again. The conversation took on a different tone and depth, making it meaningless for those who didn’t understand the skill of lighthearted banter and preferred the nation's progress over playful flirting. Rolf and Quonab were now enjoying it just as much as Skookum had the whole time.





Chapter 65. The Grebes and the Singing Mouse

Quonab puzzled long over the amazing fact that young Van Cortlandt had evident high standing “in his own tribe.” “He must be a wise counsellor, for I know he cannot fight and is a fool at hunting,” was the ultimate decision.

Quonab thought for a long time about the surprising fact that young Van Cortlandt had a clear high status “in his own group.” “He must be a smart advisor, because I know he can't fight and isn't good at hunting,” was the final conclusion.

They had a final interview with the governor and his son before they left. Rolf received for himself and his partner the promised one hundred and fifty dollars, and the hearty thanks of all in the governor's home. Next, each was presented with a handsome hunting knife, not unlike the one young Van had carried, but smaller. Quonab received his with “Ho—” then, after a pause, “He pull out, maybe, when I need him.”—“Ho! good!” he exclaimed, as the keen blade appeared.

They had one last meeting with the governor and his son before they left. Rolf got the promised one hundred and fifty dollars for himself and his partner, along with the heartfelt thanks of everyone in the governor's house. Then, each received a nice hunting knife, similar to the one young Van had carried, but smaller. Quonab took his with a "Ho—" then, after a moment, said, "He might come in handy when I need him."—“Ho! Nice!” he shouted as the sharp blade was revealed.

“Now, Rolf,” said the lawyer, “I want to come back next year and bring three companions, and we will pay you at the same rate per month for each. What do you say?”

“Now, Rolf,” said the lawyer, “I want to come back next year and bring three friends, and we will pay you the same monthly rate for each of them. What do you think?”

“Glad to have you again,” said Rolf: “we'll come for you on August fifteenth; but remember you should bring your guitar and your spectacles.”

“Glad to see you again,” said Rolf, “we'll pick you up on August fifteenth; but remember to bring your guitar and your glasses.”

“One word,” said the governor, “do you know the canoe route through Champlain to Canada?”

“One word,” said the governor, “do you know the canoe route through Champlain to Canada?”

“Quonab does.”

"Quonab does."

“Could you undertake to render scout service in that region?”

“Could you agree to provide scouting services in that area?”

The Indian nodded.

The person from India nodded.

“In case of war, we may need you both, so keep your ears open.”

“In the event of war, we might need both of you, so stay alert.”

And once more the canoe made for the north, with Quonab in the stern and Skookum in the bow.

And once again, the canoe headed north, with Quonab in the back and Skookum in the front.

In less than a week they were home, and none too soon; for already the trees were bare, and they had to break the ice on the river before they ended their trip.

In less than a week, they were back home, and just in time; the trees were already bare, and they had to break the ice on the river before finishing their trip.

Rolf had gathered many ideas the last two-months. He did not propose to continue all his life as a trapper. He wanted to see New York. He wanted to plan for the future. He needed money for his plans. He and Quonab had been running a hundred miles of traps, but some men run more than that single handed. They must get out two new lines at once, before the frost came. One of these they laid up the Hudson, above Eagle's Nest; the other northerly on Blue Mountain, toward Racquet River. Doing this was hard work, and when they came again to their cabin the robins had gone from the bleak and leafless woods; the grouse were making long night flights; the hollows had tracks of racing deer; there was a sense of omen, a length of gloom, for the Mad Moon was afloat in the shimmering sky; its wan light ghasted all the hills.

Rolf had gathered a lot of ideas over the last two months. He didn’t plan to spend his entire life as a trapper. He wanted to see New York. He wanted to make plans for the future. He needed money for his goals. He and Quonab had been managing a hundred miles of traps, but some people run even more than that on their own. They had to set up two new lines at once before the frost arrived. One was placed up the Hudson, above Eagle's Nest; the other was further north on Blue Mountain, toward Racquet River. This was tough work, and when they returned to their cabin, the robins had left the bare, desolate woods; the grouse were flying long distances at night; the valleys showed signs of racing deer; there was a feeling of foreboding, a heaviness in the air, because the Mad Moon was hanging in the shimmering sky; its pale light cast shadows over all the hills.

Next day the lake was covered with thin, glare ice; on the glassy surface near the shore were two ducks floundering. The men went as near as they could, and Quonab said, “No, not duck, but Shingebis, divers. They cannot rise except from water. In the night the new ice looks like water; they come down and cannot rise. I have often seen it.” Two days after, a harder frost came on. The ice was safe for a dog; the divers or grebes were still on its surface. So they sent Skookum. He soon returned with two beautiful grebes, whose shining, white breast feathers are as much prized as some furs.

The next day, the lake was covered with a thin layer of glare ice; on the smooth surface near the shore were two ducks struggling. The men approached as closely as they could, and Quonab said, “No, those aren’t ducks, they’re Shingebis, divers. They can only take off from the water. At night, the new ice looks like water; they land and can’t take off. I’ve seen it happen many times.” Two days later, a colder frost set in. The ice was safe enough for a dog; the divers or grebes were still on top of it. So, they sent Skookum. He soon came back with two beautiful grebes, whose shiny white breast feathers are as highly valued as some furs.

Quonab grunted as he held them up. “Ugh, it is often so in this Mad Moon. My father said it is because of Kaluskap's dancing.”

Quonab grunted as he held them up. “Ugh, it’s often like this in this Mad Moon. My dad said it’s because of Kaluskap’s dancing.”

“I don't remember that one.”

"I don't remember that."

“Yes, long ago. Kaluskap felt lazy. He wanted to eat, but did not wish to hunt, so he called the bluejay and said: 'Tell all the woods that to-morrow night Kaluskap gives a new dance and teaches a new song,' and he told the hoot owl to do the same, so one kept it up all day—'Kaluskap teaches a new dance to-morrow night,' and the other kept it up all night: 'Kaluskap teaches a new song at next council.'

“Yes, a long time ago. Kaluskap felt lazy. He wanted to eat but didn’t want to hunt, so he called the bluejay and said: 'Tell all the woods that tomorrow night Kaluskap is hosting a new dance and teaching a new song,' and he instructed the hoot owl to do the same, so one spread the word all day—'Kaluskap teaches a new dance tomorrow night,' and the other spread it all night: 'Kaluskap teaches a new song at the next gathering.'”

“Thus it came about that all the woods and waters sent their folk to the dance.

“That's how all the woods and waters sent their people to the dance.

“Then Kaluskap took his song-drum and said: 'When I drum and sing you must dance in a circle the same way as the sun, close your eyes tightly, and each one shout his war whoop, as I cry “new songs”!'

“Then Kaluskap took his drum and said: 'When I drum and sing, you all need to dance in a circle like the sun, close your eyes tightly, and each of you shout your war cry as I call out “new songs”!'”

“So all began, with Kaluskap drumming in the middle, singing:

“So it all started, with Kaluskap drumming in the center, singing:

“'New songs from the south, brothers, Close your eyes tightly, brothers, Dance and learn a new song.

“'New songs from the south, brothers, Close your eyes tightly, brothers, Dance and learn a new song.

“As they danced around, he picked out the fattest, and, reaching out one hand, seized them and twisted their necks, shouting out, 'More war-cries, more poise! that's it; now you are learning!'

“As they danced around, he selected the largest ones, and, reaching out with one hand, grabbed them and twisted their necks, yelling, 'More war-cries, more poise! That's it; now you're getting it!'"

“At length Shingebis the diver began to have his doubts and he cautiously opened one eye, saw the trick, and shouted: 'Fly, brothers, fly! Kaluskap is killing us!'

“At last, Shingebis the diver started to have his doubts, so he carefully opened one eye, noticed the trick, and shouted: 'Run, brothers, run! Kaluskap is killing us!'”

“Then all was confusion. Every one tried to escape, and Kaluskap, in revenge, tried to kill the Shingebis. But the diver ran for the water and, just as he reached the edge, Kaluskap gave him a kick behind that sent him half a mile, but it knocked off all his tail feathers and twisted his shape so that ever since his legs have stuck out where his tail was, and he cannot rise from the land or the ice. I know it is so, for my father, Cos Cob, told me it was true, and we ourselves have seen it. It is ever so. To go against Kaluskap brings much evil to brood over.”

“Then everything turned into chaos. Everyone tried to flee, and Kaluskap, seeking revenge, attempted to kill the Shingebis. But the diver sprinted for the water, and just as he reached the edge, Kaluskap kicked him from behind, sending him half a mile away. However, it knocked off all his tail feathers and twisted his body so that ever since, his legs have been where his tail used to be, and he can't lift off from the land or the ice. I know this is true because my father, Cos Cob, told me so, and we have seen it ourselves. It’s always like this. Defying Kaluskap brings plenty of trouble.”

A few nights later, as they sat by their fire in the cabin, a curious squeaking was heard behind the logs. They had often heard it before, but never so much as now. Skookum turned his head on one side, set his ears at forward cock. Presently, from a hole 'twixt logs and chimney, there appeared a small, white breasted mouse.

A few nights later, while they were sitting by their fire in the cabin, they heard a curious squeaking coming from behind the logs. They had heard it many times before, but never quite like this. Skookum tilted his head, ears perked up and alert. Soon, a small mouse with a white belly poked out from a gap between the logs and the chimney.

Its nose and ears shivered a little; its black eyes danced in the firelight. It climbed up to a higher log, scratched its ribs, then rising on its hind legs, uttered one or two squeaks like those they had heard so often, but soon they became louder and continuous:

Its nose and ears twitched slightly; its black eyes sparkled in the firelight. It climbed up to a higher log, scratched its side, then rearing up on its hind legs, let out a couple of squeaks like the ones they had heard so often, but soon those turned into louder and continuous sounds:

“Peg, peo, peo, peo, peo, peo, peo, oo. Tree, tree, tree, tree, trrrrrrr, Turr, turr, turr, tur, tur, Wee, wee, wee, we”—

“Peg, peo, peo, peo, peo, peo, peo, oo. Tree, tree, tree, tree, trrrrrrr, Turr, turr, turr, tur, tur, Wee, wee, wee, we”—

The little creature was sitting up high on its hind legs, its belly muscles were working, its mouth was gaping as it poured out its music. For fully half a minute this went on, when Skookum made a dash; but the mouse was quick and it flashed into the safety of its cranny.

The little creature was perched on its hind legs, its belly muscles working, its mouth wide open as it let out its music. This continued for a full thirty seconds, when Skookum made a sudden move; but the mouse was quick and darted into the safety of its hole.

Rolf gazed at Quonab inquiringly.

Rolf looked at Quonab curiously.

“That is Mish-a-boh-quas, the singing mouse. He always comes to tell of war. In a little while there will be fighting.”

“That is Mish-a-boh-quas, the singing mouse. He always shows up to announce war. Soon, there will be fighting.”





Chapter 66. A Lesson in Stalking

“Did you ever see any fighting, Quonab?”

“Ugh! In Revolution, scouted for General Gates.”

“Ugh! In the Revolution, scouted for General Gates.”

“Judging by the talk, we're liable to be called on before a year. What will you do?”

“Based on the conversation, we might get called in before a year is up. What are you going to do?”

“Fight.”

"Fight."

“As soldier?”

"As a soldier?"

“No! scout.”

“No! scout.”

“They may not want us.”

“They might not want us.”

“Always want scouts,” replied the Indian.

“Always want scouts,” replied the Native American.

“It seems to me I ought to start training now.”

“It seems to me I should start training now.”

“You have been training.”

"You've been training."

“How is that?”

"How's that?"

“A scout is everything that an army is, but it's all in one man. An' he don't have to keep step.”

“A scout embodies everything an army is, but it’s all in one person. And they don’t have to march in formation.”

“I see, I see,” replied Rolf, and he realized that a scout is merely a trained hunter who is compelled by war to hunt his country's foes instead of the beasts of the woods.

“I get it, I get it,” replied Rolf, and he understood that a scout is just a trained hunter who is forced by war to track down his country's enemies instead of the animals in the forest.

“See that?” said the Indian, and he pointed to a buck that was nosing for cranberries in the open expanse across the river where it left the lake. “Now, I show you scouting.” He glanced at the smoke from the fire, found it right for his plan, and said: “See! I take my bow. No cover, yet I will come close and kill that deer.”

“See that?” said the Indian, pointing to a buck that was foraging for cranberries in the open space across the river where it flowed out of the lake. “Now, let me show you how to scout.” He looked at the smoke from the fire, decided it was just right for his plan, and said: “See! I’ll take my bow. There’s no cover, but I’ll get close and take down that deer.”

Then began a performance that was new to Rolf, and showed that the Indian had indeed reached the highest pitch of woodcraft. He took his bow and three good arrows, tied a band around his head, and into this stuck a lot of twigs and vines, so that his head looked like a tussock of herbage. Then he left the shanty door, and, concealed by the last bushes on the edge, he reached the open plain. Two hundred yards off was the buck, nosing among the herbage, and, from time to time, raising its superb head and columnar neck to look around. There was no cover but creeping herbage. Rolf suspected that the Indian would decoy the buck by some whistle or challenge, for the thickness of its neck showed the deer to be in fighting humour.

Then a performance began that was new to Rolf and showed that the Indian had truly mastered the art of woodcraft. He took his bow and three quality arrows, tied a band around his head, and stuck a bunch of twigs and vines into it, making his head look like a clump of grass. Then he left the shanty door and, hidden by the last bushes at the edge, he reached the open plain. Two hundred yards away was the buck, sniffing around in the grass and occasionally raising its magnificent head and long neck to look around. The only cover was low-growing grass. Rolf suspected that the Indian would lure the buck with some whistle or challenge, as the thickness of its neck indicated that the deer was in a fighting mood.

Flat on his breast the Indian lay. His knees and elbow seemed to develop centipedic power; his head was a mere clump of growing stuff. He snaked his way quietly for twenty-five yards, then came to the open, sloping shore, with the river forty yards wide of level shining ice, all in plain view of the deer; how was this to be covered?

Flat on his chest, the Indian lay. His knees and elbows seemed to have the strength of a centipede; his head was just a lump of vegetation. He crawled quietly for twenty-five yards, then reached the open, sloping shore, with the river forty yards wide, covered in shiny ice, all clearly visible to the deer; how could he cover this?

There is a well-known peculiarity of the white tail that the Indian was counting on; when its head is down grazing, even though not hidden, the deer does not see distant objects; before the head is raised, its tail is raised or shaken. Quonab knew that if he could keep the tail in view, he could avoid being viewed by the head. In a word, only an ill-timed movement or a whiff could betray him.

There’s a well-known quirk about the white tail that the Indian was counting on; when its head is down grazing, even if it’s not hidden, the deer doesn’t notice things far away. Before the head comes up, its tail goes up or shakes. Quonab knew that if he could keep the tail in sight, he could avoid being seen by the head. In short, only a poorly timed movement or a scent could give him away.

The open ice was, of course, a hard test, and the hunter might have failed, but that his long form looked like one of the logs that were lying about half stranded or frozen in the stream.

The open ice was definitely a tough challenge, and the hunter could have easily failed, if not for the fact that his long shape resembled one of the logs that were lying around, partially stranded or frozen in the stream.

Watching ever the alert head and tail, he timed his approach, working hard and moving East when the head was down; but when warned by a tail-jerk he turned to a log nor moved a muscle. Once the ice was crossed, the danger of being seen was less, but of being smelt was greater, for the deer was moving about, and Quonab watched the smoke from the cabin for knowledge of the wind. So he came within fifty yards, and the buck, still sniffing along and eagerly champing the few red cranberries it found above the frozen moss, was working toward a somewhat higher cover. The herbage was now fully eighteen inches high, and Quonab moved a little faster. The buck found a large patch of berries under a tussock and dropped on its knees to pick them out, while Quonab saw the chance and gained ten yards before the tail gave warning. After so long a feeding-spell, the buck took an extra long lookout, and then walked toward the timber, whereby the Indian lost all he had gained. But the browser's eye was drawn by a shining bunch of red, then another; and now the buck swung until there was danger of betrayal by the wind; then down went its head and Quonab retreated ten yards to keep the windward. Once the buck raised its muzzle and sniffed with flaring nostrils, as though its ancient friend had brought a warning. But soon he seemed reassured, for the landscape showed no foe, and nosed back and forth, while Quonab regained the yards he had lost. The buck worked now to the taller cover, and again a tempting bunch of berries under a low, dense bush caused it to kneel for farther under-reaching. Quonab glided swiftly forward, reached the twenty-five-yard limit, rose to one knee, bent the stark cedar bow. Rolf saw the buck bound in air, then make for the wood with great, high leaps; the dash of disappointment was on him, but Quonab stood erect, with right hand raised, and shouted:

Watching the alert head and tail, he timed his approach, working hard and moving east when the head was down; but when alerted by a tail-jerk, he turned to a log and didn’t move a muscle. Once the ice was crossed, the risk of being seen decreased, but the risk of being smelled increased, since the deer was moving around, and Quonab paid attention to the smoke coming from the cabin for clues about the wind. He got within fifty yards, and the buck, still sniffing around and eagerly munching on the few red cranberries it found above the frozen moss, was heading towards some slightly higher cover. The vegetation was now fully eighteen inches high, and Quonab quickened his pace a bit. The buck found a large patch of berries under a tussock and dropped to its knees to pick them out, while Quonab seized the opportunity and gained ten yards before the tail gave its warning. After such a long feeding spell, the buck took an extra long look around, then walked toward the woods, causing Quonab to lose all his progress. But the buck's eye was caught by a shiny bunch of red, then another; and now the buck turned, getting close to being betrayed by the wind; then it lowered its head, and Quonab retreated ten yards to stay downwind. Once, the buck raised its muzzle and sniffed with flaring nostrils, as if its ancient friend had sent a warning. But soon it seemed reassured, as the landscape showed no threats, and it nosed around while Quonab regained the distance he had lost. The buck now moved toward the taller cover, and again a tempting bunch of berries under a low, dense bush made it kneel to reach further. Quonab glided swiftly forward, reached the twenty-five-yard mark, knelt down, and drew back the stark cedar bow. Rolf saw the buck leap into the air, then dart towards the woods with great, high jumps; disappointment washed over him, but Quonab stood tall, hand raised, and shouted:

“Ho—ho.”

“Ha—ha.”

He knew that those bounds were unnecessarily high, and before the woods had swallowed up the buck, it fell—rose—and fell again, to rise not. The arrow had pierced its heart.

He knew those limits were way too high, and before the woods completely hid the buck, it fell—got back up—and then fell again, never to rise again. The arrow had hit its heart.

Then Rolf rushed up with kindled eye and exultant pride to slap his friend on the back, and exclaim:

Then Rolf hurried over with bright eyes and excited pride to slap his friend on the back and shout:

“I never thought it possible; the greatest feat in hunting I ever saw; you are a wonder!”

“I never thought this could happen; it’s the greatest accomplishment in hunting I’ve ever seen; you’re amazing!”

To which the Indian softly replied, as he smiled:

To which the Indian softly replied with a smile:

“Ho! it was so I got eleven British sentries in the war. They gave me a medal with Washington's head.”

“Hey! That’s how I ended up with eleven British sentries during the war. They awarded me a medal with Washington's face on it.”

“They did! how is it I never heard of it? Where is it?”

“They did! How come I never heard about it? Where is it?”

The Indian's face darkened. “I threw it after the ship that stole my Gamowini.”

The Indian's expression turned grim. “I threw it after the ship that took my Gamowini.”





Chapter 67. Rolf Meets a Canuck

The winter might have been considered eventful, had not so many of the events been repetitions of former experience. But there were several that by their newness deserve a place on these pages, as they did in Rolf's memory.

The winter might have been seen as eventful, if so many of the events hadn’t been repeats of what had happened before. However, there were a few that were new enough to deserve a spot on these pages, just like they did in Rolf's memory.

One of them happened soon after the first sharp frost. It had been an autumn of little rain, so that many ponds had dried up, with the result that hundreds of muskrats were forced out to seek more habitable quarters. The first time Rolf saw one of these stranded mariners on its overland journey, he gave heedless chase. At first it made awkward haste to escape; then a second muskrat was discovered just ahead, and a third. This added to Rolf's interest. In a few bounds he was among them, but it was to get a surprise. Finding themselves overtaken, the muskrats turned in desperation and attacked the common enemy with courage and fury. Rolf leaped over the first, but the second sprang, caught him by the slack of the trouser leg, and hung on. The third flung itself on his foot and drove its sharp teeth through the moccasin. Quickly the first rallied and sprang on his other leg with all the force of its puny paws, and powerful jaws.

One of those moments took place soon after the first hard frost. It had been an autumn with little rain, causing many ponds to dry up, which forced hundreds of muskrats to search for better places to live. The first time Rolf spotted one of these stranded travelers on its journey across land, he chased after it without thinking. At first, it hurried awkwardly to escape; then he noticed a second muskrat ahead, and a third. This piqued Rolf's interest even more. In just a few bounds, he was among them, but it was to catch them by surprise. Once they realized they were being caught, the muskrats turned in desperation and fiercely attacked the common threat. Rolf jumped over the first one, but the second one leaped and grabbed the loose fabric of his trouser leg, holding on tight. The third one launched itself at his foot and bit through the moccasin. Quickly, the first muskrat regrouped and jumped onto his other leg with all the strength of its little paws and powerful jaws.

Meanwhile Quonab was laughing aloud and holding back Skookum, who, breathing fire and slaughter, was mad to be in the fight.

Meanwhile, Quonab was laughing out loud and holding back Skookum, who, full of energy and ready for action, was eager to jump into the fight.

“Ho! a good fight! good musquas! Ho, Skookum, you must not always take care of him, or he will not learn to go alone.

“Hey! a good fight! good skills! Hey, Skookum, you can't always take care of him, or he won't learn to stand on his own.”

“Ugh, good!” as the third muskrat gripped Rolf by the calf.

“Ugh, good!” as the third muskrat grabbed Rolf by the calf.

There could be but one finish, and that not long delayed. A well-placed kick on one, the second swung by the tail, the third crushed under his heel, and the affair ended. Rolf had three muskrats and five cuts. Quonab had much joy and Skookum a sense of lost opportunity.

There could be only one outcome, and it wouldn’t take long. A well-aimed kick at one, the second knocked down by the tail, the third crushed underfoot, and it was all over. Rolf had three muskrats and five cuts. Quonab was very happy, and Skookum felt a sense of missed chance.

“This we should paint on the wigwam,” said Quonab. “Three great warriors attacked one Sagamore. They were very brave, but he was Nibowaka and very strong; he struck them down as the Thunderbird, Hurakan, strikes the dead pines the fire has left on the hilltop against the sky. Now shall you eat their hearts, for they were brave. My father told me a fighting muskrat's heart is great medicine; for he seeks peace while it is possible, then he turns and fights without fear.”

“This is what we should paint on the wigwam,” Quonab said. “Three great warriors attacked one Sagamore. They were very brave, but he was Nibowaka and incredibly strong; he brought them down like the Thunderbird, Hurakan, strikes the dead pines that fire has left on the hilltop against the sky. Now you shall eat their hearts, for they were courageous. My father told me that a fighting muskrat's heart is powerful medicine; he seeks peace while it’s possible, then he turns and fights without fear.”

A few days later, they sighted a fox. In order to have a joke on Skookum, they put him on its track, and away he went, letting off his joy-whoops at every jump. The men sat down to wait, knowing full well that after an hour Skookum would come back with a long tongue and an air of depression. But they were favoured with an unexpected view of the chase. It showed a fox bounding over the snow, and not twenty yards behind was their energetic four-legged colleague.

A few days later, they spotted a fox. To have a little fun at Skookum's expense, they set him on its trail, and off he went, whooping with joy at every leap. The men sat down to wait, fully aware that after about an hour Skookum would return with his tongue hanging out and a look of disappointment. But they got an unexpected view of the chase. They saw a fox leaping over the snow, with their eager four-legged friend not twenty yards behind.

And, still more unexpected, the fox was overtaken in the next thicket, shaken to limpness, and dragged to be dropped at Quonab's feet. This glorious victory by Skookum was less surprising, when a closer examination showed that the fox had been in a bad way. Through some sad, sudden indiscretion, he had tackled a porcupine and paid the penalty. His mouth, jaws and face, neck and legs, were bristling with quills. He was sick and emaciated. He could not have lasted many days longer, and Skookum's summary lynching was a blessing in disguise.

And even more surprisingly, the fox was caught in the next thicket, so shaken it could barely move, and was dragged to be dropped at Quonab's feet. This amazing win by Skookum was less shocking when you looked closer and saw that the fox was in terrible shape. Due to some unfortunate mistake, it had tried to take on a porcupine and paid the price. Its mouth, jaws, face, neck, and legs were covered in quills. It was sick and emaciated. It couldn't have lasted many more days, and Skookum's quick end was a blessing in disguise.

The trappers' usual routine was varied by a more important happening. One day of deep snow in January, when they were running the northern line on Racquet River, they camped for the night at their shelter cabin, and were somewhat surprised at dusk to hear a loud challenge from Skookum replied to by a human voice, and a short man with black whiskers appeared. He raised one hand in token of friendliness and was invited to come in.

The trappers' usual routine was interrupted by something more significant. One day in January, when there was heavy snow and they were checking the northern line on Racquet River, they set up camp for the night at their shelter cabin. They were somewhat surprised at dusk to hear a loud bark from Skookum answered by a human voice. A short man with black whiskers appeared, raising one hand to show he meant no harm, and they invited him in.

He was a French Canadian from La Colle Mills. He had trapped here for some years. The almost certainty of war between Canada and the States had kept his usual companions away. So he had trapped alone, always a dangerous business, and had gathered a lot of good fur, but had fallen on the ice and hurt himself inwardly, so that he had no strength. He could tramp out on snowshoes, but could not carry his pack of furs. He had long known that he had neighbours on the south; the camp fire smoke proved that, and he had come now to offer all his furs for sale.

He was a French Canadian from La Colle Mills. He had been trapping in the area for several years. The near certainty of war between Canada and the States had kept his usual companions away. So, he had trapped alone, which was always a risky business, and had collected a lot of valuable fur, but he had fallen on the ice and hurt himself internally, leaving him weak. He could hike out on snowshoes, but he couldn’t carry his pack of furs. He had long known that there were neighbors to the south; the campfire smoke confirmed that, and now he had come to offer all his furs for sale.

Quonab shook his head, but Rolf said, “We'll come over and see them.”

Quonab shook his head, but Rolf said, “We'll come over and check them out.”

A two-hours' tramp in the morning brought them to the Frenchman's cabin. He opened out his furs; several otter, many sable, some lynx, over thirty beaver—the whole lot for two hundred dollars. At Lyons Falls they were worth double that.

A two-hour hike in the morning took them to the Frenchman's cabin. He spread out his furs; several otter, many sable, some lynx, and over thirty beaver—the whole lot for two hundred dollars. At Lyons Falls, they would be worth double that.

Rolf saw a chance for a bargain. He whispered, “We can double our money on it, Quonab. What do ye say?”

Rolf saw an opportunity for a deal. He whispered, “We can double our money on this, Quonab. What do you think?”

The reply was simply, “Ugh! you are Nibowaka.”

The reply was just, “Ugh! you are Nibowaka.”

“We'll take your offer, if we can fix it up about payment, for I have no money with me and barely two hundred dollars at the cabin.”

“We'll accept your offer if we can sort out the payment because I don't have any cash on me and only around two hundred dollars at the cabin.”

“You half tabac and grosairs?”

"Do you have tobacco and groceries?"

“Yes, plenty.”

“Yeah, a lot.”

“You can go 'get 'em? Si?”

“You can go get them? Yes?”

Rolf paused, looked down, then straight at the Frenchman.

Rolf paused, looked down, and then directly at the Frenchman.

“Will you trust me to take half the fur now; when I come back with the pay I can get the rest.”

“Will you trust me to take half the fur now? When I come back with the payment, I can get the rest.”

The Frenchman looked puzzled, then, “By Gar you look de good look. I let um go. I tink you pretty good fellow, parbleu!”

The Frenchman looked confused, then said, “Wow, you really look good. I let them go. I think you’re a pretty good guy, for sure!”

So Rolf marched away with half the furs and four days later he was back and paid the pale-faced but happy Frenchman the one hundred and fifty dollars he had received from Van Cortlandt, with other bills making one hundred and ninety-five dollars and with groceries and tobacco enough to satisfy the trapper. The Frenchman proved a most amiable character. He and Rolf took to each other greatly, and when they shook hands at parting, it was in the hope of an early and happier meeting.

So Rolf walked away with half the furs, and four days later he returned and paid the pale-faced but cheerful Frenchman the one hundred and fifty dollars he had received from Van Cortlandt, along with other bills totaling one hundred and ninety-five dollars and enough groceries and tobacco to satisfy the trapper. The Frenchman turned out to be a really nice guy. He and Rolf got along well, and when they shook hands at parting, it was in the hope of seeing each other again soon and under better circumstances.

Francois la Colle turned bravely for the ninety-mile tramp over the snow to his home, while Rolf went south with the furs that were to prove a most profitable investment, shaping his life in several ways, and indirectly indeed of saving it on one occasion.

Francois la Colle boldly set off for the ninety-mile trek through the snow to get home, while Rolf headed south with the furs that ended up being a very profitable investment, shaping his life in several ways and even indirectly saving it once.





Chapter 68. War

Eighteen hundred and twelve had passed away. President Madison, driven by wrongs to his countrymen and indignities that no nation should meekly accept, had in the midsummer declared war on Great Britain. Unfitted to cope with the situation and surrounded by unfit counsellors, his little army of heroic men led by unfit commanders had suffered one reverse after another.

Eighteen hundred and twelve had come to an end. President Madison, motivated by the injustices faced by his fellow countrymen and insults that no nation should tolerate, declared war on Great Britain in the summer. Ill-prepared to handle the situation and surrounded by inadequate advisors, his small army of brave men, led by incompetent commanders, experienced defeat after defeat.

The loss of Fort Mackinaw, Chicago, Detroit, Brownstown, and the total destruction of the American army that attacked Queenstown were but poorly offset by the victory at Niagara and the successful defence of Ogdensburg.

The loss of Fort Mackinaw, Chicago, Detroit, Brownstown, and the complete destruction of the American army that attacked Queenstown were hardly balanced out by the victory at Niagara and the successful defense of Ogdensburg.

Rolf and Quonab had repaired to Albany as arranged, but they left it as United States scouts, not as guides to the four young sportsmen who wished to hark back to the primitive.

Rolf and Quonab had gone to Albany as planned, but they left as United States scouts, not as guides for the four young guys who wanted to go back to the basics.

Their first commission had been the bearing of despatches to Plattsburg.

Their first assignment had been to carry messages to Plattsburg.

With a selected light canoe and a minimum of baggage they reached Ticonderoga in two days, and there renewed their acquaintance with General Hampton, who was fussing about, and digging useless entrenchments as though he expected a mighty siege. Rolf was called before him to receive other despatches for Colonel Pike at Plattsburg. He got the papers and learned their destination, then immediately made a sad mistake. “Excuse me, sir,” he began, “if I meet with—”

With a lightweight canoe and minimal luggage, they arrived at Ticonderoga in two days, where they reconnected with General Hampton, who was busy and digging pointless trenches as if he anticipated a significant siege. Rolf was summoned to receive more messages for Colonel Pike in Plattsburg. He got the documents and learned where they were headed, then immediately made an unfortunate mistake. “Excuse me, sir,” he began, “if I come across—”

“Young man,” said the general, severely, “I don't want any of your 'ifs' or 'buts'; your orders are 'go.' 'How' and 'if' are matters for you to find out; that's what you are paid for.”

“Young man,” the general said sternly, “I don't want to hear any of your 'ifs' or 'buts'; your orders are 'go.' 'How' and 'if' are for you to figure out; that's what you're being paid for.”

Rolf bowed; his cheeks were tingling. He was very angry at what he thought a most uncalled for rebuke, but he got over it, and he never forgot the lesson. It was Si Sylvanne that put it into rememberable form.

Rolf bowed; his cheeks were flushed. He was really angry about what he thought was a completely unnecessary reprimand, but he got past it, and he never forgot the lesson. It was Si Sylvanne who made it memorable.

“A fool horse kin follow a turnpike, but it takes a man with wits to climb, swim, boat, skate, run, hide, go it blind, pick a lock, take the long way, round, when it's the short way across, run away at the right time, or fight when it's wise—all in one afternoon.” Rolf set out for the north carrying a bombastic (meant to be reassuring) message from Hampton that he would annihilate any enemy who dared to desecrate the waters of the lake.

“A foolish horse can follow a main road, but it takes a clever person to climb, swim, row, skate, run, hide, improvise, pick a lock, take the scenic route when the direct path is shorter, know when to run away, or fight wisely—all in one afternoon.” Rolf set out for the north carrying an over-the-top (meant to be comforting) message from Hampton that he would destroy any enemy who dared to disturb the waters of the lake.

It was on this trip that Rolf learned from Quonab the details of the latter's visit to his people on the St. Regis. Apparently the joy of meeting a few of his own kin, with whom he could talk his own language, was offset by meeting with a large number of his ancient enemies the Mohawks. There had been much discussion of the possible war between the British and the Yankees. The Mohawks announced their intention to fight for the British, which was a sufficient reason for Quonab as a Sinawa remaining with the Americans; and when he left the St. Regis reserve the Indian was without any desire to reenter it.

It was on this trip that Rolf learned from Quonab the details of Quonab's visit to his people on St. Regis. It seemed that the excitement of meeting some of his own relatives, with whom he could speak his language, was balanced out by the presence of many of his long-standing enemies, the Mohawks. There had been a lot of talk about the potential war between the British and the Americans. The Mohawks declared their intention to side with the British, which was enough for Quonab, as a Sinawa, to stay with the Americans; and when he left the St. Regis reserve, he had no desire to go back.

At Plattsburg Rolf and Quonab met with another Albany acquaintance in General Wilkinson, and from him received despatches which they brought back to Albany, having covered the whole distance in eight days.

At Plattsburg, Rolf and Quonab met with another friend from Albany, General Wilkinson, and received messages from him that they took back to Albany, completing the entire journey in eight days.

When 1812 was gone Rolf had done little but carry despatches up and down Lake Champlain. Next season found the Americans still under command of Generals Wilkinson and Hampton, whose utter incompetence was becoming daily more evident.

When 1812 was over, Rolf had barely done more than deliver messages back and forth across Lake Champlain. The next season saw the Americans still led by Generals Wilkinson and Hampton, whose complete incompetence was becoming more obvious every day.

The year 1813 saw Rolf, eighteen years old and six feet one in his socks, a trained scout and despatch bearer.

The year 1813 saw Rolf, eighteen years old and six feet one in his socks, a trained scout and messenger.

By a flying trip on snowshoes in January he took letters, from General Hampton at Ticonderoga to Sackett's Harbour and back in eight days, nearly three hundred miles. It made him famous as a runner, but the tidings that he brought were sad. Through him they learned in detail of the total defeat and capture of the American army at Frenchtown. After a brief rest he was sent across country on snowshoes to bear a reassuring message to Ogdensburg. The weather was much colder now, and the single blanket bed was dangerously slight; so “Flying Kittering,” as they named him, took a toboggan and secured Quonab as his running mate. Skookum was given into safe keeping. Blankets, pots, cups, food, guns, and despatches were strapped on the toboggan, and they sped away at dawn from Ticonderoga on the 18th of February 1813, headed northwestward, guided by little but the compass. Thirty miles that day they made in spite of piercing blasts and driving snow. But with the night there began a terrible storm with winds of zero chill. The air was filled with stinging, cutting snow. When they rose at daylight they were nearly buried in drifts, although their camp was in a dense, sheltered thicket. Guided wholly by the compass they travelled again, but blinded by the whirling white they stumbled and blundered into endless difficulties and made but poor headway. After dragging the toboggan for three hours, taking turns at breaking the way, they were changing places when Rolf noticed a large gray patch on Quonab's cheek and nose.

In January, he made a quick trip on snowshoes, delivering letters from General Hampton at Ticonderoga to Sackett's Harbour and back in eight days, covering nearly three hundred miles. This journey made him well-known as a runner, but the news he brought was unfortunate. Through him, they learned all about the complete defeat and capture of the American army at Frenchtown. After a short break, he was sent across the country on snowshoes to deliver an encouraging message to Ogdensburg. The weather had grown much colder, and the single blanket for a bed was not adequate; so “Flying Kittering,” as they called him, took a toboggan and teamed up with Quonab. Skookum was left in safe hands. They strapped blankets, pots, cups, food, guns, and dispatches onto the toboggan and set off at dawn from Ticonderoga on February 18, 1813, heading northwest with nothing but a compass to guide them. That day, despite the biting winds and heavy snow, they made thirty miles. However, as night fell, a fierce storm hit with sub-zero winds. The air was filled with stinging, harsh snow. When they woke at dawn, they were nearly buried in drifts, even though their camp was in a dense, sheltered thicket. Relying solely on the compass again, they continued their journey, but being blinded by the whirling snow, they stumbled into numerous difficulties and made little progress. After dragging the toboggan for three hours and taking turns breaking the path, they were switching places when Rolf noticed a large gray patch on Quonab's cheek and nose.

“Quonab, your face is frozen,” he said.

“Quonab, your face is stiff,” he said.

“So is yours,” was the reply.

“So is yours,” was the reply.

Now they turned aside, followed a hollow until they reached a spruce grove, where they camped and took an observation, to learn that the compass and they held widely different views about the direction of travel. It was obviously useless to face the storm. They rubbed out their frozen features with dry snow and rested by the fire.

Now they veered off, followed a depression until they reached a spruce grove, where they set up camp and took a reading, discovering that the compass and they had very different ideas about the direction to go. It was clearly pointless to confront the storm. They wiped their frozen faces with dry snow and relaxed by the fire.

No good scout seeks for hardship; he avoids the unnecessary trial of strength and saves himself for the unavoidable. With zero weather about them and twenty-four hours to wait in the storm, the scouts set about making themselves thoroughly comfortable.

No good scout looks for hardship; he steers clear of unnecessary challenges and saves his energy for what can't be avoided. With freezing temperatures around them and a full day to wait out the storm, the scouts focused on getting as comfortable as possible.

With their snowshoes they dug away the snow in a circle a dozen feet across, piling it up on the outside so as to make that as high as possible. When they were down to the ground, the wall of snow around them was five feet high. Now they went forth with the hatchets, cut many small spruces, and piled them against the living spruces about the camp till there was a dense mass of evergreen foliage ten feet high around them, open only at the top, where was a space five feet across. With abundance of dry spruce wood, a thick bed of balsam boughs, and plenty of blankets they were in what most woodmen consider comfort complete.

With their snowshoes, they cleared away the snow in a circle about a dozen feet wide, stacking it up on the outside to make it as high as possible. Once they reached the ground, the wall of snow surrounding them was five feet tall. They then took their hatchets and cut down several small spruces, piling them against the live spruces around the camp until there was a thick mass of evergreen branches ten feet high surrounding them, open only at the top where there was a five-foot wide space. With plenty of dry spruce wood, a thick layer of balsam boughs, and lots of blankets, they were in what many woodsmen consider complete comfort.

They had nothing to do now but wait. Quonab sat placidly smoking, Rolf was sewing a rent in his coat, the storm hissed, and the wind-driven ice needles rattled through the trees to vary the crackle of the fire with a “siss” as they fell on the embers. The low monotony of sound was lulling in its evenness, when a faint crunch of a foot on the snow was heard. Rolf reached for his gun, the fir tree screen was shaken a little, and a minute later there bounded in upon them the snow covered form of little dog Skookum, expressing his good-will by excessive sign talk in which every limb and member had a part. They had left him behind, indeed, but not with his consent, so the bargain was incomplete.

They had nothing to do now but wait. Quonab sat calmly smoking, while Rolf was sewing up a tear in his coat. The storm hissed, and the wind-driven ice needles rattled through the trees, adding a “siss” sound as they fell on the embers of the fire. The low, steady sound was soothing in its consistency when they heard a faint crunch of footsteps on the snow. Rolf reached for his gun, the fir tree screen shook a little, and a minute later, the snow-covered form of little dog Skookum came bounding in, showing his excitement with enthusiastic body language that involved every limb. They had left him behind, but not with his agreement, so the arrangement felt incomplete.

There was no need to ask now, What shall we do with him? Skookum had settled that, and why or how he never attempted to explain.

There was no need to ask now, "What should we do with him?" Skookum had already figured that out, and he never bothered to explain why or how.

He was wise who made it law that “as was his share who went forth to battle, so shall his be that abode with the stuff,” for the hardest of all is the waiting. In the morning there was less doing in the elemental strife. There were even occasional periods of calm and at length it grew so light that surely the veil was breaking.

He was smart to establish the rule that “whoever goes to battle gets a fair share, just like those who stay behind,” because waiting is the hardest part. In the morning, the elemental struggle was less intense. There were even times of calm, and eventually, it became so bright that it felt like the dawn was finally breaking.

Quonab returned from a brief reconnoitre to say, “Ugh!—good going.”

Quonab came back from a quick scouting trip and said, “Ugh!—great job.”

The clouds were broken and flying, the sun came out at times, but the wind was high, the cold intense, and the snow still drifting. Poor Skookum had it harder than the men, for they wore snowshoes; but he kept his troubles to himself and bravely trudged along behind. Had he been capable of such reflection he might have said, “What delightful weather, it keeps the fleas so quiet.”

The clouds were scattered and moving, the sun peeked out occasionally, but the wind was strong, the cold biting, and the snow was still blowing around. Poor Skookum had a tougher time than the guys, since they had on snowshoes; but he kept his struggles to himself and bravely plodded on behind. If he had been able to think like that, he might have said, “What nice weather, it keeps the fleas so calm.”

That day there was little to note but the intense cold, and again both men had their cheeks frost-bitten on the north side. A nook under an overhanging rock gave a good camp that night. Next day the bad weather resumed, but, anxious to push on they faced it, guided chiefly by the wind. It was northwest, and as long as they felt this fierce, burning cold mercilessly gnawing on their hapless tender right cheek bones, they knew they were keeping their proper main course.

That day there wasn't much to notice except for the intense cold, and once again both men had frostbite on the north side of their cheeks. A sheltered spot beneath an overhanging rock made for a decent campsite that night. The next day, the bad weather returned, but determined to move forward, they pressed on, primarily guided by the wind. It was coming from the northwest, and as long as they felt that fierce, biting cold relentlessly biting into their vulnerable right cheekbones, they knew they were still heading in the right direction.

They were glad indeed to rest at dusk and thaw their frozen faces. Next day at dawn they were off; at first it was calm, but the surging of the snow waves soon began again, and the air was filled with the spray of their lashing till it was hard to see fifty yards in any direction. They were making very bad time. The fourth day should have brought them to Ogdensburg, but they were still far off; how far they could only guess, for they had not come across a house or a settler.

They were really happy to rest at dusk and warm up their frozen faces. The next morning at dawn, they set off; it started off calm, but soon the snow waves began to surge again, and the air was filled with the spray from their whipping, making it hard to see fifty yards in any direction. They were making really slow progress. They should have reached Ogdensburg on the fourth day, but they were still far away; how far they could only guess, since they hadn’t come across any houses or settlers.





Chapter 69. Ogdensburg

The same blizzard was raging on the next day when Skookum gave unequivocal sign talk that he smelled something.

The same blizzard was raging the next day when Skookum clearly communicated through sign language that he smelled something.

It is always well to find out what stirs your dog. Quonab looked hard at Skookum. That sagacious mongrel was sniffing vigorously, up in the air, not on the ground; his mane was not bristling, and the patch of dark hair that every gray or yellow dog has at the base of his tail, was not lifted.

It’s always good to know what excites your dog. Quonab stared intently at Skookum. That clever mixed breed was sniffing enthusiastically in the air, not on the ground; his fur wasn’t standing on end, and the dark patch of hair that all gray or yellow dogs have at the base of their tails wasn’t raised.

“He smells smoke,” was the Indian's quick diagnosis. Rolf pointed Up the wind and made the sign-talk query. Quonab nodded.

“He smells smoke,” was the Indian's quick assessment. Rolf pointed upwind and asked with hand signals. Quonab nodded.

It was their obvious duty to find out who was their smoky neighbour. They were now not so far from the St. Lawrence; there was a small chance of the smoke being from a party of the enemy; there was a large chance of it being from friends; and the largest chance was that it came from some settler's cabin where they could get necessary guidance.

It was clearly their responsibility to figure out who their smoky neighbor was. They were now not too far from the St. Lawrence; there was a small possibility that the smoke was coming from an enemy camp; there was a good chance it was from friends; and the biggest likelihood was that it came from a settler's cabin where they could get some much-needed guidance.

They turned aside. The wind now, instead of on the right cheek, was square in their faces. Rolf went forward increasing his pace till he was as far ahead as was possible without being out of sight. After a mile their way led downward, the timber was thicker, the wind less, and the air no more befogged with flying snow. Rolf came to a long, deep trench that wound among the trees; the snow at the bottom of it was very hard. This was what he expected; the trail muffled under new, soft snow, but still a fresh trail and leading to the camp that Skookum had winded.

They turned away. The wind now, instead of hitting them on the right cheek, was blowing straight into their faces. Rolf moved ahead, picking up his pace until he was as far in front as he could go without disappearing from sight. After a mile, their path sloped downward, the trees became denser, the wind died down, and the air was no longer filled with swirling snow. Rolf came across a long, deep ditch winding through the trees; the snow at the bottom was very hard. This was what he had anticipated: the path covered by new, soft snow, but still a fresh trail leading to the camp that Skookum had sniffed out.

He turned and made the sign for them to halt and wait. Then strode cautiously along the winding guide line.

He turned and gestured for them to stop and wait. Then he walked carefully along the winding guide line.

In twenty minutes the indications of a settlement increased, and the scout at length was peering from the woods across the open down to a broad stream on whose bank was a saw mill, with the usual wilderness of ramshackle shanties, sheds, and lumber piles about.

In twenty minutes, signs of a settlement grew stronger, and the scout was finally looking out from the woods across the open field toward a wide stream. On its banks stood a sawmill, surrounded by the typical chaos of dilapidated shanties, sheds, and piles of lumber.

There was no work going on, which was a puzzle till Rolf remembered it was Sunday. He went boldly up and asked for the boss. His whole appearance was that of a hunter and as such the boss received him.

There was no work happening, which was confusing until Rolf remembered it was Sunday. He confidently approached and asked for the boss. His entire appearance resembled that of a hunter, and the boss welcomed him as such.

He was coming through from the other side and had missed his way in the storm, he explained.

He was coming through from the other side and had lost his way in the storm, he explained.

“What are ye by trade?”

“What do you do for work?”

“A trapper.”

“A fur trapper.”

“Where are ye bound now?”

“Where are you headed now?”

“Well, I'll head for the nearest big settlement, whatever that is.”

“Well, I’ll make my way to the closest big town, whatever that is.”

“It's just above an even thing between Alexandria Bay and Ogdensburg.”

”It's just slightly higher than a straight line between Alexandria Bay and Ogdensburg.”

So Rolf inquired fully about the trail to Alexandria Bay that he did not want to go to. Why should he be so careful? The mill owner was clearly a good American, but the scout had no right to let any outsider know his business. This mill owner might be safe, but he might be unwise and blab to some one who was not all right.

So Rolf asked in detail about the route to Alexandria Bay that he didn’t want to take. Why was he being so cautious? The mill owner was clearly a decent American, but the scout had no right to let any outsider know his business. This mill owner might be trustworthy, but he could also be careless and spill information to someone who wasn’t reliable.

Then in a casual way he learned that this was the Oswegatchie River and thirty miles down he would find the town of Ogdensburg.

Then, casually, he found out that this was the Oswegatchie River and that thirty miles down, he would find the town of Ogdensburg.

No great recent events did he hear of, but evidently the British troops across the river were only awaiting the springtime before taking offensive measures.

No major recent events reached his ears, but it was clear that the British troops across the river were just waiting for spring before launching an offensive.

For the looks of it, Rolf bought some tea and pork, but the hospitable mill man refused to take payment and, leaving in the direction of Alexandria Bay, Rolf presently circled back and rejoined his friends in the woods.

From what it seems, Rolf bought some tea and pork, but the friendly mill owner wouldn’t accept payment. After heading towards Alexandria Bay, Rolf soon turned back and rejoined his friends in the woods.

A long detour took them past the mill. It was too cold for outdoor idling. Every window was curtained with frost, and not a soul saw them as they tramped along past the place and down to continue on the ice of the Oswegatchie.

A long detour took them past the mill. It was too cold to hang around outside. Every window was covered in frost, and not a single person noticed them as they trudged past and made their way onto the ice of the Oswegatchie.

Pounded by the ceaseless wind, the snow on the ice was harder, travel was easier, and the same tireless blizzard wiped out the trail as soon as it was behind them.

Pelted by the relentless wind, the snow on the ice was firmer, making travel simpler, and the same unending blizzard erased the path as soon as they passed it.

Crooked is the river trail, but good the footing, and good time was made. When there was a north reach, the snow was extra hard or the ice clear and the scouts slipped off their snow shoes, and trotted at a good six-mile gait. Three times they halted for tea and rest, but the fact that they were the bearers of precious despatches, the bringers of inspiring good news, and their goal ever nearer, spurred them on and on. It was ten o'clock that morning when they left the mill, some thirty miles from Ogdensburg. It was now near sundown, but still they figured that by an effort they could reach the goal that night. It was their best day's travel, but they were nerved to it by the sense of triumph as they trotted; and the prospective joy of marching up to the commandant and handing over the eagerly looked for, reassuring documents, gave them new strength and ambition. Yes! they must push on at any price that night. Day was over now; Rolf was leading at a steady trot. In his hand he held the long trace of his toboggan, ten feet behind was Quonab with the short trace, while Skookum trotted before, beside, or behind, as was dictated by his general sense of responsibility.

The river trail was winding, but the footing was solid, and they made good time. When the trail headed north, the snow was extra firm and the ice was clear, so the scouts took off their snowshoes and ran at a steady six-mile pace. They stopped three times for tea and a break, but the knowledge that they were carrying important messages and bringing inspiring news, with their destination getting closer, motivated them to keep going. They left the mill at ten o'clock that morning, about thirty miles from Ogdensburg. Now, close to sundown, they believed that with some effort, they could reach their destination that night. It was their best day of travel, fueled by a sense of triumph as they ran; the thought of approaching the commandant and handing over the long-awaited, reassuring documents gave them renewed strength and determination. Yes! They had to push on at all costs that night. Daylight had faded; Rolf was leading at a steady trot. He held the long trace of his toboggan, with Quonab ten feet behind him with the short trace, while Skookum trotted ahead, beside, or behind, as his sense of responsibility guided him.

It was quite dark now. There was no moon, the wooded shore was black. Their only guide was the broad, wide reach of the river, sometimes swept bare of snow by the wind, but good travelling at all times. They were trotting and walking in spells, going five miles an hour; Quonab was suffering, but Rolf was young and eager to finish. They rounded another reach, they were now on the last big bend, they were reeling off the miles; only ten more, and Rolf was so stirred that, instead of dropping to the usual walk on signal at the next one hundred yards spell, he added to his trot. Quonab, taken unawares, slipped and lost his hold of the trace. Rolf shot ahead and a moment later there was the crash of a breaking air-hole, and Rolf went through the ice, clutched at the broken edge and disappeared, while the toboggan was dragged to the hole.

It was pretty dark now. There was no moon, and the wooded shore was pitch black. Their only guide was the wide stretch of the river, sometimes cleared of snow by the wind, but always good for traveling. They were trotting and walking in turns, moving at about five miles an hour; Quonab was struggling, but Rolf was young and eager to finish. They rounded another bend; they were now on the last big curve, covering the miles quickly; only ten more to go, and Rolf was so excited that instead of slowing down to a walk at the next hundred-yard stretch, he increased his trot. Quonab, caught off guard, slipped and lost his grip on the trace. Rolf shot ahead, and a moment later there was a loud crash as an air-hole broke, and Rolf fell through the ice, grabbed at the shattered edge, and disappeared, while the toboggan was pulled into the hole.

Quonab sprung to his feet, and then to the lower side of the hole. The toboggan had swung to the same place and the long trace was tight; without a moment's delay the Indian hauled at it steadily, heavily, and in a few seconds the head of his companion reappeared; still clutching that long trace he was safely dragged from the ice-cold flood, blowing and gasping, shivering and sopping, but otherwise unhurt.

Quonab jumped to his feet and moved to the lower side of the hole. The toboggan had swung to the same spot, and the long rope was taut; without wasting a second, the Indian pulled on it firmly and steadily, and within moments, his companion's head reemerged. Still holding onto the long rope, he was safely pulled out of the icy water, panting and gasping, shivering and soaked, but otherwise unharmed.

Now here a new danger presented itself. The zero wind would soon turn his clothes to boards. They stiffened in a few minutes, and the Indian knew that frozen hands and feet were all too easy in frozen clothes.

Now a new danger appeared. The lack of wind would soon turn his clothes rigid. They stiffened in just a few minutes, and the Indian realized that frozen hands and feet were all too likely in frozen clothes.

He made at once for the shore, and, seeking the heart of a spruce thicket, lost no time in building two roaring fires between which Rolf stood while the Indian made the bed, in which, as soon as he could be stripped, the lad was glad to hide. Warm tea and warm blankets made him warm, but it would take an hour or two to dry his clothes. There is nothing more damaging than drying them too quickly. Quonab made racks of poles and spent the next two hours in regulating the fire, watching the clothes, and working the moccasins.

He headed straight for the shore and, moving into the depths of a spruce thicket, quickly set up two blazing fires between which Rolf stood while the Indian prepared the bed. As soon as he could change out of his wet clothes, the boy was happy to settle in. Warm tea and cozy blankets kept him warm, but it would take an hour or two to dry his clothes. There's nothing worse than drying them too quickly. Quonab made racks from poles and spent the next two hours tending the fire, keeping an eye on the clothes, and working on the moccasins.

It was midnight when they were ready and any question of going on at once was settled by Quonab. “Ogdensburg is under arms,” he said. “It is not wise to approach by night.”

It was midnight when they were ready, and any question of moving forward immediately was settled by Quonab. “Ogdensburg is on alert,” he said. “It’s not a good idea to approach at night.”

At six in the morning they were once more going, stiff with travel, sore-footed, face-frozen, and chafed by delay; but, swift and keen, trotting and walking, they went. They passed several settlements, but avoided them. At seven-thirty they had a distant glimpse of Ogdensburg and heard the inspiring roll of drums, and a few minutes later from the top of a hill they had a complete view of the heroic little town to see—yes! plainly enough—that the British flag was flying from the flag pole.

At six in the morning, they were on the move again, tired from their journey, with sore feet, frozen faces, and irritated by the delays; but they continued on, quick and determined, trotting and walking. They passed several towns but steered clear of them. By seven-thirty, they caught a distant glimpse of Ogdensburg and heard the motivating sound of drums, and a few minutes later, from the top of a hill, they had a full view of the brave little town to see—yes! Clearly—that the British flag was flying from the flagpole.





Chapter 70. Saving the Despatches

Oh, the sickening shock of it! Rolf did not know till now how tired he was, how eager to deliver the heartening message, and to relax a little from the strain. He felt weak through and through. There could be no doubt that a disaster had befallen his country's arms.

Oh, the shocking realization! Rolf didn’t realize until now how exhausted he was, how desperately he wanted to share the uplifting news, and to take a break from the pressure. He felt completely drained. There was no doubt that a disaster had struck his country's forces.

His first care was to get out of sight with his sled and those precious despatches.

His top priority was to hide with his sled and those important messages.

Now what should he do? Nothing till he had fuller information. He sent Quonab back with the sled, instructing him to go to a certain place two miles off, there camp out of sight and wait.

Now what should he do? Nothing until he had more information. He sent Quonab back with the sled, telling him to go to a specific spot two miles away, set up camp out of sight, and wait.

Then he went in alone. Again and again he was stung by the thought, “If I had come sooner they might have held out.”

Then he went in by himself. Over and over, he was hurt by the thought, “If I had come sooner, they might have survived.”

A number of teams gathered at the largest of a group of houses on the bank suggested a tavern. He went in and found many men sitting down to breakfast. He had no need to ask questions. It was the talk of the table. Ogdensburg had been captured the day before. The story is well known. Colonel MacDonnell with his Glengarry Highlanders at Prescott went to drill daily on the ice of the St. Lawrence opposite Ogdensburg. Sometimes they marched past just out of range, sometimes they charged and wheeled before coming too near. The few Americans that held the place watched these harmless exercises and often cheered some clever manceuvre. They felt quite safe behind their fortification. By an unwritten agreement both parties refrained from firing random shots at each other. There was little to suggest enemies entrenched; indeed, many men in each party had friends in the other, and the British had several times trotted past within easy range, without provoking a shot.

A bunch of teams gathered at the biggest house by the bank that suggested a tavern. He went inside and found many guys sitting down for breakfast. He didn’t need to ask any questions; it was the main topic at the table. Ogdensburg had been taken the day before. The story is well-known. Colonel MacDonnell and his Glengarry Highlanders at Prescott practiced daily on the ice of the St. Lawrence across from Ogdensburg. Sometimes they marched just out of range, and other times they charged and turned before getting too close. The few Americans who held the place watched these harmless drills and often cheered some clever move. They felt pretty safe behind their fortifications. By an unwritten agreement, both sides avoided firing random shots at each other. There was little to suggest they were enemies entrenched; in fact, many guys on each side had friends in the other, and the British had several times passed by within easy range without getting shot at.

On February 22d, the day when Rolf and Quonab struck the Oswegatchie, the British colonel directed his men as usual, swinging them ever nearer the American fort, and then, at the nearest point, executed a very pretty charge. The Americans watched it as it neared, but instead of wheeling at the brink the little army scrambled up with merry shouts, and before the garrison could realize that this was war, they were overpowered and Ogdensburg was taken.

On February 22nd, the day Rolf and Quonab attacked the Oswegatchie, the British colonel directed his troops as he usually did, moving them closer to the American fort. Then, at the closest point, he launched a well-coordinated charge. The Americans observed as the force approached, but instead of stopping at the edge, the small army raced forward with joyful shouts, and before the garrison could comprehend that they were in a battle, they were overwhelmed and Ogdensburg was captured.

The American commander was captured. Captain Forsyth, the second in command, had been off on a snowshoe trip, so had escaped. All the rest were prisoners, and what to do with the despatches or how to get official instructions was now a deep problem. “When you don't know a thing to do, don't do a thing,” was one of Si Sylvanne's axioms; also, “In case of doubt lay low and say nothing.” Rolf hung around the town all day waiting for light. About noon a tall, straight, alert man in a buffalo coat drove up with a cutter. He had a hasty meal in an inside room. Rolf sized him up for an American officer, but there was a possibility of his being a Canadian. Rolf tried in vain to get light on him but the inner door was kept closed; the landlord was evidently in the secret. When he came out he was again swaddled in the buffalo coat. Rolf brushed past him—here was something hard and long in the right pocket of the big coat.

The American commander was captured. Captain Forsyth, who was second in command, had been away on a snowshoe trip, so he escaped. All the others were prisoners, and figuring out what to do with the dispatches or how to get official instructions was now a major problem. “When you don’t know what to do, don’t do anything,” was one of Si Sylvanne’s sayings; also, “If in doubt, stay low and say nothing.” Rolf hung around the town all day waiting for clarity. Around noon, a tall, straight, alert man in a buffalo coat drove up with a sled. He had a quick meal in a back room. Rolf figured he was an American officer, but there was a chance he could be Canadian. Rolf tried unsuccessfully to gain insight about him, but the inner door was kept closed; the landlord was clearly in on the secret. When the man came out, he was again bundled in the buffalo coat. Rolf brushed past him—there was something hard and long in the right pocket of the big coat.

The landlord, the guest, and the driver had a whispered conference. Rolf went as near as he dared, but got only a searching look. The driver spoke to another driver and Rolf heard the words “Black Lake.” Yes, that was what he suspected. Black Lake was on the inland sleigh route to Alexandria Bay and Sackett's Harbour.

The landlord, the guest, and the driver had a quiet conversation. Rolf got as close as he could without being noticed, but all he received was an intense look. The driver talked to another driver, and Rolf caught the words “Black Lake.” Yes, that was what he thought. Black Lake was on the inland sleigh route to Alexandria Bay and Sackett's Harbour.

The driver, a fresh young fellow, was evidently interested in the landlord's daughter; the stranger was talking with the landlord. As soon as they had parted, Rolf went to the latter and remarked quietly: “The captain is in a hurry.” The only reply was a cold look and: “Guess that's his business.” So it was the captain. The driver's mitts were on the line back of the stove. Rolf shook them so that they fell in a dark corner. The driver missed his mitts, and glad of a chance went back in, leaving the officer alone. “Captain Forsyth,” whispered Rolf, “don't go till I have talked with you. I'll meet you a mile down the road.”

The driver, a young guy, was clearly interested in the landlord's daughter while the stranger was chatting with the landlord. As soon as they finished their conversation, Rolf approached the landlord and said quietly, “The captain is in a hurry.” The landlord only responded with a cold look and replied, “Guess that's his business.” So it was the captain. The driver’s mitts were on the line behind the stove. Rolf shook them so they fell into a dark corner. The driver noticed his missing mitts and, happy for an excuse, went back in, leaving the officer alone. “Captain Forsyth,” Rolf whispered, “don’t leave until I’ve had a chance to talk to you. I’ll meet you a mile down the road.”

“Who are you and what do you want?” was the curt and hostile reply, evidently admitting the identification correct however.

“Who are you and what do you want?” was the short and unfriendly response, clearly acknowledging that the identification was correct.

Rolf opened his coat and showed his scout badge.

Rolf opened his coat and displayed his scout badge.

“Why not talk now if you have any news—come in side.” So the two went to the inner room. “Who is this?” asked Rolf cautiously as the landlord came in.

“Why not share your news now—come inside.” So the two went into the inner room. “Who is this?” Rolf asked carefully as the landlord entered.

“He's all right. This is Titus Flack, the landlord.”

“He's fine. This is Titus Flack, the landlord.”

“How am I to know that?”

“How am I supposed to know that?”

“Haven't you heard him called by name all day?” said the captain.

“Haven't you heard someone call his name all day?” said the captain.

Flack smiled, went out and returned with his license to sell liquor, and his commission as a magistrate of New York State. The latter bore his own signature. He took a pen and reproduced it. Now the captain threw back his overcoat and stood in the full uniform of an army officer. He opened his satchel and took out a paper, but Rolf caught sight of another packet addressed to General Hampton. The small one was merely a map. “I think that packet in there is meant for me,” remarked Rolf.

Flack smiled, went out, and came back with his liquor license and his commission as a magistrate of New York State. The latter had his signature on it. He picked up a pen and copied it. Now the captain shrugged off his overcoat and stood in full army uniform. He opened his satchel and pulled out a paper, but Rolf noticed another packet addressed to General Hampton. The small one was just a map. “I think that packet in there is meant for me,” Rolf said.

“We haven't seen your credentials yet,” said the officer. “I have them two miles back there,” and Rolf pointed to the woods.

“We haven't seen your credentials yet,” said the officer. “I have them two miles back there,” and Rolf pointed to the woods.

“Let's go,” said the captain and they arose. Kittering had a way of inspiring confidence, but in the short, silent ride of two miles the captain began to have his doubts. The scout badge might have been stolen; Canadians often pass for Americans, etc. At length they stopped the sleigh, and Rolf led into the woods. Before a hundred yards the officer said, “Stop,” and Rolf stopped to find a pistol pointed at his head. “Now, young fellow, you've played it pretty slick, and I don't know yet what to make of it. But I know this; at the very first sign of treachery I'll blow your brains out anyway.” It gave Rolf a jolt. This was the first time he had looked down a pistol barrel levelled at him. He used to think a pistol a little thing, an inch through and a foot long, but he found now it seemed as big as a flour barrel and long enough to reach eternity. He changed colour but quickly recovered, smiled, and said: “Don't worry; in five minutes you will know it's all right.”

“Let’s go,” said the captain, and they got up. Kittering had a knack for inspiring confidence, but during the short, quiet two-mile ride, the captain started to have doubts. The scout badge might have been fake; Canadians often pass for Americans, and so on. Eventually, they halted the sleigh, and Rolf led them into the woods. After about a hundred yards, the officer said, “Stop,” and Rolf halted only to find a gun aimed at his head. “Now, kid, you’ve played this pretty slick, and I still don’t know what to make of it. But I know this: the moment I see any hint of treachery, I’ll blow your brains out.” It shocked Rolf. This was the first time he had stared down the barrel of a gun aimed at him. He used to think a gun was just a small thing, an inch wide and a foot long, but now it felt as big as a flour barrel and long enough to stretch into forever. He paled but quickly regained his composure, smiled, and said: “Don’t worry; in five minutes you’ll know it’s all good.”

Very soon a sharp bark was heard in challenge, and the two stepped into camp to meet Quonab and little dog Skookum.

Very soon, a loud bark was heard in challenge, and the two walked into the camp to meet Quonab and his little dog Skookum.

“Doesn't look much like a trap,” thought the captain after he had cast his eyes about and made sure that no other person was in the camp; then aloud, “Now what have you to show me?”

“Doesn't look much like a trap,” thought the captain after he had looked around and confirmed that no one else was in the camp; then he said out loud, “Now what do you have to show me?”

“Excuse me, captain, but how am I to know you are Captain Forsyth? It is possible for a couple of spies to give all the proof you two gave me.”

“Excuse me, Captain, but how do I know you're actually Captain Forsyth? It's easy for a couple of spies to provide the same proof you both gave me.”

The captain opened his bag and showed first his instructions given before he left Ogdensburg four days ago; he bared his arm and showed a tattooed U. S. A., a relic of Academy days, then his linen marked J. F., and a signet ring with similar initials, and last the great packet of papers addressed to General Hampton. Then he said: “When you hand over your despatches to me I will give mine to you and we shall have good guarantee each of the other.”

The captain opened his bag and first showed his instructions from four days ago when he left Ogdensburg. He rolled up his sleeve to reveal a tattoo of U.S.A., a throwback to his Academy days, then showed his linen with the initials J. F., and a signet ring with the same initials. Finally, he produced a large envelope of papers addressed to General Hampton. Then he said, “When you hand over your dispatches to me, I’ll give you mine and we’ll both have a solid guarantee from each other.”

Rolf rose, produced his bundle of papers, and exchanged them for those held by Forsyth; each felt that the other was safe. They soon grew friendly, and Rolf heard of some stirring doings on the lake and preparations for a great campaign in the spring.

Rolf got up, pulled out his stack of papers, and swapped them for those held by Forsyth; both felt reassured by the exchange. They quickly became friendly, and Rolf learned about some exciting events on the lake and plans for a major campaign in the spring.

After half an hour the tall, handsome captain left them and strode away, a picture of manly vigour. Three hours later they were preparing their evening meal when Skookum gave notice of a stranger approaching. This was time of war; Rolf held his rifle ready, and a moment later in burst the young man who had been Captain Forsyth's driver.

After half an hour, the tall, handsome captain left them and walked away, a picture of masculine energy. Three hours later, they were getting ready for their evening meal when Skookum alerted them to a stranger coming their way. It was wartime; Rolf had his rifle ready, and a moment later, the young man who had been Captain Forsyth's driver burst in.

His face was white; blood dripped from his left arm, and in his other hand was the despatch bag. He glanced keenly at Rolf. “Are you General Hampton's scout?” Rolf nodded and showed the badge on his breast. “Captain Forsyth sent this back,” he gasped. “His last words were, 'Burn the despatches rather than let the British get them.' They got him—a foraging party—there was a spy at the hotel. I got away, but my tracks are easy to follow unless it drifts. Don't wait.”

His face was pale; blood dripped from his left arm, and in his other hand was the dispatch bag. He looked sharply at Rolf. “Are you General Hampton's scout?” Rolf nodded and showed the badge on his chest. “Captain Forsyth sent this back,” he breathed. “His last words were, 'Burn the dispatches rather than let the British have them.' They got him—a foraging party—there was a spy at the hotel. I got away, but my tracks are easy to follow unless it drifts. Don’t wait.”

Poor boy, his arm was broken, but he carried out the dead officer's command, then left them to seek for relief in the settlement.

Poor boy, his arm was broken, but he followed the dead officer's orders and then left to look for help in the settlement.

Night was near, but Rolf broke camp at once and started eastward with the double packet. He did not know it then, but learned afterward that these despatches made clear the weakness of Oswego, Rochester, and Sackett's Harbour, their urgent need of help, and gave the whole plan for an American counter attack on Montreal. But he knew they were valuable, and they must at once be taken to General Hampton.

Night was approaching, but Rolf quickly packed up and headed east with the double packet. He didn’t realize it at the time, but later learned that these messages revealed the vulnerabilities of Oswego, Rochester, and Sackett's Harbour, their desperate need for assistance, and outlined the entire strategy for an American counterattack on Montreal. However, he understood that they were significant, and they needed to be delivered to General Hampton immediately.

It was rough, hard going in the thick woods and swamps away from the river, for he did not dare take the ice route now, but they pushed on for three hours, then, in the gloom, made a miserable camp in a cedar swamp.

It was tough, really difficult navigating through the dense woods and swamps away from the river, because he didn’t dare take the icy path now. But they persevered for three hours and then, in the dim light, set up a miserable camp in a cedar swamp.

At dawn they were off again. To their disgust the weather now was dead calm; there was no drift to hide their tracks; the trail was as plain as a highway wherever they went. They came to a beaten road, followed that for half a mile, then struck off on the true line. But they had no idea that they were followed until, after an hour of travel, the sun came up and on a far distant slope, full two miles away, they saw a thin black line of many spots, at least a dozen British soldiers in pursuit.

At dawn, they set off again. To their frustration, the weather was completely calm; there was no drift to conceal their tracks; the trail was as clear as a highway wherever they went. They came across a well-worn road, followed it for half a mile, then veered off on their intended path. But they had no idea they were being followed until, after an hour of traveling, the sun rose and they spotted a thin black line of numerous figures, at least a dozen British soldiers chasing them, on a distant slope, a good two miles away.

The enemy was on snowshoes, and without baggage evidently, for they travelled fast. Rolf and Quonab burdened with the sled were making a losing race. But they pushed on as fast as possible—toiling and sweating at that precious load. Rolf was pondering whether the time had not yet come to stop and burn the packet, when, glancing back from a high ridge that gave an outlook, he glimpsed a row of heads that dropped behind some rocks half a mile away, and a scheme came into his mind. He marched boldly across the twenty feet opening that was in the enemy's view, dropped behind the spruce thickets, called Quonab to follow, ran around the thicket, and again crossed the open view. So he and Quonab continued for five minutes, as fast as they could go, knowing perfectly well that they were watched. Round and round that bush they went, sometimes close together, carrying the guns, sometimes dragging the sled, sometimes with blankets on their shoulders, sometimes with a short bag or even a large cake of snow on their backs. They did everything they could to vary the scene, and before five minutes the British officer in charge had counted fifty-six armed Americans marching in single file up the bank with ample stores, accompanied by five yellow dogs. Had Skookum been allowed to carry out his ideas, there would have been fifty or sixty yellow dogs, so thoroughly did he enter into the spirit of the game.

The enemy was on snowshoes and clearly without any gear because they were moving quickly. Rolf and Quonab, weighed down by the sled, were losing the race. But they pushed on as fast as they could, struggling and sweating under that precious load. Rolf was considering whether it was time to stop and burn the package when, glancing back from a high ridge that offered a view, he spotted a row of heads ducking behind some rocks half a mile away, and an idea popped into his head. He confidently crossed the twenty-foot gap that was in the enemy's line of sight, ducked behind the spruce thickets, called for Quonab to follow, circled around the thicket, and crossed back into view. He and Quonab kept up this routine for five minutes, moving as quickly as they could while fully aware they were being watched. They circled that bush again and again, sometimes close together, carrying the guns; other times dragging the sled; sometimes with blankets on their shoulders, and at other times with a small bag or even a large block of snow on their backs. They did everything they could to change the scene, and within five minutes, the British officer in charge had counted fifty-six armed Americans marching in single file up the bank, loaded with plenty of supplies and accompanied by five yellow dogs. If Skookum had been allowed to act on his ideas, there would have been fifty or sixty yellow dogs, so enthusiastically did he get into the spirit of the game.

The track gave no hint of such a troop, but of course not, how could it? since the toboggan left all smooth after they had passed, or maybe this was a reinforcement arriving. What could he do with his ten men against fifty of the enemy? He thanked his stars that he had so cleverly evaded the trap, and without further attempt to gauge the enemy's strength, he turned and made all possible haste back to the shelter of Ogdensburg.

The track showed no sign of any troop, but how could it? The toboggan left everything smooth after they had passed, or maybe this was a backup arriving. What could he do with his ten men against fifty of the enemy? He was grateful that he had skillfully avoided the trap, and without trying to assess the enemy's strength any further, he turned and rushed back to the safety of Ogdensburg.





Chapter 71. Sackett's Harbour

It was hours before Rolf was sure that he had stopped the pursuit, and the thing that finally set his mind at rest was the rising wind that soon was a raging and drifting snow storm. “Oh, blessed storm!” he said in his heart, as he marked all trail disappear within a few seconds of its being made. And he thought: “How I cursed the wind that held me back—really from being made prisoner. How vexed I was at that ducking in the river, that really saved my despatches from the enemy. How thankful I am now for the storm that a little while back seemed so bitterly cruel.”

It took Rolf hours to feel confident that he had escaped the chase, and what finally put his mind at ease was the rising wind that soon turned into a fierce snowstorm. “Oh, blessed storm!” he thought to himself, watching as every trace he left behind vanished within seconds. And he reflected, “How I cursed the wind that held me back—actually saving me from being captured. How frustrated I was by that plunge into the river, which ended up protecting my messages from the enemy. How grateful I am now for the storm that not long ago felt so harsh and cruel.”

That forenoon they struck the big bend of the river and now did not hesitate to use the easy travel on the ice as far as Rensselaer Falls, where, having got their bearings from a settler, they struck across the country through the storm, and at night were encamped some forty miles from Ogdensburg.

That morning, they reached the big bend of the river and decided to take advantage of the smooth travel on the ice all the way to Rensselaer Falls. After getting directions from a local settler, they cut across the countryside through the storm and by nightfall were set up camp about forty miles from Ogdensburg.

Marvellously few signs of game had they seen in this hard trip; everything that could hide away was avoiding the weather. But in a cedar bottom land near Cranberry Lake they found a “yard” that seemed to be the winter home of hundreds of deer. It extended two or three miles one way a half a mile the other; in spite of the deep snow this was nearly all in beaten paths. The scouts saw at least fifty deer in going through, so, of course, had no difficulty in selecting a young buck for table use.

They had seen surprisingly few signs of game on this tough journey; everything that could hide was staying out of the bad weather. However, in a cedar lowland near Cranberry Lake, they discovered an area that looked like the winter home of hundreds of deer. It stretched two or three miles in one direction and half a mile in the other; despite the deep snow, most of it was packed down into trails. The scouts spotted at least fifty deer while passing through, so it was easy for them to pick out a young buck for dinner.

The going from there on was of little interest. It was the same old daily battle with the frost, but less rigorous than before, for now the cold winds were behind, and on the 27th of February, nine days after leaving, they trotted into Ticonderoga and reported at the commandant's headquarters.

The journey from that point on was pretty dull. It was the same everyday struggle against the frost, but it was less intense than before since the cold winds were in the past. On February 27th, nine days after they left, they arrived in Ticonderoga and checked in at the commandant's headquarters.

The general was still digging entrenchments and threatening to annihilate all Canada. But the contents of the despatches gave him new topics for thought and speech. The part he must play in the proposed descent on Montreal was flattering, but it made the Ticonderoga entrenchments ridiculous.

The general was still digging trenches and promising to wipe out all of Canada. But the messages he received gave him new things to think and talk about. The role he had to take in the planned attack on Montreal was flattering, but it made the Ticonderoga fortifications seem pointless.

For three days Rolf was kept cutting wood, then he went with despatches to Albany.

For three days, Rolf kept cutting wood, and then he went to Albany with the messages.

Many minor labours, from hog-killing to stable-cleaning and trenching, varied the month of March. Then came the uncertain time of April when it was neither canoeing nor snow-shoeing and all communication from the north was cut off.

Many small tasks, from butchering hogs to cleaning stables and digging trenches, filled the month of March. Then came the unpredictable time of April when it was too warm for canoeing and too cold for snowshoeing, and all communication from the north was cut off.

But May, great, glorious May came on, with its inspiring airs and livening influence. Canoes were afloat, the woods were brown beneath and gold above.

But May, wonderful, glorious May arrived, with its uplifting breezes and energizing effect. Canoes were out on the water, the woods were brown below and golden above.

Rolf felt like a young stag in his strength. He was spoiling for a run and volunteered eagerly to carry despatches to Sackett's Harbour. He would go alone, for now one blanket was sufficient bed, and a couple of pounds of dry meat was enough food for each day. A small hatchet would be useful, but his rifle seemed too heavy to carry; as he halted in doubt, a junior officer offered him a pistol instead, and he gladly stuck it in his belt.

Rolf felt like a young deer in his prime. He was eager to take off and quickly volunteered to deliver messages to Sackett's Harbour. He planned to go alone since a single blanket was enough for a bed and a few pounds of dried meat would be plenty for food each day. A small hatchet would come in handy, but his rifle seemed too heavy to bring along. As he hesitated, a junior officer offered him a pistol instead, and he happily tucked it into his belt.

Taller than ever, considerably over six feet now, somewhat lanky, but supple of joint and square of shoulder, he strode with the easy stride of a strong traveller. His colour was up, his blue-gray eyes ablaze as he took the long trail in a crow line across country for Sackett's Harbour. The sentry saluted, and the officer of the day, struck by his figure and his glowing face as much as by the nature of his errand, stopped to shake hands and say, “Well, good luck, Kittering, and may you bring us better news than the last two times.”

Taller than ever, now well over six feet, somewhat lanky but flexible in his joints and broad-shouldered, he walked with the confident stride of a seasoned traveler. His complexion was radiant, and his blue-gray eyes sparkled as he took the long path in a straight line across the land toward Sackett's Harbour. The sentry saluted, and the officer of the day, impressed by his appearance and bright expression as much as by the purpose of his mission, stopped to shake his hand and said, “Well, good luck, Kittering, and I hope you bring us better news than the last two times.”

Rolf knew how to travel now; he began softly. At a long, easy stride he went for half an hour, then at a swinging trot for a mile or two. Five miles an hour he could make, but there was one great obstacle to speed at this season—every stream was at flood, all were difficult to cross. The brooks he could wade or sometimes could fell a tree across them, but the rivers were too wide to bridge, too cold and dangerous to swim. In nearly every case he had to make a raft. A good scout takes no chances. A slight raft means a risky passage; a good one, a safe crossing but loss of time in preparations. Fifteen good rafts did Rolf make in that cross-country journey of three days: dry spruce logs he found each time and bound them together with leather-wood and withes of willow. It meant a delay of at least an hour each time; that is five hours each day. But the time was wisely spent. The days were lengthening; he could travel much at dusk. Soon he was among settlements. Rumours he got at a settler's cabin of Sir George Prevost's attack on Sackett's Harbour and the gallant repulse and at morning of the fourth day he came on the hill above Sackett's Harbour—the same hill where he had stood three months before. It was with something like a clutching of his breath that he gazed; his past experiences suggested dreadful thoughts but no—thank God, “Old Glory” floated from the pole. He identified himself to the sentinels and the guard, entered the fort at a trot, and reported at headquarters.

Rolf had learned how to travel efficiently; he started off gently. He maintained a long, easy stride for half an hour, then switched to a steady trot for a mile or two. He could move at five miles per hour, but there was one major obstacle to speed during this season—every stream was flooded, making them hard to cross. He could wade through small brooks or occasionally build a bridge by falling a tree over them, but the rivers were too wide to cross and too cold and dangerous to swim. In almost every case, he had to make a raft. A good scout doesn’t take chances. A flimsy raft poses a risky crossing; a sturdy one ensures a safe journey but takes more time to prepare. Rolf built fifteen good rafts during his three-day cross-country trek: he found dry spruce logs each time and tied them together with leather-wood and willow branches. Each raft delay took at least an hour, adding up to five hours each day. But the time was well spent. The days were getting longer; he could travel a lot during twilight. Soon he found himself near settlements. He heard rumors at a settler's cabin about Sir George Prevost's attack on Sackett's Harbour and the brave defense. On the morning of the fourth day, he arrived at the hill overlooking Sackett’s Harbour—the same hill where he had stood three months earlier. He held his breath as he looked out; his past experiences filled him with dread, but thank God, “Old Glory” was flying from the pole. He identified himself to the sentinels and the guard, trotted into the fort, and reported to headquarters.

There was joy on every side. At last the tide had turned. Commodore Chauncey, after sweeping Lake Ontario, had made a sudden descent on York (Toronto now) the capital of Upper Canada, had seized and destroyed it. Sir George Prevost, taking advantage of Chauncey's being away, had attacked Sackett's Harbour, but, in spite of the absence of the fleet, the resistance had been so vigorous that in a few days the siege was abandoned.

There was joy all around. Finally, the tide had turned. Commodore Chauncey, after clearing out Lake Ontario, had launched a surprise attack on York (now Toronto), the capital of Upper Canada, and had captured and destroyed it. Sir George Prevost, taking advantage of Chauncey’s absence, had attacked Sackett's Harbour, but even with the fleet gone, the resistance was so strong that the siege was called off in just a few days.

There were shot holes in walls and roofs, there were a few wounded in the hospital, the green embankments were torn, and the flag-pole splintered; but the enemy was gone, the starry flag was floating on the wind, and the sturdy little garrison filled with a spirit that grows only in heroes fighting for their homes.

There were bullet holes in the walls and roofs, a few people were injured in the hospital, the green embankments were damaged, and the flagpole was broken; but the enemy was gone, the starry flag was waving in the wind, and the brave little garrison was filled with a spirit that only grows in heroes fighting for their homes.

How joyfully different from Ogdensburg.

How joyfully different from Ogdensburg!





Chapter 72. Scouting Across Country

That very night, Rolf turned again with the latest news and the commandant's reports.

That night, Rolf came back with the latest news and the commandant's reports.

He was learning the country well now, and, with the wonderful place-memory of a woodman, he was able to follow his exact back trail. It might not have been the best way, but it gave him this advantage—in nearly every case he was able to use again the raft he had made in coming, and thereby saved many hours of precious time.

He was getting to know the area well now, and, with the amazing memory of a woodsman, he could track his exact route back. It might not have been the most efficient path, but it had its advantage—most of the time he was able to use the raft he had built on the way there, saving him many hours of valuable time.

On the way out he had seen a good many deer and one bear, and had heard the howling of wolves every night; but always at a distance. On the second night, in the very heart of the wilderness, the wolves were noisy and seemed very near. Rolf was camping in the darkness. He made a small fire with such stuff as he could find by groping, then, when the fire blazed, he discovered by its light a dead spruce some twenty yards away. Taking his hatchet he went toward this, and, as he did so, a wolf rose up, with its forefeet on a log, only five yards beyond the tree and gazed curiously at him. Others were heard calling; presently this wolf raised its muzzle and uttered a long smooth howl.

On his way out, he had seen quite a few deer and one bear, and had heard the howling of wolves every night, but it was always from a distance. On the second night, deep in the wilderness, the wolves were loud and seemed very close. Rolf was camping in the dark. He built a small fire with whatever he could find by feeling around, and once the fire was going, he noticed by its light a dead spruce about twenty yards away. Grabbing his hatchet, he walked towards it, and as he did, a wolf stood up with its front paws on a log, only five yards past the tree, and stared at him curiously. He heard other wolves calling; then this wolf raised its head and let out a long, smooth howl.

Rolf had left his pistol back at the fire; he dared not throw his hatchet, as that would have left him unarmed. He stooped, picked up a stick, and threw that; the wolf ducked so that it passed over, then, stepping back from the log, stood gazing without obvious fear or menace. The others were howling; Rolf felt afraid. He backed cautiously to the fire, got his pistol and came again to the place, but nothing more did he see of the wolf, though he heard them all night and kept up two great fires for a protection.

Rolf had left his gun back at the campfire; he didn't want to throw his hatchet because that would leave him defenseless. He bent down, picked up a stick, and threw it; the wolf ducked so it went over its head, then, stepping back from the log, stood there looking without showing any fear or aggression. The others were howling; Rolf felt scared. He carefully backed to the fire, grabbed his gun, and returned to the spot, but he didn't see the wolf again, although he heard them all night and kept two large fires burning for protection.

In the morning he started as usual, and before half an hour he was aware of a wolf, and later of two, trotting along his trail, a few hundred yards behind. They did not try to overtake him; indeed, when he stopped, they did the same; and when he trotted, they, true to their dog-like nature, ran more rapidly in pursuit. How Rolf did wish for his long rifle; but they gave no opportunity for a shot with the pistol. They acted, indeed, as though they knew their safe distance and the exact range of the junior gun. The scout made a trap for them by stealing back after he had crossed a ridge, and hiding near his own trail. But the wind conveyed a warning, and the wolves merely sat down and waited till he came out and went on. All day long these two strange ban dogs followed him and gave no sign of hunger or malice; then, after he crossed a river, at three in the afternoon, he saw no more of them. Years after, when Rolf knew them better, he believed they followed him out of mild curiosity, or possibly in the hope that he would kill a deer in which they might share. And when they left him, it was because they were near the edge of their own home region; they had seen him off their hunting grounds.

In the morning, he started off as usual, and within half an hour, he noticed a wolf, and then two, following along his trail a few hundred yards behind. They didn’t try to catch up with him; in fact, when he stopped, they did too. And when he trotted, true to their dog-like instincts, they ran faster to keep up. Rolf really wished he had his long rifle, but they didn’t give him a chance to take a shot with his pistol. It almost seemed like they knew their safe distance and the exact range of his smaller gun. The scout set a trap for them by sneaking back after crossing a ridge and hiding near his own trail. But the wind warned them, and the wolves just sat down and waited until he came out and moved on. All day, these two strange “ban dogs” followed him without showing any signs of hunger or hostility. Then, after he crossed a river at three in the afternoon, he no longer saw them. Years later, when Rolf understood them better, he thought they followed him out of curiosity or maybe hoping he would kill a deer they could share. When they left him, it was because they were close to the edge of their own territory; they had seen him off their hunting grounds.

That night he camped sixty miles from Ticonderoga, but he was resolved to cover the distance in one day. Had he not promised to be back in a week? The older hands had shaken their heads incredulously, and he, in the pride of his legs, was determined to be as good as his promise. He scarcely dared sleep lest he should oversleep. At ten he lay down. At eleven the moon was due to rise; as soon as that was three hours high there would be light enough, and he proposed to go on. At least half a dozen times he woke with a start, fearing he had overslept, but reassured by a glance at the low-hung moon, he had slumbered again.

That night he camped sixty miles from Ticonderoga, but he was determined to cover the distance in one day. Hadn't he promised to be back in a week? The seasoned workers had shook their heads in disbelief, and he, full of confidence in his legs, was set on keeping his promise. He barely dared to sleep for fear of oversleeping. At ten, he lay down. At eleven, the moon was supposed to rise; once it was three hours high, there would be enough light, and he planned to keep going. At least half a dozen times he woke up suddenly, worried he had overslept, but after checking the low-hanging moon, he dozed off again.

At last the moon was four hours high, and the woods were plain in the soft light. A horned owl “hoo-hoo-ed,” and a far-off wolf uttered a drawn-out, soft, melancholy cry, as Rolf finished his dried meat, tightened his belt, and set out on a long, hard run that, in the days of Greece, would have furnished the theme of many a noble epic poem.

At last, the moon was four hours high, and the woods were clear in the soft light. A horned owl hooted, and a distant wolf let out a long, soft, sad cry, as Rolf finished his dried meat, tightened his belt, and started a long, tough run that, in the days of Greece, would have inspired many a great epic poem.

No need to consult his compass. The blazing lamp of the dark sky was his guide, straight east his course, varied a little by hills and lakes, but nearly the crow-flight line. At first his pace was a steady, swinging stride; then after a mile he came to an open lake shore down which he went at a six-mile trot; and then an alder thicket through which his progress was very slow; but that soon passed, and for half a mile he splashed through swamps with water a foot deep: nor was he surprised at length to see it open into a little lake with a dozen beaver huts in view. “Splash, prong” their builders went at his approach, but he made for the hillside; the woods were open, the moonlight brilliant now, and here he trotted at full swing as long as the way was level or down, but always walked on the uphill. A sudden noise ahead was followed by a tremendous crashing and crackling of the brush. For a moment it continued, and what it meant, Rolf never knew or guessed.

No need to check his compass. The bright light in the dark sky was his guide, heading straight east, with a few variations due to hills and lakes, but mostly in a direct line. At first, he walked with a steady, swinging stride; then after a mile, he reached an open lake shore where he picked up a six-mile trot. Next, he moved through an alder thicket, which slowed him down considerably; but that didn’t last long, and for half a mile, he splashed through swamps with water a foot deep. He wasn't surprised when he finally saw it open up into a small lake with a dozen beaver huts in sight. "Splash, prong," the builders hurried away at his approach, but he headed for the hillside. The woods were open, the moonlight bright now, and here he trotted at full speed as long as the path was level or downhill, but always walked on the uphill. Suddenly, there was a noise ahead, followed by a huge crashing and crackling in the brush. For a moment it continued, and Rolf never knew or guessed what it meant.

“Trot, trot,” he went, reeling off six miles in the open, two or perhaps three in the thickets, but on and on, ever eastward. Hill after hill, swamp after swamp, he crossed, lake after lake he skirted round, and, when he reached some little stream, he sought a log bridge or prodded with a pole till he found a ford and crossed, then ran a mile or two to make up loss of time.

“Trot, trot,” he continued, covering six miles in the open, two or maybe three in the thickets, but kept going, always heading east. He crossed hill after hill, swamp after swamp, and skirted around lake after lake. When he came to a small stream, he looked for a log bridge or poked with a pole until he found a spot to cross, then he ran a mile or two to make up for lost time.

Tramp, tramp, tramp, and his steady breath and his steady heart kept unremitting rhythm.

Tramp, tramp, tramp, and his even breathing and steady heartbeat kept a constant rhythm.





Chapter 73. Rolf Makes a Record

Twelve miles were gone when the foreglow—the first cold dawn-light showed, and shining across his path ahead was a mighty rolling stream. Guided by the now familiar form of Goodenow Peak he made for this, the Hudson's lordly flood. There was his raft securely held, with paddle and pole near by, and he pushed off with all the force of his young vigour. Jumping and careening with the stream in its freshet flood, the raft and its hardy pilot were served with many a whirl and some round spins, but the long pole found bottom nearly everywhere, and not ten minutes passed before the traveller sprang ashore, tied up his craft, then swung and tramped and swung.

Twelve miles in, the first light of dawn appeared, and shining in front of him was a large rolling river. Guided by the now recognizable shape of Goodenow Peak, he headed toward it, the grand flow of the Hudson. There was his raft securely anchored, with his paddle and pole nearby, and he pushed off with all the energy of his youth. The raft and its adventurous pilot bounced and spun with the rushing water, experiencing plenty of swirls and spins, but the long pole touched the bottom in nearly every spot. In less than ten minutes, the traveler jumped ashore, secured his raft, then swung, stomped, and swung again.

Over the hills of Vanderwhacker, under the woods of Boreas. Tramp, tramp, splash, tramp, wringing and sopping, but strong and hot, tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. The partridge whirred from his path, the gray deer snorted, and the panther sneaked aside. Tramp, tramp, trot, trot, and the Washburn Ridge was blue against the sunrise. Trot, trot, over the low, level, mile-long slope he went, and when the Day-god burnt the upper hill-rim he was by brown Tahawus flood and had covered eighteen miles.

Over the hills of Vanderwhacker, beneath the Boreas woods. Tramp, tramp, splash, tramp, soaked but strong and hot, tramp, tramp, tramp, tramp. The partridge fluttered out of his way, the gray deer snorted, and the panther quietly moved aside. Tramp, tramp, trot, trot, and the Washburn Ridge was blue against the sunrise. Trot, trot, over the flat, mile-long slope he went, and when the Day-god lit up the upper hill's edge, he was by the brown Tahawus flood and had covered eighteen miles.

By the stream he stopped to drink. A partridge cock, in the pride of spring, strutted arrogantly on a log. Rolf drew his pistol, fired, then hung the headless body while he made a camper's blaze: an oatcake, the partridge, and river water were his meal. His impulse was to go on at once. His reason, said “go slow.” So he waited for fifteen minutes. Then again, beginning with a slow walk, he ere long added to his pace. In half an hour he was striding and in an hour the steady “trot, trot,” that slackened only for the hills or swamps. In an hour more he was on the Washburn Ridge, and far away in the east saw Schroon Lake that empties in the river Schroon; and as he strode along, exulting in his strength, he sang in his heart for joy. Again a gray wolf cantered on his trail, and the runner laughed, without a thought of fear. He seemed to know the creature better now; knew it as a brother, for it gave no hostile sound, but only seemed to trot, trot, for the small joy of running with a runner, as a swallow or an antelope will skim along by a speeding train. For an hour or more it matched his pace, then left as though its pleasant stroll was done, and Rolf kept on and on and on.

By the stream, he paused to take a drink. A male partridge, proudly displaying itself in the spring, strutted confidently along a log. Rolf drew his pistol, fired, and then prepared the headless bird while he made a campfire: an oatcake, the partridge, and river water made up his meal. He felt the urge to keep moving right away, but his mind said to take it slow. So, he waited for fifteen minutes. Then, starting off with a slow walk, he gradually increased his pace. After half an hour, he was striding confidently, and within an hour, he settled into a steady “trot, trot,” which only slowed for hills or swamps. An hour later, he was on Washburn Ridge, and far off to the east, he spotted Schroon Lake, which flows into the Schroon River. As he made his way, reveling in his strength, he felt joy bubbling up inside him. A gray wolf appeared behind him, and the runner laughed, unafraid. He felt a connection with the creature now, recognizing it as a kindred spirit; it didn’t growl or threaten but trotted alongside him, enjoying the pleasure of running together, much like a swallow or an antelope skimming alongside a speeding train. For an hour or more, it matched his pace before it eventually left, as if its leisurely stroll had come to an end, and Rolf just kept going and going.

The spring sun soared on high, the day grew warm at noon. Schroon River just above the lake was in his path, and here he stopped to rest. Here, with the last of his oatcake and a little tea, he made his final meal; thirty eight miles had he covered since he rose; his clothes were torn, his moccasins worn, but his legs were strong, his purpose sure; only twenty-two miles now, and his duty would be done; his honours won. What should he do, push on at once? No, he meant to rest an hour. He made a good fire by a little pool, and using a great mass of caribou moss as a sponge, he had a thorough rub-down. He got out his ever-ready needle and put his moccasins in good shape; he dried his clothes and lay on his back till the hour was nearly gone. Then he girded himself for this the final run. He was weary, indeed, but he was far from spent, and the iron will that had yearly grown in force was there with its unconquerable support.

The spring sun was high in the sky, and the day warmed up around noon. The Schroon River, just before the lake, was in his way, and he stopped there to take a break. With the last of his oatcake and a bit of tea, he had his final meal; he had covered thirty-eight miles since he got up. His clothes were torn, his moccasins worn, but his legs were strong, and his determination was solid; just twenty-two miles left, and then he would have completed his duty and earned his honors. Should he push on without delay? No, he decided to rest for an hour. He made a good fire by a small pool and used a large amount of caribou moss like a sponge for a thorough rub-down. He took out his trusty needle and fixed his moccasins; he dried his clothes and lay on his back until the hour was almost up. Then he prepared himself for this final stretch. He was tired, but far from exhausted, and the iron will that had grown stronger each year was there with its unbeatable support.

Slowly at start, soon striding, and at last in the famous jog trot of the scout he went. The sky was blackened with clouds at length, and the jealous, howling east wind rolled up in rain; the spindrift blurred the way; the heavy showers of spring came down and drenched him; but his pack was safe and he trotted on and on. Then long, deep swamps of alder barred his path, and, guided only by the compass, Rolf pushed in and through and ever east. Barely a mile an hour in the thickest part he made, but lagged not; drenched and footsore, warm and torn, but doggedly, steadily on. At three he had made a scant seven miles; then the level, open wood of Thunderbolt was reached and his stride became a run; trot, trot, trot, at six-mile gait, for but fifteen miles remained. Sustained, inspired, the bringer of good news, he halted not and faltered not, but on and on.

Slowly at first, then picking up speed, and finally moving in the well-known jog-trot of a scout, he continued on. The sky eventually darkened with clouds, and the angry, howling east wind brought rain; the spray blurred his path; the heavy spring showers soaked him, but his pack was safe, and he kept trotting on. Then, long, deep marshes of alder blocked his way, and guided only by the compass, Rolf pushed through, moving east. He barely made a mile an hour in the thickest parts, but he didn't lag; soaked and sore-footed, warm and torn, he kept going determinedly and steadily. By three o'clock, he had covered a little over seven miles; then he reached the level, open woods of Thunderbolt, and his pace quickened to a run; trot, trot, trot, at a six-mile per hour speed, with only fifteen miles left to go. Energized and motivated as the bearer of good news, he didn't stop or hesitate, but kept moving forward.

Tramp tramp, tramp tramp—endless, tireless, hour by hour. At five he was on Thunder Creek, scarce eight miles more to the goal; his limbs were sore, his feet were sore; bone tired was he, but his heart was filled with joy.

Tramp tramp, tramp tramp—endless, tireless, hour after hour. At five he was on Thunder Creek, just eight miles away from his destination; his limbs ached, his feet were sore; he was completely exhausted, but his heart was filled with joy.

“News of battle, news of victory” he was bringing, and the thought lent strength; the five mires passed, the way was plain with good roads now, but the runner was so weary. He was striding, his running was done, the sun was low in the west, his feet were bleeding, the courier was brain worn and leg worn, but he strode and strode. He passed by homes but heeded them not.

“News of battle, news of victory” he was bringing, and the thought gave him strength; he passed through five marshes, the path was clear with good roads now, but the runner was so exhausted. He was striding, his running was over, the sun was low in the west, his feet were bleeding, the courier was mentally and physically worn out, but he kept striding on. He passed by homes but paid them no attention.

“Come in and rest,” called one who saw nothing but a weary traveller. Rolf shook his head, but gave no word and strode along. A mile—a short mile now; he must hold out; if he sat down he feared he could not rise. He came at last in sight of the fort; then, gathering all his force, he broke into a trot, weak, so weak that had he fallen, he could scarcely have got up, and slow, but faster than a walk: and so, as the red sun sank, he passed the gate. He had no right to give tidings to any but the general, yet they read it in his eyes. The guard broke into a cheer, and trotting still, though reeling, Rolf had kept his word, had made his run, had brought the news, and had safely reached his goal.

“Come in and rest,” called someone who only saw a tired traveler. Rolf shook his head but said nothing and continued on. A mile—a short mile now; he had to keep going; if he sat down, he feared he wouldn't be able to get back up. Finally, he saw the fort; then, gathering all his strength, he started to jog, weak, so weak that if he fell, he could barely get up, but still faster than walking: and so, as the red sun set, he passed through the gate. He had no right to share news with anyone except the general, yet they saw it in his eyes. The guard erupted in cheers, and still jogging, though unsteady, Rolf had kept his promise, had made his run, had delivered the message, and had safely reached his destination.





Chapter 74. Van Trumper's Again

Why should the scout bringing good news be differently received from the one that brings the ill? He did not make, the news, he simply did his duty; the same in both cases. He is merely the telegraph instrument. Yet it is so ever. King Pharaoh slew the bearer of ill-tidings; that was human nature. And General Hampton brought in the tall stripling to his table, to honour him, to get the fullest details, to glory in every item as though it all were due to himself. Rolf's wonderful journey was dilated on, and in the reports to Albany he was honourably mentioned for exceptionally meritorious service as a bearer of despatches.

Why should the scout bringing good news be treated any differently from the one delivering bad news? He didn’t create the news; he just did his job; it’s the same in both situations. He’s just the messenger. But that’s how it always is. King Pharaoh executed the bearer of bad news; that’s human nature. And General Hampton invited the tall young man to his table to honor him, to get all the details, to take pride in every part as if it were all his own doing. Rolf's amazing journey was elaborated on, and in the reports to Albany, he was commendably mentioned for outstanding service as a messenger.

For three days Flying Kittering was hero of the post; then other runners came with other news and life went on.

For three days, Flying Kittering was the talk of the town; then other racers arrived with different news, and life continued.

Hitherto the scouts had worn no uniform, but the execution of one of their number, who was captured by the British and treated as a spy, resulted in orders that all be formally enlisted and put in uniform.

Until now, the scouts had not worn a uniform, but the execution of one of their members, who was captured by the British and treated as a spy, led to orders that everyone should be formally enlisted and put in uniform.

Not a few withdrew from the service; some, like Quonab, reluctantly consented, but Rolf was developing the fighting spirit, and was proud to wear the colours.

Not a few left the service; some, like Quonab, agreed reluctantly, but Rolf was growing into the fighting spirit and was proud to wear the colors.

The drill was tedious enough, but it was of short duration for him. Despatches were to go to Albany. The general, partly to honour Rolf, selected him.

The drill was pretty boring, but it didn't last long for him. Reports were supposed to be sent to Albany. The general, partly to recognize Rolf, chose him.

“Are you ready for another run, Kittering?”

“Are you ready for another run, Kittering?”

“Yes, sir.”

“Yep.”

“Then prepare to start as soon as possible for Fort George and Albany. Do you want a mate?”

“Then get ready to leave for Fort George and Albany as soon as you can. Do you want a buddy?”

“I should like a paddler as far as Fort George.”

“I would like a boat to take me as far as Fort George.”

“Well, pick your man.”

“Okay, choose your guy.”

“Quonab.”

“Quonab.”

And when they set out, for the first time Rolf was in the stern, the post of guidance and command. So once more the two were travelling again with Skookum in the bow. It was afternoon when they started and the four-mile passage of the creek was slow, but down the long, glorious vista of the noble George they went at full canoe-flight, five miles an hour, and twenty-five miles of the great fair-way were reeled and past when they lighted their nightly fire.

And when they set off, for the first time Rolf was at the back of the canoe, in charge of navigation and command. So once again, the two were traveling with Skookum in the front. They started in the afternoon, and the four-mile stretch of the creek was slow, but down the long, beautiful stretch of the river, they went at full speed, five miles an hour, and covered twenty-five miles of the main waterway before they started their evening fire.

At dawn-cry of the hawk they sped away, and in spite of a rising wind they made six miles in two hours.

At the first light of dawn, they took off, and despite the increasing wind, they covered six miles in two hours.

As they approached the familiar landing of Van Trumper's farm, Skookum began to show a most zestful interest that recalled the blackened pages of his past. “Quonab, better use that,” and Rolf handed a line with which Skookum was secured and thus led to make a new record, for this was the first time in his life that he landed at Van Trumper's without sacrificing a chicken in honour of the joyful occasion.

As they neared the familiar spot at Van Trumper's farm, Skookum started to show a lively interest that reminded him of the darker moments of his past. “Quonab, you should definitely use this,” Rolf said, handing over a line to secure Skookum. This time, they set out to make a new record, as it was the first time in his life that he arrived at Van Trumper's without losing a chicken to mark the happy occasion.

They entered the house as the family were sitting down to breakfast.

They walked into the house just as the family was sitting down to breakfast.

“Mein Hemel! mein Hemel! It is Rolf and Quonab; and vere is dot tam dog? Marta, vere is de chickens? Vy, Rolf, you bin now a giant, yah. Mein Gott, it is I am glad! I did tink der cannibals you had eat; is it dem Canadian or cannibal? I tink it all one the same, yah!”

“Holy cow! Holy cow! It's Rolf and Quonab; where's that damn dog? Marta, where are the chickens? Well, Rolf, you've turned into a giant, right. My God, I'm so glad! I thought the cannibals had eaten you; are they Canadian or cannibals? I think it's all the same, right!”

Marta was actually crying, the little ones were climbing over Rolf's knee, and Annette, tall and sixteen now, stood shyly by, awaiting a chance to shake hands. Home is the abiding place of those we love; it may be a castle or a cave, a shanty or a chateau, a moving van, a tepee, or a canal boat, a fortress or the shady side of a bush, but it is home, if there indeed we meet the faces that are ever in the heart, and find the hands whose touch conveys the friendly glow. Was there any other spot on earth where he could sit by the fire and feel that “hereabout are mine own, the people I love?” Rolf knew it now—Van Trumper's was his home.

Marta was actually crying, the little ones were climbing over Rolf's knee, and Annette, now tall and sixteen, stood shyly by, waiting for a chance to shake hands. Home is the place where those we love are; it can be a castle or a cave, a run-down shack or a mansion, a moving truck, a teepee, or a canal boat, a fortress or the shady side of a bush, but it feels like home if we meet the faces that are always in our hearts and find the hands whose touch brings warmth. Was there any other place on earth where he could sit by the fire and feel, “these are my people, the ones I love?” Rolf realized it now—Van Trumper's was his home.

Talks of the war, of disasters by land, and of glorious victories on the sea, where England, long the unquestioned mistress of the waves, had been humbled again and again by the dauntless seamen of her Western blood; talks of big doings by the nation, and, yet more interesting, small doings by the travellers, and the breakfast passed all too soon. The young scout rose, for he was on-duty, but the long rollers on the lake forbade the going forth. Van's was a pleasant place to wait, but he chafed at the delay; his pride would have him make a record on every journey. But wait he must. Skookum tied safely to his purgatorial post whined indignantly—and with head cocked on one side, picked out the very hen he would like to utilize—as soon as released from his temporary embarrassment. Quonab went out on a rock to bum some tobacco and pray for calm, and Rolf, ever active, followed Van to look over the stock and buildings, and hear of minor troubles. The chimney was unaccountably given to smoking this year. Rolf took an axe and with two blows cut down a vigorous growth shrubbery that stood above the chimney on the west, and the smoking ceased. Buck ox had a lame foot and would allow no one even to examine it. But a skilful ox-handler easily hobbles an ox, throws him near some small tree, and then, by binding the lame foot to the tree, can have a free hand. It proved a simple matter, a deep-sunk, rusty nail. And when the nail was drawn and the place washed clean with hot brine, kind nature was left in confidence to do the rest. They drifted back to the house now. Tomas met them shouting out a mixture of Dutch and English and holding by the cover Annette's book of the “Good Girl.” But its rightful owner rescued the precious volume and put it on the shelf.

Talks about the war, disasters on land, and glorious victories at sea, where England, once the undeniable ruler of the waves, had been repeatedly humbled by the fearless sailors of her Western heritage; conversations about major events for the nation, and even more interesting, the small happenings among the travelers, made breakfast go by way too quickly. The young scout got up, since he was on duty, but the long waves on the lake made going out impossible. Van's was a nice place to wait, but he was frustrated by the hold-up; his pride wanted him to set records on every trip. But wait he must. Skookum, tied securely to his unpleasant spot, whined in frustration—and with his head tilted to the side, singled out the exact hen he wanted to chase as soon as he was freed from his temporary embarrassment. Quonab went out onto a rock to bum some tobacco and pray for calm, while Rolf, always active, followed Van to check on the livestock and buildings, and to hear about minor issues. The chimney had mysteriously started smoking this year. Rolf took an axe and, with two blows, chopped down a healthy bush that was blocking the chimney on the west side, and the smoking stopped. Buck, the ox, had a sore foot and wouldn’t let anyone examine it. However, a skilled ox-handler can easily hobbles an ox, lay him next to a small tree, and then, by tying the lame foot to the tree, gain a free hand. It turned out to be a simple matter—a deeply embedded, rusty nail. Once the nail was pulled and the area cleaned with hot brine, nature was trusted to take care of the rest. They drifted back to the house now. Tomas met them, shouting a mix of Dutch and English, holding Annette's book, “The Good Girl,” by the cover. But its rightful owner rescued the precious book and put it back on the shelf.

“Have you read it through, Annette?”

“Have you read it all, Annette?”

“Yes,” was the reply, for she had learned to read before they left Schuylerville.

“Yes,” was the reply, because she had learned to read before they left Schuylerville.

“How do you like it?”

“How do you feel about it?”

“Didn't like it a bit; I like 'Robinson Crusoe',” was the candid reply.

“Didn’t like it at all; I prefer 'Robinson Crusoe',” was the honest response.

The noon hour came, still the white rollers were pounding the shore.

The noon hour arrived, but the white waves continued crashing onto the shore.

“If it does not calm by one o'clock I'll go on afoot.”

“If it doesn’t settle down by one o'clock, I’ll go on foot.”

So off he went with the packet, leaving Quonab to follow and await his return at Fort George. In Schuyler settlement he spent the night and at noon next day was in Albany.

So he left with the package, leaving Quonab to follow and wait for his return at Fort George. He spent the night in Schuyler settlement and by noon the next day, he was in Albany.

How it stirred his soul to see the busy interest, the marching of men, the sailing of vessels, and above all to hear of more victories on the high seas. What mattered a few frontier defeats in the north, when the arrogant foe that had spurned and insulted them before the world had now been humbled again and again.

How it stirred his soul to see the hustle and bustle, the march of men, the sailing of ships, and especially to hear about more victories on the high seas. What did a few losses on the northern front matter when the arrogant enemy that had previously disdained and insulted them in front of the world had now been humbled over and over again.

Young Van Cortlandt was away, but the governor's reception of him reflected the electric atmosphere—the country's pride in her sons.

Young Van Cortlandt was away, but the governor's welcome for him captured the charged atmosphere—the nation's pride in its sons.

Rolf had a matter of his own to settle. At the bookseller's he asked for and actually secured a copy of the great book—“Robinson Crusoe.” It was with a thrilling feeling of triumph that he wrote Annette's name in it and stowed it in his bag.

Rolf had something he needed to take care of. At the bookstore, he asked for and actually got a copy of the classic book—“Robinson Crusoe.” He felt a rush of excitement as he wrote Annette's name inside it and tucked it into his bag.

He left Albany next day in the gray dawn. Thanks to his uniform, he got a twenty-five mile lift with a traveller who drove a fast team, and the blue water was glinting back the stars when he joined Quonab at Fort George, some sixty miles away.

He left Albany the next day at gray dawn. Thanks to his uniform, he got a twenty-five-mile ride from a traveler with a fast team, and the blue water was reflecting the stars when he met up with Quonab at Fort George, about sixty miles away.

In the calm betwixt star-peep and sun-up they were afloat. It was a great temptation to stop at Hendrik's for a spell, but breakfast was over, the water was calm, and duty called him. He hallooed, then they drew near enough to hand the book ashore. Skookum growled, probably at the hens, and the family waved their aprons as he sped on. Thirty miles of lake and four miles of Ticonderoga Creek they passed and the packet was delivered in four days and three hours since leaving.

In the quiet time between stargazing and sunrise, they were adrift. It was really tempting to stop at Hendrik's for a while, but breakfast was done, the water was calm, and he had responsibilities to attend to. He shouted, and then they got close enough to pass the book to the shore. Skookum growled, probably at the hens, and the family waved their aprons as he continued on. They traveled thirty miles across the lake and four miles down Ticonderoga Creek, and the package was delivered in four days and three hours after they left.

The general smiled and his short but amply sufficient praise was merely, “You're a good 'un.”

The general smiled and his brief but completely adequate praise was simply, “You’re a good one.”





Chapter 75. Scouting in Canada

“Thar is two things,” said Si Sylvanne to the senate, “that every national crisis is bound to show up: first, a lot o' dum fools in command; second a lot o great commanders in the ranks. An' fortunately before the crisis is over the hull thing is sure set right, and the men is where they oughter be.”

“There's two things,” said Si Sylvanne to the senate, “that every national crisis is bound to reveal: first, a lot of dumb fools in charge; second, a lot of great leaders in the ranks. And fortunately, by the time the crisis is over, the whole situation is sure to be set right, and the men are where they ought to be.”

How true this was the nation was just beginning to learn. The fools in command were already demonstrated, and the summer of 1813 was replete with additional evidence. May, June, and July passed with many journeyings for Rolf and many times with sad news. The disasters at Stony Creek, Beaver Dam, and Niagara were severe blows to the army on the western frontier. In June on Lake Champlain the brave but reckless Lieutenant Sidney Smith had run his two sloops into a trap. Thus the Growler and the Eagle were lost to the Americans, and strengthened by that much the British navy on the lake.

How true this was the nation was just beginning to realize. The fools in charge were already evident, and the summer of 1813 brought even more proof. May, June, and July were filled with many journeys for Rolf, often bringing sad news. The disasters at Stony Creek, Beaver Dam, and Niagara dealt serious blows to the army on the western frontier. In June, on Lake Champlain, the brave but reckless Lieutenant Sidney Smith had led his two sloops into a trap. Thus, the Growler and the Eagle were lost to the Americans, which strengthened the British navy on the lake.

Encouraged by these successes, the British north of Lake Champlain made raid after raid into American territory, destroying what they could not carry off.

Encouraged by these successes, the British north of Lake Champlain conducted raid after raid into American territory, destroying what they couldn't take with them.

Rolf and Quonab were sent to scout in that country and if possible give timely notice of raiders in force.

Rolf and Quonab were sent to explore that area and, if possible, provide an early warning about any large groups of raiders.

The Americans were averse to employing Indians in warfare; the British entertained no such scruples and had many red-skinned allies. Quonab's case, however, was unusual, since he was guaranteed by his white partner, and now he did good service, for he knew a little French and could prowl among the settlers without anyone suspecting him of being an American scout.

The Americans were hesitant to use Native Americans in combat; the British had no such reservations and had many Native allies. Quonab's situation was different, though, because he was vouched for by his white partner, and now he was proving useful, as he knew some French and could move among the settlers without anyone suspecting him of being an American scout.

Thus he went alone and travelled far. He knew the country nearly to Montreal and late in July was lurking about Odletown, when he overheard scattered words of a conversation that made him eager for more. “Colonel Murray—twelve hundred men—four hundred men—”

Thus he went alone and traveled far. He knew the area nearly to Montreal and, in late July, was hanging around Odletown when he overheard bits of a conversation that made him curious for more. “Colonel Murray—twelve hundred men—four hundred men—”

Meanwhile Rolf was hiding in the woods about La Colle Mill. Company after company of soldiers he saw enter, until at least five hundred were there. When night came down, he decided to risk a scarer approach. He left the woods and walked cautiously across the open lands about.

Meanwhile, Rolf was hiding in the woods near La Colle Mill. He saw company after company of soldiers enter, until at least five hundred were there. When night fell, he decided to take a risky approach. He left the woods and walked carefully across the open land.

The hay had been cut and most of it drawn in, but there was in the middle of the field a hay-cock. Rolf was near this when he heard sounds of soldiers from the mill. Soon large numbers came out, carrying their blankets. Evidently there was not room for them in the mill, and they were to camp on the field.

The hay had been cut and most of it collected, but in the middle of the field, there was a haystack. Rolf was close to this when he heard the sounds of soldiers coming from the mill. Soon, a large group came out, carrying their blankets. Clearly, there wasn't enough space for them in the mill, and they were going to set up camp in the field.

The scout began to retreat when sounds behind showed that another body of soldiers was approaching from that direction and he was caught between the two. There was only one place to hide and that was beneath the haycock. He lifted its edge and crawled under, but it was full of thistles and brambles; indeed, that was why it was left, and he had the benefit of all the spines about him.

The scout started to pull back when he heard signs of more soldiers coming from behind, leaving him stuck between the two groups. There was only one place to hide: under the haystack. He lifted its edge and crawled underneath, but it was packed with thistles and brambles; that’s actually why it had been left there, and he ended up surrounded by all the prickly spines.

His heart beat fast as he heard the clank of arms and the trampling; they came nearer, then the voices became more distinct. He heard unmistakable evidence too that both bodies were camping for the night, and that he was nearly surrounded. Not knowing what move was best he kept quiet. The men were talking aloud, then they began preparing their beds and he heard some one say, “There's a hay-cock; bring some of that.”

His heart raced as he heard the sound of clinking metal and footsteps; they got closer, and the voices became clearer. He also realized that both men were settling down for the night and that he was almost surrounded. Unsure of what to do, he stayed silent. The men talked out loud, then started setting up their beds, and he heard someone say, “There's a haystack; grab some of that.”

A soldier approached to get an armful of the hay, but sputtered out a chapter of malediction as his bare hands touched the masses of thistle and briers. His companions laughed at his mishap. He went to the fire and vowed he'd stick a brand in it and back he came with a burning stick.

A soldier came over to grab some hay, but let out a string of curses when his bare hands touched all the thistles and briars. His friends laughed at his misfortune. He went to the fire and promised he'd grab a stick from it, then returned with a flaming branch.

Rolf was all ready to make a dash for his life as soon as the cover should take fire, and he peered up into the soldier's face as the latter blew on the brand; but the flame had died, the thistles were not dry, and the fire was a failure; so, growling again, the soldier threw down the smoking stick and went away. As soon as he was safely afar, Rolf gathered a handful of soil and covered the red embers.

Rolf was ready to run for his life as soon as the cover caught fire, and he looked up into the soldier's face as the soldier blew on the brand; but the flame had gone out, the thistles were wet, and the fire was a bust; so, grumbling again, the soldier tossed down the smoking stick and walked away. Once he was out of sight, Rolf took a handful of dirt and covered the red embers.

It was a critical moment and his waiting alone had saved him.

It was a crucial moment, and waiting by himself had saved him.

Two soldiers came with their blankets and spread them near. For a time they smoked and talked. One of them was short of tobacco; the other said, “Never mind, we'll get plenty in Plattsburg,” and they guffawed.

Two soldiers came with their blankets and spread them nearby. For a while, they smoked and chatted. One of them was low on tobacco; the other said, “Don't worry, we'll get loads in Plattsburg,” and they laughed heartily.

Then he heard, “As soon as the colonel” and other broken phrases.

Then he heard, “As soon as the colonel” and other incomplete phrases.

It was a most difficult place for Rolf; he was tormented with thistles in his face and down his neck; he dared not change his position; and how long he must stay was a problem. He would try to escape when all was still.

It was a really tough spot for Rolf; he was prickled by thistles on his face and neck; he was afraid to move; and how long he had to stay was a big question. He planned to try to escape when everything was quiet.

The nearer soldiers settled to rest now. All was very quiet when Rolf cautiously peeped forth to see two dreadful things: first, a couple of sentries pacing up and down the edges of the camp; second, a broad, brilliant, rising moon. How horrible that lovely orb could be Rolf never before knew.

The nearby soldiers got comfortable to rest now. Everything was very quiet when Rolf carefully peeked out to see two terrifying things: first, a couple of guards walking back and forth along the edges of the camp; second, a large, bright, rising moon. How frightening that beautiful moon could be was something Rolf had never realized before.

Now, what next? He was trapped in the middle of a military camp and undoubtedly La Colle Mill was the rendezvous for some important expedition.

Now, what's next? He was stuck in the middle of a military camp and clearly La Colle Mill was the meeting point for some important mission.

He had ample time to think it all over. Unless he could get away before day he would surely be discovered. His uniform might save his life, but soldiers have an awkward, hasty way of dealing summarily with a spy—then discovering too late that he was in uniform.

He had plenty of time to think it through. Unless he could escape before morning, he would definitely be found out. His uniform might save his life, but soldiers tend to deal with a spy in a quick, rough manner—only to realize too late that he was in uniform.

From time to time he peered forth, but the scene was unchanged—the sleeping regiment, the pacing sentries, the ever-brightening moon. Then the guard was changed, and the sentries relieved selected of all places for their beds, the bank beside the hay-cock. Again one of them went to help himself to some hay for a couch; and again the comic anger as he discovered it to be a bed of thorns. How thankful Rolf was for those annoying things that pricked his face and neck.

From time to time, he looked out, but the scene was still the same—the sleeping soldiers, the walking guards, the moon getting brighter. Then the guard changed, and the sentries picked spots for their beds, right by the haystack. Once more, one of them tried to grab some hay for a mattress; and once again, he reacted humorously annoyed when he found it was a bed of thorns. Rolf felt grateful for those irritating things that poked his face and neck.

He was now hemmed in on every side and, not knowing what to do, did nothing. For a couple of hours he lay still, then actually fell asleep. He was awakened by a faint rustling near his head and peered forth to see a couple of field mice playing about.

He was now surrounded on all sides and, not knowing what to do, did nothing. For a couple of hours, he lay still, then actually fell asleep. He was woken by a faint rustling near his head and looked over to see a couple of field mice playing around.

The moon was very bright now, and the movements of the mice were plain; they were feeding on the seeds of plants in the hay-cock, and from time to time dashed under—the hay. Then they gambolled farther off and were making merry over a pod of wild peas when a light form came skimming noiselessly over the field. There was a flash, a hurried rush, a clutch, a faint squeak, and one of the mice was borne away in the claws of its feathered foe. The survivor scrambled under the hay over Rolf's face and somewhere into hiding.

The moon was really bright now, and you could clearly see the mice moving; they were munching on the seeds of plants in the haystack, and occasionally dashed under the hay. Then they played around a bit farther away, having fun with a pod of wild peas when a light figure glided silently over the field. There was a quick flash, a rush, a grab, a soft squeak, and one of the mice was carried off by its feathered predator. The other mouse hurried under the hay, over Rolf's face, and found a place to hide.

The night passed in many short naps. The bugle sounded at daybreak and the soldiers arose to make breakfast. Again one approached to use a handful of hay for fire-kindler, and again the friendly thistles did their part. More and more now his ear caught suggestive words and sounds—“Plattsburg”—“the colonel”—etc.

The night went by with a bunch of short naps. The bugle blasted at dawn and the soldiers got up to make breakfast. Once again, one of them came over to grab a handful of hay to start the fire, and once more the helpful thistles played their role. More and more, he started picking up on hints and sounds—“Plattsburg”—“the colonel”—and so on.

The breakfast smelt wonderfully captivating—poor Rolf was famished. The alluring aroma of coffee permeated the hay-cock. He had his dried meat, but his need was water; he was tormented with thirst, and stiff and tortured; he was making the hardest fight of his life. It seemed long, though doubtless it was less than half an hour before the meal was finished, and to Rolf's relief there were sounds of marching and the noises were drowned in the distance.

The breakfast smelled incredibly enticing—poor Rolf was starving. The tempting aroma of coffee filled the air around the hay-cock. He had his dried meat, but what he really needed was water; he was suffering from thirst, feeling stiff and tortured; he was in the toughest battle of his life. It felt like a long time, although it was probably less than half an hour before the meal was done, and to Rolf's relief, he heard sounds of marching that faded into the distance.

By keeping his head covered with hay and slowly raising it, he was safe to take a look around. It was a bright, sunny morning. The hay-cock, or thistle-cock, was one of several that had been rejected. It was a quarter-mile from cover; the soldiers were at work cutting timber and building a stockade around the mill; and, most dreadful to relate, a small dog was prowling about, looking for scraps on the scene of the soldiers' breakfast. If that dog came near his hiding-place, he knew the game was up. At such close quarters, you can fool a man but not a dog.

By keeping his head covered with hay and slowly lifting it, he was able to safely take a look around. It was a bright, sunny morning. The hay-cock, or thistle-cock, was one of several that had been discarded. It was a quarter-mile from cover; the soldiers were busy cutting timber and building a stockade around the mill; and, most alarmingly, a small dog was wandering around, searching for scraps from the soldiers' breakfast. If that dog got too close to his hiding spot, he knew it would be over for him. At such close range, you can trick a man, but not a dog.

Fortunately the breakfast tailings proved abundant, and the dog went off to assist a friend of his in making sundry interesting smell analyses along the gate posts of the stockade.

Fortunately, the leftover breakfast scraps were plentiful, and the dog ran off to help a friend of his analyze various interesting smells along the gate posts of the stockade.





Chapter 76. The Duel

This was temporary relief, but left no suggestion of complete escape. He lay there till nearly noon suffering more and more from the cramped position and thirst, and utterly puzzled as to the next move.

This was a short-term relief, but it didn't offer any hint of a full escape. He lay there until almost noon, feeling increasingly uncomfortable from the cramped position and thirst, completely confused about what to do next.

“When ye don't like whar ye air, git up without any fuss, and go whar ye want to be,” was what Sylvanne once said to him, and it came to Rolf with something like a comic shock. The soldiers were busy in the woods and around the forges. In half an hour it would be noon and they might come back to eat.

“When you don’t like where you are, get up without making a scene, and go where you want to be,” Sylvanne once told him, and it hit Rolf like a funny shock. The soldiers were busy in the woods and around the forges. In half an hour, it would be noon, and they might come back to eat.

Rolf rose without attempting any further concealment, then stopped, made a bundle of the stuff that had sheltered him and, carrying this on his shoulder, strode boldly across the field toward the woods.

Rolf stood up without trying to hide anymore, then paused, gathered the things that had protected him, and, carrying it on his shoulder, confidently walked across the field toward the woods.

His scout uniform was inconspicuous; the scouts on duty at the mill saw only one of themselves taking a bundle of hay round to the stables.

His scout uniform was neutral; the scouts working at the mill saw just one of their own carrying a bundle of hay to the stables.

He reached the woods absolutely unchallenged. After a few yards in its friendly shade, he dropped the thorny bundle and strode swiftly toward his own camp. He had not gone a hundred yards before a voice of French type cried “'Alt,” and he was face to face with a sentry whose musket was levelled at him.

He entered the woods without any trouble. After walking a few yards in its welcoming shade, he dropped the prickly bundle and quickly made his way toward his own camp. He hadn’t gone a hundred yards before a voice with a French accent shouted “Halt,” and he found himself face to face with a sentry whose rifle was aimed at him.

A quick glance interchanged, and each gasped out the other's name.

A quick glance exchanged, and both gasped the other's name.

“Francois la Colle!”

“Francois, the Coll!”

“Rolf Kittering! Mon Dieu! I ought to shoot you, Rolf; I cannot, I cannot! But run, run! I'll shoot over your head,” and his kindly eyes filled with tears.

“Rolf Kittering! My God! I should shoot you, Rolf; I can't, I can't! But run, run! I'll shoot over your head,” and his kind eyes filled with tears.

Rolf needed no second hint; he ran like a deer, and the musket ball rattled the branches above his shoulders.

Rolf didn’t need a second warning; he sprinted like a deer, and the musket ball zipped past, rattling the branches above his head.

In a few minutes other soldiers came running and from La Colle they heard of the hostile spy in camp.

In a few minutes, other soldiers came running, and from La Colle, they heard about the enemy spy in the camp.

“I shoot; I t'ink maybe I not hit eem; maybe some brood dere? No, dat netting.”

“I shoot; I think maybe I didn't hit it; maybe there’s some brood there? No, that’s just the netting.”

There were both runners and trackers in camp. They were like bloodhounds and they took up the trail of the fugitive. But Rolf was playing his own game now; he was “Flying Kittering.” A crooked trail is hard to follow, and, going at the long stride that had made his success, he left many a crook and turn. Before two miles I they gave it up and the fugitive coming to the river drank a deep and cooling draught, the first he had had that day. Five miles through is the dense forest that lies between La Colle and the border. He struck a creek affluent of the Richelieu River and followed to its forks, which was the place of rendezvous with Quonab.

There were both runners and trackers in camp. They were like bloodhounds and took up the trail of the fugitive. But Rolf was playing his own game now; he was “Flying Kittering.” A winding trail is tough to follow, and with the long strides that had brought him success, he left many twists and turns. After two miles, they gave up, and the fugitive, arriving at the river, took a long, refreshing drink, the first he had all day. Five miles in lies the dense forest that stretches between La Colle and the border. He came across a creek flowing into the Richelieu River and followed it to its forks, which was where he was supposed to meet Quonab.

It was evening as he drew near and after long, attentive listening he gave the cry of the barred owl:

It was evening as he approached, and after listening carefully for a long time, he let out the call of the barred owl:

The answer came: a repetition of the last line, and a minute later the two scouts were together.

The answer came: a repetition of the last line, and a minute later the two scouts were together.

As they stood, they were startled by a new, sudden answer, an exact repetition of the first call. Rolf had recovered his rifle from its hiding place and instantly both made ready for some hostile prowler; then after a long silence he gave the final wail line “hoooo-aw” and that in the woods means, “Who are you?”

As they stood there, they were surprised by a new, sudden sound, a perfect echo of the first call. Rolf had retrieved his rifle from its hiding spot, and both of them quickly prepared for a potential threat. After a long silence, he let out the final wail, “hoooo-aw,” which in the woods means, “Who are you?”

Promptly the reply came:

The reply came quickly:

“Wa wah wa wah Wa wah wa hoooo-aw.”

“Wa wah wa wah Wa wah wa hoooo-aw.”

But this was the wrong reply. It should have been only the last half. The imitation was perfect, except, perhaps, on the last note, which was a trifle too human. But the signal was well done; it was an expert calling, either an Indian or some thoroughly seasoned scout; yet Quonab was not deceived into thinking it an owl. He touched his cheek and his coat, which, in the scout sign language, means “red coat,” i. e., Britisher.

But this was the wrong response. It should have been only the second half. The imitation was spot on, except maybe for the last note, which sounded a bit too human. But the signal was well executed; it was an expert call, either from an Indigenous person or a really experienced scout; still, Quonab wasn’t fooled into thinking it was an owl. He touched his cheek and his coat, which in scout sign language means “red coat,” i.e., Britisher.

Rolf and his partner got silently out of sight, each with his rlile cocked and ready to make a hole in any red uniform or badge that might show itself. Then commenced a very peculiar duel, for evidently the enemy was as clever as themselves and equally anxious to draw them out of cover.

Rolf and his partner quietly moved out of sight, each with their rifle aimed and ready to put a hole in any red uniform or badge that might appear. Then a very strange duel began, as it was clear the enemy was just as clever and equally determined to draw them out of hiding.

Wa-wah-wa hooo-aw called the stranger, giving the right answer in the wrong place. He was barely a hundred yards off, and, as the two strained their senses to locate him, they heard a faint click that told of his approach.

Wa-wah-wa hooo-aw called the stranger, giving the right answer in the wrong place. He was barely a hundred yards away, and as the two strained to locate him, they heard a faint click that signaled his approach.

Rolf turned his head and behind a tree uttered again the Wa-wah-a—hoo which muffled by his position would convince the foe that he was retreating. The answer came promptly and much nearer:

Rolf turned his head and, hidden behind a tree, called out again the Wa-wah-a—hoo, which, muffled by his position, would make the enemy think he was retreating. The response came quickly and much closer:

Wa—wah—wa—hoooo-aw.

Wa—wah—wa—hoooo-aw.

Good! the medicine was working. So Rolf softened his voice still more, while Quonab got ready to shoot.

Good! The medicine was working. So Rolf lowered his voice even more, while Quonab prepared to shoot.

The Wa—wa—hooo-aw that came in answer this time was startlingly clear and loud and nearly perfect in intonation, but again betrayed by the human timbre of the aw. A minute or two more and they would reach a climax.

The Wa—wa—hooo-aw that responded this time was surprisingly clear and loud, almost perfect in tone, but the human quality of the aw gave it away. In another minute or two, they would reach a climax.

After another wait, Rolf muffled his voice and gave the single hooo-aw, and a great broad-winged owl came swooping through the forest, alighted on a tree overhead, peered about, then thrilled them with his weird:

After a bit of waiting, Rolf lowered his voice and made a single hooo-aw, and a large broad-winged owl swooped through the forest, landed on a tree above, looked around, then amazed them with its strange:

Wa—hoo—wa—boo

Wa—hoo—wa—boo

Wa—hoo—wa—hooooooooo-aw, the last note with the singular human quality that had so completely set them astray.

Wa—hoo—wa—hooooooooo-aw, the last note with the unique human quality that had completely thrown them off course.





Chapter 77. Why Plattsburg Was Raided

     The owl's hull reputation for wisdom is built up on lookin'
     wise and keepin' mum.—Sayings of St Sylvanne
     The owl's well-known reputation for wisdom comes from looking wise and staying quiet.—Sayings of St Sylvanne

THE owl incident was one of the comedies of their life, now they had business on hand. The scraps of news brought by Quonab pieced out with those secured by Rolf, spelt clearly this: that Colonel Murray with about a thousand men was planning a raid on Plattsburg.

THE owl incident was one of the funny moments in their lives, but now they had business to take care of. The bits of news brought by Quonab, combined with what Rolf had gathered, clearly spelled out this: Colonel Murray, with about a thousand men, was planning a raid on Plattsburg.

Their duty was to notify General Hampton without delay.

Their job was to inform General Hampton right away.

Burlington, forty miles away, was headquarters. Plattsburg, twenty miles away, was marked for spoil.

Burlington, forty miles away, was the headquarters. Plattsburg, twenty miles away, was designated for plunder.

One more item they must add: Was the raid to baby land or water? If the latter, then they must know what preparations were being made at the British naval station, Isle au Noix. They travelled all night through the dark woods, to get there, though it was but seven miles away, and in the first full light they saw the gallant array of two warships, three gunboats, and about fifty long boats, all ready, undoubtedly waiting only for a change in the wind, which at this season blew on Champlain almost steadily form the south.

One more thing they needed to figure out: Was the raid targeting land or water? If it was water, then they needed to know what preparations were being made at the British naval station, Isle au Noix. They traveled all night through the dark woods to reach it, even though it was only seven miles away. In the first light of day, they saw the impressive sight of two warships, three gunboats, and about fifty longboats, all prepared and clearly just waiting for a shift in the wind, which during this season blew almost constantly from the south on Champlain.

A three-hour, ten-mile tramp through ways now familiar brought Rolf and his partner to the north of the Big Chazy where the canoe was hidden, and without loss of time they pushed off for Burlington, thirty miles away. The wind was head on, and when four hours later they stopped for noon, they had made not more than a dozen miles.

A three-hour, ten-mile hike through familiar paths took Rolf and his partner to the north of the Big Chazy, where the canoe was concealed. Without wasting any time, they set off for Burlington, thirty miles away. The wind was in their faces, and when they stopped for lunch four hours later, they had only covered about twelve miles.

All that afternoon they had to fight a heavy sea; this meant they must keep near shore in case of an upset, and so lengthened the course; but it also meant that the enemy would not move so long as this wind kept up.

All that afternoon they had to struggle against rough seas; this meant they had to stay close to shore in case of a capsizing, which extended their route; but it also meant that the enemy wouldn't advance as long as the wind continued to blow like this.

It was six at night before the scouts ran into Burlington Harbour and made for Hampton's headquarters.

It was six o'clock in the evening when the scouts arrived at Burlington Harbour and headed to Hampton's headquarters.

His aide received them and, after learning that they had news, went in to the general. From the inner room now they heard in unnecessarily loud tones the great man's orders to, “Bring them in, sah.”

His assistant greeted them and, after finding out they had news, went into the general's office. From the inner room, they could hear the great man giving orders loudly, saying, “Bring them in, sir.”

The bottles on the table, his purple visage, and thick tongued speech told how well-founded were the current whispers.

The bottles on the table, his purple face, and slurred speech revealed how true the current whispers were.

“Raid on Plattsburg? Ha! I hope so. I only hope so. Gentlemen,” and he turned to his staff, “all I ask is a chance to get at them—Ha, Ha! Here, help yourself, Macomb,” and the general pushed the decanter to a grave young officer who was standing by.

“Raid on Plattsburg? Ha! I hope so. I really hope so. Gentlemen,” he said, turning to his staff, “all I ask is a chance to go after them—Ha, Ha! Here, help yourself, Macomb,” and the general pushed the decanter toward a serious young officer who was standing nearby.

“No, thank you, sir,” was the only reply.

“No, thank you, sir,” was the only response.

The general waved his hand, the scouts went out, puzzled and ashamed. Was this the brains of the army? No wonder our men are slaughtered.

The general waved his hand, and the scouts went out, confused and embarrassed. Was this the brain of the army? No wonder our men are being slaughtered.

Now Macomb ventured to suggest: “Have you any orders, sir? These scouts are considered quite reliable. I understand from them that the British await only a change of wind. They have between one thousand and two thousand men.”

Now Macomb took a chance to suggest, “Do you have any orders, sir? These scouts are seen as pretty trustworthy. I’ve heard from them that the British are just waiting for a shift in the wind. They have between one thousand and two thousand men.”

“Plenty of time in the morning, sah. Plattsburg will be the bait of my trap, not one of them shall return alive,” and the general dismissed his staff that he might fortify himself against a threatened cold.

“Plenty of time in the morning, sir. Plattsburg will be the bait of my trap; none of them will return alive,” and the general dismissed his staff so he could prepare himself against a looming chill.

Another young man, Lieut. Thomas MacDonough, the naval commandant, now endeavoured to stir him by a sense of danger. First he announced that his long boats, and gunboats were ready and in six hours he could transfer three thousand troops from Burlington to Plattsburg. Then he ventured to urge the necessity for action.

Another young man, Lieutenant Thomas MacDonough, the naval commander, now tried to motivate him with a sense of urgency. First, he stated that his longboats and gunboats were ready, and in six hours, he could move three thousand troops from Burlington to Plattsburgh. Then he dared to stress the need for action.

Champlain is a lake of two winds. It had brown from the south for two weeks; now a north wind was likely to begin any day. MacDonough urged this point, but all in vain, and, shocked and humiliated, the young man obeyed the order “to wait till his advice was asked.”

Champlain is a lake of two winds. It had been blowing from the south for two weeks; now a north wind was likely to start any day. MacDonough emphasized this point, but it was all in vain, and, feeling shocked and humiliated, the young man followed the order “to wait until his advice was asked.”

The next day Hampton ordered a review, not an embarkation, and was not well enough to appear in person.

The next day, Hampton requested a review instead of an embarkation and wasn't well enough to show up in person.

The whole army knew now of the situation of affairs, and the militia in particular were not backward in expressing their minds.

The entire army was now aware of the situation, and the militia, in particular, didn’t hold back in sharing their opinions.

Next day, July 30th, the wind changed. Hampton did nothing. On the morning of July 31st they heard the booming of guns in the north, and at night their scouts came with the news that the raid was on. Plattsburg was taken and pillaged by a force less than one third of those held at Burlington.

Next day, July 30th, the wind shifted. Hampton took no action. On the morning of July 31st, they heard the booming of guns to the north, and at night their scouts arrived with the news that the raid had begun. Plattsburg was captured and looted by a force that was less than one third of those stationed at Burlington.

There were bitter, burning words on the lips of the rank and file, and perfunctory rebukes on the lips of the young officers when they chanced to overhear. The law was surely working out as set forth by Si Sylvanne: “The fools in command, the leaders in the ranks.”

There were harsh, angry words on the lips of the regular soldiers, and routine reprimands from the young officers whenever they happened to overhear. The law was clearly playing out as Si Sylvanne had explained: “The idiots in charge, the leaders among the troops.”

And now came news of fresh disasters—the battles of Beaverdam, Stony Creek, and Niagara River. It was the same story in nearly every case—brave fighting men, ill-drilled, but dead shots, led into traps by incompetent commanders.

And now there was news of new disasters—the battles of Beaverdam, Stony Creek, and Niagara River. It was the same story in almost every instance—brave fighters, poorly trained but excellent marksmen, led into traps by incompetent leaders.

In September Lieutenant Macomb was appointed to command at Plattsburg. This proved as happy an omen as it was a wise move. Immediately after, in all this gloom, came the news of Perry's famous victory on Lake Erie, marking a new era for the American cause, followed by the destruction of Moraviantown and the British army which held it.

In September, Lieutenant Macomb was appointed to lead at Plattsburgh. This turned out to be a fortunate sign and a smart decision. Soon after, amidst all this darkness, came the news of Perry's famous victory on Lake Erie, which marked a new chapter for the American cause, along with the destruction of Moraviantown and the British army that occupied it.

Stirred at last to action General Wilkinson sent despatches to Hampton to arrange an attack on Montreal. There was no possibility of failure, he said, for the sole defence of Montreal was 600 marines. His army consisted of 8000 men. Hampton's consisted of 4000. By a union of these at the mouth of Chateaugay River, they would form an invincible array.

Finally motivated to take action, General Wilkinson sent messages to Hampton to plan an attack on Montreal. He claimed there was no chance of failure since Montreal's only defense was 600 marines. His army had 8,000 men, while Hampton's had 4,000. By joining forces at the mouth of the Chateaugay River, they would create an unbeatable force.

So it seemed. Rolf had not yet seen any actual fighting and began to long for the front. But his powers as a courier kept him ever busy bearing despatches. The road to Sackett's Harbour and thence to Ogdensburg and Covington, and back to Plattsburg he knew thoroughly, and in his canoe he had visited every port on Lakes Champlain and George.

So it seemed. Rolf hadn’t experienced any real combat yet and started to crave being on the front lines. But his skills as a courier kept him constantly occupied delivering messages. He was very familiar with the route to Sackett's Harbour and then to Ogdensburg and Covington, and back to Plattsburg; he had also paddled his canoe to every port on Lakes Champlain and George.

He was absent at Albany in the latter half of October and first of November, but the ill news travelled fast. Hampton requested MacDonough to “swoop down on Isle au Noix”—an insane request, compliance with which would have meant certain destruction to the American fleet. MacDonough's general instructions were: “Cooperate with the army, but at any price retain supremacy of the lake,” and he declined to receive Hampton's order.

He was away in Albany during the latter half of October and the beginning of November, but the bad news spread quickly. Hampton asked MacDonough to “attack Isle au Noix”—a ridiculous request, following which would have led to certain destruction of the American fleet. MacDonough’s general instructions were: “Work with the army, but at all costs maintain control of the lake,” and he refused to comply with Hampton’s order.

Threatening court-martials and vengeance on his return, Hampton now set out by land; but at Chateaugay he was met by a much smaller force of Canadians who resisted him so successfully that he ordered a retreat and his army retired to Plattsburg.

Threatened with court-martials and revenge when he got back, Hampton set out over land; but at Chateaugay, he encountered a much smaller group of Canadians who resisted him so effectively that he ordered a retreat, and his army pulled back to Plattsburg.

Meanwhile General Wilkinson had done even worse. His army numbered 8000. Of these the rear guard were 2500. A body of 800 Canadians harassed their line of march. Turning to brush away this annoyance, the Americans were wholly defeated at Chrystler's farm and, giving up the attack on Montreal, Wilkinson crossed the St. Lawrence and settled for the winter at Chateaugay.

Meanwhile, General Wilkinson's situation was even worse. His army had 8,000 troops, with 2,500 in the rear guard. A group of 800 Canadians was disrupting their march. When the Americans tried to deal with this issue, they were completely defeated at Chrystler's Farm and abandoned their attack on Montreal. Wilkinson then crossed the St. Lawrence and decided to winter at Chateaugay.

In December, America scored an important advance by relieving Hampton of his command.

In December, America made a significant move by removing Hampton from his command.

As the spring drew near, it was clearly Wilkinson's first play to capture La Colle Mill, which had been turned into a fortress of considerable strength and a base for attack on the American border, some five miles away.

As spring approached, it was obviously Wilkinson's initial plan to take La Colle Mill, which had been transformed into a stronghold and a launch point for attacks on the American border, about five miles distant.

Of all the scouts Rolf best knew that region, yet he was the one left out of consideration and despatched with papers to Plattsburg. The attack was bungled from first to last, and when Wilkinson was finally repulsed, it was due to Macomb that the retreat was not a rout.

Of all the scouts, Rolf knew that area the best, yet he was the one who was overlooked and sent off with paperwork to Plattsburg. The attack was messed up from start to finish, and when Wilkinson was finally pushed back, it was because of Macomb that the retreat wasn't a complete disaster.

But good came out of this evil, for Wilkinson was recalled and the law was nearly fulfilled—the incompetents were gone. General Macomb was in command of the land force and MacDonough of the Lake.

But good came out of this situation, as Wilkinson was recalled and the law was nearly fulfilled—the incompetent leaders were gone. General Macomb was in charge of the land forces and MacDonough of the lake.





Chapter 78. Rumours and Papers

MacDonough's orders were to hold control of the Lake. How he did it will be seen. The British fleet at Isle au Noix was slightly stronger than his own, therefore he established a navy yard at Vergennes, in Vermont, seven miles up the Otter River, and at the mouth erected earthworks and batteries. He sent for Brown (of the firm of Adam and Noah Brown) a famous New York shipbuilder. Brown agreed to launch a ship of twenty-four guns in sixty days. The trees were standing in the forest on March 2d the keel was laid March 7th, and on April 11th the Saratoga was launched—forty days after the timbers were green standing trees on the hills.

MacDonough's orders were to maintain control of the Lake. How he accomplished this will be explained. The British fleet at Isle au Noix was slightly stronger than his own, so he set up a navy yard at Vergennes, Vermont, seven miles up the Otter River, and built earthworks and batteries at the mouth. He contacted Brown (from the firm of Adam and Noah Brown), a well-known shipbuilder from New York. Brown agreed to launch a ship with twenty-four guns in sixty days. The trees were still standing in the forest on March 2nd, the keel was laid on March 7th, and on April 11th, the Saratoga was launched—just forty days after the timbers were freshly cut from the trees on the hills.

Other vessels were begun and pushed as expeditiously. And now MacDonough's wisdom in choice of the navy yard was seen, for a British squadron was sent to destroy his infant fleet, or at least sink stone-boats across the exit so as to bottle it up.

Other ships were started and worked on quickly. And now MacDonough's smart choice of the navy yard was clear, as a British squadron was sent to destroy his fledgling fleet, or at least to sink stone-boats across the exit to trap it.

But their attempts were baffled by the batteries which the far-seeing American had placed at the river's mouth.

But their efforts were thwarted by the artillery that the forward-thinking American had positioned at the mouth of the river.

The American victory at Chippewa was followed by the defeat at Lundy's Lane, and on August 25th the city of Washington was captured by the British and its public buildings destroyed. These calamities, instead of dampening the spirits of the army, roused the whole nation at last to a realization of the fact that they were at war. Fresh troops and plentiful supplies were voted, the deadwood commanders were retired, and the real men revealed by the two campaigns were given place and power.

The American win at Chippewa was followed by the loss at Lundy's Lane, and on August 25th, the British captured Washington, D.C., and destroyed its public buildings. Instead of discouraging the army, these disasters finally motivated the entire nation to understand that they were in a war. New troops and ample supplies were approved, ineffective leaders were sidelined, and the capable individuals exposed by the two battles were given positions of authority.

At the same time, Great Britain, having crushed Napoleon, was in a position to greatly reinforce her American army, and troops seasoned in Continental campaigns were poured into Canada.

At the same time, Great Britain, having defeated Napoleon, was able to significantly strengthen her American army, and experienced troops from Continental campaigns were sent to Canada.

All summer Rolf was busied bearing despatches. During the winter he and Quonab had built a birch canoe on special lines for speed; it would carry two men but no baggage.

All summer, Rolf was busy delivering messages. During the winter, he and Quonab had constructed a birch canoe designed specifically for speed; it could hold two people but no gear.

With this he could make fully six miles an hour for a short time, and average five on smooth water. In this he had crossed and recrossed Champlain, and paddled its length, till he knew every bay and headland. The overland way to Sackett's Harbour he had traversed several times; the trail from Plattsburg to Covington he knew in all weathers, and had repeatedly covered its sixty miles in less than twenty-four hours on foot. The route he picked and followed was in later years the line selected for the military highway between these two camps.

With this, he could reach a speed of six miles an hour for a short time and average five on smooth water. Because of this, he had crossed and recrossed Champlain and paddled its entire length, so he knew every bay and headland. He had made the overland trip to Sackett's Harbour several times; he was familiar with the trail from Plattsburg to Covington in all kinds of weather and had repeatedly traveled its sixty miles in less than twenty-four hours on foot. The route he chose and followed was later selected as the military highway between these two camps.

But the chief scene of his activities was the Canadian wilderness at the north end of Lake Champlain. Chazy, Champlain, Odelltown, La Colle Mill, Isle au Noix, and Richelieu River he knew intimately and had also acquired a good deal of French in learning their country.

But the main focus of his activities was the Canadian wilderness at the north end of Lake Champlain. He was very familiar with Chazy, Champlain, Odelltown, La Colle Mill, Isle au Noix, and the Richelieu River, and he had also picked up quite a bit of French while getting to know the area.

It was characteristic of General Wilkinson to ignore the scout who knew and equally characteristic of his successors, Izard and Macomb, to seek and rely on the best man.

It was typical of General Wilkinson to overlook the scout who was knowledgeable, just as it was typical of his successors, Izard and Macomb, to look for and depend on the best person.

The news that he brought in many different forms was that the British were again concentrating an army to strike at Plattsburg and Albany.

The news he brought in various forms was that the British were once again gathering an army to attack Plattsburg and Albany.

Izard on the land at Plattsburg and Champlain, and Macomb at Burlington strained all their resources to meet the invader at fair terms. Izard had 4000 men assembled, when an extraordinary and devastating order from Washington compelled him to abandon the battle front at Champlain and lead his troops to Sackett's Harbour where all was peace. He protested like a statesman, then obeyed like a soldier, leaving Macomb in command of the land forces of Lake Champlain, with, all told, some 3400 men. On the day that Izard left Champlain, the British troops, under Brisbane, advanced and occupied his camp.

Izard, stationed at Plattsburgh and Champlain, and Macomb at Burlington, strained all their resources to confront the invaders on equal footing. Izard had gathered 4,000 troops when an unexpected and devastating order from Washington forced him to abandon the front lines at Champlain and take his soldiers to Sackett's Harbour, where everything was calm. He protested like a leader but complied like a soldier, leaving Macomb in charge of the land forces on Lake Champlain, which numbered around 3,400 in total. On the day Izard departed from Champlain, the British troops, led by Brisbane, moved in and took over his camp.

As soon as Rolf had seen them arrive, and had gauged their number, he sent Quonab back to report, and later retired by night ten miles up the road to Chazy. He was well known to many of the settlers and was welcome where ever known, not only because he was a patriot fighting his country's battles, but for his own sake, for he was developing into a handsome, alert, rather silent youth. It is notorious that in the drawing-room, given equal opportunity, the hunter has the advantage over the farmer. He has less self-consciousness, more calm poise. He is not troubled about what to do with his feet and hands, and is more convinced of his native dignity and claims to respect. In the drawin-room Rolf was a hunter: the leading inhabitants of the region around received him gladly and honoured him. He was guest at Judge Hubbell's in Chazy, in September of 1814. Every day he scouted in the neighbourhood and at night returned to the hospitable home of the judge.

As soon as Rolf saw them arrive and figured out how many there were, he sent Quonab back to report and later moved ten miles up the road to Chazy for the night. He was well-known to many of the settlers and was welcomed wherever he went, not just because he was a patriot fighting for his country, but also for who he was, as he was becoming a handsome, alert, and somewhat quiet young man. It’s well-known that in social settings, given equal chances, a hunter has an edge over a farmer. The hunter tends to be less self-conscious and more composed. He isn't worried about what to do with his hands and feet, and he feels more secure in his own dignity and right to respect. In social gatherings, Rolf was a hunter: the prominent residents of the area welcomed and honored him. He was a guest at Judge Hubbell's in Chazy in September of 1814. Every day he scouted the area and returned each night to the judge's welcoming home.

On the 12th of September, from the top of a tall tree on a distant wooded hill, he estimated the force at Champlain to be 10,000 to 15,000 men. Already their bodyguard was advancing on Chazy.

On September 12th, from the top of a tall tree on a distant wooded hill, he estimated the force at Champlain to be between 10,000 and 15,000 men. Their bodyguard was already moving toward Chazy.

Judge Hubbell and anxious neighbours hastily assembled now, discussed with Rolf the situation and above all, “What shall we do with our families?” One man broke into a storm of hate and vituperation against the British. “Remember the burning of Washington and the way they treated the women at Bladensburg.”

Judge Hubbell and worried neighbors quickly gathered now, discussing the situation with Rolf and, most importantly, "What should we do about our families?" One man erupted into a furious outburst of hatred and insults directed at the British. "Remember the burning of Washington and how they treated the women at Bladensburg."

“All of which about the women was utterly disproved, except in one case, and in that the criminal was shot by order of his own commander,” retorted Hubbell.

"All of the claims about the women were completely disproved, except for one case, and in that situation, the criminal was shot by order of his own commander," replied Hubbell.

At Plattsburg others maintained that the British had harmed no one. Colonel Murray had given strict orders that all private property be absolutely respected. Nothing but government property was destroyed and only that which could be construed into war stores and buildings. What further damage was done was the result of accident or error. Officers were indeed quartered on the inhabitants, but they paid for what they got, and even a carpet destroyed by accident was replaced months afterward by a British officer who had not the means at the time.

At Plattsburg, some people believed that the British had not harmed anyone. Colonel Murray had given clear orders that all private property should be fully respected. Only government property was destroyed, and only what could be considered as military supplies and buildings. Any additional damage was due to accidents or mistakes. Officers were indeed staying with the locals, but they paid for what they used, and even a carpet accidentally damaged was replaced months later by a British officer who couldn't afford it at the time.

So it was agreed that Hubbell with Rolf and the village fathers and brothers should join their country's army, leaving wives and children behind.

So it was decided that Hubbell, along with Rolf and the village elders and men, would join the army of their country, leaving their wives and children behind.

There were wet bearded cheeks among the strong, rugged men as they kissed their wives and little ones and prepared to go, then stopped, as horrible misgivings rose within. “This was war, and yet again, 'We have had proofs that the British harmed no woman or child'.” So they dashed away the tears, suppressed the choking in their throats, shouldered their guns, and marched away to the front, commending their dear ones to the mercy of God and the British invaders.

There were wet bearded cheeks among the strong, rugged men as they kissed their wives and little ones and got ready to leave, then hesitated as terrible doubts bubbled up inside. “This is war, and yet again, 'We have evidence that the British didn’t hurt any women or children'.” So they wiped away their tears, swallowed hard to hold back their emotions, picked up their guns, and marched away to the front, entrusting their loved ones to the mercy of God and the British invaders.

None had any cause to regret this trust. Under pain of death, Sir George Prevost enforced his order that the persons of women and children and all private property be held inviolate. As on the previous raid, no damage was done to non-combatants, and the only hardships endured were by the few who, knowing nothing, feared much, and sought the precarious safety of life among the hills.

None had any reason to regret this trust. Under threat of death, Sir George Prevost enforced his order that the safety of women and children, along with all private property, be respected. As with the previous raid, no harm was done to non-combatants, and the only struggles faced were by the few who, knowing nothing, feared a lot, and sought the uncertain safety of life in the hills.

Sir George Prevost and his staff of ten officers were quartered in Judge Hubbell's house. Mrs. Hubbell was hard put to furnish them with meals, but they treated her with perfect respect, and every night, not knowing how long they might stay, they left on the table the price of their board and lodging.

Sir George Prevost and his team of ten officers were staying in Judge Hubbell's house. Mrs. Hubbell had a tough time providing them with meals, but they treated her with complete respect. Every night, not knowing how long they might be there, they left the payment for their food and lodging on the table.

For three days they waited, then all was ready for the advance.

For three days they waited, and then everything was set for the march.

“Now for Plattsburg this week and Albany next, so good-bye, madam” they said politely, and turned to ride away, a gay and splendid group.

“Now it's off to Plattsburg this week and Albany next, so goodbye, ma'am,” they said politely, and turned to ride away, a cheerful and impressive group.

“Good-bye, sirs, for a very little while, but I know you'll soon be back and hanging your heads as you come,” was the retort.

“Goodbye, gentlemen, for just a short time, but I know you’ll be back soon and looking remorseful as you arrive,” was the reply.

Sir George replied: “If a man had said that, I would call him out; but since it is a fair lady that has been our charming hostess, I reply that when your prophecy comes true, every officer here shall throw his purse on your door step as he passes.”

Sir George replied: “If a guy had said that, I would challenge him; but since it’s a lovely lady who has been our delightful hostess, I’ll say that when your prediction comes true, every officer here will drop his wallet on your doorstep as he walks by.”

So they rode away, 13,000 trained men with nothing between them and Albany but 2000 troops, double as many raw militia, and—MacDonough of the Lake.

So they rode off, 13,000 trained soldiers with nothing standing in their way to Albany except for 2,000 troops, twice as many inexperienced militia, and—MacDonough of the Lake.

Ten times did Rolf cover that highway north of Plattsburg in the week that followed, and each day his tidings were the same—the British steadily advance.

Ten times Rolf traveled that highway north of Plattsburg in the week that followed, and each day his news was the same—the British were steadily advancing.





Chapter 79. McGlassin's Exploit

There was a wonderful spirit on everything in Plattsburg, and the earthly tabernacle in which it dwelt, was the tall, grave young man who had protested against Hampton's behaviour at Burlington—Captain, now General Macomb. Nothing was neglected, every emergency was planned for, every available man was under arms. Personally tireless, he was ever alert and seemed to know every man in his command and every man of it had implicit confidence in the leader. We have heard of soldiers escaping from a besieged fortress by night; but such was the inspiring power of this commander that there was a steady leaking in of men from the hills, undrilled and raw, but of superb physique and dead shots with the ride.

There was an amazing vibe in Plattsburg, and the strong, serious young man who embodied it was the one who had spoken out against Hampton's actions in Burlington—Captain, now General Macomb. Nothing was overlooked, every possible situation was prepared for, and every available soldier was ready for action. Always tireless, he was constantly aware and seemed to know every soldier in his unit, and every one of them had complete trust in their leader. We've heard stories of soldiers escaping from a besieged fortress under the cover of night; however, the inspiring influence of this commander led to a steady flow of men coming in from the hills—untrained and inexperienced, but physically impressive and excellent marksmen with the rifle.

A typical case was that of a sturdy old farmer who was marching through the woods that morning to take his place with those who manned the breastworks and was overheard to address his visibly trembling legs: “Shake, damn you, shake; and if ye knew where I was leading you, you'd be ten times worse.”

A typical case was that of a sturdy old farmer who was walking through the woods that morning to join those who manned the fortifications and was overheard talking to his visibly trembling legs: “Shake, damn you, shake; and if you knew where I was leading you, you'd be ten times worse.”

His mind was more valiant than his body, and his mind kept control—this is true courage.

His mind was braver than his body, and his mind stayed in control—this is true courage.

No one had a better comprehension of all this than Macomb. He knew that all these men needed was a little training to make of them the best soldiers on earth. To supply that training he mixed them with veterans, and arranged a series of unimportant skirmishes as coolly and easily as though he were laying out a programme for an evening's entertainment.

No one understood all of this better than Macomb. He realized that all these men needed was a bit of training to turn them into the best soldiers in the world. To provide that training, he paired them with veterans and organized a series of minor skirmishes as casually and effortlessly as if he were planning an evening of entertainment.

The first of these was at Culver's Hill. Here a barricade was thrown up along the highway, a gun was mounted, and several hundred riflemen were posted under leaders skilled in the arts of harrying a foe and giving him no chance to strike back.

The first of these took place at Culver's Hill. A barricade was set up along the highway, a gun was installed, and several hundred riflemen were stationed under leaders experienced in the tactics of tormenting an enemy and preventing them from retaliating.

Among the men appointed for the barricade's defence was Rolf and near him Quonab. The latter had been seasoned in the Revolution, but it was the former's first experience at the battle front, and he felt as most men do when the enemy in brave array comes marching up. As soon as they were within long range, his leader gave the order “Fire!” The rifles rattled and the return fire came at once. Balls pattered on the barricade or whistled above. The man next to him was struck and dropped with a groan; another fell back dead. The horror and roar were overmuch. Rolf was nervous enough when he entered the fight. Now he was unstrung, almost stunned, his hands and knees were shaking, he was nearly panic-stricken and could not resist the temptation to duck, as the balls hissed murder over his head. He was blazing away, without aiming, when an old soldier, noting his white face and shaking form, laid a hand on his shoulder and, in kindly tones, said: “Steady, boy, steady; yer losing yer head; see, this is how,” and he calmly took aim, then, without firing, moved the gun again and put a little stick to raise the muzzle and make a better rest, then fired as though at target practice. “Now rest for a minute. Look at Quonab there; you can see he's been through it before. He is making a hit with every shot.”

Among the men assigned to defend the barricade were Rolf and nearby, Quonab. The latter had experience from the Revolution, but it was Rolf's first time at the front lines, and he felt like most men do when the enemy marches towards them. As soon as they were in long range, his leader shouted, “Fire!” The rifles erupted, and the enemy responded immediately. Bullets ricocheted off the barricade or whistled overhead. The man next to him was hit and collapsed with a groan; another fell back dead. The chaos and noise were overwhelming. Rolf was already nervous entering the fight. Now, he was unhinged, almost stunned; his hands and knees shook, and he was nearly panicking, unable to resist the urge to duck as the bullets hissed dangerously close. He was firing wildly, without aiming, when an old soldier, seeing his pale face and trembling body, placed a hand on his shoulder and said in a gentle voice, “Steady, boy, steady; you’re losing your focus; look, this is how it’s done.” He calmly took aim, then without firing, adjusted his gun by putting a small stick under the muzzle for better support, and fired as if in target practice. “Now take a moment to breathe. Look at Quonab over there; you can see he’s been through this before. He’s hitting his target with every shot.”

Rolf did as he was told, and in a few minutes his colour came back, his hand was steady, and thenceforth he began to forget the danger and thought only of doing his work.

Rolf did what he was told, and within a few minutes, his color returned, his hand was steady, and from then on, he started to forget the danger and focused only on getting his work done.

When at length it was seen that the British were preparing to charge, the Americans withdrew quickly and safely to Halsey's Corner, where was another barricade and a fresh lot of recruits awaiting to receive their baptism of fire. And the scene was repeated. Little damage was done to the foe but enormous benefit was gained by the Americans, because it took only one or two of these skirmishes to turn a lot of shaky-kneed volunteers into a band of steady soldiers—for they had it all inside. Thus their powder terror died.

When it finally became clear that the British were getting ready to attack, the Americans quickly and safely retreated to Halsey's Corner, where there was another barricade and a fresh group of recruits waiting for their first experience in battle. The scene played out again. The enemy suffered little damage, but the Americans gained a lot, as just one or two of these skirmishes were enough to transform many nervous volunteers into a reliable group of soldiers—because they had it in them all along. This is how their fear of gunpowder faded away.

That night the British occupied the part of the town that was north of the Saranac, and began a desultory bombardment of the fortification opposite. Not a very serious one, for they considered they could take the town at any time, but preferred to await the arrival of their fleet under Downie.

That night, the British took control of the area of the town north of the Saranac and started a sporadic bombardment of the fortifications across the way. It wasn't very intense because they believed they could capture the town whenever they wanted, but they chose to wait for their fleet under Downie to arrive.

The fight for the northern half of the town was not serious, merely part of Macomb's prearranged training course; but when the Americans retired across the Saranac, the planks of the bridges were torn up, loop-holed barricades were built along the southern bank, and no effort spared to prepare for a desperate resistance.

The battle for the northern part of the town wasn’t intense, just part of Macomb's planned training exercise; however, when the Americans pulled back across the Saranac, the bridge planks were ripped up, makeshift barricades with shooting holes were set up along the southern bank, and every effort was made to get ready for a tough stand.

Every man that could hold up a gun was posted on the lines of Plattsburg. The school-boys, even, to the number of five hundred formed a brigade, and were assigned to places where their squirrel-hunting experiences could be made of service to their country.

Every man who could hold a gun was stationed on the lines of Plattsburg. The schoolboys, even, numbering five hundred, formed a brigade and were assigned to positions where their squirrel-hunting skills could benefit their country.

Meanwhile the British had established a battery opposite Fort Brown. It was in a position to do some material and enormous moral damage. On the ninth it was nearly ready for bloody work, and would probably begin next morning. That night, however, an extraordinary event took place, and showed how far from terror-palsy were the motley troops in Plattsburg. A sturdy Vermonter, named Captain McGlassin, got permission of Malcomb to attempt a very Spartan sortie.

Meanwhile, the British had set up a battery across from Fort Brown. It was in a position to cause significant physical and psychological damage. By the ninth, it was almost ready for heavy action and would likely start the next morning. That night, however, an extraordinary event occurred, revealing how far from being paralyzed by fear were the diverse troops in Plattsburgh. A tough Vermonter named Captain McGlassin received permission from Malcomb to attempt a bold sortie.

He called for fifty volunteers to go on a most hazardous enterprise. He got one thousand at once. Then he ordered all over twenty-five and under eighteen to retire. This reduced the number to three hundred. Then, all married men were retired, and thus again they were halved. Next he ordered away all who smoked—Ah, deep philosopher that he was!—and from the remnant he selected his fifty. Among them was Rolf. Then he divulged his plan. It was nothing less than a dash on the new-made fort to spike those awful guns—fifty men to dash into a camp of thirteen thousand.

He asked for fifty volunteers to take on a very dangerous mission. He ended up with a thousand right away. Then he told everyone over twenty-five and under eighteen to step back, bringing the number down to three hundred. Next, he sent all the married men away, cutting the number in half again. After that, he dismissed anyone who smoked—oh, the wise thinker he was!—and from those remaining, he chose his fifty. Among them was Rolf. Then he revealed his plan. It was nothing less than a strike on the newly built fort to disable those terrible guns—fifty men charging into a camp of thirteen thousand.

Again he announced, “Any who wish to withdraw now may do so.” Not a man stirred.

Again he announced, “Anyone who wants to leave now can do so.” Not a man moved.

Twenty of those known to be expert with tools were provided with hammers and spikes for the guns, and Rolf was proud to be one of them.

Twenty of the people recognized as skilled with tools were given hammers and spikes for the guns, and Rolf was proud to be one of them.

In a night of storm and blackness they crossed the Saranac; dividing in two bodies they crawled unseen, one on each side of the battery. Three hundred British soldiers were sleeping near, only the sentries peered into the storm-sleet.

In a night filled with storm and darkness, they crossed the Saranac; splitting into two groups, they moved stealthily, one on each side of the battery. Three hundred British soldiers were nearby, asleep, with only the sentries watching through the sleet of the storm.

All was ready when McGlassin's tremendous voice was heard, “Charge front and rear!” Yelling, pounding, making all the noise they could, the American boys rushed forth. The British were completely surprised, the sentries were struck down, and the rest assured that Macomb's army was on them recoiled for a few minutes. The sharp click, click, click of the hammers was heard. An iron spike was driven into every touch hole; the guns were made harmless as logs and quickly wheeling, to avoid the return attack, these bold Yankee boys leaped from the muzzled redoubt and reached their own camp without losing one of their number.

Everything was set when McGlassin's powerful voice rang out, “Charge from the front and back!” Shouting, stomping, and making as much noise as possible, the American soldiers rushed forward. The British were caught completely off guard; the sentries were taken down, and the rest, convinced that Macomb's army was upon them, backed off for a moment. The sharp click, click, click of the hammers could be heard. An iron spike was driven into every touch hole; the guns were rendered useless, and quickly turning to avoid a counterattack, these brave Yankee soldiers leaped from the silenced fortification and returned to their camp without losing a single member of their group.





Chapter 80. The Bloody Saranac

Sir George Prevost had had no intention of taking Plattsburg, till Plattsburg's navy was captured. But the moral effect of McGlassin's exploit must be offset at once. He decided to carry the city by storm—a matter probably of three hours' work.

Sir George Prevost had no plans to take Plattsburg until Plattsburg's navy was captured. But the impact of McGlassin's feat needed to be countered immediately. He decided to storm the city—a task he figured would probably take about three hours.

He apportioned a regiment to each bridge, another to each ford near the town, another to cross the river at Pike's Cantonment, and yet another to cross twenty miles above, where they were to harry the fragments of the American as it fled.

He assigned a regiment to each bridge, another to each crossing near the town, one to cross the river at Pike's Cantonment, and yet another to cross twenty miles upstream, where they were to chase down the remnants of the Americans as they fled.

That morning Plattsburg was wakened by a renewal of the bombardment. The heavy firing killed a few men knocked down a few walls and chimneys, but did little damage to the earthworks.

That morning, Plattsburg was awakened by the resumption of the bombardment. The heavy firing killed a few men and knocked down some walls and chimneys, but did little damage to the fortifications.

It was surprising to all how soon the defenders lost their gun-shyness. The very school-boys and their sisters went calmly about their business, with cannon and musket balls whistling overhead, striking the walls and windows, or, on rare occasions, dropping some rifleman who was over-rash as he worked or walked on the ramparts.

It was surprising to everyone how quickly the defenders got over their fear of gunfire. The schoolboys and their sisters went about their business calmly, with cannon and musket balls whistling overhead, hitting the walls and windows, or, on rare occasions, taking down a rifleman who was too reckless as he worked or walked on the ramparts.

There were big things doing in the British camp—regiments marching and taking their places—storms of rifle and cannon balls raging fiercely. By ten o'clock there was a lull. The Americans, from the grandfathers to the school-boys, were posted, each with his rifle and his pouch full of balls; there were pale faces among the youngsters, and nervous fingers, but there was no giving way. Many a man there was, no doubt, who, under the impulse of patriotism, rushed with his gun to join the ranks, and when the bloody front was reached, he wished in his heart he was safe at home. But they did not go. Something kept them staunch.

There were significant activities happening in the British camp—regiments marching and taking their positions—storms of rifle and cannon fire raging fiercely. By ten o'clock, there was a pause. The Americans, from the grandfathers to the schoolboys, were ready, each with his rifle and a pouch full of ammunition; there were anxious faces among the young ones, and nervous fingers, but they didn't back down. Many men there were, no doubt, who, driven by patriotism, rushed with their guns to join the ranks, and when they faced the bloody front, wished deep down that they were safe at home. But they didn’t leave. Something kept them resolute.

Although the lines were complete all along the ramparts, there were four places where the men were massed. These were on the embankments opposite the bridges and the fords. Here the best shots were placed and among them was Rolf, with others of McGlassin's band.

Although the lines were fully formed along the ramparts, there were four spots where the men gathered. These were on the earthen banks opposite the bridges and the crossings. Here, the best sharpshooters were positioned, including Rolf and several members of McGlassin's group.

The plank of the bridges had been torn up and used with earth to form breastworks; but the stringers of the bridges were there, and a body of red-coats approaching, each of them showed plainly what their plan was.

The planks from the bridges had been taken up and used with dirt to build fortifications; however, the beams of the bridges were still intact, and a group of redcoats was approaching, clearly revealing their intentions.

The farthest effective range of rifle fire in those days was reckoned at a hundred yards. The Americans were ordered to hold their fire till the enemy reached the oaks, a grove one hundred yards from the main bridge—on the other bank.

The farthest effective range of rifle fire back then was considered to be a hundred yards. The Americans were instructed to wait to fire until the enemy reached the oaks, a grove one hundred yards from the main bridge—across the river.

The British came on in perfect review-day style. Now a hush fell on all. The British officer in command was heard clearly giving his orders. How strange it must have been to the veterans of wars in Spain, France, and the Rhine, to advance against a force with whom they needed no interpreter.

The British marched in perfect review-day style. A silence settled over everyone. The British officer in charge was clearly heard giving his orders. How odd it must have felt to the veterans of wars in Spain, France, and along the Rhine, to face a force with whom they required no interpreter.

McGlassin's deep voice now rang along the defences, “Don't fire till I give the order.”

McGlassin's deep voice echoed along the defenses, “Don't fire until I give the order.”

The red-coats came on at a trot, they reached the hundred-yard-mark.

The redcoats trotted forward, reaching the hundred-yard mark.

“Now, aim low and fire!” from McGlassin, and the rattle of the Yankee guns was followed by reeling ranks of red in the oaks.

“Now, aim low and fire!” shouted McGlassin, and the sound of the Yankee guns was followed by staggering lines of red in the oaks.

“Charge!” shouted the British officer and the red-coats charged to the bridge, but the fire from the embankment was incessant; the trail of the charging men was cluttered with those who fell.

“Charge!” shouted the British officer, and the redcoats rushed toward the bridge, but the gunfire from the embankment kept coming; the path of the charging men was strewn with those who had fallen.

“Forward!” and the gallant British captain leaped on the central stringer of the bridge and, waving his sword, led on. Instantly three lines of men were formed, one on each stringer.

“Forward!” and the brave British captain jumped onto the center beam of the bridge and, waving his sword, took the lead. Immediately, three lines of soldiers were formed, one on each beam.

They were only fifty yards from the barricade, with five hundred rifles, all concentrated on these stringers. The first to fall was the captain, shot through the heart, and the river bore him away. But on and on came the three ranks into the whistling, withering fire of lead. It was like slaughtering sheep. Yet on and on they marched steadily for half an hour. Not a man held back or turned, though all knew they were marching to their certain death. Not one of them ever reached the centre of the span, and those who dropped, not dead, were swallowed by the swollen stream. How many hundred brave men were sacrificed that day, no one ever knew. He who gave the word to charge was dead with his second and third in command and before another could come to change the order, the river ran red—the bloody Saranac they call it ever since.

They were only fifty yards from the barricade, with five hundred rifles all aimed at these soldiers. The first to go down was the captain, shot through the heart, and the river carried him away. But the three ranks kept pushing forward into the screaming, relentless gunfire. It was like slaughtering sheep. Still, they marched on steadily for half an hour. Not a man held back or turned away, even though they all knew they were heading toward certain death. Not one of them ever made it to the center of the bridge, and those who fell, not dead, were engulfed by the swollen river. How many brave men were lost that day, no one ever knew. The one who ordered the charge was dead along with his second and third in command, and before anyone could relay a new command, the river ran red—the bloody Saranac as it's been called ever since.

The regiment was wrecked, and the assault for the time was over.

The regiment was shattered, and the attack was over for now.

Rolf had plied his rifle with the rest, but it sickened him to see the horrible waste of human valour. It was such ghastly work that he was glad indeed when a messenger came to say he was needed at headquarters. And in an hour he was crossing the lake with news and instructions for the officer in command at Burlington.

Rolf had used his rifle like everyone else, but it made him sick to witness the terrible waste of human bravery. It was such gruesome work that he was truly relieved when a messenger arrived to say he was needed at headquarters. Within an hour, he was crossing the lake with news and instructions for the officer in charge at Burlington.





Chapter 81. The Battle of Plattsburg

In broad daylight he skimmed away in his one man canoe.

For five hours he paddled, and at star-peep he reached the dock at Burlington. The howl of a lost dog caught his ear; and when he traced the sound, there, on the outmost plank, with his nose to the skies, was the familiar form of Skookum, wailing and sadly alone.

For five hours he paddled, and just as the stars came out, he arrived at the dock in Burlington. He heard the howl of a lost dog; when he followed the sound, he found Skookum, with his nose in the air, wailing and all alone on the outermost plank.

What a change he showed when Rolf landed; he barked, leaped, growled, tail-wagged, head-wagged, feet-wagged, body-wagged, wig-wagged and zigzagged for joy; he raced in circles, looking for a sacrificial hen, and finally uttered a long and conversational whine that doubtless was full of information for those who could get it out.

What a difference he showed when Rolf arrived; he barked, jumped, growled, wagged his tail, wagged his head, wagged his feet, wiggled his body, and zigzagged with joy; he ran in circles, searching for a sacrificial hen, and finally let out a long, chatty whine that was definitely full of information for those who could understand it.

Rolf delivered his budget at once. It was good news, but not conclusive. Everything depended now on MacDonough. In the morning all available troops should hurry to the defence of Plattsburg; not less than fifteen hundred men were ready to embark at daylight.

Rolf presented his budget right away. It was positive news, but not final. Everything now relied on MacDonough. In the morning, all available troops needed to rush to the defense of Plattsburgh; no fewer than fifteen hundred men were prepared to set out at dawn.

That night Rolf slept with Skookum in the barracks. At daybreak, much to the latter's disgust, he was locked up in a cellar, and the troops embarked for the front.

That night, Rolf slept with Skookum in the barracks. At daybreak, much to Skookum's annoyance, he was locked up in a cellar, while the troops set off for the front.

It was a brisk north wind they had to face in crossing and passing down the lake. There were many sturdy oarsmen at the sweeps, but they could not hope to reach their goal in less than five hours.

It was a cold north wind they had to deal with while crossing and moving down the lake. There were plenty of strong oarsmen at the oars, but they couldn’t expect to reach their destination in less than five hours.

When they were half way over, they heard the cannon roar; the booming became incessant; without question, a great naval battle was on, for this north wind was what the British had been awaiting. The rowers bent to their task and added to the speed. Their brothers were hard pressed; they knew it, they must make haste. The long boats flew. In an hour they could see the masts, the sails, the smoke of the battle, but nothing gather of the portentous result. Albany and New York, as well as Plattsburg, were in the balance, and the oarsmen rowed and rowed and rowed.

When they were halfway across, they heard the cannon fire; the booming became nonstop; without a doubt, a major naval battle was happening, for this north wind was what the British had been waiting for. The rowers focused on their task and picked up the pace. Their brothers were in trouble; they knew it, and they had to hurry. The long boats sped along. In an hour, they could see the masts, the sails, and the smoke from the battle, but nothing indicated the serious outcome. Albany and New York, as well as Plattsburgh, were at stake, and the oarsmen rowed and rowed and rowed.

The cannon roared louder and louder, though less continuously, as another hour passed. Now they could see the vessels only four miles away. The jets of smoke were intermittent from the guns; masts went down. They could see it plainly. The rowers only set their lips and rowed and rowed and rowed.

The cannon thundered louder and louder, though less consistently, as another hour went by. Now they could see the ships only four miles away. The clouds of smoke were sporadic from the guns; masts were toppling. They could see it clearly. The rowers just pressed their lips together and kept rowing and rowing and rowing.

Sir George had reckoned on but one obstacle in his march to Albany, an obstruction named MacDonough; but he now found there was another called Macomb.

Sir George had anticipated only one obstacle in his journey to Albany, an obstruction named MacDonough; but he now discovered there was another one called Macomb.

It was obviously a waste of men to take Plattsburg by front assault, when he could easily force a passage of the river higher up and take it on the rear; and it was equally clear that when his fleet arrived and crushed the American fleet, it would be a simple matter for the war vessels to blow the town to pieces, without risking a man.

It was clearly a waste of troops to attack Plattsburg head-on when he could easily cross the river upstream and take it from behind; and it was just as obvious that once his fleet arrived and defeated the American fleet, it would be easy for the warships to destroy the town without putting any men at risk.

Already a favouring wind had made it possible for Downie to leave Isle au Noix and sail down the lake with his gallant crew, under gallant canvas clouds.

Already a favorable wind had enabled Downie to depart from Isle au Noix and cruise down the lake with his brave crew, beneath bold canvas sails.

Tried men and true in control of every ship, outnumbering MacDonough, outweighing him, outpointing him in everything but seamanship, they came on, sure of success.

Tried and true men in charge of every ship, outnumbering MacDonough, outweighing him, and outshining him in everything except seamanship, they advanced, confident of victory.

Three chief moves were in MacDonough's strategy. He anchored to the northward of the bay, so that any fleet coming down the lake would have to beat up against the wind to reach him; so close to land that any fleet trying to flank him would come within range of the forts; and left only one apparent gap that a foe might try to use, a gap in front of which was a dangerous sunken reef. This was indeed a baited trap. Finally he put out cables, kedges, anchors, and springs, so that with the capstan he could turn his vessels and bring either side to bear on the foe.

Three main tactics were part of MacDonough's strategy. He anchored to the north of the bay, ensuring that any fleet coming down the lake would have to sail against the wind to reach him; he was positioned so close to land that any fleet attempting to outflank him would come within range of the forts; and he left only one obvious gap that an enemy might try to exploit, a gap in front of which was a dangerous sunken reef. This was essentially a baited trap. Finally, he deployed cables, kedges, anchors, and springs, so that with the capstan, he could maneuver his vessels and bring either side to face the enemy.

All was ready, that morning of September the 11th as the British fleet, ably handled, swung around the Cumberland Head.

All was ready that morning of September 11th as the British fleet, skillfully managed, turned around Cumberland Head.

The young commander of the Yankee fleet now kneeled bareheaded with his crew and prayed to the God of Battles as only those going into battle pray. The gallant foe came on, and who that knows him doubts that he, too, raised his heart in reverent prayer? The first broadside from the British broke open a chicken coop on the Saratoga from which a game-cock flew, and, perching on a gun, flapped his wings and crowed; so all the seamen cheered at such a happy omen.

The young commander of the Yankee fleet knelt without his hat, joined by his crew, and prayed to the God of Battles as only those heading into battle pray. The brave enemy advanced, and who knows him can doubt that he also raised his heart in respectful prayer? The first broadside from the British smashed open a chicken coop on the Saratoga, causing a game-cock to fly out, perch on a gun, flap its wings, and crow; this made all the sailors cheer at such a good omen.

Then followed the fighting, with its bravery and its horrors—its brutish wickedness broke loose.

Then came the fighting, with its courage and its horrors—its cruel savagery unleashed.

Early in the action, the British sloop, Finch, fell into MacDonough's trap and grounded on the reef.

Early in the action, the British sloop, Finch, fell into MacDonough's trap and got stuck on the reef.

The British commander was killed, with many of his officers. Still, the heavy fire of the guns would have given them the victory, but for MacDonough's foresight in providing for swinging his ships. When one broadside was entirely out of action, he used his cables, kedges and springs, and brought the other batteries to bear.

The British commander was killed, along with many of his officers. Despite this, the powerful gunfire would have led to their victory if it hadn't been for MacDonough's foresight in planning to maneuver his ships. When one broadside was completely out of action, he used his cables, kedges, and springs to bring the other batteries into play.

It was one of the most desperate naval fights the world has ever seen. Of the three hundred men on the British flagship not more than five, we are told, escaped uninjured; and at the close there was not left on any one of the eight vessels a mast that could carry sail, or a sail that could render service. In less than two hours and a half the fight was won, and the British fleet destroyed.

It was one of the most desperate naval battles the world has ever seen. Out of the three hundred men on the British flagship, no more than five, we're told, escaped uninjured; and by the end, there wasn't a single mast left on any of the eight ships that could carry sail, or a sail that could be of any use. In under two and a half hours, the battle was won, and the British fleet was destroyed.

To the God of Battles each had committed his cause: and the God of Battles had spoken.

To the God of Warfare, each had entrusted their fight: and the God of Warfare had spoken.

Far away to the southward in the boats were the Vermont troops with their general and Rolf in the foremost. Every sign of the fight they had watched as men whose country's fate is being tried.

Far to the south, in the boats, were the Vermont troops with their general and Rolf at the front. They observed every aspect of the battle like men whose nation's fate was at stake.

It was a quarter after eleven when the thunder died away; and the Vermonters were headed on shore, for a hasty landing, if need be, when down from the peak of the British flag-ship went the Union Jack, and the Stars and Stripes was hauled to take its place.

It was 11:15 when the thunder faded; and the Vermonters were heading ashore for a quick landing, if necessary, when down from the peak of the British flagship came the Union Jack, and the Stars and Stripes was raised to take its place.

“Thank God!” a soft, murmuring sigh ran through all the boats and many a bronzed and bearded cheek was wet with tears. Each man clasped hands with his neighbour; all were deeply moved, and even as an audience melted renders no applause, so none felt any wish to vent his deep emotion in a cheer.

“Thank God!” a quiet, murmuring sigh passed through all the boats, and many a sun-kissed and bearded face was wet with tears. Each man shook hands with his neighbor; everyone was deeply moved, and just like an audience that is so touched it doesn’t applaud, no one felt the urge to express their deep emotion with a cheer.





Chapter 82. Scouting for Macomb

General Macomb knew that Sir George Prevost was a cautious and experienced commander. The loss of his fleet would certainly make a radical change in his plans, but what change? Would he make a flank move and dash on to Albany, or retreat to Canada, or entrench himself to await reinforcements at Plattsburg, or try to retrieve his laurels by an overwhelming assault on the town?

General Macomb knew that Sir George Prevost was a careful and seasoned leader. Losing his fleet would definitely alter his plans, but how exactly? Would he make a side move and push on to Albany, or retreat to Canada, or dig in to wait for reinforcements at Plattsburg, or attempt to regain his honor with a major attack on the town?

Whatever his plan, he would set about it quickly, and Macomb studied the enemy's camp with a keen, discerning eye, but nothing suggesting a change was visible when the sun sank in the rainy west.

Whatever his plan, he would jump into action quickly, and Macomb observed the enemy's camp with a sharp, insightful gaze, but there was nothing indicating a change when the sun set in the rainy west.

It was vital that he know it at once when an important move was begun, and as soon as the night came down, a score of the swiftest scouts were called for. All were young men; most of them had been in McGlassin's band. Rolf was conspicuous among them for his tall figure, but there was a Vermont boy named Seymour, who had the reputation of being the swiftest runner of them all.

It was crucial for him to know immediately when an important move started, and as soon as night fell, a dozen of the fastest scouts were summoned. They were all young men; most had served in McGlassin's group. Rolf stood out among them for his tall stature, but there was a guy from Vermont named Seymour, who was known as the fastest runner of them all.

They had two duties laid before them: first, to find whether Prevost's army was really retreating; second, what of the regiment he sent up the Saranac to perform the flank movement.

They had two tasks in front of them: first, to determine if Prevost's army was actually retreating; second, to find out what was happening with the regiment he sent up the Saranac to carry out the flank movement.

Each was given the country he knew best. Some went westerly, some followed up the river. Rolf, Seymour, and Fiske, another Vermonter, skimmed out of Plattsburg harbour in the dusk, rounded Cumberland Bend, and at nine o'clock landed at Point au Roche, at the north side of Treadwell's Bay.

Each was assigned the region they were most familiar with. Some headed west, while others followed the river upstream. Rolf, Seymour, and Fiske, another guy from Vermont, glided out of Plattsburg harbor at dusk, rounded Cumberland Bend, and landed at Point au Roche on the north side of Treadwell's Bay at nine o'clock.

Here they hid the canoe and agreeing to meet again at midnight, set off in three different westerly directions to strike the highway at different points. Seymour, as the fast racer, was given the northmost route; Rolf took the middle. Their signals were arranged—in the woods the barred-owl cry, by the water the loon; and they parted.

Here they hid the canoe and agreed to meet again at midnight, then set off in three different westerly directions to hit the highway at different points. Seymour, the fastest runner, took the northern route; Rolf took the middle one. They had their signals figured out—in the woods, they'd use the barred owl call, and by the water, the loon; then they went their separate ways.

The woods seemed very solemn to Rolf that historic September night, as he strode along at speed, stopping now and again when he thought he heard some signal, and opened wide his mouth to relieve his ear-drums of the heart-beat or to still the rushing of his breath.

The woods felt very serious to Rolf on that significant September night as he walked briskly, pausing now and then when he thought he heard a signal, and opened his mouth wide to ease the pressure in his ears from his heartbeat or to calm his heavy breathing.

In half an hour he reached the high-road. It was deserted. Then he heard a cry of the barred owl:

In thirty minutes, he made it to the main road. It was empty. Then he heard a barred owl calling out:

Wa—wah—wa—wah Wa—wah—wa—hooooo-aw.

Wa—wah—wa—wah Wa—wah—wa—hooooo-aw.

He replied with the last line, and the answer came a repeat of the whole chant, showing that it might be owl, it might be man; but it was not the right man, for the final response should have been the hooooo-aw. Rolf never knew whence it came, but gave no further heed.

He responded with the last line, and the answer was just a repetition of the entire chant, indicating that it could be an owl or a man; but it wasn't the right person because the final reply should have been the hooooo-aw. Rolf never figured out where it came from but didn't pay any more attention to it.

For a long time he sat in a dark corner, where he could watch the road. There were sounds of stir in the direction of Plattsburg. Then later, and much nearer, a couple of shots were fired. He learned afterward that those shots were meant for one of his friends. At length there was a faint tump ta tump ta. He drew his knife, stuck it deep in the ground, then held the handle in his teeth. This acted like a magnifier, for now he heard it plainly enough—the sound of a horse at full gallop—but so far away that it was five minutes before he could clearly hear it while standing. As the sound neared, he heard the clank of arms, and when it passed, Rolf knew that this was a mounted British officer. But why, and whither?

For a long time, he sat in a dark corner, where he could watch the road. There were sounds stirring in the direction of Plattsburg. Then later, much closer, a couple of shots were fired. He found out later that those shots were meant for one of his friends. Finally, there was a faint tump ta tump ta. He drew his knife, stuck it deep in the ground, and then held the handle in his teeth. This acted like a magnifier, because now he heard it clearly enough—the sound of a horse at full gallop—but it was so far away that it took five minutes before he could hear it clearly while standing. As the sound got closer, he heard the clank of arms, and when it passed, Rolf realized it was a mounted British officer. But why, and where to?

In order to learn the rider's route, Rolf followed at a trot for a mile. This brought him to a hilltop, whither in the silent night, that fateful north wind carried still the sound

In order to learn the rider's route, Rolf trotted along for a mile. This led him to a hilltop, where, in the quiet night, that fateful north wind still carried the sound.

     te—rump te—rump te—rump.
te—rump te—rump te—rump.

As it was nearly lost, Rolf used his knife again; that brought the rider back within a mile it seemed, and again the hoof beat faded, te—rump te—rump.

As it was almost gone, Rolf used his knife again; that brought the rider back within a mile, it seemed, and once more the hoofbeat faded, thump-thump.

“Bound for Canada all right,” Rolf chuckled to himself. But there was nothing to show whether this was a mere despatch rider, or an advance scout, or a call for reinforcements.

“Heading to Canada for sure,” Rolf chuckled to himself. But there was nothing to indicate whether this was just a messenger, an advance scout, or a request for reinforcements.

So again he had a long wait. About half-past ten a new and larger sound came from the south. The knife in the ground increased but did not explain it. The night was moonless, dark now, and it was safe to sit very near the road. In twenty minutes the sound was near at hand in five, a dark mass was passing along the road. There is no mistaking the language of drivers. There is never any question about such and such a voice being that of an English officer. There can be no doubt about the clank of heavy wheels—a rich, tangy voice from some one in advance said: “Oui. Parbleu, tows ce que je sais, c'est par la.” A body of about one hundred Britishers, two or three wagons, guns, and a Frenchman for guide. Rolf thought he knew that voice; yes, he was almost sure it was the voice of Francios la Colle.

So once again he had a long wait. Around half-past ten, a new and louder sound came from the south. The knife in the ground got stronger but didn’t explain it. The night was moonless and dark now, making it safe to sit very close to the road. In twenty minutes, the sound was close by; in five, a dark mass was moving along the road. You can't mistake the language of drivers. There’s never any doubt about a specific voice being that of an English officer. There's no mistaking the clank of heavy wheels—a rich, distinct voice from someone ahead said: “Oui. Parbleu, tows ce que je sais, c'est par la.” A group of about one hundred British soldiers, two or three wagons, guns, and a Frenchman as a guide. Rolf thought he recognized that voice; yes, he was almost sure it was the voice of Francios la Colle.

This was important but far from conclusive. It was now eleven. He was due at the canoe by midnight. He made for the place as fast as he could go, which, on such a night, was slow, but guided by occasional glimpses of the stars he reached the lake, and pausing a furlong from the landing, he gave the rolling, quivering loon call:

This was significant but not definitive. It was now eleven. He needed to be at the canoe by midnight. He hurried to the spot as quickly as he could, which, on a night like this, was slow. But by catching occasional glimpses of the stars, he made it to the lake. Stopping a short distance from the landing, he let out the rolling, quivering loon call:

Ho-o-o-o-ooo-o Ho-o-o-o-ooo-o. Hooo-ooo.

Ho-o-o-o-ooo-o Ho-o-o-o-ooo-o. Hooo-ooo.

After ten seconds the answer came:

After ten seconds, the answer arrived:

Ho-o-o-o-o-o-o-o Hoo-ooo.

Ho-o-o-o-o-o-o-o Hoo-ooo.

And again after ten seconds Rolf's reply:

And again after ten seconds, Rolf replied:

Hoo-ooo.

Hoo-oo.

Both his friends were there; Fiske with a bullet-hole through his arm. It seemed their duty to go back at once to headquarters with the meagre information and their wounded comrade. But Fiske made light of his trouble—it was a mere scratch—and reminded them that their orders were to make sure of the enemy's movements. Therefore, it was arranged that Seymour take back Fiske and what news they had, while Rolf went on to complete his scouting.

Both his friends were there; Fiske had a bullet hole in his arm. It felt like their responsibility to head back to headquarters right away with their limited information and the injured comrade. But Fiske brushed off his injury—it was just a little scratch—and reminded them that their orders were to confirm the enemy's movements. So, they decided that Seymour would take Fiske and the news they had back, while Rolf continued to finish his scouting.

By one o'clock he was again on the hill where he had marked the horseman's outward flight and the escorted guns. Now, as he waited, there were sounds in the north that faded, and in the south were similar sounds that grew. Within an hour he was viewing a still larger body of troops with drivers and wheels that clanked. There were only two explanations possible: Either the British were concentrating on Chazy Landing, where, protected from MacDonough by the north wind, they could bring enough stores and forces from the north to march overland independent of the ships, or else they were in full retreat for Canada. There was but one point where this could be made sure, namely, at the forks of the road in Chazy village. So he set out at a jog trot for Chazy, six miles away.

By one o'clock, he was back on the hill where he had seen the horseman leave and the escorted cannons. As he waited, he heard sounds from the north that faded away, and in the south, similar sounds that grew louder. Within an hour, he was watching an even larger group of troops, with drivers and wheels clanking. There were only two possible explanations: Either the British were gathering at Chazy Landing, where, shielded from MacDonough by the north wind, they could bring enough supplies and troops from the north to march overland without relying on the ships, or they were in full retreat to Canada. The only way to be sure was at the forks of the road in Chazy village. So, he set off at a jog to Chazy, six miles away.

The troops ahead were going three miles an hour. Rolf could go five. In twenty minutes he overtook them and now was embarrassed by their slowness. What should he do? It was nearly impossible to make speed through the woods in the darkness, so as to pass them. He was forced to content himself by marching a few yards in their rear.

The troops ahead were moving at three miles an hour. Rolf could go five. In twenty minutes, he caught up to them and now felt embarrassed by their slow pace. What should he do? It was nearly impossible to gain speed in the woods at night to get past them. He had to settle for walking a few yards behind them.

Once or twice when a group fell back, he was uncomfortably close and heard scraps of their talk.

Once or twice when a group lagged behind, he was uncomfortably close and heard bits of their conversation.

These left little doubt that the army was in retreat. Still this was the mere chatter of the ranks. He curbed his impatience and trudged with the troop. Once a man dropped back to light his pipe. He almost touched Rolf, and seeing a marching figure, asked in unmistakable accents “Oi soi matey, 'ave ye a loight?”

These left little doubt that the army was retreating. Still, this was just the chatter of the troops. He held back his frustration and marched with the group. Once, a man fell back to light his pipe. He almost bumped into Rolf and, noticing a marching figure, asked in clear accents, “Hey there, mate, do you have a light?”

Rolf assumed the low south country English dialect, already familiar through talking with prisoners, and replied: “Naow, oi oin't a-smowking,” then gradually dropped out of sight.

Rolf used the low southern English dialect he had picked up from talking to prisoners and said, “Now, I’m not smoking,” then slowly disappeared from view.

They were nearly two hours in reaching Chazy where they passed the Forks, going straight on north. Without doubt, now, the army was bound for Canada! Rolf sat on a fence near by as their footsteps went tramp, tramp, tramp—with the wagons, clank, clank, clank, and were lost in the northern distance.

They took almost two hours to get to Chazy, where they passed the Forks and kept heading north. There was no doubt now that the army was headed for Canada! Rolf sat on a nearby fence as their footsteps went tramp, tramp, tramp—with the wagons making clank, clank, clank sounds—before fading into the northern distance.

He had seen perhaps three hundred men; there were thirteen thousand to account for, and he sat and waited. He did not have long to wait; within half an hour a much larger body of troops evidently was approaching from the south; several lanterns gleamed ahead of them, so Rolf got over the fence, but it was low and its pickets offered poor shelter. Farther back was Judge Hubbell's familiar abode with dense shrubbery. He hastened to it and in a minute was hidden where he could see something of the approaching troops. They were much like those that had gone before, but much more numerous, at least a regiment, and as they filled the village way, an officer cried “Halt!” and gave new orders. Evidently they were about to bivouac for the night. A soldier approached the picket fence to use it for firewood, but an officer rebuked him. Other fuel, chiefly fence rails, was found, and a score or more of fires were lighted on the highway and in the adjoining pasture. Rolf found himself in something like a trap, for in less than two hours now would be the dawn.

He had seen maybe three hundred men; there were thirteen thousand to account for, and he sat and waited. He didn’t have to wait long; within half an hour, a much larger group of troops was clearly approaching from the south; several lanterns shone ahead of them, so Rolf climbed over the fence, but it was low and its pickets didn’t provide good cover. Further back was Judge Hubbell's familiar home with thick bushes. He hurried to it and within a minute was hidden where he could see some of the incoming troops. They were similar to those that had gone before, but a lot more numerous, at least a regiment, and as they filled the village road, an officer shouted “Halt!” and issued new orders. Clearly, they were about to set up camp for the night. A soldier walked up to the picket fence to use it for firewood, but an officer scolded him. Other fuel, mostly fence rails, was found, and a dozen or more fires were lit on the road and in the nearby pasture. Rolf found himself in something like a trap, for in less than two hours, dawn would arrive.

The simplest way out was to go in; he crawled quietly round the house to the window of Mrs. Hubbell's room. These were times of nervous tension, and three or four taps on the pane were enough to arouse the good lady. Her husband had come that way more than once.

The easiest way out was to go in; he quietly crawled around the house to Mrs. Hubbell's bedroom window. These were times of high tension, and just three or four taps on the glass would be enough to wake her up. Her husband had come that way several times before.

“Who is it?” she demanded, through a small opening of the sash.

“Who is it?” she asked, through a small opening in the window.

“Rolf Kittering,” he whispered, “the place is surrounded by soldiers; can't you hide me?”

“Rolf Kittering,” he whispered, “the place is surrounded by soldiers; can't you hide me?”

Could she? Imagine an American woman saying “No” at such a time.

Could she? Picture an American woman saying “No” at a time like that.

He slipped in quietly.

He sneaked in quietly.

“What news?” she said. “They say that MacDonough has won on the Lake, but Plattsburg is taken.”

“What’s the news?” she asked. “They say MacDonough won on the lake, but Plattsburgh has fallen.”

“No, indeed; Plattsburgh is safe; MacDonough has captured the fleet. I am nearly sure that the whole British army is retiring to Canada.”

“No, really; Plattsburgh is safe; MacDonough has taken the fleet. I’m almost certain that the entire British army is retreating to Canada.”

“Thank God, thank God,” she said fervently, “I knew it must be so; the women have met here and prayed together every day, morning and night. But hush!” she laid a warning finger on her lips and pointed up toward one of the rooms—“British officer.”

“Thank God, thank God,” she said earnestly, “I knew it had to be true; the women have gathered here and prayed together every day, morning and night. But shh!” she placed a cautionary finger on her lips and pointed up toward one of the rooms—“British officer.”

She brought two blankets from a press and led up to the garret. At the lowest part of the roof was a tiny door to a lumber closet. In this Rolf spread his blankets, stretched his weary limbs, and soon was sound asleep.

She grabbed two blankets from a closet and headed up to the attic. At the lowest point of the roof was a small door to a storage closet. In there, Rolf spread out his blankets, stretched his tired limbs, and soon fell fast asleep.

At dawn the bugles blew, the camp was astir. The officer in the house arose and took his post on the porch. He was there on guard to protect the house. His brother officers joined him. Mrs. Hubbell prepared breakfast. It was eaten silently, so far as Rolf could learn. They paid for it and, heading their regiment, went away northward, leaving the officer still on the porch.

At dawn, the bugles sounded, and the camp came to life. The officer in the house got up and took his place on the porch. He was on guard to protect the house. His fellow officers joined him. Mrs. Hubbell made breakfast. They ate in silence, as far as Rolf could tell. They paid for the meal and, leading their regiment, headed north, leaving the officer still on the porch.

Presently Rolf heard a stealthy step in his garret, the closed door was pushed open, and Mrs. Hubbell's calm, handsome face appeared, as, with a reassuring nod, she set down a mug of coffee, some bread, and a bowl of mush and milk. And only those who have travelled and fasted for twelve hours when they were nineteen know how good it tasted.

Currently, Rolf heard a quiet step in his attic, the closed door was pushed open, and Mrs. Hubbell's calm, attractive face appeared. With a comforting nod, she set down a mug of coffee, some bread, and a bowl of mush and milk. And only those who have traveled and gone twelve hours without food at nineteen know how good it tasted.

From a tiny window ventilator Rolf had a view of the road in front. A growing din of men prepared him for more troops, but still he was surprised to see ten regiments march past with all their stores—a brave army, but no one could mistake their looks; they wore the despondent air of an army in full retreat.

From a small window vent, Rolf could see the road in front of him. The increasing noise of men got him ready for more troops, but he was still shocked to see ten regiments march by with all their supplies—a strong army, but you couldn't misinterpret their expressions; they carried the defeated demeanor of an army in full retreat.





Chapter 83. The Last of Sir George Prevost

The battle was over at Plattsburg town, though it had not been fought; for the spirit of MacDonough was on land and water, and it was felt by the British general, as well as the Yankee riflemen, as soon as the Union Jack had been hauled from the mast of the Confiance.

The battle was over in Plattsburg town, even though it hadn’t been fought; the spirit of MacDonough was present on both land and water, and it was felt by the British general as well as the Yankee riflemen as soon as the Union Jack was taken down from the mast of the Confiance.

Now Sir George Prevost had to face a momentous decision: He could force the passage of the Saranac and march on to Albany, but his communications would be cut, and he must rely on a hostile country for supplies. Every day drew fresh bands of riflemen from the hills. Before he could get to Albany their number might exceed his, and then what? Unless Great Britain could send a new army or a fleet to support him, he must meet the fate of Burgoyne. Prevost proposed to take no such chances and the night of the 11th eight hours after MacDonough's victory, he gave the order “Retire to Canada.”

Now Sir George Prevost faced a crucial decision: he could push through the Saranac and continue on to Albany, but that would cut off his supply lines, leaving him dependent on a hostile region for resources. Every day, new groups of riflemen were coming down from the hills. By the time he reached Albany, their numbers might surpass his, and then what? Unless Great Britain could send another army or a fleet to back him up, he would meet the same fate as Burgoyne. Prevost decided not to take that risk, and on the night of the 11th, eight hours after MacDonough's victory, he ordered, “Retire to Canada.”

To hide the move as long as possible, no change was made till after sundown; no hint was given to the beleaguered town; they must have no opportunity to reap the enormous advantages, moral and material, of harrying a retreating foe. They must arise in the morning to find the enemy safely over the border. The plan was perfect, and would have been literally carried out, had not he had to deal with a foe as clever as himself.

To keep the move under wraps for as long as possible, nothing was changed until after sunset; no hint was given to the stressed town. They shouldn't have any chance to take advantage, either morally or materially, of pursuing a retreating enemy. They needed to wake up in the morning to find the enemy safely across the border. The plan was flawless and would have been executed exactly, if only he wasn't up against an enemy as smart as he was.

How eagerly Rolf took in the scene on Chazy Road; how much it meant! how he longed to fly at his fastest famous speed with the stirring news. In two hours and a half he could surely let his leader know. And he gazed with a sort of superior pride at the martial pomp and bravery of the invaders driven forth.

How eagerly Rolf absorbed the scene on Chazy Road; how much it meant! How he yearned to race at his fastest, delivering the exciting news. In just two and a half hours, he could surely inform his leader. And he looked on with a sense of pride at the military grandeur and courage of the invaders being pushed back.

Near the last was a gallant array of gentlemen in gorgeous uniforms of scarlet and gold; how warlike they looked, how splendid beside the ill-clad riflemen of Vermont and the rude hunters of the Adirondacks. How much more beautiful is an iron sword with jewels, than a sword of plain gray steel.

Near the end was a bold group of men in stunning uniforms of red and gold; they looked so fierce, so impressive next to the poorly dressed riflemen from Vermont and the rough hunters from the Adirondacks. An ornate sword with jewels is far more beautiful than a plain gray steel sword.

Dame Hubbell stood in her door as they went by. Each and all saluted politely; her guard was ordered to join his regiment. The lady waved her sun-bonnet in response to their courteous good-bye, and could not refrain from calling out:

Dame Hubbell stood in her doorway as they passed by. Each one politely greeted her; her guard was told to rejoin his unit. The lady waved her sunbonnet in reply to their friendly farewell, and couldn't help but call out:

“How about my prophecy, Sir George, and those purses?”

“How about my prediction, Sir George, and those wallets?”

Rolf could not see his hostess, but he heard her voice, and he saw the astonishing effect:

Rolf couldn't see his host, but he heard her voice, and he saw the amazing effect:

The British general reined in his horse. “A gentleman's word is his bond, madam,” he said. “Let every officer now throw his purse at the lady's feet,” and he set the example. A dozen rattling thuds were heard and a dozen officers saluting, purseless, rode away.

The British general stopped his horse. “A gentleman's word is his bond, ma'am,” he said. “Let every officer now toss his purse at the lady's feet,” and he led by example. A dozen loud thuds were heard, and a dozen officers, now empty-handed, rode away after saluting.

A round thousand dollars in gold the lady gathered on her porch that morning, and to this day her grand-kin tell the tale.

A full thousand dollars in gold the lady collected on her porch that morning, and to this day her grandchildren share the story.





Chapter 84. Rolf Unmasks the Ambush

Rolf's information was complete now, and all that remained was to report at Plattsburg. Ten regiments he had counted from his peep hole. The rear guard passed at ten o'clock. At eleven Mrs. Hubbell did a little scouting and reported that all was quiet as far as she could see both ways, and no enemy in sight anywhere.

Rolf had gathered all the information he needed, and all that was left was to report at Plattsburg. He had counted ten regiments through his peephole. The rear guard passed at ten o'clock. At eleven, Mrs. Hubbell did some scouting and reported that everything was quiet as far as she could see in both directions, with no enemy in sight anywhere.

With a grateful hand shake he left the house to cover the fourteen miles that lay between Chazy and Plattsburg.

With a thankful handshake, he left the house to cover the fourteen miles between Chazy and Plattsburgh.

Refreshed and fed, young and strong, the representative of a just and victorious cause, how he exulted in that run, rejoicing in his youth, his country, his strength, his legs, his fame as a runner. Starting at a stride he soon was trotting; then, when the noon hour came, he had covered a good six miles. Now he heard faint, far shots, and going more slowly was soon conscious that a running fight was on between his own people and the body of British sent westward to hold the upper Saranac.

Refreshed and energized, young and strong, the representative of a just and victorious cause, he was thrilled by that run, celebrating his youth, his country, his strength, his legs, and his reputation as a runner. Starting off at a quick pace, he soon settled into a steady jog; by noon, he had covered a solid six miles. Now he heard distant gunfire and slowed down, soon realizing that a running battle was taking place between his people and the group of British troops sent west to secure the upper Saranac.

True to the instinct of the scout, his first business was to find out exactly what and where they were. From a thick tree top he saw the red-coats spotting an opening of the distant country. Then they were lost sight of in the woods. The desultory firing became volley firing, once or twice. Then there was an interval of silence. At length a mass of red-coats appeared on the highway within half a mile. They were travelling very fast, in full retreat, and were coming his way. On the crest of the hill over which the road ran, Rolf saw them suddenly drop to the ground and take up position to form a most dangerous ambuscade, and half a mile away, straggling through the woods, running or striding, were the men in the colours he loved. They had swept the enemy before them, so far, but trained troops speedily recover from a panic, if they have a leader of nerve, and seeing a noble chance in the angle of this deep-sunk road, the British fugitives turned like boars at bay. Not a sign of them was visible to the Americans. The latter were suffering from too much success. Their usual caution seemed to have deserted them, and trotting in a body they came along the narrow road, hemmed in by a forest and soon to be hedged with cliffs of clay. They were heading for a death-trap. At any price he must warn them. He slid down the tree, and keeping cover ran as fast as possible toward the ambush. It was the only hill near—Beekman's Rise, they call it. As far as possible from the red-coats, but still on the hill that gave a view, he leaped on to a high stump and yelled as he never did before: “Go back, go back! A trap! A trap!” And lifting high his outspread hands he flung their palms toward his friends, the old-time signal for “go back.”

True to the instinct of a scout, his first job was to find out exactly what was happening and where they were. From the top of a thick tree, he saw the redcoats spotting an opening in the distant landscape. Then they disappeared into the woods. The random firing turned into coordinated volleys a couple of times, followed by a period of silence. Eventually, a group of redcoats appeared on the highway about half a mile away. They were moving quickly in full retreat and heading toward him. At the top of the hill over which the road ran, Rolf saw them suddenly drop to the ground, getting into position to set up a dangerous ambush. Half a mile away, straggling through the woods, running or striding, were the men in the colors he loved. They had pushed the enemy back so far, but trained soldiers quickly recover from panic if they have a brave leader. Seeing a great opportunity in the bend of this deep road, the fleeing British turned around like cornered boars. The Americans couldn’t see them at all. The latter were suffering from too much success, having lost their usual caution. They trotted in a group down the narrow road, surrounded by forest and soon to be flanked by clay cliffs. They were heading straight into a trap. He had to warn them at all costs. He slid down the tree and, staying hidden, ran as fast as he could toward the ambush. It was the only hill nearby—Beekman’s Rise, they called it. Trying to stay as far away as possible from the redcoats, but still on the hill where he could see, he jumped onto a tall stump and shouted louder than he ever had before: “Go back, go back! A trap! A trap!” And raising his open hands high, he directed their palms toward his friends, the old signal for “go back.”

Not twice did they need warning. Like hunted wolves they flashed from view in the nearest cover. A harmless volley from the baffled ambush rattled amongst them, and leaping from his stump Rolf ran for life.

Not twice did they need to be warned. Like hunted wolves, they disappeared into the nearest cover. A harmless volley from the confused ambush rattled around them, and leaping off his stump, Rolf ran for his life.

Furious at their failure, a score of red-coats, reloading as they ran, came hot-footed after him. Down into cover of an alder swamp he plunged, and confident of his speed, ran on, dashing through thickets and mudholes. He knew that the red-coats would not follow far in such a place, and his comrades were near. But the alder thicket ended at a field. He heard the bushes crashing close at hand, and dashed down a little ravine at whose lower edge the friendly forest recommenced. That was his fatal mistake. The moment he took to the open there was a rattle of rifles from the hill above, and Rolf fell on his face as dead.

Angry about their failure, a group of soldiers in red coats, reloading as they ran, chased after him. He rushed into an alder swamp for cover, feeling confident in his speed as he dashed through thickets and muddy spots. He figured the red coats wouldn’t follow him far into such a place, and his friends were close by. However, the alder thicket came to an end at a field. He heard the bushes crashing nearby and sprinted down a small ravine, where the friendly forest began again. That was his crucial mistake. The moment he stepped into the open, shots rang out from the hill above, and Rolf fell face-first, dead.

It was after noontide when he fell; he must have lain unconscious for an hour; when he came to himself he was lying still in that hollow, absolutely alone. The red-coats doubtless had continued their flight with the Yankee boys behind them. His face was covered with blood. His coat was torn and bloody; his trousers showed a ragged rent that was reddened and sopping. His head was aching, and in his leg was the pain of a cripplement. He knew it as soon as he tried to move; his right leg was shattered below the knee. The other shots had grazed his arm and head; the latter had stunned him for a time, but did no deeper damage.

It was afternoon when he fell; he must have been out cold for an hour. When he came to, he was still lying in that hollow, completely alone. The redcoats had likely continued their escape with the Yankee boys behind them. His face was covered in blood. His coat was torn and bloody, and his pants had a ragged tear that was soaked in blood. His head throbbed, and his leg was in pain. He realized this as soon as he tried to move; his right leg was shattered below the knee. The other shots had grazed his arm and head; the latter had stunned him for a while but caused no serious damage.

He lay still for a long time, in hopes that some of his friends might come. He tried to raise his voice, but had no strength. Then he remembered the smoke signal that had saved him when he was lost in the woods. In spite of his wounded arm, he got out his flint and steel, and prepared to make a fire. But all the small wood he could reach was wet with recent rains. An old pine stump was on the bank not far away; he might cut kindling-wood from that to start his fire, and he reached for his knife. Alas! its case was empty. Had Rolf been four years younger, he might have broken down and wept at this. It did seem such an unnecessary accumulation of disasters. Without gun or knife, how was he to call his friends?

He lay there for a long time, hoping that some of his friends would come. He tried to raise his voice, but he was too weak. Then he remembered the smoke signal that had saved him when he got lost in the woods. Despite his injured arm, he took out his flint and steel to make a fire. But all the small wood he could reach was wet from recent rains. There was an old pine stump on the bank not far away; he could cut kindling from that to start his fire, so he reached for his knife. Unfortunately, the case was empty. If Rolf had been four years younger, he might have broken down and cried over this. It really felt like an unnecessary string of disasters. Without a gun or a knife, how was he supposed to call his friends?

He straightened his mangled limb in the position of least pain and lay for a while. The September sun fell on his back and warmed him. He was parched with thirst, but only thirty yards away was a little rill. With a long and fearful crawling on his breast, he dragged himself to the stream and drank till he could drink no more, then rested, washed his head and hands, 'and tried to crawl again to the warm place. But the sun had dropped behind the river bank, the little ravine was in shadow, and the chill of the grave was on the young man's pain-racked frame.

He straightened his injured limb to a position that hurt the least and lay there for a while. The September sun warmed his back. He was really thirsty, but just thirty yards away was a small stream. With a long and painful crawl on his stomach, he pulled himself to the water and drank until he couldn't drink anymore. Then he rested, washed his head and hands, and tried to crawl back to the warm spot. But the sun had gone down behind the riverbank, the little ravine was in shadow, and a cold chill enveloped the young man's pain-racked body.

Shadows crossed his brain, among them Si Sylvanne with his quaint sayings, and one above all was clear:

Shadows crossed his mind, including Si Sylvanne with his quirky sayings, and one stood out clearly above all:

“Trouble is only sent to make ye do yer best. When ye hev done yer best, keep calm and wait. Things is comin' all right.” Yes, that was what he said, and the mockery of it hurt him now.

“Trouble only comes to push you to do your best. Once you've done your best, stay calm and wait. Things will work out.” Yes, that’s what he said, and the irony of it stung him now.

The sunset slowly ended; the night wind blew; the dragging hours brought gloom that entered in. This seemed indeed the direst strait of his lot. Crippled, dying of cold, helpless, nothing to do but wait and die, and from his groaning lips there came the half-forgotten prayer his mother taught him long ago, “O God, have mercy on me!” and then he forgot.

The sunset gradually faded; the night breeze blew; the dragging hours brought in a sense of gloom. This truly felt like the lowest point of his situation. Crippled, shivering from the cold, powerless, with nothing to do but wait and die, he let out a half-remembered prayer his mother taught him long ago, “O God, have mercy on me!” and then he lost focus.

When he awoke, the stars were shining; he was numb with cold, but his mind was clear.

When he woke up, the stars were shining; he felt numb from the cold, but his mind was clear.

“This is war,” he thought, “and God knows we never sought it.” And again the thought: “When I offered to serve my country, I offered my life. I am willing to die, but this is not a way of my choosing,” and a blessed, forgetfulness came upon him again.

“This is war,” he thought, “and God knows we never wanted this.” And again the thought: “When I volunteered to serve my country, I offered my life. I’m willing to die, but this isn’t the way I would choose,” and a comforting forgetfulness washed over him again.

But his was a stubborn-fibred race; his spark of life was not so quickly quenched; its blazing torch might waver, wane, and wax again. In the chill, dark hour when the life-lamp flickers most, he wakened to hear the sweet, sweet music of a dog's loud bark; in a minute he heard it nearer, and yet again at hand, and Skookum, erratic, unruly, faithful Skookum, was bounding around and barking madly at the calm, unblinking stars.

But he came from a tough breed; his spirit wasn't easily snuffed out; its bright flame could flicker, fade, and then flare up again. In the cold, dark moment when life feels most fragile, he woke up to the sweet, sweet sound of a dog's loud bark; in a moment, it got closer, and then even closer, and Skookum, unpredictable, unruly, loyal Skookum, was jumping around and barking wildly at the calm, unblinking stars.

A human “halloo” rang not far away; then others, and Skookum barked and barked.

A human shout echoed nearby; then others joined in, and Skookum barked and barked.

Now the bushes rustled near, a man came out, kneeled down, laid hand on the dying soldier's brow, and his heart. He opened his eyes, the man bent over him and softly said, “Nibowaka! it's Quonab.”

Now the bushes rustled nearby, a man stepped out, knelt down, placed his hand on the dying soldier's forehead, and on his heart. He opened his eyes; the man leaned over him and gently said, “Nibowaka! It's Quonab.”

That night when the victorious rangers had returned to Plattsburg it was a town of glad, thankful hearts, and human love ran strong. The thrilling stories of the day were told, the crucial moment, the providential way in which at every hopeless pass, some easy, natural miracle took place to fight their battle and back their country's cause. The harrying of the flying rear-guard, the ambuscade over the hill, the appearance of an American scout at the nick of time to warn them—the shooting, and his disappearance—all were discussed.

That night when the victorious rangers returned to Plattsburg, it was a town filled with happy, grateful hearts, and love among people was strong. The exciting stories of the day were shared, highlighting the crucial moments and the incredible way in which, at every seemingly hopeless turn, some easy, natural miracle occurred to help them win the battle and support their country’s cause. They talked about the pursuit of the retreating rear-guard, the ambush over the hill, the appearance of an American scout just in time to warn them—the gunfire and his sudden disappearance—all were discussed.

Then rollicking Seymour and silent Fiske told of their scouting on the trail of the beaten foe; and all asked, “Where is Kittering?” So talk was rife, and there was one who showed a knife he had picked up near the ambuscade with R. K. on the shaft.

Then lively Seymour and quiet Fiske described their scouting along the path of the defeated enemy; and everyone asked, “Where is Kittering?” The conversation buzzed, and someone displayed a knife he had found near the ambush with R. K. inscribed on the handle.

Now a dark-faced scout rose up, stared at the knife, and quickly left the room. In three minutes he stood before General Macomb, his words were few, but from his heart:

Now a dark-faced scout stood up, looked at the knife, and quickly left the room. In three minutes, he was standing before General Macomb; his words were few but came straight from the heart:

“It is my boy, Nibowaka; it is Rolf; my heart tells me. Let me go. I feel him praying for me to come. Let me go, general. I must go.”

“It’s my boy, Nibowaka; it’s Rolf; I can feel it in my heart. Let me go. I sense him praying for me to come. Let me go, general. I have to go.”

It takes a great man to gauge the heart of a man who seldom speaks. “You may go, but how can you find him tonight?”

It takes a great person to understand someone who rarely speaks. “You can leave, but how will you find him tonight?”

“Ugh, I find him,” and the Indian pointed to a little, prick-eared, yellow cur that sneaked at his heels.

“Ugh, I see him,” and the Indian pointed to a small, pointy-eared, yellow dog that was sneaking at his heels.

“Success to you; he was one of the best we had,” said the general, as the Indian left, then added: “Take a couple of men along, and, here, take this,” and he held out a flask.

“Good luck to you; he was one of the best we had,” said the general as the Indian left. Then he added, “Take a couple of guys with you, and here, take this,” and he held out a flask.

Thus it was that the dawning saw Rolf on a stretcher carried by his three scouting partners, while Skookum trotted ahead, looking this way and that—they should surely not be ambushed this time.

Thus it was that dawn found Rolf on a stretcher, carried by his three scouting partners, while Skookum trotted ahead, looking around—they should definitely not be ambushed this time.

And thus the crowning misfortune, the culminating apes of disaster—the loss of his knife—the thing of all others that roused in Rolf the spirit of rebellion, was the way of life, his dungeon's key, the golden chain that haled him from the pit.

And so the final misfortune, the peak of all his disasters—the loss of his knife—the one thing that sparked Rolf's rebellious spirit, was the way of life, his key to freedom, the golden chain that pulled him out of the depths.





Chapter 85. The Hospital, the Prisoners, and Home

There were wagons and buckboards to be had, but the road was rough, so the three changed off as litter-bearers and brought him to the lake where the swift and smooth canoe was ready, and two hours later they carried him into the hospital at Plattsburg.

There were wagons and buckboards available, but the road was rough, so the three of them took turns as litter-bearers and brought him to the lake where the fast and smooth canoe was ready. Two hours later, they carried him into the hospital in Plattsburg.

The leg was set at once, his wounds were dressed, he was warmed, cleaned, and fed; and when the morning sun shone in the room, it was a room of calm and peace.

The leg was set right away, his wounds were treated, he was warmed, cleaned, and fed; and when the morning sun lit up the room, it felt calm and peaceful.

The general came and sat beside him for a time, and the words he spoke were ample, joyful compensation for his wounds. MacDonough, too, passed through the ward, and the warm vibrations of his presence drove death from many a bed whose inmate's force ebbed low, whose soul was walking on the brink, was near surrender.

The general came and sat next to him for a while, and what he said was more than enough to make up for his injuries. MacDonough also walked through the ward, and the positive energy he brought helped push death away from many beds where the occupants were growing weak and were close to giving up.

Rolf did not fully realize it then, but long afterward it was clear that this was the meaning of the well-worn words, “He filled them with a new spirit.”

Rolf didn't fully understand it at the time, but much later it became clear that this was what the familiar phrase meant, “He filled them with a new spirit.”

There was not a man in the town but believed the war was over; there was not a man in the town who doubted that his country's cause was won.

There wasn't a single man in the town who thought the war was still going on; every man in the town was sure that his country had won the fight.

Three weeks is a long time to a youth near manhood, but there was much of joy to while away the hours. The mothers of the town came and read and talked. There was news from the front. There were victories on the high seas. His comrades came to sit beside him; Seymour, the sprinter, as merry a soul as ever hankered for the stage and the red cups of life; Fiske, the silent, and McGlassin, too, with his dry, humorous talk; these were the bright and funny hours. There were others. There came a bright-checked Vermont mother whose three sons had died in service at MacDonough's guns; and she told of it in a calm voice, as one who speaks of her proudest honour. Yes, she rejoiced that God had given her three such sons, and had taken again His gifts in such a day of glory. Had England's rulers only known, that this was the spirit of the land that spoke, how well they might have asked: “What boots it if we win a few battles, and burn a few towns; it is a little gain and passing; for there is one thing that no armies, ships, or laws, or power on earth, or hell itself can down or crush—that alone is the thing that counts or endures—the thing that permeates these men, that finds its focal centre in such souls as that of the Vermont mother, steadfast, proud, and rejoicing in her bereavement.”

Three weeks feels like a long time for a young man approaching adulthood, but there was plenty of joy to help pass the hours. The mothers of the town came to read and chat. There were updates from the frontlines. Celebrations of victories at sea. His friends visited him; Seymour, the sprinter, cheerful and always dreaming of the stage and the excitement of life; Fiske, the quiet one; and McGlassin, too, with his witty and dry humor; these were the lively and entertaining moments. There were others who came by. A bright-patterned Vermont mother arrived whose three sons had died serving at MacDonough's guns; she spoke calmly, as if recounting her greatest honor. Yes, she took pride in God giving her three such sons and in His taking them back during such a glorious time. If only England's leaders had understood that this was the spirit of the land speaking, they might have realized: “What does it matter if we win a few battles and burn a few towns; it’s a small, fleeting gain; for there’s one thing that no armies, ships, laws, or earthly or hellish power can suppress or destroy—that is what truly matters and lasts—the spirit that flows through these men, centered in souls like that of the Vermont mother, steadfast, proud, and finding joy in her loss.”

But these were forms that came and went; there were two that seldom were away—the tall and supple one of the dark face and the easy tread, and his yellow shadow—the ever unpopular, snappish, prick-eared cur, that held by force of arms all territories at floor level contiguous to, under, comprised, and bounded by, the four square legs and corners of the bed.

But these figures came and went; there were two that rarely left—the tall, agile one with the dark face and the smooth walk, and his yellow shadow—the always unpopular, irritable, pointy-eared dog, who claimed by force all the territories at floor level next to, under, around, and bordered by the four sturdy legs and corners of the bed.

Quonab's nightly couch was a blanket not far away, and his daily, self-given task to watch the wounded and try by devious ways and plots to trick him into eating ever larger meals.

Quonab's nightly couch was a blanket not far away, and his daily, self-assigned task was to watch the wounded and try by clever tricks and schemes to get him to eat larger meals.

Garrison duty was light now, so Quonab sought the woods where the flocks of partridge swarmed, with Skookum as his aid. It was the latter's joyful duty to find and tree the birds, and “yap” below, till Quonab came up quietly with bow and blunt arrows, to fill his game-bag; and thus the best of fare was ever by the invalid's bed.

Garrison duty was pretty easy now, so Quonab headed into the woods where the partridge flocks were abundant, with Skookum by his side. It was Skookum's happy job to find and chase the birds up into the trees, and he would “yap” below until Quonab arrived quietly with his bow and blunt arrows to fill his game bag; and that way, the best meals were always at the invalid's bedside.

Rolf's was easily a winning fight from the first, and in a week he was eating well, sleeping well, and growing visibly daily stronger.

Rolf was clearly winning the fight from the start, and within a week he was eating well, sleeping well, and noticeably getting stronger every day.

Then on a fleckless dawn that heralded a sun triumphant, the Indian borrowed a drum from the bandsman, and, standing on the highest breastwork, he gazed across the dark waters to the whitening hills. There on a tiny fire he laid tobacco and kinnikinnik, as Gisiss the Shining One burnt the rugged world rim at Vermont, and, tapping softly with one stick, he gazed upward, after the sacrificial thread of smoke, and sang in his own tongue:

Then, on a clear dawn that announced the victorious sun, the Indian borrowed a drum from the bandsman and, standing on the highest fortification, looked out over the dark waters towards the brightening hills. There, on a small fire, he laid down tobacco and kinnikinnik, as Gisiss the Shining One burned the rough edge of the world at Vermont. Tapping gently with one stick, he looked up after the sacrificial trail of smoke and sang in his own language:

“Father, I burn tobacco, I smoke to Thee. I sing for my heart is singing.”

“Father, I smoke for You. I sing because my heart is full of song.”

Pleasant chatter of the East was current by Rolf's bedside. Stories of homes in the hills he heard, tales of hearths by far away lakes and streams, memories of golden haired children waiting for father's or brother's return from the wars. Wives came to claim their husbands, mothers to bring away their boys, to gain again their strength at home. And his own heart went back, and ever back, to the rugged farm on the shores of the noble George.

Pleasant chatter from the East filled the air by Rolf's bedside. He heard stories of homes in the hills, tales of fireplaces by distant lakes and streams, and memories of golden-haired children waiting for their father or brother to come back from the wars. Wives came to take their husbands home, and mothers came to bring their boys back to regain their strength. And his own heart kept going back, again and again, to the rugged farm on the shores of the beautiful George.

In two weeks he was able to sit up. In three he could hobble, and he moved about the town when the days were warm.

In two weeks, he could sit up. In three, he could shuffle around, and he walked around the town when the days were warm.

And now he made the acquaintance of the prisoners. They were closely guarded and numbered over a hundred. It gave him a peculiar sensation to see them there. It seemed un-American to hold a human captive; but he realized that it was necessary to keep them for use as hostages and exchanges.

And now he got to know the prisoners. They were heavily guarded and numbered more than a hundred. It gave him a strange feeling to see them there. It seemed un-American to keep a human locked up; but he understood that it was necessary to hold them for use as hostages and for exchanges.

Some of them he found to be sullen brutes, but many were kind and friendly, and proved to be jolly good fellows.

Some of them he found to be grumpy brutes, but many were nice and friendly, and turned out to be really great guys.

On the occasion of his second visit, a familiar voice saluted him with, “Well, Rolf! Comment ca va?” and he had the painful joy of greeting Francois la Colle.

On the occasion of his second visit, a familiar voice called out to him, “Well, Rolf! How’s it going?” and he felt the bittersweet pleasure of greeting Francois la Colle.

“You'll help me get away, Rolf, won't you?” and the little Frenchman whispered and winked. “I have seven little ones now on La Riviere, dat have no flour, and tinks dere pa is dead.”

“You'll help me escape, Rolf, won't you?” the little Frenchman whispered and winked. “I have seven little ones now on La Riviere, who have no flour, and think their dad is dead.”

“I'll do all I can, Francois,” and the picture of the desolate home, brought a husk in his voice and a choke in his throat. He remembered too the musket ball that by intent had whistled harmless overhead. “But,” he added in a shaky voice, “I cannot help my country's enemy to escape.”

“I'll do everything I can, Francois,” and the image of the empty house brought a tightness to his voice and a lump to his throat. He also recalled the musket ball that had deliberately whizzed harmlessly overhead. “But,” he added in a trembling voice, “I cannot help my country’s enemy to get away.”

Then Rolf took counsel with McGlassin, told him all about the affair at the mill, and McGlassin with a heart worthy of his mighty shoulders, entered into the spirit of the situation, went to General Macomb presenting such a tale and petition that six hours later Francis bearing a passport through the lines was trudging away to Canada, paroled for the rest of the war.

Then Rolf consulted with McGlassin, explained everything about the incident at the mill, and McGlassin, with a heart as strong as his impressive build, embraced the seriousness of the situation. He went to General Macomb and presented such a story and request that six hours later Francis was carrying a passport through the lines, making his way to Canada, paroled for the duration of the war.

There was another face that Rolf recognized—hollow-cheeked, flabby-jowled and purplish-gray. The man was one of the oldest of the prisoners. He wore a white beard end moustache. He did not recognize Rolf, but Rolf knew him, for this was Micky Kittering. How he escaped from jail and joined the enemy was an episode of the war's first year. Rolf was shocked to see what a miserable wreck his uncle was. He could not do him any good. To identify him would have resulted in his being treated as a renegade, so on the plea that he was an old man, Rolf saw that the prisoner had extra accommodation and out of his own pocket kept him abundantly supplied with tobacco. Then in his heart he forgave him, and kept away. They never met again.

There was another face that Rolf recognized—hollow-cheeked, loose-jawed, and purplish-gray. The man was one of the oldest prisoners. He had a white beard and mustache. He didn’t recognize Rolf, but Rolf knew him; this was Micky Kittering. How he had escaped from jail and joined the enemy was a story from the first year of the war. Rolf was shocked to see what a miserable wreck his uncle had become. He couldn’t help him. Identifying him would have led to being treated as a traitor, so under the excuse that he was an old man, Rolf made sure the prisoner had extra accommodations and personally kept him well supplied with tobacco. Then, in his heart, he forgave him and stayed away. They never met again.

The bulk of the militia had been disbanded after the great battle. A few of the scouts and enough men to garrison the fort and guard the prisoners were retained. Each day there were joyful partings—the men with homes, going home. And the thought that ever waxed in Rolf came on in strength. He hobbled to headquarters. “General, can I get leave—to go—he hesitated—home?”

The majority of the militia had been disbanded after the big battle. A few scouts and enough men to staff the fort and watch over the prisoners were kept. Every day there were happy goodbyes—the men with homes were going home. And the idea that constantly grew stronger in Rolf pushed him forward. He limped to headquarters. “General, can I get leave—to go—” he hesitated—“home?”

“Why, Kittering, I didn't know you had a home. But, certainly, I'll give you a month's leave and pay to date.”

“Wow, Kittering, I didn’t know you had a place to live. But of course, I’ll give you a month off with pay up to now.”

Champlain is the lake of the two winds; the north wind blows for six months with a few variations, and the south wind for the other six months with trifling.

Champlain is the lake of the two winds; the north wind blows for six months with a few changes, and the south wind for the other six months with little variation.

Next morning a bark canoe was seen skimming southward before as much north wind as it could stand, with Rolf reclining in the middle, Quonab at the stern, and Skookum in the bow.

Next morning, a bark canoe was spotted gliding southward against whatever north wind it could handle, with Rolf lounging in the middle, Quonab at the back, and Skookum in the front.

In two days they were at Ticonderoga. Here help was easily got at the portage and on the evening of the third day, Quonab put a rope on Skookum's neck and they landed at Hendrik's farm.

In two days, they arrived at Ticonderoga. Here, they easily found help at the portage, and on the evening of the third day, Quonab put a rope around Skookum's neck, and they landed at Hendrik's farm.

The hickory logs were blazing bright, and the evening pot was reeking as they opened the door and found the family gathered for the meal.

The hickory logs were burning brightly, and the evening pot was giving off a strong smell as they opened the door and found the family gathered for dinner.

“I didn't know you had a home,” the general had said. He should have been present now to see the wanderer's welcome. If war breeds such a spirit in the land, it is as much a blessing as a curse. The air was full of it, and the Van Trumpers, when they saw their hero hobble in, were melted. Love, pity, pride, and tenderness were surging in storms through every heart that knew. “Their brother, their son come back, wounded, but proven and glorious.” Yes, Rolf had a home, and in that intoxicating realization he kissed them all, even Annette of the glowing cheeks and eyes; though in truth he paid for it, for it conjured up in her a shy aloofness that lasted many days.

“I didn’t know you had a home,” the general had said. He should have been here to witness the warm welcome for the wanderer. If war creates such a spirit in the land, it’s as much a blessing as it is a curse. The air was charged with it, and when the Van Trumpers saw their hero limping in, they were moved. Love, pity, pride, and tenderness surged through every heart that recognized him. “Their brother, their son, come back, wounded but proven and glorious.” Yes, Rolf had a home, and in that exhilarating moment, he kissed them all, even Annette with her glowing cheeks and bright eyes; though, in truth, he paid for it, as it stirred in her a shy distance that lasted for many days.

Old Hendrik sputtered around. “Och, I am smile; dis is goood, yah. Vere is that tam dog? Yah! tie him not, he shall dis time von chicken have for joy.”

Old Hendrik spluttered around. “Oh, I’m happy; this is good, yes. Where is that fool dog? Yes! Don’t tie him up, he’s going to get a chicken for joy this time.”

“Marta,” said Rolf, “you told me to come here if I got hurt. Well, I've come, and I've brought a boat-load of stuff in case I cannot do my share in the fields.”

“Marta,” Rolf said, “you told me to come here if I got hurt. Well, I came, and I’ve brought a ton of supplies in case I can’t pull my weight in the fields.”

“Press you, my poy you didn't oughter brung dot stuff; you know we loff you here, and effery time it is you coom I get gladsomer, and dot Annette she just cried ven you vent to de war.”

“Come on, my guy, you really shouldn’t have brought that stuff; you know we love you here, and every time you come, I get happier, and that Annette, she just cried when you went to the war.”

“Oh, mother, I did not; it was you and little Hendrick!” and Annette turned her scarlet cheeks away.

“Oh, mom, I didn’t; it was you and little Hendrick!” and Annette turned her bright red cheeks away.

October, with its trees of flame and gold, was on the hills; purple and orange, the oaks and the birches; blue blocked with white was the sky above, and the blue, bright lake was limpid.

October, with its fiery and golden trees, was on the hills; the oaks and birches were purple and orange; the sky above was a mix of blue and white, and the sparkling lake was crystal clear.

“Oh, God of my fathers,” Quonab used to pray, “when I reach the Happy Hunting, let it be ever the Leaf-falling Moon, for that is the only perfect time.” And in that unmarred month of sunny sky and woodlands purged of every plague, there is but one menace in the vales. For who can bring the glowing coal to the dry-leafed woods without these two begetting the dread red fury that devastates the hills?

“Oh, God of my ancestors,” Quonab used to pray, “when I reach the Happy Hunting Grounds, let it always be during the Leaf-falling Moon, because that is the only perfect time.” And in that flawless month of clear skies and woodlands free of every sickness, there is only one threat in the valleys. For who can bring the glowing ember to the dry-leafed woods without these two causing the dreaded red fire that destroys the hills?

Who can bring the fire in touch with tow and wonder at the blaze? Who, indeed? And would any but a dreamer expect young manhood in its growing strength, and girlhood just across the blush-line, to meet in daily meals and talk and still keep up the brother and sister play? It needs only a Virginia on the sea-girt island to turn the comrade into Paul.

Who can ignite the fire and marvel at the flames? Who, really? And would anyone except a dreamer think that young men in their prime and girls just past the blush of youth could share daily meals and conversation and still maintain brotherly and sisterly play? It only takes a Virginia on the island surrounded by the sea to transform the friend into Paul.

“Marta, I tink dot Rolf an Annette don't quarrel bad, ain't it?”

“Marta, I think that Rolf and Annette don't fight that badly, do they?”

“Hendrik, you vas von blind old bat-mole,” said Marta, “I fink dat farm next ours purty good, but Rolf he say 'No Lake George no good.' Better he like all his folk move over on dat Hudson.”

“Hendrik, you were one blind old bat-mole,” said Marta, “I think that farm next to ours is pretty good, but Rolf says 'No Lake George is no good.' He’d rather have all his folks move over to that Hudson.”





Chapter 86. The New Era of Prosperity

As November neared and his leave of absence ended, Rolf was himself again; had been, indeed, for two weeks, and, swinging fork or axe, he had helped with many an urgent job on the farm.

As November approached and his time off was coming to an end, Rolf was back to his old self; he had actually been that way for two weeks, and whether he was swinging a fork or an axe, he had helped with many important tasks on the farm.

A fine log stable they had rolled up together, with corners dovetailed like cabinet work, and roof of birch bark breadths above the hay.

They had built a nice log stable, with corners joined together like fine furniture, and a roof made of strips of birch bark over the hay.

But there was another building, too, that Rolf had worked at night and day. It was no frontier shack, but a tall and towering castle, splendid and roomy, filled with loved ones and love. Not by the lake near by, not by the river of his choice, but higher up than the tops of the high mountains it loomed, and he built and built until the month was nearly gone. Then only did he venture to ask for aid, and Annette it was who promised to help him finish the building.

But there was another building that Rolf had worked on day and night. It wasn’t just a simple cabin, but a tall and impressive castle, spacious and filled with loved ones and love. Not by the nearby lake, not by the river he preferred, but higher than the tops of the tallest mountains, it stood, and he kept building and building until the month was almost over. Only then did he dare to ask for help, and it was Annette who promised to help him finish the construction.

Yes, the Lake George shore was a land of hungry farms. It was off the line of travel, too. It was neither Champlain nor Hudson; and Hendrik, after ten years' toil with barely a living to show, was easily convinced. Next summer they must make a new choice of home. But now it was back to Plattsburg.

Yes, the Lake George shore was an area of struggling farms. It was also off the beaten path. It wasn’t near Champlain or Hudson; and Hendrik, after ten years of hard work with hardly anything to show for it, was easily persuaded. Next summer, they would need to choose a new place to live. But for now, it was back to Plattsburgh.

On November 1st Rolf and Quonab reported to General Macomb. There was little doing but preparations for the winter. There were no prospects of further trouble from their neighbours in the north. Most of the militia were already disbanded, and the two returned to Plattsburg, only to receive their honourable discharge, to be presented each with the medal of war, with an extra clasp on Rolf's for that dauntless dash that spiked the British guns.

On November 1st, Rolf and Quonab checked in with General Macomb. There wasn’t much going on except for getting ready for winter. There were no signs of any further issues from their neighbors to the north. Most of the militia had already been dismissed, and the two went back to Plattsburg, only to receive their honorable discharge, along with a war medal for each of them, with an extra clasp on Rolf's for his fearless charge that took out the British guns.

Wicked war with its wickedness was done at last. “The greatest evil that can befall a country,” some call it, and yet out of this end came three great goods: The interstate distrust had died away, for now they were soldiers who had camped together, who had “drunk from the same canteen”; little Canada, until then a thing of shreds and scraps, had been fused in the furnace, welded into a young nation, already capable of defending her own. England, arrogant with long success at sea, was taught a lesson of courtesy and justice, for now the foe whom she had despised and insulted had shown himself her equal, a king of the sea-king stock. The unnecessary battle of New Orleans, fought two weeks after the war was officially closed, showed that the raw riflemen of Tennessee were more than a match for the seasoned veterans who had overcome the great Napoleon, and thus on land redeemed the Stars and Stripes.

Wicked war with all its wickedness was finally over. “The greatest evil that can happen to a country,” some say, yet from this end came three major positives: The distrust between states had disappeared, as they now were soldiers who had camped together, who had “drunk from the same canteen”; little Canada, once just a collection of bits and pieces, had been forged in the fire, transformed into a young nation, already capable of defending itself. England, full of arrogance from its long success at sea, learned a lesson in courtesy and justice, for now the enemy she had scorned and insulted had proven to be her equal, a king of the sea-king lineage. The pointless battle of New Orleans, fought two weeks after the war was officially over, demonstrated that the raw riflemen from Tennessee were more than a match for the seasoned veterans who had defeated the great Napoleon, thus redeeming the Stars and Stripes on land.

The war brought unmeasured material loss on all concerned, but some weighty lasting gains to two at least. On December 24, 1814, the Treaty of Ghent was signed and the long rides were hung up on the cabin walls. Nothing was said in the treaty about the cause of war—the right of search. Why should they speak of it? If a big boy bullies a smaller one and gets an unexpected knockdown blow, it is not necessary to have it all set forth in terms before they shake hands that “I, John, of the first part, to wit, the bully, do hereby agree, promise, and contract to refrain in future forevermore from bullying you, Jonathan, of the second part, to wit, the bullied.” That point had already been settled by the logic of events. The right of search was dead before the peace was born, and the very place of its bones is forgotten to-day.

The war caused huge material losses for everyone involved, but at least two parties gained some significant lasting benefits. On December 24, 1814, the Treaty of Ghent was signed, and the long rides were hung up on the cabin walls. The treaty didn’t mention the reason for the war—the right of search. Why should it? If a bigger kid bullies a smaller one and then gets an unexpected knockdown, it’s not necessary to spell it out before they shake hands that “I, John, the bully, agree to never bully you again, Jonathan, the bullied.” That issue had already been resolved by what had happened. The right of search was already dead before peace was achieved, and today, no one even remembers where it was buried.

Rolf with Quonab returned to the trapping that winter; and as soon as the springtime came and seeding was over, he and Van Trumper made their choice of farms. Every dollar they could raise was invested in the beautiful sloping lands of the upper Hudson. Rolf urged the largest possible purchase now. Hendrick looked somewhat aghast at such a bridge-burning move. But a purchaser for his farm was found with unexpected promptness, one who was not on farming bent and the way kept opening up.

Rolf and Quonab went back to trapping that winter, and as soon as spring arrived and planting was done, he and Van Trumper chose their farms. They invested every dollar they could raise in the gorgeous sloping lands of the upper Hudson. Rolf insisted on making the largest purchase possible right away. Hendrick looked a bit shocked at such a risky move. But surprisingly, they quickly found a buyer for his farm—someone who wasn’t interested in farming—and the path kept clearing for them.

The wedding did not take place till another year, when Annette was nineteen and Rolf twenty-one. And the home they moved to was not exactly a castle, but much more complete and human.

The wedding didn't happen until a year later, when Annette was nineteen and Rolf was twenty-one. The home they moved to wasn't exactly a castle, but it was much more complete and welcoming.

This was the beginning of a new settlement. Given good land in plenty, and all the rest is easy; neighbours came in increasing numbers; every claim was taken up; Rolf and Hendrik saw themselves growing rich, and at length the latter was thankful for the policy that he once thought so rash, of securing all the land he could. Now it was his making, for in later years his grown-up sons were thus provided for, and kept at home.

This was the start of a new community. With plenty of good land available, everything else fell into place; neighbors arrived in greater numbers; every plot was claimed; Rolf and Hendrik saw themselves getting wealthy, and eventually, Hendrik was grateful for the decision he once thought was reckless, to secure as much land as he could. Now it was paying off, as it provided for his grown-up sons and kept them at home.

The falls of the river offered, as Rolf had foreseen, a noble chance for power. Very early he had started a store and traded for fur. Now, with the careful savings, he was able to build his sawmill; and about it grew a village with a post-office that had Rolf's name on the signboard.

The river's falls provided, as Rolf had predicted, a great opportunity for power. He had started a store and traded furs early on. Now, with his careful savings, he was able to build his sawmill, and a village grew around it, complete with a post office that had Rolf's name on the sign.

Quonab had come, of course, with Rolf, but he shunned the house, and the more so as it grew in size. In a remote and sheltered place he built a wigwam of his own.

Quonab had come, of course, with Rolf, but he avoided the house, especially as it got bigger. In a quiet and protected spot, he built his own wigwam.

Skookum was divided in his allegiance, but he solved the puzzle by dividing his time between them. He did not change much, but he did rise in a measure to the fundamental zoological fact that hens are not partridges; and so acquired a haughty toleration of the cackle-party throng that assembled in the morning at Annette's call. Yes, he made even another step of progress, for on one occasion he valiantly routed the unenlightened dog of a neighbour, a “cur of low degree,” whose ideas of ornithology were as crude as his own had been in the beginning.

Skookum was torn between his loyalties, but he figured out a way to manage by splitting his time between them. He didn’t change much, but he did come to terms with the fact that hens aren’t partridges, which helped him develop a somewhat haughty tolerance for the noisy group that gathered in the morning at Annette's call. Yes, he even made another leap forward, for on one occasion he bravely chased off the ignorant neighbor's dog, a "mutt of low quality," whose understanding of birds was as basic as Skookum's had been at the start.

All of which was greatly to his credit, for he found it hard to learn now; he was no longer young, and before he had seen eight springs dissolve the snow, he was called to the Land of Happy Hunting, where the porcupine is not, but where hens abound on every side, and there is no man near to meddle with his joy.

All of this was a big plus for him, as he found it difficult to learn now; he was no longer young, and before he had seen eight springs melt the snow, he was called to the Land of Happy Hunting, where porcupines are absent, but where chickens are everywhere, and there’s no one around to disturb his happiness.

Yet, when he died, he lived. His memory was kept ever green, for Skookum Number 2 was there to fill his room, and he gave place to Skookum 3, and so they keep their line on to this very day.

Yet, when he died, he lived on. His memory stayed fresh, because Skookum Number 2 was there to take his place, and he made way for Skookum 3, and so they continue their legacy to this very day.





Quonab Goes Home

The public has a kind of crawlin' common-sense, that is always right and fair in the end, only it's slow—Sayings of Si Sylvanne.

The public has a sort of instinctive common sense that's always accurate and just in the end, but it takes time—Sayings of Si Sylvanne.

Twenty years went by. Rolf grew and prospered. He was a man of substance and of family now; for store and mill were making money fast, and the little tow-tops came at regular intervals.

Twenty years passed. Rolf grew and thrived. He was now a man of means and family; both the store and the mill were making money quickly, and the little tow-tops arrived regularly.

And when the years had added ripeness to his thought, and the kind gods of gold had filled his scrip, it was that his ampler life began to bloom. His was a mind of the best begetting, born and bred of ancient, clean-blooded stock; inflexibly principled, trained by a God-fearing mother, nurtured in a cradle of adversity, schooled in a school of hardship, developed in the big outdoors, wise in the ways of the woods, burnt in the fire of affliction, forced into self-reliance, inspired with the lofty inspiration of sacrificial patriotism—the good stuff of his make-up shone, as shines the gold in the fervent heat; the hard blows that prove or crush, had proved; the metal had rung true; and in the great valley, Rolf Kittering was a man of mark.

And as the years added depth to his thoughts, and the kind gods of wealth filled his pockets, that was when his fuller life began to flourish. He had a brilliant mind, born from ancient, noble heritage; resolutely principled, raised by a God-fearing mother, shaped by challenges, educated through hardship, developed in the wilderness, wise in the ways of nature, tempered by adversity, driven towards independence, inspired by the noble spirit of selfless patriotism—the best parts of him shone bright, like gold in intense heat; the hard blows that test or break had tested him; the metal had proven its worth; and in the great valley, Rolf Kittering was a distinguished man.

The country's need of such is ever present and ever seeking. Those in power who know and measure men soon sought him out, and their messenger was the grisly old Si Sylvanne.

The country's need for this is always there and constantly looking for it. Those in power who understand and assess people quickly sought him out, and their messenger was the grim old Si Sylvanne.

Because he was a busy man, Rolf feared to add to his activities. Because he was a very busy man, the party new they needed him. So at length it was settled, and in a little while, Rolf stood in the Halls of Albany and grasped the hand of the ancient mill-man as a colleague, filling an honoured place in the councils of the state.

Because he was a busy man, Rolf was hesitant to take on more tasks. Since he was very busy, the party knew they needed him. Eventually, it was decided, and soon enough, Rolf stood in the Halls of Albany and shook hands with the elderly mill-man as a colleague, taking on an esteemed role in the state council.

Each change brought him new activities. Each year he was more of a public man, and his life grew larger. From Albany he went to New York, in the world of business and men's affairs; and at last in Washington, his tall, manly figure was well known, and his good common-sense and clean business ways were respected. Yet each year during hunting time he managed to spend a few weeks with Quonab in the woods. Tramping on their ancient trapping grounds, living over the days of their early hunts; and double zest was added when Rolf the second joined them and lived and loved it all.

Each change introduced him to new activities. Every year, he became more of a public figure, and his life expanded. He moved from Albany to New York, immersing himself in the business world and men's affairs; eventually, in Washington, his tall, manly figure became well-known, and people respected his common sense and straightforward business approach. Still, every year during hunting season, he managed to spend a few weeks with Quonab in the woods. They trekked through their old trapping grounds, reminiscing about their early hunting days; and their experience was even more enjoyable when Rolf the second joined them, embracing and loving every moment.

But this was no longer Kittering's life, rather the rare precarious interval, and more and more old Quonab realized that they were meeting only in the past. When the big house went up on the river-bank, he indeed had felt that they were at the parting of the ways. His respect for Nibowaka had grown to be almost a worship, and yet he knew that their trails had yearly less in common. Rolf had outgrown him; he was alone again, as on the day of their meeting. His years had brought a certain insight; and this he grasped—that the times were changed, and his was the way of a bygone day.

But this was no longer Kittering's life; it was just a rare and fragile moment, and more and more, old Quonab realized they were only connecting with the past. When the big house went up by the riverbank, he felt they were at a crossroads. His respect for Nibowaka had grown to the point of almost worship, yet he understood that their paths had less and less in common each year. Rolf had moved on; he was alone again, just like on the day they first met. His years had given him some insight, and he realized that times had changed, and his way of life belonged to a different era.

“Mine is the wisdom of the woods,” he said, “but the woods are going fast; in a few years there will be no more trees, and my wisdom will be foolishness. There is in this land now a big, strong thing called 'trade,' that will eat up all things and the people themselves. You are wise enough, Nibowaka, to paddle with the stream, you have turned so the big giant is on your side, and his power is making you great. But this is not for me; so only I have enough to eat, and comfort to sleep, I am content to watch for the light.”

“Mine is the wisdom of the woods,” he said, “but the woods are disappearing fast; in a few years, there won’t be any more trees, and my wisdom will seem foolish. Right now, there’s a powerful force in this land called 'trade' that will consume everything and the people too. You’re smart enough, Nibowaka, to go with the flow; you’ve aligned yourself with the big giant and his power is making you successful. But this isn’t for me; as long as I have enough to eat and a safe place to sleep, I’m content to wait for the light.”

Across the valley from the big store he dwelt, in a lodge from which he could easily see the sunrise. Twenty-five years added to the fifty he spent in the land of Mayn Mayano had dimmed his eye, had robbed his foot of its spring, and sprinkled his brow with the winter rime; but they had not changed his spirit, nor taught him less to love the pine woods and the sunrise. Yes, even more than in former days did he take his song-drum to the rock of worship, to his idaho—as the western red man would have called it. And there, because it was high and the wind blew cold, he made a little eastward-facing lodge.

Across the valley from the big store, he lived in a cabin where he could easily watch the sunrise. Twenty-five years added to the fifty he spent in the land of Mayn Mayano had dimmed his eyesight, taken away his springy step, and sprinkled his forehead with age; but they hadn’t changed his spirit, nor made him love the pine woods and the sunrise any less. In fact, he loved them even more than before, and he took his song-drum to the rock of worship, to his idaho—as the western native would have called it. There, because it was high up and the wind blew cold, he built a small lodge facing east.

He was old and hunting was too hard for him, but there was a strong arm about him now; he dimly thought of it at times—the arm of the fifteen-year-old boy that one time he had shielded. There was no lack of food or blankets in the wigwam, or of freedom in the woods under the sun-up rock. But there was a hunger that not farseeing Nibowaka could appease, not even talk about. And Quonab built another medicine lodge to watch the sun go down over the hill. Sitting by a little fire to tune his song-drum, he often crooned to the blazing skies. “I am of the sunset now, I and my people,” he sang, “the night is closing over us.”

He was old, and hunting was too difficult for him, but there was a strong arm around him now; sometimes he faintly thought of it—the arm of the fifteen-year-old boy he had once protected. There was no shortage of food or blankets in the wigwam, or of freedom in the woods beneath the sun-up rock. But there was a hunger that even wise Nibowaka couldn’t satisfy, not even acknowledge. And Quonab built another medicine lodge to watch the sun set over the hill. Sitting by a small fire to tune his song-drum, he often sang softly to the vibrant skies. “I am of the sunset now, I and my people,” he sang, “the night is closing in on us.”

One day a stranger came to the hills; his clothes were those of a white man, but his head, his feet, and his eyes—his blood, his walk, and his soul were those of a red Indian of the West. He came from the unknown with a message to those who knew him not: “The Messiah was coming; the deliverer that Hiawatha bade them look for. He was coming in power to deliver the red race, and his people must sing the song of the ghost-dance till the spirit came, and in a vision taught them wisdom and his will!”

One day, a stranger arrived in the hills; he wore the clothes of a white man, but his head, feet, and eyes—his blood, his walk, and his soul—were those of a Native American from the West. He came from the unknown with a message for those who didn't know him: “The Messiah is coming; the deliverer that Hiawatha told them to look for. He will come with power to save the Native people, and his followers must sing the song of the ghost dance until the spirit arrives and teaches them wisdom and his will in a vision!”

Not to the white man, but to the lonely Indian in the hill cleft he came, and the song that he brought and taught him was of a sorrowing people seeking their father.

Not to the white man, but to the lonely Indian in the valley, he came, and the song he brought and taught him was about a grieving people searching for their father.

“Father have pity on us! Our souls are hungry for Thee. There is nothing here to satisfy us Father we bow to Thy will.”

“Father, have mercy on us! Our souls are craving You. There’s nothing here that can satisfy us. Father, we submit to Your will.”

By the fire that night they sang, and prayed as the Indian prays—“Father have pity and guide us.” So Quonab sang the new song, and knew its message was for him.

By the fire that night, they sang and prayed like the Indian prays—“Father, have mercy and guide us.” So Quonab sang the new song and understood that its message was meant for him.

The stranger went on, for he was a messenger, but Quonab sang again and again, and then the vision came, as it must, and the knowledge that he sought.

The stranger continued, since he was a messenger, but Quonab sang repeatedly, and then the vision appeared, as it had to, along with the knowledge he was looking for.

None saw him go, but ten miles southward on the river he met a hunter and said: “Tell the wise one that I have heard the new song. Tell him I have seen the vision. We are of the sunset, but the new day comes. I must see the land of Mayn Mayano, the dawn-land, where the sun rises out of the sea.”

None saw him leave, but ten miles south on the river, he met a hunter and said: “Tell the wise one that I’ve heard the new song. Tell him I’ve seen the vision. We belong to the sunset, but the new day is coming. I must see the land of Mayn Mayano, the dawn-land, where the sun rises from the sea.”

They saw no more of him. But a day later, Rolf heard of it, and set out in haste next morning for Albany. Skookum the fourth leaped into the canoe as he pushed off. Rolf was minded to send him back, but the dog begged hard with his eyes and tail. It seemed he ought to go, when it was the old man they sought. At Albany they got news. “Yes, the Indian went on the steamboat a few days ago.” At New York, Rolf made no attempt to track his friend, but took the Stamford boat and hurried to the old familiar woods, where he had lived and suffered and wakened as a boy.

They never saw him again. But the next day, Rolf heard about it and quickly set out for Albany the following morning. Skookum the fourth jumped into the canoe as he pushed off. Rolf thought about sending him back, but the dog pleaded with his eyes and wagging tail. It seemed right for him to go since they were looking for the old man. In Albany, they got some news. “Yeah, the Indian took the steamboat a few days ago.” In New York, Rolf didn’t try to track down his friend but took the Stamford boat and rushed to the familiar woods, where he had lived, struggled, and grown up as a boy.

There was a house now near the rock that is yet called “Quonab's.” From the tenants he learned that in the stillest hours of the night before, they had heard the beating of an Indian drum, and the cadence of a chant that came not from throat of white man's blood.

There was now a house near the rock still known as “Quonab's.” From the tenants, he learned that in the quietest hours of the previous night, they had heard the sound of an Indian drum and the rhythm of a chant that didn't come from a white person.

In the morning when it was light Rolf hastened to the place, expecting to find at least an Indian camp, where once had stood the lodge. There was no camp; and as he climbed for a higher view, the Skookum of to-day gave bristling proof of fear at some strange object there—a man that moved not. His long straight hair was nearly white, and by his side, forever still, lay the song-drum of his people.

In the morning when it got light, Rolf rushed to the spot, expecting to find at least an Indian camp where the lodge used to be. There was no camp; and as he climbed to get a better view, the Skookum of today showed clear signs of fear at some strange object—a man who didn’t move. His long, straight hair was almost white, and beside him, remaining completely still, was the song-drum of his people.

And those who heard the mournful strains the night before knew now from Rolf that it was Ouonab come back to his rest, and the song that he sang was the song of the ghost dance.

And those who heard the sad melodies the night before now knew from Rolf that it was Ouonab returning to his rest, and the song he sang was the song of the ghost dance.

“Pity me, Wahkonda. My soul is ever hungry. There is nothing here to satisfy me, I walk in darkness; Pity me, Wahkondal.”

“Feel sorry for me, Wahkonda. My soul is always hungry. There’s nothing here to satisfy me; I walk in darkness. Feel sorry for me, Wahkonda.”






Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!